Quiropraxia...
::'lBllll!lliiilllllllilllll!lilllllll!llill!lll''o'^::'illlllilill^
THIS
BOOK
IS
THE GIFT OF
Henry Pelouze de Forest Class of 1884
Brenton
^
.v^
IZa 12a
R.
Grant
WEST SeVENTY-FlFTM SEVENTY-FIFTH
ST.
Q^^^S^
Henry Pelouze de Forest Class of 1884
DATE DUE
r MAU^r9754+V
^
JA-^
^
^'^f^fJ^^fm^M^
GAYLORO
PItCNTEOINU.S.A.
The
original of this
book
is in
the Cornell University Library.
There are no known copyright
restrictions
the United States on the use of the
in
text.
http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924012184028
Date Due
-'\0
RM C33,
Carver's Chiropractic
Analysis OF
Chiropractic Principles AS APPUED TO
PATHOLOGY, RELATOLOGY, SYMPTOMOLOGY AND DIAGNOSIS
IN
TWO VOLUMES
OP WHICH THIS
VOLUME
IS
TWO
BY
WILLARD CARVER,
LL.
B.,
D. C.
DEAN OF THE FACULTY AND GENERAL LECTUHER ON ALL SUBJECTS OF CURRICULA OF CARVER CHIROPRACTIC INSTITUTIONS, MEMBER OP IOWA BAR SINCE 1891. AUTHOR OF APPLIED PSYCHOLOGY, STUDIES PREPARATORY TO THAT OF CHIROPRACTIC, ROUGH NUGGETS, PSYCHO-BIO-PHYSIOLOGY, ETC.
PRESIDENT AND DEAN
CARVER CHIROPRACTIC COLLEGE OKLAHOMA
CITY,
OKLAHOMA
CARVER CHIROPRACTIC INSTITUTE NEW YORK
GITY
/I'S'SdUUh Copyright 192%
BY WILLARD CARVER Printed by
THE ROYCROFTERS at East Aurora,
U.
S.
A.
N. Y.
PREFACE (To Second Edition) In sion,
book
have tried to place before the professtudents and society in general, Chiropractic
this
Symptomology
I
in its comprehensiveness.
In this attempt I have had nothing to guide' me, except the limited treatise on symptomology as I wrote it
for the first edition,
which was enlarged considerably
second edition of The Analysis. In producing this book, I have tried to keep away from the therapeutic lines and methods of discussion as much as possible, and it was for that reason I used the word Symptomology, instead of that cumbersome and, to me, meaningless one, Symptomatology, almost exclusively used by therapeutists. I start with the fact, that the symptoms of relation are the expressions of health, and that the symptoms of disrelation are the expressions of disease, and carry this fundamental to its deductive details. It has been necessary to introduce some very unusual propositions into this work, but it must be remembered in the
that the science of Chiropractic
is
new, cardinal and
very unusual. If disrelation of the parts
disease, then this
book
is
all
an organism is not wrong. However, I am
of
PREFACE TO SECOND EDITION
iv
on that proposition, for, if that proposition is not a fact, then what has been called the science of Chiropractic is wrong and can never be willing to stand or fall
a science.
Much
book is original dictation, instead of revision, and was given in the emergencies and exigencies of a very busy time, under great stress and weariness, therefore, if the language does not have the rhythmic flow which might be desired, I did the best I could I
am
of this
under the circ*mstances. sure there
is
much more
to be added to the
subject of Chiropractic Symptomology, and that
many
and illustrations are yet needed, but I feel that work will act as a guide for future writers, who are more adept than Your sincere details this
WILLARD CARVER.
TABLE OF CONTENTS Page
Chapter I.
Remarks on Symptomology
II.
DiSKELATIONSHIP
III.
Orificial Abnormality
IV. V. VI. VII. VIII.
Motor Reactive Areas
IX. X. XI. XII. XIII.
XIV.
XV. XVI. XVII. XVIII.
XIX.
XX. XXI. XXII. XXIII.
XXIV.
XXV. XXVI. XXVII. XXVIII XXIX.
1
6 13
....31
Phases of Disrelation Phases of Disrelation Subluxation Luxations and Fractures Abnormality OF Brain ^Affirmative Abnormality of Brain ^Negative Nerves Abnormality Spleen ^Alimentary Abnormality Liver ^Alimentary Abnormality Liver ^Alimentary Abnormality Pancreas ^Alimentary Abnormality General Alimentary Abnormality Stomach General Alimentary Abnormality Intestinal Abnormality Intestinal Abnormality Abnormality of the Heart Vascular Abnormality Respiratory Abnormality Affirmative Respiratory Abnormality Negative Abnormality of Skin Abnormality ^Urinary System Venereal Abnormality Venereal Abnormality Gland Abnormality Combination Abnormality
... — —
— — — — — —
....57 .
.
.
.
.... .
.
.
— — .
—
42 50
....
.... .
66 75 95
Ill 121 129 137 146
153 167 181 198 208 220
231
246 253 261 269 279 293 303
VI Chapter
CONTENTS
Subject Index PAGE
SUBJECT
— —
134 502 619 526 87
Abscess Slaver Abortion Analysis Diagnosis Anesthesia
Apoplexy Anatomic Situation
1
534 312 487 463 and 658 345 327 308 485 340 345 526 657 332 156 33 and 36 227 224
Astigmatism Appendicitis
.
.
:
Amenorrhea Alcohol
Anasarca Angina Pectoris
Asthma Anomalous Formation Anemia
—Sex
Ascites
Asphyxiation Arsenic , Articular Rheumatism .
.
.
,
.
Adenoids Areas Cardinal
—
—^Incidental
Arteriosclerosis
Aneurysm
—
Anomalies
19 567 556 560
Orificial
Anterio-Poliomyelitis Agitans-Paralysis
Ataxia Barrenness Bacillus Tuberculosis Bilious Colic
Birth Boils
—
Brain General Discussion Brain Fever
,
Bronchitis Bruise Bright's Disease
Bubonic Plague Buggery Burns Catarrh oif Pharynx Cataract Carbuncles
'
vii
500 604 189 479 436 76 80 238 48 360 396 585 522
168 537 437
SUBJECT INDEX
viii
PAGE
SUBJECT Catamenial Discharge Carcinoma Cancer
Change
of Life
Cholera
Chorea Chicken-pox Child-bed Fever
—
Chiropractic Symptoms Cerebro-Spinal Meningitis Circumcision cl*tor*s— Glans
Clapp Classification of Iris Color of Iris
Conception Congestion
—Swelling
Contusion
Complete Fracture
Compound
Fracture Constipation Coffee Cardinal Areas
Croup Cuts Cuunilingus Cysts
Delivery Destructive Surgery
—Brain
Depressed Temperature Delirium Tremens Defects General
—
— —
Displacement Disrelation Disrelation Simple Displacement ^Liver Disintegration Dilation Negative Dilation of Heart Diagnosis
—
Diarrhea Diabetes Diphtheria
Drowning Dropsy Drugs Habit Forming
—
Dry
Tetter
Dysmenorrhea Dyspepsia Dysentery
26 273 641 639 477 431
372 445 233 .51 and 616 587 595
Contagion Convulsions
—
24-25-29
601 47 69 70 189 459 33
Consumption
Dislocations
^'S 593 591 482 396 448 415 481 632 453
479 507 95 86 646 519 10 43 144 53 173 215 619 and 632 201 365 234 524 101-343 and 152 467 572 489 303 206
SUBJECT INDEX
ix
PAGE
SUBJECT
639 512 508 248 250 577 54 133 318 434
Ear Educational Surgery Emergency Surgery
Emphysema
Empyema Emotional Perversion Enlargement Enlargement ^Liver
—
Epilepsy Eruptions
Esophagus
— Catarrh of
169 161 29
Esophagitis Excision of Nymphae External Ear
540 638 532 637
Exophthalmia
Eye
Eye—History,
Poetry, etc
555 533 523 490 79 438 25 and 29 687 72 646 649 572 318 189 492 350 206 68 and 520 8 2
Facial Paralysis
Far Sighted Fainting Falling of
Womb
Fever Felons
Female Organ Fellatorism First Intention Figure No. One Figure No. Two Fish-Skin Fits
Flatulent Colic Flexions Uterus Floating Kidney
—
Flux and Dysentery Fractures
—
;.
Force Applied Function Abnormality
—
Galloping Consumption Gall Stones Gastrodynia General Suggestions Paralysis General Paralysis Gestation Gland Jaundice
250 140 177 557 652 478 297 299
—
—
Gland—Pellagra Gland—Hook Worm
301
Glans cl*tor*s
Glaucoma Gleet Glycerine
Gonorrhea
Gout Granulated Sore Eyes
'
26 536 277 658 273 335 535
SUBJECT INDEX
X SUBJECT Greenstick Fracture Gravel Gravitation Illustrated
Gunshot Wounds Habit-Forming Drugs Hay Fever Heart Congestion Heart Inflammation Heart ^Pericarditis
— — — Heart— Carditis Heart—^Endocarditis Heart—Palpitation Heart—^Hypertrophy Heart—Dilation Heart—Organic Disease Heartburn
Heat Prostration Hemorrhage Hemiplegia Hemorrhoids
Hook Worm Hydrothorax Hydrocephalus Hydrophobia Hydrocele Hypertrophy Hypertrophic
—Not Insane —Anatomy of —^Locations —Other Markings —Figure No. Three —Figure No. Four
Idiot Iris
Iris Iris Iris Iris
Impotence Inbreeding Insanity Incidental Areas Injury to Orifices
Incomplete Fracture Infantile Paralysis
Indigestion Inoculation Intestinal Congestion Intestinal Intestinal Intestinal Intestinal Intestinal Intestinal
Inflammation Constriction
Catarrh
Tumor Colic Dilation
Inner Ear Intention ^First Insanity Insanity Five Questions Intermittent Fever
— —
PAGE 69 267 7 518
467 311 209 209 210 210 210 211 213 215 216 176 341 and 529 222 and 520 553 191 301 345 345 and 104 92 345 213 533
612 638 650 656 651 652 497 613 36 18 69 567 177 and 303 376 184 184 186 187 and 200 188 and 205 188 199 541 72 608 615 386
SUBJECT INDEX
xi
PAGE
SUBJECT Irrumation Jaundice
587 297
—Anemia
Kidney Kidney Kidney Kidney
340 341 343 348 and 350 29 243 480 50 519 237 189 and 200 272
—Sunstroke —Dropsy —^Movable—Floating Labia—^Excision La Grippe Lactation Laceration Lacerations Laryngitis
i
i
j
Lead Colic
—Whites Liver—AfiSrmative—Discussion Liver— Congestion Liver—Inflammation Liver— Catarrh Liver—^Enlargement Liver—Negative—^Discussion Liver—Exuding Catarrh Liver—Abscess Liver—Atrophy Liver— Cu-rhosis Livei—Gall Stones Liver—Displacement of Leucorrhea
Lipoma
Locomotor Ataxia Luxation Lymphangitis Malaria
596
:
;
,
Male Organ Malignant Cancer Markings of Iris Mastiurbation
Measles Medical Jurisprudence Meningitis
Mental Perversion Menopause Menstruation
Mercury Middle Ear Miscarriage
Mind—What It Is
—
Motor Areas Incidental Motor ^Reactive Cardinal Movable Kidney
—
Mumps
—
^
Muscular Rheumatism
Myopic Necessary Surgery Nephritis
—Pinched—Stretched—^Distended
Nerves
,
.
;
129 130 131 132 133 137 140 134 142 143 140 144 560 66 229 384 22 592 644 582 403 611 450 574 482 475 657 540 501 609 36 33 348 159 330 533 511 360 Ill
SUBJECT INDEX
xii
PAGE
SUBJECT
— Cut and Tom —^Inflammation of — Catarrh of —^Disintegration of
H*
Nerves Nerves Nerves Nerves
112 114 115 596 326 116 544 29
Neuroma Neuralgia Neurasthenia
Nose
—Excision of
Nymphae
585 467
Onanism
Opium
—Anatomic Situation
13 19 18 17 25
Orificial Orificial
Anomaly
Orificial
Injury Tissue Situation ^Female
Orificial
—
Organ
Organ—Male
22 216 596 345 489 556 572 211 507 146 147 148 149 150
Organic Heart Disease
Osteoma Ovariocele Painful Menstruation Palsy Palsy Wasting Palpitation Palliative Surgery
—Affirmative—Discussion — Congestion Pancreas—Inflammation Pancreas—Inflammatory Catarrh Pancreas—Dilation Pancreas—^Exuding Catarrh Pancreas—Dropsy Paralysis— General Discussion Passive— Cancer Pancreas Pancreas
Parturition
Pederasty Periplegia Peritonitis Pellagra Pernicious Intermittent Fever
—
Perversion General Discussion Pharyngitis
Pharynx— Catarrh
of
Piles
Pimples Pleurisy
Pneumonia
Pox—Syphilis
,
Prolapsus of Uterus
Puberty Punctures Puerperal Fever
Puerpera Hemorrhagica Quinine
.'
151 152 548 59i 479 586 554 193 299 390 573 157 168 191 435 240 241 279 490 474 518 481 228 657
SUBJECT INDEX SUBJECT
xiii
PAGE
Quinsy
158
Remittent Fever
392 236 237 238 238 240 240 241 246 247 248 2S0 602 248 250 232 232 233 234 324 330 332 335 327 401 402 403 657 593 406 327 529
—Larynx — Laryngitis —^Trachea —Bronchitis —^Lung —Pleurisy —^Pneumonia —Catarrh — ^Exu(Ung Catarrh —Abscess —Galloping Consumption —Tuberculosis — Emphysema —Empyema —Nose — ^Pharynx —Croup —Diphtheria Rheumatism— General Discussion Rheumatism—Muscular Rheumatism— Rheumatism—Gout Rheumatism—Sciatica Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory Respiratory
^Articular
Roseola Rubella
Rubeola Acid
Salicylic
Sarcoma Scarlet Fever Sciatica Seizures
—
^Normal Formation Sexual Perversion Shaking Palsy Shock-Fracture Short-sighted Simple Disrelation Simple Fracture Skin ^AfiSrmative Phases Skin ^Negative Phases Small-pox
Sex
— —
Sodomy Soft Chancre—Bubo Spanish Spleen Spleen Spleen Spleen Spleen
Lifluenza
—General Discussion —Congestion —Inflammation —Catarrh —Abscess
471 579 556 71 533 43 70 255 257 409 585 290 244
Spleen— Cake
121 125 125 126 126 127
Spotted Fever
453
SUBJECT INDEX
xiv
PAGE
SUBJECT
45 499 154 154 and 163 155 and 170 175 172 173 164 267 45 657 57 341 263 487 506 507 512 509 and 516 511 507 439 631 279
Sprain Sterility
—Congestion —Inflammation —Catarrh of —Dilation of —Fmigi —Cancer of —Ulcer
Stomadi Stomach Stomach Stomach Stomach Stomach Stomach
Stone in Bladder Strain
^.
Strychnine Subluxation Sunstroke Suppression
Suppression—Menses Surgery Classified Surgery for Anomaly Surgery ^Educational Surgery ^Emergency Surgery ^Necessary Surgery Destructive Swellings General Discussion
— — — —
—— ^Diagnosis
Symptoms Syphilis
Tea Tears
460 61 555 446 633 545 17 461 372 602 594 418 429 429 429 262 263 266 266 263 264
,
Telegrapher's Paralysis
Tetanus
,
Therapeutic Diagnosis
Throat
—
Tissue Situation
Orificial
Tobacco. Transmission Tuberculosis
—^Disease Impossible —Consumption
Tumor Typhoid Fever T5T)ho-Malarial Fever l^pho-Piieumonia Typhus Fever Urinary ^Inflammation Urinary Catarrh Urinary Exuding Catarrh Urinary ^Dilation Urine—Suppression of
— — — —
Urinalysis
— Congestion —Inflammation — Catarrh —Hemorrhage —Aneurism —Rupture
Vascular Vascular Vascular Vascular Vascular Vascular
;
.
.
.
220 221 221
,
222 224 226
SUBJECT INDEX SUBJECT
— —Leucorrhea—Whites —Gonorrhea—Clapp
xv PAGE
Venereal Vertigo
227 272 273 277 290 279 97
Wasting Conditions Whites
571 272
Vascular Venereal Venereal
^Arteriosclerosis
Venereal—Gleet Venereal—Ulcer
—Syphilis—Pox
Whooping Cough
161
Writers' Paralysis
X-Ray
555 611
Yellow Fever
393
Part
Four
SYMPTOMOLOGY WITH ANALYSIS OF PHASES OF DISEASE
DEDUCED FROM CHIROPRACTIC PATHOLOGY WITH THE DETAILS OF ADVERSE PROCESS
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS CHAPTER
I
REMAEKS ON SYMPTOMOLOGT Symptomology
a discussion of the symptoms of more than a discussion it is a systematization and classification of the symptoms of disease. The therapeutic conception is that symptomology is a discussion of the symptoms of functional disease, for they do not conceive that there could be symptoms of is
—
disease. Indeed, is
anything other than functional disease. Based upon this erroneous conception they have propounded the proposition that there are two kinds of disease organic and functional. And the entire discussion has been directed to the symptoms of functional disease, which they caU " symptomatology." The erroneousness of the conclusion stated becomes fully manifest when it is recalled that there is only organic disease; or, to put the matter in more simple and practical language, there is only tissue disease. From
—
this standpoint, then, it is impossible to discuss the
symptoms
of disease, except to discuss the evidences of
tissue disease, or, to completely include the therapeutic
idea, organic disease.
Symptomology, as we
desire to present it here,
is
a
systematization, classification, and complete discussion 1
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
%
of all of the evidences tending to prove tissue abnormality
which we have generally designated under the term, anatomic disrelation.
symptoms of disease, would seem almost necessary that first and para-
Incident to the discussion of the it
mount
attention should be given to the subject of
functional abnormality, but
when
it
remembered and corbe understood
is
that each phase of function has its incipient
responding anatomic disrelation,
it will
that the whole subject reverts to a discussion of the
symptoms which prove that anatomic disrelation. The author expects that this statement and attitude will be somewhat difficult to comprehend by those fully immersed in the thoughts of therapy, and constantly in the habit of thinking in the circular treadmill of therapeutic theories. However,
it
is
certain that a little
patient and specific investigation on the part of the
student will completely reconcile him to the facts as stated.
Just at first it would seem that the symptoms of tissue abnormality would be few and quite easily stated. This semblance comes from memory and conceptions of
so-called
recall the
therapeutic physical diagnosis.
physician coming to our bedside,
We
all
when we
were children, feeling our pulse, looking at the tongue, examining the eyes, and perhaps placing the hand upon the abdomen, and then going off into a long series of
who had us in charge, as to conduct, sensation, and so forth, for a considerable time back. These constitute the sum total of our questions, directed to those
memory
of physical examination.
In the light of our latest developments along the lines
REMARKS ON SYMPTOMOLOGY of physical diagnosis
the good old
method
3
from the therapeutic standpoint, of feeling the pulse, looking at the
tongue, Ustening to the heart, taking the respiration,
has only been added to by the attempt to analyze colloids and excretions taken from the body, which has not had the effect of leading us any further in the right direction, or giving us any more definite knowledge of the actual anatomic situation.
and percussing the
The
cavities,
therapeutic profession prides
physical diagnosis, but
all of its
itself
much upon
investigations have been
investigations of functions, instead of investigations of tissue conditions, save
and except, the examination
of
the eye, the tongue, and percussing the cavities. These
were really means of ascertaining tissue conditions, but is, therapeutists do not know
the difficulty about it that fact to this day.
The medical doctor examines the eye solely for the purpose of noting its brilUancy or dullness. In other words, its appearance, and with no thought that the eyes actually reveal tissue conditions.
The
physician percussed the cavities of the body not for the purpose of determining anatomic disrelation-
but for the purpose of ascertaining certain funcand never undertook to go behind the functional situation to the anatomic situation producing ship,
tional situations,
the functional expression. It never occm-red to him that the anatomic situation was just as abnormal as was the functional expression arising from
it.
It is true the physician looked at the tongue to see
whether it was coated, and the character of coating, but this was not for the pmpose of ascertaining the abnormality of the tissues of the tongue, nor yet of deducing
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
4
other anatomic disrelations, perhaps of the stomach or otherwise, but was to determine certain adverse
and again it never occurred to him that the adverse, functional condition he was looking for was always produced by anatomic disfunctional conditions,
relation exactly equal thereto.
The remarkable
situation which the basic principle
Chiropractic disclosed relative to the matter of symptomology is the high mark it reached relative to of
physical diagnosis.
very
first
The
instance,
Chiropractor's diagnosis in the
and indeed
investigation
and comparison
and anatomic
disrelationship.
in its entirety,
is
an
of anatomic relationship
The Chiropractor in examining a case gives
his entire
attention to the one thought of ascertaining all of the
phases of anatomic disrelationship. His search, then, is to isolate the symptoms which establish anatomic disrelationship, and its degree or gravity. This is accomplished by a very careful comparison of the situations found with the approximation of normal anatomic relation in the individual under examination. In the light of the last statement it wiU be clearly seen that each phase of anatomic disrelationship is a symptom tending to establish the general distortion that then exists in the organism of the one being examined.
In examining an individual to determine the amount and character of his anatomic disrelation, the Chiropractor does not by any means neglect physical conduct, for he well knows that physical conduct is a true expression of anatomic relation, and he knows that a careful examination and investigation of conduct will
REMARKS ON SYMPTOMOLOGY aid
him
in deducing the character
5
and amount of ana-
tomic distortion. Chiropractic symptomology, therefore,
a complete investigation primarily of the entire anatomic structvire of the individual under investigation, and in the second place of the entire conduct of each anatomic part of that person.
what
The
last,
is
not with the intention of ascertaining
disease exists, but for the purpose of aiding in the
deduction as to the amount and character of anatomic distortion, ordinarily called disease, that exists. In pursuing the work as outlined in this chapter, the
many confusing and and he must note that his only means of arriving at a clear and definite understanding of the whole matter rests, first, in his abiUty to form a student must expect to meet with difficult propositions,
very accurate approximation of the anatomic situation that should maintain in a given organism; second, in his abiUty to observe all of the anatomic digressions from that situation and to give to eachphasejust appraisem*nt,
and third and
finally, his ability to divest
himself of
all
influences remaining in his memory derived from therapy
and from
all
therapeutic conceptions of disease.
out in the study of symptomology with a mind singled to the one fact, that all disease consists in anatomic disrelation, and will fully follow that thought out definitely and deductively, not straining to arrive at any conclusion but only to arrive If the student will start
upon him by the actual not meet with any insur-
at convictions that are forced situations
found, he will
moimtable
difficulties,
clear vision
but he
will find himself
and understanding
with which he
is
with a
of the actual situation confronted in the given case.
CHAPTER
II
DISRELATIONSHIP
'
Because of the inability of language to fully express our meaning, disrelation has generally been conceived and expressed by the word "displacement." This has given room for a certain amoimt of error. Displacement in its basic conception leads the mind to fix upon a place from which something has been forcibly ejected, and in a certain abstract sense this is not wholly true of disrelationship. At first thought the student may not see much difference between the terms place and relation. However, there is a considerable difference, and it is a difference bearing an important relation to the themes about to be presented. A thing may be responding to the impulsion of force, and be in motion, and still in such conduct be responding to the law of its being or existence, and therefore, be occupying,, in the highest and best sense of the word, its relation to all other things. A thing, however, that is in motion, and occupying ,
relation as incident to that
motion can scarcely be
conceived to be occupying a place disassociated from the idea of relationship.
A
structure
may be
responding to the impulsion of force, but not be performing conduct in harmony with the law of its being, and therefore be out of relationship with parts with which it should be related, which 6
DlSHELATiONSHlf
1
situation has too frequently been called, " being out of
place," or " displaced."
then, in the use of the word " dis" placement comes from the fact that place applied to a
The
first error,
hardly a correct term, but a moving structure occupies relationship, and in that sense place, and therefore, when it is out of relationship it should be
moving
structvire is
said to be disrelated instead of displaced.
In order to fully grasp the thought of relationship, as it must be remembered that force has definite modes of action, and that what we are prone to call forces " are only the modes contra-distinguished from that of place, '
'
or phases of action of force.
For versal
illustration: attraction of gravitation
mode
same under
of operation
which we
has a uni-
conceive to be the
circ*mstances. Magnetism
is another phase of force. Cohesion and adhesion are still others, all of which are but phases of universal force. It must be understood that behind each of these illustrations of a phase of force there is a law universal
all
and that these named illustrations, and many others presented in the subject of physics are in its appUcation,
but partial expressions of universal force, which, in its ultimate comprehension means universal harmony. The meager demonstrations of universal force which we are able to observe many times appear to be in opposition with other phases of force, yet it is easy to see that if our understanding was sufiiciently comprehensive, we would know that what we call " forces " are but the multifold expressions of one great force, and that the operation results in universal movement, frequently called vibration, of each particle of the universe
and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
8
yet gives to each particle of the universe place in the sense of relationship.
In this phase of the thought the subject of place assumes a position of profound comprehension, and this is especially true when the subject is turned to the
human
organism, for there
we
see that the particles
composing the organism have no place from the standpoint of location, because they are constantly in motion, and frequently in a state of locomotion, and that they only have place in the sense of relationship to other particles composing the organism, and this relationship is maintained regardless of the fact that all parts are continually in motion.
A
phase of force, then, from the standpoint here explained and expressed, acting in an undisturbed manner upon matter, causes all of the particles of that matter to respond to that force. All of the particles that are of the same kind are caused to respond in the same way, and the particles that are of different chemical composition are caused to respond, but in different ways, according to the law of their construction. The result, while it may seem to be inharmonious, is not so. The difficulty the student, meets with, in a contemplation of the subject now being presented, is that no single phase of force can be demonstrated by itself, for the reason that it is a part of imiversal force, and therefore, there always are other so-caUed forces, or phases of force, that must be taken into consideration and accounted for in any demonstration. In an attempt to consider the operation of that phase of force which has been called gravity, or the attraction of gravitation, the phases of force incident to cohesion. single
DISRELATIONSHIP
9
adhesion, ponderability, convergence, divergence, and
must be kept in mind, and given due considerany conclusion therefrom. In an attempt to consider the action of that phase of force, which we have called the force of life, in its action upon matter, the operation must always be considered, keeping in mind all other phases of force that at the same time apply to the matter imder considerothers
ation in arriving at
ation.
must be imderstood that the force of in its conduct of constructing and maintaining an animate organism must act in apparent harmony with, and in apparent opposition to the phases of force that in no sense enter into the production of In
this connection it life
animation.
A
few
illustrations of these propositions
may
help a
and will, therefore, be given. In the department called assimilation the force of
Uttle at this point,
adhesion
must be overcome
in the
lymph
of the
must be must be overcome, and
intermolecular spaces; the influence of gravity
overcome; the force of tonicity against these phases of force molecular or atomic impact imder the impulsion of the force of life must be accomplished, bringing the particles within the scope of the law of cohesion. In other words, it must be imderstood that in order that the force of life may produce animate structures, it must at least produce apparent displacement or disrelation in order that it may produce the relationship of cohesion, which alone furnishes the basis for and possibility of animation. If the
student has carefully followed the subject thus
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
10
prepared for the statement that no molecule, cell, segment, or organ of the body has place per se, but that the place to which we refer in the terminology of Chiropractic is that of the relation which each atom, molecule, cell, segment or organ sustains to others. We deduce the fact that those atoms, molecules, cells, segments, or organs are in relation so long as they are far,
he
is
responding to the unobstructed or undisturbed force of life, and that when they are not so responding, those ^are out of failing to so respond, are in disrelationship
—
place—displaced. It would seem that these statements and deductions are so clear that no fm-ther illustration of them is necessary.
Yet, for fear that the student
may
not
grasp the exact thought, a few applications of the
laws just stated to the
human body
are here definitely
made.
A
vertebra has no place per se any
cell in
the biceps has.
in contemplation of its
and
relative tissues,
if it
The
more than a
vertebra only has place
relationship to occupies
to all such structures, that
is
its
its
fellows
exact relationship
to say, cartilages, liga-
ments, arteries, veins, lymph vessels, lymph glands, etc., we say it is in place. We realize that we only mean that it is in relationship. It follows that the relationship of a vertebra can only be determined by a comprehensive view of the entire organism, for it must be seen that in the normal the
human organism would be a harmonious
whole, each
part expressing a harmonious relationship to all other parts, and therefore, each part of the organism exercising a certain influence upon each other part, and this is
DISRELATIONSHIP
11
we have not yet developed the perfect human body, " Displacementof a vertebra," then, as it is frequently spoken of in Chiropractic terminology, does not mean the removal of the vertebra from a certain place, but it means the change of relationship of the vertebra to its relative structures. These may be cartilages, ligaments, muscles, arteries, veins, or any other structure including all structures of the given area. But if anything has occurred to produce displacement of an infinitesimal part, that amounts to disrelationship of the same protrue notwithstanding the fact that
portional gravity.
In the sense of the subject now under discussion it will be seen that the disrelationship of a vertebra is not a trifling matter of local consideration, but presents for consideration a local disrelationship and a disrelating influence that acts upon and produces adverse results of the distortion type in the whole organism. In the same sense just discussed a viscus has no place per se, but occupies a definite relationship to other
and the displacement of a viscus preproblem of disrelation and disrelating influence that must in each case be analyzed to its ultimate in aU parts of the organism, for it must be known that such
parts or organs, sents a
disrelationship will affect all parts of the organism.
" Displacement " so-called in a joint of the appendal portions of the body presents precisely the same nice question of disrelationship and disrelating influence
throughout the whole body, and the effects of such disrelationship must be followed, and appraised in all parts of the organism. Disrelation of a tendon, muscle, ligament, cartilage.
12
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
artery, vein, or any other structure presents the same nice
problem, and the same disrelating influence throughout relative and remote structures, and must be followed in all of its details in order that the effects
may be
well
understood.
Having placed before the student in as concise a manner as possible the facts of disrelationship, we must proceed in the next chapter to discuss certain phases of symptoms that arise from disrelationship.
CHAPTER
III
OBIFICIAL ABNORMALITY It goes without saying that orificial abnormality can not be discussed without a prefatory, or introductory
statement, and
must be
it
sufficiently
comprehensive
to render the whole subject clear to the student.
ANATOMIC SITUATION There is a belief on the part of the therapeutic doctors " that what they call the " cerebro-spinal nervous system exists as separate
and
distinct
from what they
call
the
" sympathetic nervous system."
They designate the cerebro-spinal system as the " father of the house," having control of what they call the outside, or somatic, body, and sleeping and resting between times. In their simile they liken the sympathetic nervous system to the " mother of the household," who never sleeps, but mends the worn garments of activity during the night
vigil,
and
therefore, has charge of the viscera,
or visceral system.
While the similes stated are beautiful, the actual, anatomic facts completely refute them; for it goes without saying that there is but one nerve system, which is co-extensive with the entire organism; no part of which ever rests or sleeps, except in the short intervals inter-
mediated between periods of great activity. To make the statement in the last paragraph perfectly apparent, it will be recalled that all nerves have 13
14
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
cerebrum and cerebellum, and extend in bundles, trunks or fasciculi to points. near their endings, where they separate into small fasciculi, and finally end in individual nerves. These bundles or fasciculi form ganglionic plexuses at places where they must change their fellowship, or, in other words, where individual nerves are rearranged, and not elsewhere. The primary, ganglionic plexuses occur in the medullary center of the two departments of the brain, called the cerebrum and cerebellum, and have been named the caudate nucleus, insula, claustrum, lentiform nucleus, origin in the cortex of the
thalamus, dentate nucleus, and so on. It will be observed that the
names
just used are not
the names of brain structures, but are
names
of gan-
glionic plexuses incident to nerve distribution,
further on in nerve rearrangement, are
which
called
crus
pons varolii, medulla, cranial nerves, vertebral cord and intervertebral nerve trunks. The pons and medulla are ganglionic plexuses for the rearrangement of nerves extending to the cerebrum and cerebellum, and nerves extending to the apparent
cerebri, peduncles,
origins of the twenty-four cranial trunks.
The
so-called
spinal cord is a series of gangliaform plexuses for the rearrangement of nerves primarily to the formation of continuous commissures, and the rearrangement of nerves and nerve fasciculi to compose the apparent origins of so called spinal nerve roots, which unite just inside of the foramina to form the thirty-one pairs of intervertebral nerve trunks. Just outside of the intervertebral foramina, the intervertebral nerve trunks divide into three primary branches, two of which are paramountly arranged to ramify somatic tissue, but
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY incidentally visceral tissue,
and the third to
15
particularly
ramify the viscera but incidentally to ramify somatic tissue.
These three primary divisions have been lamely designated in anatomy as the posterior primary division, the anterior primary division, and the white rami-communicans, but it is perfectly clear that they are all part of just one nerve system, and that the areas of their ramification is only a matter of economy, and does not serve to make them different kinds of nerves. They are distinctly the dorsal primary division, ramifying generally the dorsum; the lateral primary division, representing the serial ramification, intercostally
and mus-
way, of the sides and ventral walls trunk with certain incidental visceral ramifications and the visceral primary division, in the cavity of the body, entering into a comprehensive rearrangement to ramify the viscera with incidental somatic ramifications. The visceral primary divisions of the intervertebral nerve trunks first construct or compose the gangliated, plexiform cords, that have heretofore been known as " the sympathetic trunks." Those who named this remarkable visceral rearrangement, " The Sympathetic Nervous System," and those cularly in a general of the
who
still
entertain the idea that these nerves are
separate and distinct from the so-called cerebro-spinal system, overlook several important facts:
That the entire, ganglionic and plexiform trunks composed from branches called the white ramicommunicans, from the so-called cerebro-spinal system. (2) That each visceral nerve department and ramification corresponds definitely to the arrangement of (1)
are
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
16
the primary lateral division, usually referred to as the intercostal somatic trunks.
That the cervical, intervertebral trunks send their visceral contributions up inside the duramatral theca, (3)
classified
as spinal accessory nerves,
which, at the
jugular foramina enter the sheaths of the pneumogastrics, and thus descend ventral to the vertebral
column, to ramify cervical and thoracic viscera and somatic structures. (4) That substantially all of the twenty-four cranial nerve trunks send oflf branches to ramify viscera as well as somatic structures, which also imdergo ganglionic and plexiform rearrangements in accomplishing that result.
That
rearrangement through the gantrimks of the splanchnic region, certain of the nerves extend back through the intervertebral foramina to ramify both the visceral and somatic structures, and in many instances to ramify somatic structures fer se. (6) It is not denied that the vasomotor system, incident to the cavity of the trunk, is quite generally supplied from the so-called visceral system of nerves, but it can not be contended that blood and lymph vessels in somatic structures are visceral tissues. (7) That much of the viscera of the trunk cavity are raniified by nerves extending to them directly from somatic ramification, and this is particularly true of nerves from the lumbar and sacral, somatic plexuses. (8) Generally the cranial trunks are classified as somatic nerves, yet it is well known that to a very large extent contributions from them ramify viscera, and are (5)
after the
glionic, plexiform, visceral
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY
17
rearranged through ganglionic plexuses for the purpose of doing so. From what has been said it must be apparent that there
is
just one nerve system, although distributed, for
convenience, in several peculiar ways, just as the
cerebrum
is
placed in one chamber, and the cerebellum
and economy; the two being capable of acting as a unit, and constituting but one brain. The tenacity with which the old-time physician, and in another, for convenience
even those calling themselves orificial surgeons, cling to the thought of a separate and distinct " cerebrospinal and sympathetic nervous system," finds its explanation in the fact that they are not aware that they can explain the remarkable phenomenon orificial abnormality upon any other basis. This conception, however, is wholly erroneous, for the existence of two nerve systems is not in any sense necessary to the
—
—
elucidation of orificial abnormality.
TISSUE SITUATION It must be understood that based upon two definite and injuries to tissues of orifices,
orificial
abnormality
specific situations;
and
(2)
anomalous
is
(1)
for-
mations of orifices. However, before either of these situations can be intelligently discussed pathologically, it must be imderstood that the normal state of rest of all of the true orifices of the body is in tonicis. To explain the statement in the last paragraph, it is the normal conduct for each tube, ending in an orifice at the surface of the body, to be closed when not in function, and that while its sphincters are tonic they are nevertheless at rest in that condition.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
18 It
is
fundamental that
if
there
is
an intrusion within
the grip of the sphincters of an orifice, or within the lumen of an orifice, that the sphincters wiU not rest until the removal of that substance.
can be expelled, the sphincters and orifice undergo normal, restful closure, and the structures and nerves ramifying them are at rest. If, however, the intruder cannot be expelled, the sphincters continue to squeeze to accomplish that If the intruder
purpose;
the
nerves
are
irritated,
occurs along the path of the nerves
back to It
motor reaction involved clear
their cortical origins.
must be explained that the sphincter muscles, and way of knowing
the nerves controlling them, have no
whether the substance can be expelled or not. It is their business to expel all intruders, or work to that end until exhaustion
occtu-s.
This friendly conduct, under various phases becomes irritant, causing much and many phases of abnor-
an
mality.
OKIFICIAL INJURY
Injury to the
orifices,
of course, are part of the
may be very pronoimced in and consequent production or increase
history of the person, and their irritation,
of abnormality.
The
class of injury referred to in this connection is
laceration, particularly of the cervix of the uterus;
laceration
of the
and laceration In
perineal
of the
body; rectal lacerations
hymen.
these characters of lacerations, in an attempt to recover from the wounds, scar tissue is formed, which is all
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY
19
way, and never permits the sphincters to close the orifice normally and easily, but leaves the orifice always
in the
in a titillated state of irritation, resulting in hypertonicis of the sphincters,
with marked motor reaction to
the cardinal centers. This subject should be widely discussed and illustrated, and it will be taken up in connection with many other theriaes, and the principle definitely carried out
and It
illustrated. is sufficient,
in passing to say that the irritation
may be so great as, by the process from of motor reaction, to gravely aflfect many different areas of the organism, but it will, of course, expend its most definite effects upon the digestive structures, the braui and tissues of the head incident to the quasiinjured orifices
cavities,
such as the eyes, ears, nose, throat, ORIFICIAL
etc.
ANOMALY
this heading the student must understand that included actual anomalous formations; mother's
Under there
is
abnormal formations, and for the purpose here to be discussed, these will need no dif-
marks and
congenital,
ferentiating or separate discussion.
It must be known that away and by far the greatest amount of orificial abnormality, and that of paramount
importance, occurs as the result of abnormal formations of the orifices of the
body, but particularly those of the
sex organs.
Incident to the statement just
made
it is
well
known
that continual titillation of the nerve endings causes a
change in the vibration of those nerves, effecting a corresponding change in vibration in the cortical cells
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
20
of origin thereof,
and
whether the nerves nerves, or so-called
it
does not
titillated
make any
are
difiference
so-called
sensory
motor nerves, except that
if
the
titillation occurs at the periphery of so called sensory
nerves, the person
is
conscious of the irritation, other-
wise not.
In this connection it must be remembered that primarily the entire functions of the human body, visceral, vasomotor and somatic, are carried on without any conscious volition on the part of the person, and are, therefore, carried
and that
on through the nerves of
titillation of
tissue sense,
the periphery of the nerves of
produce just as profound motor reaction as the titillation of sensory nerve endings, although in the titillation of tissue sense nerves the person is not tissue sense,
conscious of the irritation. Yet, notwithstanding the lack of knowledge of irritation, tissue condefinitely
and function in all of the areas of motor reaction be rendered pathologic. The so-called lower animals have no sex consciousness, and if we are to believe naturalists, the same thing is true of the savage jungle folk, and in any event, those animals and those people are not troubled with anomalously, or congenitaUy abnormal sex organs or orifices. In the evolution of the human family to what is generally known as civilization, it became conscious of many things which formed no part of its conceptions in dition will
its
earUer history.
In evolution, the human family had to learn how to meet and cope with all of the unfamiUar conceptions which were necessary to development of a civilized consciousness. Primarily,
and
basicly, the
human family
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY
21
became conscious of sex and sex relationship, and we have a way of saying that it was perfectly natural for them to place a peculiarly high estimate upon sex relation.
No
matter whether we indulge that thought or not, was the first great problem in the development of civilization, and it is still the greatest problem that confronts the human family. More time and money is spent in an efiFort to solve the sex problem; more sorrow and tears occur as incident to it; more disease and death occiir because of wrongful conceptions and use of it, than all of the other problems which confront the human family. Because of the facts just stated, and the further fact, that the problem is still unsolved, has caused, and now causes, the human family to make sex and sex gratification a social, instead of physiologic problem. On account of the things just enumerated, for untold generations the human family has been too much centered upon the subject of sex, and because of this too great concentration, in a time before we had any reliable history of the human family, an hereditary tissue habit had been produced resulting in anomalous formation of sex organs in great excess over anomalies occurring in any other department of human reprothe fact remains that sex
duction.
As a
result of the excessive concentration
human family
upon
sex,
has produced, and is still the subject of, four marked phases of anomaly, which are fundamentally at the bottom of all orificial pathology, except only that caused by traumatic injury and the production of scar tissue. the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
%%
The
four anomalies referred to are the long or tight and the small urinary meatus of the male; the
foreskin,
hooded cl*tor*s or the tight or adhered prepuce of the female, and the dogeared labia minora, sometimes called nymphae. All of the anomalies mentioned are so old in their development that in Ancient Egypt it was at one time the custom to circumcise both male and female children generally, and for the same reason it still remains the custom of the Jews to circumcise all male children. Without offering any criticism, it should clearly appear that these matters should not be controlled by religion, but that,for thesakeof the evolution of the human family, circumcision of males and females should be performed only when the sex organs are anomalous.
and constructive attention to these all important matters would soon render circumcision Scientific
unnecessary, because evolution in a few generations would overcome these adverse tissue productions. But until that evolution is accomplished, society will be compelled to cope with the phases of abnormality that flow directly from the three anomalies mentioned.
MALE ORGAN
The
the most highly sensitive structure of the male organism. To insure unit operation in the act of procreation the glans penis is ramified by nerves
from
glans penis
all
is
areas of the brain cortex.
Titillation of the glans penis changes the vibration of
every cortical area, and, because of that fact reacts to every part of the organism.
The foreskin,
in its construction to protect the corona
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY an
23
a very important nature, and must be discussed from that standpoint. A long foreskin that goes clear over the glans, and as it were, closes in front, serves to prevent depuration of the thick mucous which exudes at the neck of the penis, and not only prevents depuration of that substance, but increases its flow, and, therefore, its accumulation. In such situation the glans is kept too hot and moist, and in a certain sense much in the same situation as in copulation, so that there is a continuing titillation which glandis,
is
really
orifice of
amounts to irritation, and operates to arouse unusual and unnecessary emotion, ordinarily called sexual, but much better designated as sensual. Many times the emotions aroused by such a condition as just described, are not sex emotions, but are misap-
prehended, and go into the extravagance of all fanatical phases, and very frequently cause the person to become possessed of absurd vagaries as to life, human relationship
and so
forth.
Oftentimes this character of reaction results in a morbid disregard of the opposite sex, and sometimes of complete loss of sex appetite, of social ability or disposition to engage in the normal
aflfairs
of life
and living.
All too frequently, however, this continual titillation
and excessive sensual emotion and most destructive habit of masturbation; while in men it frequently urges on to those destroying indulgences which end in prostration and early decay, but, worst of all, frequently the in-
results in a constant
appetite; in boys producing that
cidental production of children not normally fathered,
and, therefore, of a degenerate organism.
The tight foreskin, whether too long
or not, has
much
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
24
the same effect as that just described, and should receive the same careful attention as the long foreskin.
motor reactive effects that flow from these conditions which should be discussed at length, and will be taken up in various subsequent chapters of this work. They must be passed at this time by the statement that from preputic irritation by motor reaction we have prostatitis, loss of sex power, It
is
particularly the adverse
hemorrhoids, pathology of the kidneys, suprarenals, liver, and other large digestive glands; thyroids, cervical
lymph
glands, tonsillar ring,
and
nasal, throat, ear,
and
eye disturbances. Sufficient wiU not be said upon this subject until it is explained that any phase of abnormahty or injury anywhere in the organism, will be increased or intensified by motor reaction occurring from a long prepuce or a tight one.
CIRCUMCISION
When
either of the characters of foreskin heretofore
is the only remedy, operation, very artful and if done at all and a must be done exactly right.' Too much must not be removed, and too much must not be left. The correct method is to mark the skin on the outside so as to be of the proper length, and then incise the skin and the mucous membrane so that when they lie at rest, not being stitched, the cut edges are in apposition. These edges should be stitched with seven-day catgut, so that they will be kept in perfect relation until healing has been accomplished. If this work has been done correctly the corona
described are present, circumcision this is
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY glandis will be protected, will
be no preputic
depuration will at If the
curs, it
meatus
25
and at the same time there the glans, and perfect
titillation of all
is
times be accomplished. too small, which sometimes oc-
must be opened
to normal size to secure nor-
mal conduct.
FEMALE ORGAN
The female sex organ presents many complexities which must be here carefully understood. The female sex organ presents three principal orifices, which must be taken into consideration in our present discussion. These are: the orifice of the prepuce, the vagin*l orifice, and the external os of the uterus. The vagin*l orifice may become a source of titillation
and
irritation
by
scar
incident to a thick, tough
tissue
formations within
it,
hymen which, after being rup-
tured, forms carunculae or sharp-pointed nodules of a fungus nature, which serve to prevent it from closing in an undisturbed manner, or from tears in the walls of the vagin*, or pathologic hardening of the walls. The external os, and the cervical canal and internal os, of the uterus may become subject to the same character of irritation because of lacerations and the formation of scar tissue therein, which prevent normal and easy closure and rest, and may so roughen the external os as to cause it to irritate the vagin*l walls, and to be irritated by the vagin*l walls. Either of the conditions last mentioned, when they are present, must be removed by extirpation of scar tissue, so as to secure
the parts, with the
smooth and normal healing
minimum
of scar tissue.
of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
26
However, these conditions are practically always an irritated cl*tor*s, and will be more fully
incidental to
discussed with the detailed discussion of pathology of
the sex organs.
GLANS cl*tor*s has been truthfully called the " touch " to the woman's entire organism. It is very button small by comparison with the glans penis, but is as highly sensitive as that organ, and for the same reason. The cl*tor*s is ramified by nerves from all cortical
The
cl*tor*s
areas in order to secure the vmit co-ordination of the entire female organism in the act of procreation. It will
be seen, that
irritation of the
cl*tor*s
specifically to all the other f eetward orifices of the
reacts
body, which are the vagin*l, the uterine, the urethral, and rectal, and incidentally react to the kidneys, suprarenals, large digestive glands and stomach, and, therefore, to the entire intestinal tract, to the mammaries, respiratory organs and heart; to the head, throat, nose, ears, eyes and brain. The same statement must be made here as in connection with the male; that irritation of the cl*tor*s motor reacts to all parts of the body, and will serve to intensify any phase of pathology or abnormality of any kind or nature. The foreskin of the cl*tor*s is composed of a fine muco-skin from the labia minora, while the frenum is constructed from the crura or legs of the prepuce. The anomalies that occur in this prepuce are the same as those of the male. The foreskin may be so long as to go completely over and close in the cl*tor*s; or, not
27 ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY being so long, it may be tight over the glans; or it may be adhered to the glans; or being short, it may be tight and may be adhered to the corona glandis relative to the neck of the chtoris.
Either of the anomalous conditions mentioned in the preceding paragraph serve to produce a continuing
amounting to
titillation
irritation of the cl*tor*s,
dissimilar to that of copulation,
and very
not
injurious to
the whole organism.
The anomalous
situations just described, frequently
cause the female to be possessed of the most bizarre and unaccountable emotions; for it is well estabUshed that the female
is
more emotional than the male, and righteach female is a potential mother of the
fully so, since race.
These emotions sometimes only render the panicky, subject to unaccoimtable fear, and
woman fits
of
weeping; short periods of intense excitement, alternated
by
periods of intense depression. These conditions are
frequently responsible for the emotion of self-destruction
which occurs in such an unaccoimtable way so frequently
modern woman. In the remarkable, and bizarre phases just described, to which can be added an almost unUmited number, the woman is frequently unconscious that sex is in any manner coimected. In other words, she does not know in our
being constantly irritated at the cl*tor*s, because she was born with the anomalous situation, and that she
is
has never
Many
known normal
sex sensation.
times, because of such situations the
woman's
emotions partake of such a nature that she is rendered adverse to mingling with, and forming social relation-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
28
may form
a positive in conanything repugnance to any thought of sex, or nection with sex life; with conception and bearing of children and so forth. In other words, she may lose her ships with the opposite sex.
womanly intuitions. The author has known
She
kind just met a man
of cases of the
mentioned, where the woman had finally for whom she had the highest respect and to whom she became a real friend, to such an extent that she accepted a proposition of marriage, but when the time for marriage approached, although an honorable person, she backed squarely out, and without giving any reason therefor, declined to be married. Many such women have consulted the author, and in
most tremendous agony have begged for a solution of their diflSculties, demanding to know why they can not be as other women. All too frequently, however, the anomalous conditions referred to increase the emotion to sensuality, resulting in the girl from early youth following the destructive tears,
and
in the
habit of masturbation.
The author has known
little
and continue it until being taken oflf in early life by what is usually called "galloping consumption," or some other girls
two and three years old to form
this habit,
phase of degenerative abnormality. Many girls thus anomalously formed escape the destructive effects of such emotion until they arrive at puberty, when they become possessed of a wild and insatiable, sensual appetite, which they gratify regardless of surroundings, conditions, education or culture. Here is the explanation of prostitution. The author has examined hundreds of prostitutes and never found one
ORIFICIAL ABNORMALITY who was not
29
the subject of anomalously formed sex
parts.
The pity of it is that such women do not know what is the matter with them, and therefore, live a life of selfcondemnation, when they are not at fault, but the
malformation of their sex body
is
wholly responsible
for their conduct.
CIRCUMCISION
When
either of the anomalies described, that
is,
the
redundant foreskin, the tight foreskin, the adhered foreskin whether long or short, is present, there should be proper circumcision. Circumcision of the female
is
indeed a very delicate
and artful piece of work. The glans cl*tor*s is very small, and the tissues are of a highly sensitive and delicate structure. However, such release and removal of tissue must be accomplished as will leave the glans cl*tor*s, and especially the corona glandis and the neck, free and unobstructed, so that the rich, viscid mucous discharged in this area shall always find free escape, and so that the air can pass freely to all parts of the glans and neck. In accomplishing circumcision of the female, great care must be observed not to injure the delicate frenum, nor to cut into the structtures of the cl*tor*s. Not too much, but just enough is again the rule of excision.
EXCISION OF THE NTMPHAE
The anomalous
situation sometimes presented
is
that
of a long, or voluptuous, labia minora, or labium minor. These structures are frequently presented so that upon being stretched down they hang out of the pudendal slit an inch to an inch and a half.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
30
The
labia minora are sometimes not so very long,
anomalous conditions at the cl*tor*s have, by motor reaction, been rendered hard and fibrous, so but,- because of
that they continually irritate each other, and the
nerves of the sphincter structin'es above them. Occasionally one labium is very large, long and dogeared, the other one being entirely absent or very small. This results in a twisted
and uneasy
closure,
wifh the delicate and irritable surface of the labium constantly exposed to irritation. In either of the conditions just described, and in the multitude of other anomalous presentations of the labia minora, the delicate operation of reducing these to the proper size, and to symmetrical proportions, must be performed. Excision of the
nymphae is perhaps the most delicate
upon to perform; for the labia minora, or nymphae, are composed of erectile tissue, and are incident in. their functions with the vagin*; and in their extirpation, therefore, great care must be taken not to abort, but to render their operation that the
orificialist is called
function normal.
Much more should be said to make this chapter combut the fundamentals of orificial abnormality have been stated, and the student must look to the disscussions of these phases of abnormality yet to be presented, for the details that, in an independent work, would be stated under the sub-titles of this chapter.
plete,
CHAPTER IV MOTOR EEACTIVE AREAS
—Cardinal Areas—Incidental Areas.
Defined
Having reviewed the anatomic
situation as it
detailed in the preceding chapter, the student
is
is
now
asked to refresh his memory by the examination of the physiology of the nerve system as stated in the first book of this series, Psycho-Bio-Physiology. As a further preparation for understanding what will be said in this connection. Chapter VI of the first volume of this work should be carefully read, which is
Motor Reaction. Motor action is the normal
entitled
or physiologic conduct of
the organism acting in all of its parts without interference or impediment, and therefore producing positive conditions without
undue concentration of
force to
any
area.
Motor reaction is that phase of affirmative, abnormal conduct, wherein, because of irritation in excess of resistance, force from a wider cortical area is concentrated to the place of irritation primarily, and to other incidental centers, variously located between that place
and the brain
cortex.
The locus of irritation and the incidental centers between that place and the brain cortex are properly designated, " Motor Reactive Areas," because they respond in pronounced symptoms, when there is excessive irritation at the periphery of the nerves of that
or those paths. 31
32
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
There are two well defined phases that may be presented in this phenomenon, which must be here stated in order to save students from being confused. Ordinarily the nerves definitely ramifying a primary motor reactive area are occluded by vertebral disrelation, usually of the subluxation type, which of course means that less than normal stimulus is being transmitted through them, and therefore that so far as those nerves and the structures supplied are concerned, there is a slowing and coarsening of vibration with all of the sequences of such conduct. The other nerves ramifying a motor reactive area, not primarily occluded by vertebral disrelation of the subluxation type, undergo irritation which serves to change vibration throughout the length of the nerves, back to
the area of the cortex from which they have origin,
from the cortex to the endings of such nerves. The nerves interramifying in an area aflFected by an irritant primarily and incidentally from the standpoint of resulting in tissue hypertonicis
origin, comprehend a somewhat extensive cortical scope, which is very much greater than that of the cortex which gives origin to the controUing or dominant
nerves directly responsible for function in that tissue area.
It is because of the facts just stated that the declaration has been repeatedly made, that in aflSrmative pathology motor reaction results in a greater force from
a wider
expended upon the tissue area of irritation and parts immediately related thereto, as well as incidental tissue areas between that and the cortical area being
involved brain cortex.
MOTOR REACTIVE AREAS
33
THE CAKDINAL AKEAS
The lack
of absolute knowledge at this time as to the
exact arrangement and plan of rearrangement of that part of the nerve system which therapy has called the " Sympathetic " but which is correctly styled the Visceral
System makes
it
impossible to state author-
itatively just
why the
at the places
we find them, and
cardinal motor reactive areas are
the same applies to the
incidental areas.
The locations
of the motor reactive areas, as they are be stated in this chapter have been ascertained by the long and very comprehensive clinic experience of the author, corroborated and sustained by the practice experience from numerous clinic reports, and are believed to be practically exact. The cardinal areas are those which tmder specific irritation are always hypertonicised and are therefore the pronounced centers of columnar constriction, usually accompanied by fixation and are the places frequently mistaken for "major subluxations," whereas they are to
usually only tissue distortion
by
constriction.
The areas under discussion are those which would symptomologically manifest themselves under specific and continuous irritation of the periphery of any nerve path, trunk, bundle or gangliform plexus, of or connected with nerves from the trunks of the more feetward part of the Cauda equina, that is to say, the fourth lumbar pair and those below them in a vertebral column conceived as being free from subluxation. It will be truthfully suggested that there are no human columns without subluxation, but it must be rememberd that the diagnostician or Chiropractic Analyst must be
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
34
able to mentally construct each column examined, free from subluxation before he is able to detect a subluxation and appraise its gravity, and he arrives at the cardinal motor reactive tissue areas in precisely the same manner. The cardinal areas of motor reaction are: the Sacroiliac; Lumbo-Sacral; Thoraco-Lumbar; Seventh Thoracic; Fourth Thoracic; Eighth Cervical; Fourth Cervical and Occipito-Cervical.
The
Sacro-Iliac area includes the tissues of those
and the aponeuroses and musculatures of Iliac fossae, both dorsal and ventral includ-
articulations
the relative
ing the Psoas muscles.
The Lumbo-Sacral
area includes the joints between lumbar and the joints between that
the sacrum and fifth segment, and the fourth lumbar, with the soft tissues of the area having origin from, or insertion into the head-
ward aspect of the sacrum and ilia. The Thoraco-Lumbar area includes the joints between the eleventh and twelfth thoracics and those at the heads of the respective ribs, together with the aponeuroses and muscles involved, and also the joints between the twelfth thoracic and first lumbar with the
aponeuroses attached thereto, together with the crura of the diaphragm, psoas muscles, and the quadratus lumborum of both sides and the relative structures necessarily affected.
The Seventh Thoracic
area consists primarily of the joints between the seventh and eighth thoracic vertebrae; but also includes the joints between the seventh
and
between the heads of the sixth, and eighth pair of ribs with those vertebrae.
sixth, the joints
seventh,
MOTOR REACTIVE AREAS
35
as well as the joints at the necks of those ribs with the six transverse processes
involved, together with the
intercostal muscles of those ribs
of the
and all
of the structures
immediate dorsum.
The Fourth Thoracic area consists of the joints between the fourth and third and the fourth and fifth thoracics, with the joints at the heads and necks of the respective ribs, the intercostal structures, the aponeuroses,
and the dorsal muscles immediately attached and
involved in the area described.
The Eighth
Cervical area consists of the joints
between the seventh cervical and first thoracic vertebrae and the seventh and sixth cervicals, also including the joints between the heads of the first and second pairs of ribs
and the
first
thoracic vertebra,
and the
joints
between their necks and the four transverse processes, which incidentally includes the second thoracic vertebra in this area, together with the aponeuroses and muscles attached within the area, or immediately affected from it. The Fourth Cervical area consists of the joints between the fourth and third, and the fourth and fifth cervicals, together with the aponeuroses and muscles attached in the area and immediately effected from it, in which prominent mention should be made of the scaleni
and stemo-cleido-mastoid muscles.
The occipito-cervical area
consists of the
two condy-
between the occiput and atlas, the four between the atlas and axis and the three joints between the axis and the third cervical, together with
loid joints
joints
the aponeuroses
and structures attached thereto and to
these vertebrae, as well as those affecting this area
attached to the occiput.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
36
The and
areas just described are at the locations detailed
consist of the structures as stated, because
reaction, operating
from the feetward aspect
motor of the
visceral nerve system, without incidental interferences,
functions to the production of very definite hypertonices of the soft or
quasi-soft structures
composing these
areas.
The
reason motor reaction, from irritation operating
from the feetward aspect
of the visceral system, causes
definite constrictions in the areas stated, is because
from the visceral trunks after being rearranged through the ganglionic plexif orm trunks of the visceral system, extend dorsally in small trunks, which were formerly called " gray rami communicans " and become somatic nerves by ramifying the tissues just certain nerves
described.
The reason that unusual force peculiarly centers to the is to be accounted for in two ways; because of the characteristic anatomic grouping or
areas as described, first,
aggregations of ganglia in the visceral system, and second
and paramountly because of the bilateral, dorso-ventral curves of the body, including the remarkable muscular arrangement, constructed and mechanically arranged to comply therewith. INCIDENTAL AREAS
The incidental areas of motor reaction are manifested, not because of any changes of the scheme of nerve arrangement, but because of the following things: first, a different place of irritation; second, idiosyncrasies of construction; First:
if
and
third, distortions.
the place of irritation
is
changed, the motor
MOTOR REACTIVE AREAS reactive areas are eflFected accordingly, that
37 is
to say, as
the areas of irritation go headward, the feetward motor reactive
areas
in
reaction operates
ratio
are undisturbed, for motor
affirmatively
headward and only
negatively and slightly feetward, except as a cumulative proposition in a final, constitutional condition.
In thinking of the proposition just stated, the student is cautioned that the statements of the last paragraph are based upon the thought of the test being made upon the same structural attitude, that is to say, with the same person, for two cases apparently alike would nevertheless differ in attitude to
To
some
extent.
illustrate the proposition laid down,
of irritation
is
if
the place
at the ending of the thoraco-lumbar
motor reactive area affected and with the ideal figure mentioned, the areas headward would all in ratio be affected. If the irritation is at the endings of the nerves from the fourth thoracic motor reactive area, then those feetwardly will be skipped, but all headward to that place will be in ratio affected. Second idiosyncrasies of construction enter largely and importantly into the subject being discussed, and the diagnostician must carefully examine for symptoms of these in each case, before he can appraise the gravity nerves, that will be the first
:
of the situation.
No
wUl be made to point these changes out in but only to give the student the key to the situation in order that he may work each case out successfully, and for that purpose it will be necessary to give some illustrations. In a case where there are six lumbar vertebrae and effort
detail,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
38
only eleven thoracics, the center of the motor reactive first lumbar trunks instead of the
area will be at the
twelfth trunks, which
is
the usual construction.
but four lumbars and thirteen thoracics, center of the motor reactive area will neverthen the theless be at the twelfth thoracic trunks, but the first lumbar trunks will be excluded from the area, in other words there will be in such a case no lumbar trunks in the area, but the twelfth thoracic motor reactive area If there are
will consist of the twelfth,
eleventh and thirteenth
pairs of thoracic trunks. This situation will not serve to
make changes
in the areas headwardly.
If there are the regular number of lumbars, but only eleven thoracic vertebrae, the center of the motor reactive area will be largely at the eleventh thoracic
trunks, but the first
lumbar
trunlcs
and tenth thoracic the motor reactive
trunks will be definitely included in area, while the second lumbar trunks will be only dentally included.
number of nerve trunks in the cervical make the same characteristic differences in the
Changes region
inci-
in the
location of the centers, of the motor reactive areas, as those already described in the thoraco-lumbar area,
must know that no changes of the kind described influence the location and scope of the
except, that the student occipito-cervical area.
Third: distortions
aflfect
the areas of motor reaction,
not because they change their nerve or ganglionic location or anything of that kind, but because they change the pull of the structures, which should be con-
and are usually controlling in such areas. Only a few illustrations of the change of the centers
trolling
MOTOR REACTIVE AREAS of
motor reactive
39
areas, because of distortion, will
be
make the whole field clear to the student anatomy, for the distortions of each area and its general and specific structural efifects have been carefully pointed out in Relatology in the first volume of this work. If the case presents an apex ventral sacrum with a lordosis at kidney place, which is usual in such conditions, the lumbo-sacral area will be skipped, and operates with greater intensity over the headward aspect of the thoraco-lumbar area, or to be exact, in a case presenting the normal number of nerve trunks, over the eleventh thoracic as a center of the motor sufficient to
of
reactive effect.
The situation just outlined serves to lessen the efifect at the seventh thoracic, but not to wholly skip it, and intensifies the effect at the fourth thoracic area, carrying the center of motor reaction headward so as to definitely include the third thoracic trunks, thus
making
the fourth which
What
sometimes
the third trunks, really the center instead of is
usual.
has just been described causes motor reaction to the cervico-thoracic area to be greatly lessened, although not completely skipped, but serves to intensify motor reaction to the fourth cervical area and to definitely include the fourth cervical trunks as' the center of the area instead of the fifth, as is regular. The student will understand that, while the occipitocervical is always a motor reactive area, in any phase of affirmative pathology the center of which remains unchanged, yet it must be remembered that the effect is always intensified by distortion which gives a tendency to the headward cervicals to disrelate ventrally.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
40 If the
sacrum
is
base ventral, the lumbo-sacral motor
reactive effect will be intensified, usually centering
more
to the fifth lumbar trunks, but not always so, for this depends upon the size and form of relative holding structures, the breadth of the base of the
the
ilia,
and
also the length of the crests of the
If the .sacrum
the
ilia
sacrum and
and
ilia
ilia.
are broad, but the crests of
are short, then the center will be about equally
and
lumbar trunks, but if the crests of the ilia are long, then the motor reactive center will be definitely at the fourth lumbar trunks. On the other hand, if the sacrum and ilia are narrow and the crests of the ilia are short, the reactive center will be at the fifth lumbar trunks but in such a case, if the ilia are very long, the motor reactive effect will be definitely at the fourth and third trvmks, and the center in extremely long ilia may even be at the third lumbar distributed to the fourth
fifth
trunks.
In case of a broad pelvis with short ilia the center of the'thoraco-lumbar area is at the twelfth thoracic trunk, but with long ilia the center is at the eleventh trunks, and in the narrow pelvis, with extremely long iha the is carried up so as to include the tenth pair of trunks more definitely than the eleventh. If the distortions as outlined serve to intensify the
center
motor reactive center to the
lumbar and twelfth and the. eighth and be intensified as wiU also the fifth
thoracic, then the seventh thoracic, fifth cervical centers will
occipito-cervical.
On the other hand, if the distortions serve to bring the motor reactive centers in the lumbar region headward so as to
definitely include the third
lumbar trunks.
MOTOR REACTIVE AREAS
41
then the centers headward, will be intensified at the fourth thoracic and fourth cervical trunks and the sub-
but will be lessened at the twelfth and seventh and the eighth cervical trunks. The statement herein is brief, but is sufficient to lay down and illustrate the rules governing the motor occipital,
thoracics
reactive
changes.
centers
and to
illustrate
their
incidental
CHAPTER V PHASES OF DISRELATION
Simple Disrelation
—Strain—Sprain—Contusion— Bruise
Having analyzed the proposition in the preceding chapter, it
the
symptoms
is
now
arising therefrom,
of disrelationship
necessary to discuss
and
to detail certain
of the effects that are expressed in function.
The
gross disrelationships that occur
classified
may be
well
under the following terms; simple disrelation,
strain, sprain, contusion,
and
bruise, as representing
those not expressing complete separation; laceration, tear, cut and disintegration as representing those expressing complete separation;
and subluxation,
lux-
and fracture as presenting the culmination of one or a combination of the others. It will be seen that each injury named in the preceding paragraph is only a phase of disrelationship, and indeed
ation,
that
all disease consists
primarily in disrelation.
It will also be seen that it
generally the multifold
is
impossible to discuss
symptoms that
arise
from
dis-
Such a discussion would resolve itself into a recounting or detailing of every possible symptom of
relationship.
disease that
may
arise.
each of the symptoms that may arise from disrelationship would furnish to the student nothing of assistance or value, because it would not give him the means of understanding the situation, and therefore,
To
detail
42
PHASES OF DISRELATION
43
would fail to point out the way to overcome the difficulty.
The much
better plan
is
to discuss the
symptoms
of
disrelationship as they appear in this chapter; having
the student to understand at this juncture that each
symptom of disease is a symptom of anatomic distortion. SIMPLE DISRELATION
The symptoms sist in
many
declaring simple disrelation
things.
The
fact
congestion, swelling, redness
may
may
con-
be declared by pain,
and so forth, or it may only
be declared by appearance. The most difficult disrelation to isolate is the one that exists without aflfecting the consciousness of the individual to the production of
A
any discomfort.
disrelation that does not
produce discomfort or
can only be detected by observing conduct or by feeling, and in this particular, sight and feeling
discoloration,
must be directed in the investigation by a most complete anatomic knowledge.
The
preparation for detecting simple disrelation
is
a
very specific conception of the form, size and conduct that the tissues under investigation should present, and then
a most careful comparison of the tissue in which it is observed, with the relationship which it should sustain in its image, ideal or normal form and relation. Just at first it would seem quite difficult to attain to such knowledge of anatomic structure as to be able to detect without difficulty the deviation of a part therefrom by an examination of an organism that had not been seen before. Yet a little definite thought upon this proposition will cause the imagined difficulties to disappear almost wholly.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
44
true that the types of structure presented are multitudinous, and it is true that no two human beings It
is
present the same part in exactly the same shape, and while that is true, yet there are typical similarities of
and the detection of these is not diflficult to then, it must be remembered that there is a sort of intuitive perception that may be cultivated and raised to the power of visualizing what the actual form and relationship were intended to be, if maturity has not yet been attained, and are, if maturity has been structure, attain.
And
attained.
In any event the primary symptom of disrelationship, is the effect of change of some part or parts from the relation which they should or so-called displacement, sustain.
The difficulty of detecting the symptoms, it must be remembered, does not change the symptoms, for the facts remain whether the examiner can detect them or not, and it must be remembered that disease could not occur without the primary symptom consisting of displacement at the present being considered under the title of
The
simple disrelation. task of detecting simple disrelation
difficult
is
the most
one with which the student of Chiropractic
is
confronted. All of the other things that appertain to his
work
and in a sense persymptoms of disrelation most difficult problem, and therefore finds
as a Chiropractor are easy
functory, but in isolating the
he meets his
in the solution of the
problem
his
most important task. find the problem of
The thoughtful student will reading the symptoms of disrelation very greatly simplified when he applies the work to a given structure. To
PHASES OF DISRELATION
45
contemplate the work in the abstract gives it a setting altogether out of proportion with its actual diflSculties, and yet it must be remembered that the ability brought to a very high degree of detecting symptoms of disrelation is the most superior quality that the Chiropractor can possess.
STRAIN a simple form of distortion of a little graver type than that which has just been referred to as simple Strain
is
disrelation.
The
tissue injury called strain exists
when the
resis-
tance of a tissue has been slightly overcome.
The word
strain has so frequently
been applied to the
appendal muscles of the body, that when the word is mentioned one's mind reverts immediately to the wrists or ankles, or some such part, but such thinking is entirely too limited. Strain applies to any structure of the
organism.
One may
eat so excessively as to strain the tissues of
the stomach, liver, pancreas, intestines, etc. run,
and so unusually
He may
exercise the respiratory apparatus
He may
use his muscles in a manner from ordinary, and strain them. The symptoms arising from strain are usually simple, and are a sense of pain or soreness with hypertonicis and rigidity of the part, and therefore, a sense of inability to use the part in the ordinary manner. as to strain
it.
different
SPRAIN Sprain
is
a tissue injury of a
little
that of strain, for in sprain there
is
more gravity than always the fact of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
46
the structures being actually to some extent separated. It is not necessary in order that sprain may exist that the longitudinal fibres shall be actually separated, but
they must have been elongated at least as to some area to some degree of separation of their cells in excess of that of strain, and the tissues binding these fibres together must have been interfered with to the degree of partial separation.
Usually in sprain some fibres are torn apart, or torn loose from their attachments either of origin or insertion,
or the fibres of the sprained structvu-e are torn apart
by
distension.
In any event sprain tissue being strain,
more
and sprain
is
is
the result of the resistance of
overcome than that of to that extent always a permanent
definitely
injury.
The symptoms
of sprain are very similar to those of
strain, except that the sense of soreness is greater; the
more pronounced, and usually the congestion and inflammation is more intense, and constriction and fixation incident to the injury more grave and pronounced. It must be remembered that sprain also apphes to any inability to use the structure
is
we are and so forth, when
tissue of the body, for in connection with sprain
prone to think of tendons, ligaments, as a matter of fact any structure of the body
may
be
the subject of sprain.
However, the symptoms of sprain are of peculiar
when the subject is directed to organism, for it is in the joints
value to the Chiropractor the joints of the
human
of the organism that sprain exercises its injury,
and expresses
its
paramount prominent symptoms, and it is
PHASES OF DISRELATION
47
primarily the correction of joints that the Chiropractor
must understand, while it is true that he must know the symptoms of sprain anywhere in the body, and must understand the proper address to such sprains, as well as to those of the holding elements of joints.
CONTUSION
A contusion partakes of the nature of both strain and sprain. It is both, with the additional distortion
by a
sudden and violent pressure of such nature as to
dis-
relate the cellular structure of the area.
Contusions may occur in any locahty of the body. They as easily be produced in the deep tissues of the body as in the appendal structvu-es. However, contusions generally occur upon the surfaces of the body, because the surfaces are more easily and frequently exposed to sudden application of force beyond the
may
resistance of cell elements.
The symptoms
from contusion are very have aheady been given as to strain and sprain. However, contusion is a graver injury than either of the others, and the element of pain is usually most pronounced and occurs as incident to congestion and swelling with superheat. In addition to the symptoms already given, which also include hypertonicis and fixation, there is that of discoloration, which never occurs in simple sprain. In this particular, much error has been indulged in regard to sprains. It is generally supposed that a sprain presents discoloration, but it does not do so. When there is discoloration in what is supposed to be a sprain it must be understood that the discoloration is arising
similar to those that
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
48
proof of contusion. In other words, in such an injury there
is
sprain with contused areas.
BRUISE
A
any sense diflfering from contusion. Bruises may occur in any part of the organism, and present precisely the same symptoms that have bruise
is
an injury not
in
been discussed in coimection with contusion, except that of discoloration. A simple bruise presents no discoloration, except redness occurring as incident to inflam-
mation.
The correction
of distortions described in this chapter
must be taken up under the immediate subjects to which they are relate.d. Simple disrelation, it will be seen, goes so widely into the tissues of the body that to discuss correction of it in detail would be to discuss each and every symptom of abnormality that can occur, no matter of what nature
what extent. Such a discussion would be wholly without benefit to the student, because it would lead him into a maze of
or to
irreconcilable things.
Correction of simple disrelation, therefore, wiU be discussed in connection with articular, skeletal tissue,
and
visceral distortion.
Strain will be discussed in connection with the various
which that phase of pathology occurs, and will be discussed in connection with bruise, contusion and sprain, so that it need not be fiu"ther tissues in
frequently
addressed at this place. Sprain, being a graver character of abnormahty of the same kind as strain, will be discussed in connection
PHASES OF DISRELATION
49
with phases of disrelationship, but will be discussed
most
carefully
and
particularly
and
in great detail in
connection with the holding elements of the joints of the body.
While sprain will be more particularly discussed in coimection with the joints of the skeletal body, the student must not overlook the fact that sprain is as frequently and as painfuUy connected with injuries to skeletal structures such as muscles, ligaments, tendons, cartilages, etc., as in connection with joints. It should also be remembered that sprain is frequently a deep seated injury, and pertains to viscera. Sprain and laceration are responsible for floating and movable kidney, and for
many phases
of distortion of portions of
the intestine, liver and the glands generally. Disintegration as the result of sprain is frequently the producing phase of adverse conduct that enters into ptosed viscera.
It
is
in connection with the subjects of subluxation
and luxation, and incidentally fractures, that sprain meets with its more usual and prominent phases of discussion.
The student must bear
in
mind that
there
is
in con-
nection with strain and sprain the analogy of laceration
and
bruise,
and
in these aspects these injuries
must be
corrected just as those injuries are.
However, discussion of these phases will be postponed and taken up in their relationship to the subjects mentioned.
CHAPTER VI PHASES OP DISRELATION Laceration
— Tears— Cuts—Disirdegraiion—Enlargement
The phases
of disrelation so far considered
have been
those in which the tissue elements were not wholly separated, but were, because of destruction of certain cells,
partly separated.
We must now turn our attention to a discussion of the symptoms arising in those cases in which the paramount injury
is
a complete separation.
LACERATION There is very little difiference between laceration and a tear. However, there is conceived to be some slight difference, mostly in the style of the woimd. Laceration is a condition in which the structures are separated by force, leaving rough edges. Lacerations upon the surface are not difficult to observe. Indeed they may be easily observed either with the eyes or by palpation. It is lacerations which occur in the deep parts of the body that are baffling. In many cases the external symptoms that tend to establish deep or internal laceration, are bleeding or hemorrhage. But again, internal bleeding or hemorrhage may occur from many things other than laceration. Usually, however, accompanying laceration the patient undergoes a sense of very great weakness, and that is especially true of the part in which the laceration has occurred. SO
PHASES OF DISRELATION
51
Deep seated lacerations, unless they are sufficiently grave to sever large blood vessels, usually heal if the patient is kept quiet, and in such position as to take weight or pressure from the part involved. Of course, before pressure can be successfully removed, the location of the laceration must be ascertained by the symptoms of pain, dizziness, and lack of strength, and then the parts should by dehcate corrective
movement be placed possible
as nearly in proper relation as
from the outside, and the patient kept as nearly imtU intention has
stiU in that position as possible,
taken place.
To
aid this process accessory bandaging, so placed as
to assist in holding the parts in relation indicated.
Where
large arteries
is
alyvays
and veins are torn apart is indicated and is
the instant intervention of surgery imperative.
TEARS
To
all
intents
lacerations. It
is
same as more symptoms However, the
and purposes
tears are the
generally conceived that tears are
symmetrical than lacerations. are identical, and what has been said about lacerations applies equally to tears.
In surface tears and lacerations great care must be taken that the edges of the severed parts shall be placed in perfect apposition, and then held in that position by adhesive bandage, or other characters of bandage with proper drainage arrangements, where that is indicated, until the parts have united.
CUTS Cuts only
differ
from lacerations and
tears in that
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
52
they are produced by sharp instruments. The edges of a cut, then, are comparatively smooth, having been separated by a sharp-edged instrument. Of course, there are no deep or hidden cuts in the body that do not communicate to a surface, and therefore, the symptoms
deep cuts are always very apparent, and comparatively easy of location. In attending to cuts the same rule should be followed of
as already indicated in lacerations
and
tears.
That
is,
the sm^aces of the cut should be placed as nearly in perfect apposition as possible, and then be stitched or held together by other apphances until healing has had
time to and has taken place. In lacerations, tears, and cuts it is of the utmost importance that no greater interference with the wound shall occur than is absolutely necessary under the circ*mstances. If the laceration, tear, or cut is clean; that is to say, if no foreign substance is in it, it should be dressed in
its
own
blood,
and so wrapped up and
protected from the air and sun.
such a wound has foreign substance in it, which is can be washed out with the flow of blood from the wound itself, that is the correct method to pursue. When it is thus cleansed, it should be dressed If
of a nature that it
in its
own
blood.
No antiseptic should be used in a fresh wound for any purpose whatever except where a foreign substance has entered it, which can not be washed away in the blood from the wound itself. Of course, it will be understood that such substances are very few, for there are very few substances that are more cleansing to a the blood from the wound itself.
woxmd than
PHASES OF DISRELATION
53
In this connection the author suggests that infection wounds is as frequently produced in the surgical attempt to cleanse by the use of antiseptics, as those which result from poisonous, foreign matters being left in the wound.
of
DISINTEGRATION
There are two phases of disintegration: (1) physiologic and (2) pathologic disintegration.
disintegration,
Physiologic disintegration is that continuous separation
matter that have been cohered into because of chemical changes incident to
of particles of
animate
cells,
continuous vibration and friction which
is
peculiarly
incident to animation.
When a particle of cell element by such vibration and friction
has changed
cohesion,
and
its
chemistry sufficiently,
its
place
is
it loses
occupied by another particle
of right consistence being cohered in the process of assimilation.
be seen that without this character of disintegration it would be impossible to keep the organism It will
virile
and
well.
Pathologic disintegration is that phase of conduct in which the production of abnormal chemistry is so
more by the process of
great that cell elements are failing of cohesion rapidly than their places can be filled assimilation.
In such a situation as just outlined the tissue involved is actually losing its size, shape, color, and consistence.
When
the
disintegratory
continued in a muscle, organ,
or
part
process
has
sufficiently
long, the process is called atrophy, but it is the incipient
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
54
phases of such pathology to which the attention is here being more definitely directed. The symptoms of pathologic disintegration, then, are always a lessening in the size of a part from the normal, and such lessening of size is always incident to an
abnormal process.
The
is a process of disnot the character of disintegration that we are discussing here, for it is not pathologic, but is tending toward the normal size. Pathologic disintegration is always a process occurring in a structure which actually reduces that structure below, or to less than, its normal size. Size, shape, and color are paramoimt factors in the
rapid reduction of excess fat
integration of course, but
symptoms
it
of disintegration.
is
They may be
detected
by
and symptoms may be detected by sight, and palpation and sight are frequently aided by smell, and incident to deep tissue disintegration palpation may frequently be aided by hearing through the means of
palpation,
percussion.
Disintegration, being a pathologic process, the only
by removing the cause of the disintegratory process. This is accomplished by locating occlusion of nerves to the area, and removing that occlusion by proper relating. means
of correcting it
is
ENLABGEMENX Enlargement
is
a process that presents two phases:
(1) physiologic, and (2) pathologic. Physiologic enlargement primarily includes growth, for, of course, all parts
process of growing,
undergo enlargement in the
and within a
certain scope the
PHASES OF DISRELATION physiologic
process
also
includes
accumulations
55 of
flesh.
In the accumulation of flesh the physiologic line of demarcation is reached at the full development of the image after which the individual is patterned. Adding flesh beyond full development carries the process over into the pathologic, and flesh so added is always abnormal always pathologic.
—
Pathologic enlargement occurs in all that character
produced beyond the full development of the image after which the individual is patterned, and to understand this Umit it is necessary to make a very careful study of the characteristics of the formation of the person, and to approximate the size, character of tissue and full development from this investigation. Any enlargement beyond that is pathologic. The enlargement to which attention is more particularly directed here, however, is that which is produced by that phase of pathology in which giant-cell structures are formed. These include all fibrous or fibroid growths. Fibroid growths will be discussed later in this work in a chapter by themselves. The attention here is of tissue
directed
more
particularly
to
those non-mahgnant
which occur many times in soft but frequently occur in the denser tissues of the body, such as muscle, tendon, cartilage, and the like, but more particularly reference is made in this connection to giant-cell production as incident to joints, which interfere with the machinic operation of the skeletal structure of the body. Enlargements of any character present their symptoms primarily in changes of size, shape, color and relation. giant-cell productions tissue,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
56
must be remembered that enlargements, also present symptoms because of interference with articulation of joints, and by distorting nerve trunks in any part of the body, causing occlusion and the train of adverse symptoms that follow occlusion at the endings of the nerves involved, and by congestion, pain, frequently inflammation, and other phases of disIt
turbance.
The symptoms of enlargement, then, are detected by palpation, and measurements, frequently aided by sight, and sometimes also by smell. Enlargements generally reduce when occlusion of
primarily
is removed. However, frequently must be reduced by direct breaking giant-cells, by the application of well
stimulus to the area their structure
down
of their
applied and graduated force.
CHAPTER
VII
SUBLUXATION Subluxation
A
is
disease.
subluxation
the result of sprain, laceration, contusion, disintegration or enlargement of the holding is
elements of a joint whereby the articular surfaces are not held in normal apposition. Either of the five injuries referred to in the preceding
paragraph
subluxation, five
sufficient
is
injuries
and
to produce the result called
of course
may combine
any combination to
of those
the production of a
subluxation.
Subluxation
is,
of course, always
a phase of disease
that applies only to the joints of the skeletal body.
There are more than three hundred
human anatomy, and
joints in the
subluxation applies to each of
these.
It has
been the habit of Chiropractors to apply the
word subluxation to the joints of the vertebral column only, but there is no reason for such use of the word. Subluxation is possible and occurs in any joint of the body. is a appendal joints, because of the relative influence such injury has upon the nerve system. But so far as the injury or disease
It
is
true that subluxation of vertebral joints
more far-reaching injiuy than subluxation
itself is
of
concerned, subluxation of a vertebral joint
worse than subluxation of an appendal 57
joint.
is
no
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
58
The symptoms of subluxation are too many and varied to admit of inventory. They are as numerous as the symptoms of simple disrelation, and a consideration of them in little or no value to the student. However, the symptoms of subluxation fall into a
the abstract would be of general classification,
and the subject
is
thus rendered
simple and easy of analysis. Fundamentally and primarily the phase of subluxation comprehended under the sense of disrelation or simple displacement must be isolated, recognized and
pointed out by the process of palpation. In this sense the process of palpation consists in a comparison of the various parts of the body sufficiently to form a conception, first of the image after which the
organism being examined was patterned, and second to discover its articular digressions from that image. However, the means stated would go no further than to detect simple disrelation, and does not furnish a
means
of distinguishing simple disrelation
phase of disease properly
falling
from that
within the scope
classified as subluxation.
Simple disrelations occlude nerves, and sometimes
do subluxations. Therefore, palpations and comparisons which lead to the disclosure of dis-
as gravely as
relation only, are not sufficient to detect subluxation.
must also be remembered that occlusion of nerve stimulus by joint disrelationship does not by any means It
prove the existence of that phase of disease called subluxation,
and
in fact occlusion of stimulus, while
one of the symptoms of subluxation, does not by any means establish the fact of subluxation any more than it is
it
establishes the fact of simple disrelation.
SUBLUXATION To trax;e the symptoms
59
of subluxation, then, requires
going further and more deeply into the subject than merely to ascertain that there is disrelation or distortion of joints,
whether of the vertebral column or otherwise.
The paramount
fact of disease, called subluxation,
always the element of permanent it. It is true that the permanency of the injury may be greatly ameliorated, and to a very large extent overcome, but subluxation can never be wholly overcome. There will always be scar tissue remaining as a symptom of that phase of disease or injury constituting is
that there
is
injury entering into
subluxation.
The symptoms, then
that declare subluxation are
those which establish the fact that there
is
in the joint
under consideration either sprain, laceration, contusion, disintegration, enlargement, or
or
more
a combination of two
of these phases of injury, in the tissues of the
holding elements of the joint to such extent that the joint surfaces are not held in
The holding elements
of
normal apposition. a joint are the cartilages,
ligaments, membranes, tendons, aponeuroses, muscles,
and so
forth,
which to any extent or in any degree, aid
in holding the articular surfaces of the joint
compounds
normal joint relationship. It will be seen, then, that sprain of a cartilage, ligament, tendon, aponeurosis, membrane, muscle or any tissue that acts as a holding element of a joint to such an extent that it fails to fulfill its holding oflfice, is a in
subluxation of that joint. It will be understood that
if
any holding element
of a
joint as described has suffered laceration so that the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
60
normal apposition, such a subluxation. If a holding element of a joint has suffered contusion, that holding element no longer sustains the joint surfaces in normal apposition, and the joint is subluxated. When one or more of the holding elements of a joint, whether the same be cartilage, ligament, membrane, tendon, aponeurosis, muscle or otherwise, have underjoint surfaces are not held in
laceration
is
gone disintegration as a result of failure of physiologic reproduction of tissue, or as a result of pathology from primary occlusion or chemical adversity, the result is that element is weakened, lessened in size, and therefore fails to sustain normal joint relationship, and the result
The
is
subluxation of the joint affected.
familiar pathologic process
by which
giant-ceU
productions are formed, results in a tissue occupying
more space than normal, and when such pathology by enlargement occurs in one or a combination of the holding elements of a joint, the joint surfaces are perforce held out of normal apposition with each other, and the joint is subluxated. By a careful consideration of the last five paragraphs the student will see that the symptoms of subluxation are comprehended in the five characteristic tissue injuries by which subluxations can be produced. In order to estabhsh the existence of disease recognized under the term subluxation, the student must first turn his attention to the symptoms of sprain, and as has aheady been stated the paramount evidence of sprain is congestion, pain or soreness with constriction, inflammation and perhaps fixation. It
must
of course
be explained that sprains that also
SUBLUXATION
61
partake of the nature of tears may heal with fibers torn apart or torn loose, and. thus remain with the effect of sprain upon the joint surfaces after the acute and painful condition which would indicate sprain has passed. In such a situation the sprain falls more nearly into the scope of disintegration, and yet not wholly so. Laceration, as it applies to the holding elements of joints, is usually not diflScult to isolate and understand,
marks are usually superficial. Hidden lacerations are not impossible, and the observer should always be on the lookout for such situations. However, subluxation by laceration is usually very simple and easy to detect. because
its
incipient
Subluxation as a result of contusion is very much more difficult, because contusions may occur as a result of concussion of phases of force in a confined angle without there being any outward It
is
marks
of violence whatever.
true that contusions thus caused are produced
a marked difference in the effects thus produced. A sprain caused by sudden application of force beyond the resistance of the joint, partakes of the nature of strains and tears occurring by the extension of the holding elements, identically with sprains,
and yet there
is
whether ligaments, membranes, or what not. On the other hand, contusion in such joint distortion is always the result of compression between the bones involved, the contusion
upon the holding elements being
produced by the colliding violence of the bones involved. It will be seen that subluxation by contusion of the holding elements of a joint is a stUl graver and more damaging injury to the joint than is that of subluxation
by
sprain.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
62
But here again the symptoms
tusion are paramoimtly those of pain, swelling,
and many
ness,
of the fibers of the contused elements
be severed and swelling and heat will
symptom
by conand sore-
of subluxation
will heal apart,
and the
soreness,
disappear leaving only the
will
of disrelation of the joint elements to declare
the character of subluxation. Here again the result will partake somewhat of the nature of occlusion by disintegration.
Disintegration producing subluxation
may
only be
detected by the fact of the reduction in size of the holding elements of the joint.
By is
the word disintegration as used in this connection meant a progressive failure of reproduction of cells
a holding structure, so that in a permanent nature, (although not wholly so) the structure is less in size and less in strength, and therefore, fails to hold the joint elements in their normal relationship. in
Disintegration
is
many
times referred to as atrophy
and it is indicated under several terms. It is immaterial what terms are applied, it is the sole effect of disintegratipn in the holding elements of the joints that
is
paramount. It
is
generally not difficult to determine
by palpation
whether joint holding elements have undergone considerable disintegration,
and
this applies solely to the
disintegratory effects pointed out in sprain, laceration
and contusion of holding elements of joints. It must be confessed that there may be deep and hidden elements of joints that can not be palpated that have undergone disintegration, in which event the diagnostician
must
rely for his proofs of disintegration
SUBLUXATION
63
upon general symptoms that will be observed in the organism, and upon approximation of distances, or the geometry of compensation as detailed in this work. Disintegration of the holding elements of a joint quite largely involve the vertebral and interosseous cartilages.
Indeed, this
is
the usual structure that
primarily undergoes disintegration, although
it is
true
that the ligaments and capsules as well as longitudinal
tendons and muscles
may
undergo disintegration and
thus produce subluxation.
Enlargement producing subluxation wiU always be such a prominent character, that any detailed discussion of it as a symptom need not be indulged. However, it is necessary to state that many times joints are subluxated because of small and hidden enlargements, and the subject must not be passed over
of
too casually.
One thing that always proves enlargement is the fact when a joint is subluxated because of enlargement
that
any of its holding elements, it is always impossible even for an instant to place the joint surfaces in in
relationship.
Subluxation by enlargement most frequently applies to intervertebral cartilages or to
membranes or cartilages
within joints. However, enlargement sometimes, indeed quite frequently, occurs in the capsular tissues of joints.
From
all
subluxation
that has been said, the student will see that may only be distinguished, from simple
disrelation with absolute certainty,
by the
fact that
subluxation has a greater degree of permanency than simple disrelation.
In a fresh subluxation that has been produced by
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
64 injury,
and
in a simple disrelation
which
is
the result
of strain, sprain, or the injection of poisons that
produced violent constrictions and elements,
it is
impossible
by
have
fixations of joint
direct examination of the
joint to detect subluxation.
However, an attempt to ination will
always
under examwhether the injury is
relate the joint
disclose
subluxation or simple disrelation. If it is only simple disrelation the joint will quickly assume its normal attitude, and retain that attitude. If the injury is of the
be
cause the articulation to assume its joint attitude, and if it does it will not retain that attitude, because the holding elements are injured to the extent that they can not gravity of subluxation
it will
difficult to
retain the joint surfaces in apposition.
In chronic conditions the symptoms of subluxation are marked, and are not difficult to distinguish, for there the efifect of gravitation incident to the law of compensation will cause the subluxations to stand out in a very marked manner. It is not difl&cult in studying the effects of gravitation upon the body, and in studying the distortions of joints to conform to those effects, to observe and classify the character of basic subluxations that have been produced, which subluxations compel the distortion of the rest of the body, and it is not difficult to observe the subluxations that have resulted by reason of the response of the superimposed and appendal body to the basic distortions.
urged to make a very careful study of the whole subject of subluxation, and he is here carefully informed that his accuracy in reading the
The student
is
SUBLUXATION
65
symptoms of subluxation, will depend almost wholly upon his general knowledge of the functional oflBces of the body, and his very high and well-developed ability to
and
make approximations
relation
in
of size, shape, color
the detection of normal attitudes.
CHAFER Vni LUXATIONS AND TRACTURES Luxation
and
joints
is
a phase of disease wholly confined to
joint tissues.
In a circ*mscribed sense a luxation is very closely analogous to a fracture. That is to say, in the sense that a luxation is a complete dislocation.
A
luxation exists where, because of sprain, lacera-
tion, contusion, disintegration or
enlargement of the
holding elements of a joint the articular surfaces have
wholly lost their contact. In other words, a luxation
is
such a complete
dis-
amount to complete dislocation, simple words means that the articulation is out
tortion of a joint as to
and
in
of joint.
The student
a luxation occupies a position between subluxation on the one hand, and fracture upon the other. It is a distortion of the same permanent nature as a subluxation, but is a graver will observe that
injury.
The there
student will recall that in a subluxation, while injury of a permanent nature in the holding
is
elements of a joint, still the apposition surfaces are not wholly separated, and will, therefore, see that the distinguishing feature between subluxation and luxation is that in subluxation some part of the joint surfaces are still
in contact, while in luxation
surfaces are in contact. 66
no part of the
joint
LUXATIONS AND FRACTURES
67
Luxations occur in two ways: (1) as the result of trauma, which of course is incipiently acute in all of its aspects, and is peculiarly within that department usually referred
to
as
dislocation;
(2)
by
chronic,
pathologic processes incident to such disintegrational
phases as atrophy of the holding elements of the joint,
which there
or a catarrhal condition in
is
extension of
the holding elements of the joint.
As to traumatic injury all of
resulting in acute luxation,
the phases of shock and occlusion, with phases of
reaction that will be discussed in fractures, occur,
connection with
and need not be further discussed
in
this connection.
As is
to luxation
by pathology some
little illustration
necessary in this connection, and the student
referred to conditions in which,
by elongation
holding elements, the head of the femur
is
is
of the
out of the
ascetabulum. Of course, in this illustration, the structure
approximately responsible for the dislocation elongation of the ligamentum teres.
Another
illustration
of
luxation
is
by elongation
the
is
frequently observed in the shoulder joint, where the
ligaments have extended so
much
that the head of the
humerus hangs down from the glenoid cavity frequently as much as an inch or more. The illustrations given will be suflBcient to direct the student's
mind
to all characters of pathologic luxations,
and the subject need not be further discussed
in this
connection.
This subject should not be passed without some reference to the reduction of luxations. The reduction of many of them will fall within the rules laid down in
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
68
—
in the first volume and as to phases not therein covered it must be suggested that under the present practice the reduction of such luxations is not held to be within the practice of Chiropractors, and therefore, no extended
the department,^-" Relatology" of this work,
discussion will be indulged.
The means
of reduction of pathologic luxations will
suggest themselves to the student who has been instructed in Relatology, andneednotbediscussedinthisconnection.
Acute traumatic luxations are to be reduced substantially in the
they
diflfer
manner that fractures
from the reduction
are,
and wherein
of fractures the discussion
a technical nature that it can not be stated understandingly without being accompanied by a clinic illustration, and since the subject does not fall within the purview of Chiropractic practice, no discussion of that part of the work wiU be attempted, and as to the is
of such
general situation the student
is
referred to the depart-
ment of " Relatology" in Volume One. FRACTURES Fracture is a traumatic injury whoUy confined to bones, and exists when a bone has been broken, cracked, slivered or bent.
The
reduction of fractures should be wholly within
the practice of Chiropractic, but under present custom clearly within the scope of surgery, and therefore, not the purpose here to discuss fractures in detail. It is the intention only to discuss Chiropractic principles that apply to fractures. Fractures are classified as being complete or incomplete, and to be either simple or compound.
it is it is
LUXATIONS AND FRACTURES
A
69
a condition in which the bone is broken in two or more parts. That is, where the actual osseous substance has been separated by the application of force in excess of the resistance of the bone tissue. An incomplete fracture exists where a bone has been partly severed, and remains partly united. Under this heading are such conditions as bones that have been split, slivered, or even bent, so that some parts of the osseous tissue have been severed. In connection with fractures in which bones have been bent so as to come within the purview of incomplete fracture, a little further discussion is necessary for the complete fracture
is
purposes of the Chiropractor, because in his practice
he meets with so many conditions of this kind, which need nicety of skill to restore their proper relation. Incomplete fractures of the character under discussion are called greenstick, because the bones thus affected have been bent, but it must not be overlooked that incident to the bends, there
is
actual separation of the
molecules of the osseous structure to some extent. Greenstick fracture
is
a somewhat prominent phase
appUcation of the principles of Chiropractic. Reference to a few of these wiU be found helpful in this
in the
connection.
One of the places where greenstick fracture comes prominently to the notice of Chiropractors is in connection with the sacrum. Greenstick fracture of the sacrum occurs frequently in children, incident to the fact that in childhood the so-called intervertebral segments of the sacrum which are only a means to ossification are largely cartilaginous, and are
easily susceptible to greenstick injury.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
70
Greenstick fracture of the sacrum
is
very prominent
phase of abnormality ordinarily referred to as infantile paralysis, and will be fully discussed under that topic. Reference is only made to it here to impress in that
the importance of the subject
that he
upon the student's mind
may be ready for it when he comes to that phase
of the discussion.
Frequently greenstick fracture of the tibia and fibula occur, and these injuries are easily capable of correction in childhood, by proper application of the skill of the Chiropractor.
There are many bones subject to
this character of
distortion in the organism, the correction of
which
must be
left to
the
that he has obtained from the departments of
skill
the resource of the Relator incident to
Relatology and Relating, and his general experience and observation in clinic.
A simple fracture is one in which the bones are broken, but do not protrude through the relative flesh. A compound fracture is one in which the bones are not only broken, but protrude through the flesh. There is really no sensible distinction in the two characters of fracture just given, for from the Chiropractic standpoint
be plainly seen that in a simple fracture the relative flesh will be injured many times as much, or even more than it would be if the end of the fractured bone protruded through the flesh, and it wiU be seen that the injury is always compound. That is to say, there is injury to the bone, and at the same time it will
to the relative flesh.
A
always an irritant. It is primarily an irritation to the nerve endings in the area of the injury, fracture
is
LUXATIONS AND FRACTURES
71
and to the nerve trunks extending through the area
of
injury.
Injury to nerves in fracture is usually by impingement, traction or stretching,
and
distension caused
by the
violent distortion of the osseous structures involved
together with these, it
all of
the relative tissue. In addition to
must be remembered that many times there
is
direct injury to ganglia.
The irritation incident to fracture produces that efiPect upon the nerve system usually referred to as shock, the gravity of which indicates the amount of direct injury to that system.
Shock, incident to fracture,
is
a temporary and partial
suspension of functional process, and in that sense
is
the
suppressed or reduced function resulting from the injury. this phase, temperature and vitality are reduced. Sometimes incident to fracture the patient dies as a
In
result of the depression of vital offices incident to the
however, the patient does not die from shock, he soon enters upon the process called reaction. If the patient, who has suffered fracture, passes the process of shock and enters upon that of reaction, the irritation produces motor reaction to the whole area of the irritated nerves, thus producing constriction of the tissues of the vertebral column over a much wider area which results in the osseous segments being closely shock.
If,
approximated is
—a
condition called constriction, which
simple vertebral disrelation.
The
constriction
and
vertebral disrelation, functions to the production of a
wider range of occlusion, particularly in those nerves extending to the area of the trunks from which nerves ramify the fracture, and incidentally to a much wider area.
a
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
72
It seems hardly necessary to say that the
shock
symptoms will not wholly disappear imtil the fracture has been reduced, or until sufficient time has elapsed that an incipient heahng in the fractured attitude has taken place, which sometimes occurs. In view of the statement made in the last paragraph, it will be seen that it is of the utmost importance that the reduction of a fracture should take place as sootn after it has occurred as possible, and that, with other things equal, the more quickly and perfectly the fracture is reduced, the more quickly all phases of shock will be removed, and the more quickly the process of restoration from the injury will take place. Nothing wiU be said as to the method of reducing fractures in this connection. That subject wiU be left to works that are now extant, and that are addressed to that subject.
So soon as a fracture has been properly reduced, which means so soon as the fractured osseous structvu-e has been related so that the ends or parts severed are placed in proper relation again, the process of first intention, as it is called, should commence. First intention is the name surgeons have given to the process
of
healing
together
the
several
parts
of
accomphshed by the production in that area of what is called neoplasm colloid projected between the extremities of the fractured parts in which osteoblasts are produced, which fractured bones. This function
is
—
ultimate in the union of those extremities. If
motor reaction from the injury be not so grave as
to produce profound occlusion of stimulus to the area,
neoplasm
will
begin to be produced at once, but
if
LUXATIONS AND FRACTURES
73
profound, and
is not in some be produced, and the fractured extremities of the bone will not undergo first intention. This result quite frequently occurs, and in such cases the sm-geons say first intention does not
occlusion to the area
is
manner removed, no neoplasm
will
take place and then, of course, the only thing that can be done is to amputate the part, if it is in a place where amputation is possible. Otherwise the patient dies. Fortunately, careful and proper reduction of the fracture usually serves to sufficiently
and
irritation in the area to
remove occlusion
reduce constriction of the
vertebral centers, so that vertebral disrelation
is
over-
come
sufficiently, that first intention takes place, even though it may take place rather slowly. In such a situation relaxation of the longitudinal muscles of the vertebral column, together with other constricted tissues, result in almost complete removal
and and intention of the ends of the fractured bone occurs readily and rapidly. In such a situation if there is subluxation of the joints of the vertebral column at the area of motor reaction from the fracture, muscular relaxation will not release of vertebral disrelation, thus reducing occlusion
neoplasm
is
rapidly produced,
occlusion of nerve stimulus, neither will the careful
and exact reduction of the fracture. But after both these have been properly accomplished, occlusion
of of
nerve stimulus to the area of the fracture will remain,
and intention wiU be performed
indifferently
if
at
all,
usually in such conditions intention does not take place.
Where an area
of the vertebral
to that of the fractvu-e there
is
is
column corresponding
gravely subluxated, so that
marked and extensive occlusion to the area
of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
74
the fracture, the tissues will be weak, flaccid, and of a negative character, and incidentally the bone at that area will not have its normal resistance. In such cases intention does not take place,
and amputation
after
a
long and painful period becomes a surgical necessity. It will be seen, therefore, that in case of fracture the
very
first
thing indicated
effect of shock,
and to
is
relating to break
release occlusion to the area
before the reduction of the fracture
is
performed.
So soon as the fracture has been reduced, should
be performed
are relaxed,
fixations
up the
to
assure
that
relating
constrictions
broken up, and the osseous
elements and other tissues in subluxated joints properly related to release occlusion. If
these things have all been
accomphshed
intention takes place within a very short time,
complete union of the bone
is
first
and
soon accomphshed.
CHAPTJiR IX ABNOBMALITT OF BRAIN Fevers
The
—^AFFIRMATIVE
—Brain Fever—Delirium Tremens Apoplexy— Hydrophobia
therapeutic
conception
diseases is of such a general
and
of
so-called
brain
unspecific nature as to
be substantially valueless to the Chiropractor. However, therapeutists have been very painstaking in noting symptoms in connection with the various phases of abnormal brain function, and this data can be made to perform a valuable office when scrutinized from the principles of Chiropractic. Before taking up a discussion of the phases of brain abnormality a few propositions must be stated that are introductory thereto, and the student should bear these propositions in mind, and use them as aids to an understanding of any adverse process that may occur as incident to the brain.
In the department of Pathology in this work, it has been stated that any phase of abnormality of the tissues of the brain, incidentally results in phases of
abnormaUty
of tissue
and function
in parts of the
body
corresponding to those parts of the brain, and that
such abnormality in the body, considered aside from will always be in direct ratio with the tissue abnormality of the brain.
any other influences
To make the proposition stated a little clearer, supposing the whole organism to be well, and then a 75
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
76
traumatic injury occurring to a limited area of the brain. In such a case the parts of the body ramified by nerves which have origin in the injured cortical area will be affected equally with that area, and the
body ramified by those nerves will be as gravely in tissue, and therefore, function as
parts of the affected
that area of the cortex of the brain.
In the
be seen that if the very small, and the nerves which have
illustration last given, it will
cortical area is
origin in that area ramify widely different parts of the
body,
it will
be very
difficult, if
not impossible for a
diagnostician to observe the phases of abnormality in
the tissue thus affected, and to distinguish the adverse must under-
function incident thereto. However, he
stand that such tissue and functional abnormality exist in such cases.
The
contra-proposition necessary to state
is
that
abnormality of the tissue of the body produces abnormality of the corresponding parts of the brain. If, therefore, the nerves of an area of the body are severely injured, whether by trauma or chemical adversity, the corresponding area of the brain, that is, the area of the cortex from which those nerves have origin, will be as abnormal in function as are the nerves involved.
By way
of illustration of the proposition stated in
the last paragraph, it is well known that severing nerves produces shock to the brain, which only means that the cortical areas corresponding to the body area where the nerves are cut, is functioning abnormally in ratio with the injury, and will continue to function abnormally until the cut nerves have reunited, or until the brain
ABNORMALTIY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
77
ends of them have healed by establishing new terminals. The rehabilitation of the shocked cortical areas is accomplished through that wonderful medium of interarea brain ramification, and the nerves are restored by the inter-area ramification in body tissue.
In connection with the last statement remembered that after shock, a brain recovery
'per se
from
does
it
must be
cell
begins
before the nerve or nerves extending
and
although the restoration in one instance follows almost instantaneously upon the other. In this connection, it must be remembered that it
disrelation in
body
is
restored
first,
tissue producing occlusion, frequent-
ly results in brain abnormality in the
and to the extent In
way
illustrated,
illustrated.
this connection the student should observe that
two ways by
there are
distortion of
body
tissue in
which
rendered abnormal. The first of these is by shock-like effects through the nerves injured, changing the vibration of those nerves, thus in a sense negatively the brain
aflFecting
is
the brain.
The second way
is
by
occlusion of returning nerves
to the brain, such for instance as those which have
extended down through the cord, out through a foramen, then through the visceral primary division into the
gangUated cord, extending headward several gangha, then returning to the neural canal through a gray ramus communicans, and then back up through the cord to the cortex.
It will
be observed that
if
of these foramina there will
there
is
distortion in either
be occlusion of stimulus in the returning nerves to the brain, and in such a case the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
78
brain area, which should be supplied through returning nerves will be in ratio deprived of its stimulus, thus
producing an affirmatively adverse
The
effect.
proposition of occlusion of returning nerves
would seem to disturb the ratio as stated. However, it must be remembered that the negative eflFect upon cortical brain areas will be lessened somewhat by distortion, for occlusion interferes, and serves to which fact will be compensated for by affirmative occlusion through
lessen the change of vibration to the brain,
returning nerves.
In connection with the proposition
last stated, it
must not be overlooked that occlusion is always the result of injury by trauma or chemical adversity, and therefore, brain tissue and function as an entirety will always be abnormal in ratio with distortion as an entirety. In other words, distortion as an entirety will be just equalled by abnormal brain tissue and function. In the examination of a patient, therefore, the diagnostician should always approximate the distortion of the
whole organism, and reach the conclusion that abnormality are equal
brain tissue and functional thereto.
Any
tissue abnormality that
can occur in any part of
the body, can occur in the tissues of the brain, for
must be constantly kept
in
it
mind that the brain is noth-
ing but a cellular organ constructed similarly to large
glands of the body, and acts within the law applicable to
any
tissue.
Brain tissue abnormality has been fully discussed department of Pathology in this work. It will here, then, be only necessary to call the student's in the
ABNORMALTIY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
79
attention to the propositions of elevated temperature,
and depressed or minus temperature as representing the afBrmative and negative processes, and the changes of tissue that take place incident to these processes, which are described in the chapter entitled " Normal and Abnormal Tissue," in the Department of Pathology of this
work.
FEVEHS
The phenomenon
that has been called "heat plus" in
the Department of Pathology herein, which
vated or
exalted
is
an
ele-
has been for many Any abnormal rise of temperature
temperature,
centuries called fever.
is called a fever, and all that phase of function comes under the classification of
in the organism, then,
fevers.
There has been an attempt on the part of therapeutists to designate these rises
of
temperature as
separate and distinct things, and to refer to
them
as
This is quite a useless attempt, since the process by which the phenomenon is produced is always the same, only differing slightly as to its phases. Fever, however, is of two characters simple fever and eruptive fever. The only distinction between these two is that in one the marked phenomenon is that of abnormal heat, while in the other, accompanying the abnormal heat, there is an eruption upon the surface diflferent fevers.
—
of the body.
The
first
symptom
of fever
is
that of
tosay, a sensation of cold not infrequently
chill,
that
is
accompanied
by shivering. It must be understood that while the sensation
is
that of cold, there
is
nevertheless in such
80
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
process the beginning of a fever, the chill itself being the incipient shock to the nerves and brain incident to
traumatic injury, or some marked chemical injury, such as cumulative toxin within the body, which has just reached the virility to overcome the resistance of the organism in whole, or in part. It sometimes happens that the
first
symptom
of
symptom that occurs, because the organism is so overcome by the shock from trauma or poison that its resistance is entirely overcome, in which event of course dissolution takes place before any other symptoms are manifested. If, however, the fever, called chill, is the only
organism reacts from the effects of trauma or poison, then elevated temperature as a result of the increased friction soon becomes manifest. Chill is a symptom that accompanies fever to its highest point. So soon as the highest point in the elevated temperature is reached, the sensation of chill ceases, and will not be observed at any phase during the decline of temperature, but if in the decline for any reason the temperature should begin to rise again the sense of
chill will recur,
temperature to
its
and again accompany the
height.
have named certain symptomatic and be taken up in their order and discussed in
Therapeutists
processes that take place with regard to the brain,
these will
such manner as to illustrate the application of Chiropractic principles thereto.
BRAIN FEVER In connection with the analysis in the preceding way that elevated temper-
portion of this chapter, in the
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE atures are there referred to,
that brain fever
is
it
may be
81
well understood
incident to every phase of functional
abnormality in which there is an elevated temperature. In some phases of abnormaUty, however, elevated temperature in the brain is so marked and characteristic as to largely obscure the symptoms elsewhere in the organism, while in other phases the elevated temperature of the body largely overshadows the
symptoms
of fever in the brain.
In this connection the student will observe that the phase being here discussed is that in which the elevated temperature of the brain is most profound. But while remembering that fact, he must also understand that the same character of phase, less marked, will be indicated in the entire organism.
In order to make the statement in the last paragraph it must at all times be remembered that no such thing as brain fever occiu-ring distinctively, that is, as separate from the rest of the organism, is perfectly clear,
possible.
Brain fever is substantially always the reaction from The shock may have occurred suddenly as the result of extreme and sudden grief, fear, etc., or it may occur as the resxilt of long sustained tension, anxiety, shock.
worry,
etc., sutficiently intense
to finally overcome re-
sistance of brain tissue.
In any event brain fever is usually ushered in by pronounced and abrupt chill, accompanied by intense pain in the head, very soon presenting an extremely flushed face and head, with congestion of lymph in the eyeballs and tissues of the orbit, roaring or cracking in the ears, and not infrequently with nausea and vomiting,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
82
which symptoms are accompanied by an excited and distressed countenance, with hypersensitiveness
all of
and ears. Frequently there is dehrium and convulsions. These occur more frequently in children, because children have of the organs of sense, especially the eyes
not accomplished much self-control. In a short time usually a very high temperature
is
which continues and is accompanied by symptoms of frenzy, the patient becoming so violent that he must be restrained to prevent injuring himself.
reached,
Following the state of frenzy, as the negative phase of brain tissue is approached, there sometimes occiu-s " the state of oppression," as it is therapeutically called.
may
The
state of oppression
It
in the state of frenzy, or the state of oppression
is
last for
hours or for days.
that the patient frequently expires. If relaxation
should occur during the period of frenzy
the patient escapes the period of oppression and begins convalescence. If he should react from the period of
oppression he begins a slow process of recovery.
The
description so far given of brain fever,
based upon the patient receiving no direct assistance through the means of lessening occlusion
by
is
relating to free the
nerves involved, and upon the idea of the patient being
cared for therapeutically.
In brain
fever, or
in
patient should be placed
any fevered condition, the upon a bed, the head of which
should be elevated from six inches to a foot, in order that his head may be higher than his feet without the use of a pillow. In other words the body of the patient should lie flat upon the bed, and yet the head and shoulders should be higher than the feet.
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
83
The object to be attained by the elevation of the head bed is to assist the reduction of congestion in the head by the process of gravitation. The patient should be kept in such position or attitude
of the
patient's
as to permit of as little obstruction to the transportation
That
the neck should not be allowed to be craned or twisted, and the head should
of Uquids as possible.
is,
not be permitted to be thrown back, or held in any manner that would interfere with free stimulation through the nerves. In all fevered conditions patients wiU indicate a desire to throw the head back thus sharply increasing the ventral curve of the cervical region, thereby occluding cervical nerves. The reason for this disposition is that the dorsal longitudinal muscles of the vertebral column in the cervical and headward thoracic regions, in their hypertonicis
overcome
their
weaker
opponents. Care should be taken by the attendants that
kept from being thrown backward. in which the patient is should be shaded to a soft light, and a free passage of air from the outside should be maintained, but a draught of air should never be permitted to strike directly on the patient. It should be arranged always so that the air passes by the patient, or suflSciently high above him that it does not strike upon him. The temperature of the room should be maintained at about seventy-five degrees Fahrenheit. In case of brain fever, so-called, or in any case of fever, but particularly in brain fever, the patient should have no food of any kind or character, but should have as much good, cool water to drink as he desires. the head
is
The room
84
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
he expresses desire for water, and if he does not he should have administered to him at least a pint, each two hours. It is sometimes thought, on the part of those in charge of a brain fever patient, that he should have some kind of food to keep up his strength. This is a very great misconception of the fact. What he needs above all things is that his entire alimentary process may be at rest, save only the depuratory phase, and there should be no food administered for it would only interfere with the depuratory process. Water in this situation, for the time, meets all of the food requirements of the body. The patient should be entirely undressed, that is to say, nude, and should have nothing over him but a sheet or very light blanket. This precaution is to permit free elimination from the skin, and also admits of easy friction of the skin by the nurse, which should be performed in small areas from time to time, especially arovmd the back of the neck down to the tops of the shoulders, and over the throat and chest, throughout the temporal regions, and across the eyes and forehead. And at least twice each day a thorough and careful massage of the whole scalp should be performed. if
Under the application
of the principles of Chiro-
practic in brain fever, the hair need not be removed,
but should be kept free from the head so as not to draw or bind, and may be frequently moistened with cool (not cold) water.
Ice or extremely cold water should never be applied
any fevered or inflamed condition. The application of ice to the head is a therapeutic to the head in
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
85
measiire of extreme danger, and frequently results in
such shock as to result in death. Relating in a case of brain fever should commence
by
releasing occlusion of the brain
followed
by removing
and heart nerves;
occlusion of nerves ramifying the
depuratory organs, the kidneys and liver being always prominently involved, and by removing occlusion of nerves to the alimentary tract to secure its depuratory function.
At first the Chiropractor should proceed with caution, and should particularly address himself to the brain symptoms, and releasing should be frequent; perhaps the first, second and third relatings should occur at fifteen or twenty minute intervals. So soon as relaxation of the tissues in the neck is well under way he should proceed with the other areas as outlined. It will be found in such cases that motor reaction
is
and that frequent relatings will be necessary to break up the tendency to re-constriction and fixation, and at first constriction and fixation will be found to
intense,
be intense. The frequency of release must always be regulated by the tendency to re-constrict and fix, and the period betweeii addrtesses should always be lengthened as the symptoms of relaxation become more manifest. In a case of brain fever, relaxation should be accompUshed in from two to twenty-four hours, after which relating should only be performed sufl&ciently often to keep down constriction. After three or four days a thorough relating daily, should be sufficient to secure recovery. Correction as herein indicated will be applicable to all phases of elevated temperature in the brain.
86
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS delirium;
tremens
Delirium tremens is a peculiar phase of insanity of the brain fever type following regular and grave alcoholic poisoning.
In such a situation the stomach and intestine have been continually poisoned until the shock-like injury to the nerves becomes intense. Sometimes tumors exist in the stomach and duodenum in such situations, in which cases the brain phases are very pronounced indeed.
Abnormal mental conditions analogous to delirium tremens are incident to regular poisoning by any of the so-called habit-forming drugs.
Delirium tremens occurs when such a large amount of alcohol has been absorbed and taken into the liquid transportation system, and thence to the brain as to cause muscular constriction, accompanied by congesting of the tissues of the brain which have been greatly depleted, and to such an extent as to be at least temporarily overcome. In any such condition it will be understood that in connection with the irritated condition of the brain, the walls of the stomach and intestine will also be at least greatly inflamed. The kidneys will be congested as will also the general digestive and ehminating glands of the body. It frequently happens that notwithstanding the grave abnormality of the whole glandular body and brain, the individual is able to exercise great muscular strength. Usually, however, the person is very weak
and prostrated, and condition.
is
in a strange,
hypersensitive
,
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE One
of
the pronounced
incident to delirium tremens
and is
peculiar
87
symptoms
the optical illusions,
the patient frequently imagining he sees snakes, rats, worms, vermin, and all kinds of horrible sights, and that
he is being pursued, and his life threatened, etc. In such a condition the patient will not as a rule desire water. However, he should be induced to drink a great deal of water, even though it produces vomiting, but should have no food of any kind, until the digestive apparatus indicates activity, and then for several days he should have nothing but meat broths. Relating to remove delirium tremens will be first directed to freeing the stasis in the brain,
and securing
depuration from the head. For purpose attention will be given to the cervical and headward thoracic areas. Following this, relating should be performed to this
secure depm-ation from
the digestive glands.
all
That
the glands, but particularly is
to say, the liver, spleen,
and pancreas. Relating should begin, then, by releasing all of the if there are any, followed by
headward thoracic keys
longitudinal traction in the cervical region, of the eight cervical
by those at the
and third thoracic
and
release
areas, followed
fourth, seventh, eleventh,
and twelfth
thoracic areas.
APOPLEXY Apoplexy means shock. The process results from a general abnormal tissue condition, some aspects of which approach the negative phase. The particular
symptoms
constituting apoplexy, however, are of the
affirmative phase.
Apoplexy
is
a sudden, spasmodic
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
88
result of a cumulative congestion in brain tissue, result-
ing
from a long-standing,
widespread
and grave
occlusion of nerves to the brain.
The tissues of the brain, in preparation for this process, have become so depleted as to permit great congestion in the vessels of liquid transportation.
and
capillaries are flaccid,
The tissue situation
is
The blood vessels
and permit great
distension.
not wholly dissimilar to incipient
hydrocephalus.
The
general phases of the process, however, are very
because of occlusion of the kidney nerves especially, and many times of the nerves to other glands diflFerent,
of the body.
Because of occlusion of kidney and liver nerves there usually an excess of acids produced which fail to be eliminated, through the kidneys. On account of the accumulation of acids, nerve terminals are irritated, and motor reaction becomes active, and is usually most profound in the cervical muscles, and the longitudinal muscles of the vertebral column. There are other contributing causes of constriction of the cervical muscles, which are of exceeding importance is
to
know
Any will
at this juncture.
continuing irritation at any place in the body
have the
constriction
effect,
of
the
by motor cervical
reaction, of producing
muscles,
and
this
is
peculiarly true in connection with anomalous forma-
tion of the lower orifices of the body.
The author has never observed a case of apoplexy in a patient who did not present anomalous, or pathologic conditions in the feetward orifices of the body. The reference
is
to those persons, both male
and female.
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
89
needing circumcision, and to incidental rectal, vagin*l and uterine pathology. The anomalous orifices just referred to have the eflfect, by motor reaction of producing a state of great hypertonicis of the muscles of the cervical region, with very marked and rigid fixation, and no matter how this condition of the cervical musculature is produced, the situation produces occlusion of nerves controlling drainage from the brain, and also of the veins and
lymph The walled,
vessels so involved. arteries carrying
blood to the brain are thick-
and are not so responsive to abnormal
pressure,
be forced to the brain more rapidly than drainage from the brain by lymph vessels and veins can be accomplished, resulting in a congestion in brain tissue, which constantly tends to increase. The situation then under excitement, or unusual activity, results in such a pronounced congestion as to overcome the resistance of brain tissue, resulting in the shock
and
therefore, blood will
called apoplexy.
When an apoplectic spasm occurs the symptoms are in many respects similar to those in epilepsy. The face, from being florid from congestion, becomes very red, sometimes almost blue. The veins over the head and neck stand out visibly. If the person is standing he loses consciousness, and falls almost invariably backward or sidewise, where he lies, undergoing muscular spasm as though in a fit. The breathing during the incipiency, and sometimes throughout the attack, is stertorous, and the blood very apparent. the attack is not too severe, presently the patient
congestion If
is
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
90
ceases struggling
and
lies
still,
continuing the same
character of breathing. The muscles undergo relaxation from exhaustion, particularly the cervical muscles and
congestion in the brain will slowly disappear, after which the patient will resiune consciousness.
In
many
cases, however, the constriction
fixation of the cervical region
is
and deep
so great that a pro-
nounced congestion in the brain
tissue remains, with
such intra-brain pressure as to greatly delay, if not permanently prevent, return of consciousness. In such cases the patient sometimes dies without recovering consciousness.
Sometimes in the graver cases the congestion
is
so
intense that hemorrhage occurs in the capillaries of the
which event, of course the patient soon dies without coming out of the first shock. Usually patients suffering from the first shock of apoplexy only remain unconscious for a short time, and as soon as muscular relaxation occurs, recover consciousness rapidly, and in a short time will be able to go
brain, in
about.
Persons of an apoplectic tissue situation have a continuous congestion of various amounts in the tissues of the brain, of which they are conscious by one marked .
symptom which
is
that of dizziness. Sometimes without
what would actually be
a sensation of falling great distances, and the person would fall in this hallucination if not supported. In other cases the
symptoms
called dizziness, there
are those of roaring in the ears,
specks or motes before the eyes, there brain,
is
is
etc.,
but sometimes
only a sense of dullness or sluggishness of the
and
in practically all cases there is
a continuing
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE low fever in the brain
tissue,
and the
tissues of the
91
head
generally.
Relating to
remove the process
called apoplexy: the
patient should be kept very quiet for a few weeks,
not entirely fasting, but substantially so, taking nothing but thin broths, and should not permit himself to engage in excitement or exertion. This must include total abstinence from intoxicating liquors, tobacco, narcotics,
and
all
and other
sex indulgence.
care of one suffering an attack of apoplexy should be to place the patient upon the venter upon a flat bed or other structure, in such manner that the head and shoulders are at least twelve inches higher than the feet. The head should lie obUquely upon the face. The neck should be kept straight and be permitted to incline toward the venter. That is to say, the chin should be in, and the crown well out, so as to loosen the muscles of the dorsal aspect of the cervical region, and permit free opportunity of drainage from
The immediate
the brain, and also freedom of respiration.
remembered that first aid to any person that has fallen from congestion in the brain, is to place the patient upon the venter with the head and shoulders higher than the body and the feet, and never under any circ*mstances to place such a person in a horizontal position upon the back. In apoplexy there is It should always be
occlusion of all the cervical nerves, incident to the violent longitudinal constriction of the cervical muscles,
by which pronounced approximation
of the cervical produced. Incident to the cervical distortion also disrelation of the fourth, third, seventh
vertebrae there
is
is
and twelfth thoracic
areas.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
92
Relating should be performed at intervals of an hour until the pronounced constrictions begin to disappear, and breathing becomes easy, after which twice, or
perhaps once a day will be
sufficient.
HTDROPHOBIA a phase of abnormality which is particularly evidenced by brain symptoms, and it is for that reason that it is presented in this chapter, the phase of abnormality being constitutional. The primary irritation is presumed to be the result of inoculation of the saliva from a dog or other animal
Hydrophobia
suffering
It
is
is
from hydrophobia.
possible that a poison of the supposed character
can be carried into the stased areas of the body in sufficient quantities to produce the irritation and remarkable columnar constriction with sufficiently widespread occlusion to cause the extravagant symptoms which are seen in
what
is
called rabies.
as contended, however,
might be
as
It
That
rabies occurs,
not as definite and certain
desired.
known
that
many
persons, having been bitten
dogs, develop these very pronounced symptoms.
by It
is
is
also well known that many persons simply standby and observing an epileptic fit succumb to such
is
ing
seizures themselves, although they are not epileptic.
Poisons of almost any character inoculated in the body will produce many of the adverse symptoms that are described as being incident to hydrophobia. This
always be true if the poison inoculated is a very potent one, and in many cases of so-called hydrophobia the poison inocvdated is not only potent, but the adverse will
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—AFFIRMATIVE
93
chemical condition of the patient is just right to produce the paroxysm. The author has had cases of so-called rabies under
from the inception. In every case the patient has been chronically abnormal glandularly, and the symptoms indicated that if this had not been true, there would have been no adverse symptoms from the
his care
inoculation. It
must be stated that the great unqualified fear of many of the adverse symptoms, and
rabies produces
frequently the adverse suggestion, co-operating with
produce the convulsions of so-called hydrophobia, where the dog in question has been proven to have been well. The pronounced symptoms incident to rabies is a violent constriction of the longitudinal muscles of the vertebral column with constriction and twitching of the muscles of the appendal parts of the body. The eyes appear glassy from congestion, with sometimes a peculiar redness. The saliva becomes frothy. The alimentary canal is inactive. The throat is dry and parched, and the continual movements of the tongue to relieve that sense sometimes causes the patient to appear to froth at the mouth. Paroxysms follow each other, in which the mouth will be convulsively snapped together, and the violence of the muscular paroxysms are sufficient to cause a whine-like moan to escape from the patient, frequently not dissimilar to that of a dog. Relating to remove hydrophobia consists in continuous and careful watching of the vertebral column and the body generally to keep down constriction and fixation. It is a good idea to keep the patient upon the the poisons inoculated
is
sufficient to
94
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Watching carefully, and every time an indication of constriction appears anywhere, or anything like a convulsion, to immediately release the nerves to that area, and, of coiu'se, every means to secure elimination should be resorted to. When the tendency to fixation and constriction begins to decline rapidly, relatings may be more widely separated, and thereafter sufficiently often only to prevent return of constriction is the correct procedure. table for hours together.
The patient wiU indicate an aversion to water, but he must be induced to drink, and if he should fail to do so, the water should be conducted to his stomach by a tube. If there is impaction a high enema should be administered every thirty minutes until the bowel
washed and cleansed.
is
thoroughly
CHAPTER X
—^NEGATIVE Depressed Temperature— Vertigo—Dropsy—HydroABNORMALITY OF BRAIN
cephalus
one of the pronounced symptoms indicating the negative process. It would be well to say at the outset that depressed temperature Depressed temperature
is
is
the paramount symptom.
The pathology of depressed temperature, or "heat minus," is quite fully discussed in Chapter XIII of Volume One of this work, and the student is here definitely referred to the principles there laid down. For the purpose of preparing the student's mind to what is about to be stated in this connection, it is recalled that normal temperature is the aggregate expression from friction of molecules of the body under the uninterrupted and therefore, normal radiation and
consider
application of stimulus, or the force of
life.
It will be recalled that minus, or depressed, tempera-
ture
is
the paramoimt
symptom
of shock,
but
it is
not
symptoms of that phase of pathology that is here under discussion. The student's mind is here being directed to the character of injury that has been therapeutically conceived to be the result of disease. It is not intended by the last statement to have the student reach the conclusion that shock is not disease, but simply to impress him that in this connection symptoms arising from the general process of abnormalthe
95
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
96 ity is the
phase xinder discussion, and not that incident
to sudden injury.
A minus,
or depressed temperature, then, considered
from the standpoint under examination, is the heat expression arising from the functional process after it has passed through all the phases of the affirmative process until, by nerve occlusion and chemical adversity, friction has been reduced imtil the heat arising therefrom is less than the normal temperature of that person.
From what has been
said in the last paragraph, the
student will understand that minus, or depressed, temperature, as a phase in a functional process, is always an unfavorable symptom; for it is proof that depuration
and elimination
of toxins
have not been accomplished
as rapidly as they should, but that they have accumu-
lated in the areas of stases, which exist because of
occlusion of nerve stimulus.
Depressed temperatiu*e is also proof that occlusion is and because thereof the organism in the area
increasing
if the symptoms undergoing an accumulation and precipi-
of depressed temperature, or generally,
are general,
is
tation of toxins.
Minus or depressed temperature is a symptom which always advises the Chiropractor that he must find some way to sufficiently release stimulus that the area or organism can catch up on depuration and elimination, or that in a short time there must be a fatal result. It is a remarkable thing in this connection, that the therapeutic world has for centuries called the symptoms of the opposite functional process to depressed temperature, fever, but has never offered any name for the
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE
97
negative phases other than depressed, minus, or sub-
temperature.
VERTIGO
The word vertigo simply means dizziness. Dizziness is a symptom that occurs as incident to many phases of abnormal process. It is a prominent symptom of practically all
phases of the affirmative process, peculiarly
is marked rise in temperature. a pronounced symptom of marked traumatic or chemical injury. Of course, it is well understood that traumatic injury, which is of suflBcient gravity to produce shock, is expressed, in one phase, by dizziness. It is also well known that the process introduced by the administration of narcotics or poisons always presents the symptoms of dizziness. Dizziness is also a prominent symptom of markedly dfepressed or minus temperatures. While the symptoms that have just been referred to are important in connection with dizziness, still the subject here definitely under discussion is that phase of adverse process which occurs without either markedly affirmative, or negative, temperatures, but as incident to that phase of abnormality in which the paramount symptom has been thera-
those in which there
Dizziness
is
peutically called vertigo.
Brain tissue constructed brain
is,
is
of a soft
and spongy nature, and
much like the large glands
of the body.
is
The
therefore, easily subject to congestion.
Congestion of liquids in the brain
may
occur as
incident to the general structure of the brain, but
more usually
in the meningeal sacs
The pecuhar phases
and
is
ventricles.
of congestion in the brain are
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
98
frequently noted in the symptoms of what are ordinarily called colds; for in colds, so-called, there is many times suflficient
congestion in the brain to superinduce dizzi-
ness as a
symptom.
The
suggestions just
made have been
stated for the
purpose of calling the student's attention to the fact that in certain quasi-affirmative. and negative phases of process, that is to say, where the temperature is not
but fluctuates slightly into both phases, because of abnormality of the tissues really affirmative nor negative,
of the brain area, that process prepares the
way
for the
phase of abnormality called vertigo. In this connection it should be suggested that the therapeutic world has advanced the theory that the organ of consciousness of equilibrium is in the inner ear. To explain the error of this theory it is only necessary to call attention to the fact that the inner ear is only one of the mechanisms connected by nerves to the brain cortex, through which nerves certain vibrations are transmitted which can be translated into the consciousness of so-called sound, or better into hearing.
There
is
no mechanism
in the ear
by which conscious-
ness of the relativity of objects in the immediate
environment may be known, which would be necessary, as a transmissive fact, to constitute an organ of equilibrium. It
is
perfectly clear that equilibrium
is
a phase of
consciousness not unlike the consciousness of beauty,
harmony, truth, hate or love, and can be ascribed to no organ, but applies to those areas of the cortex which have to do with the production of that phase of consciousness which in the same sense we call equihbrium.
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE
99
In this phase of thought it will be seen that vertigo is a symptom paramount in indicating that those areas of the brain cortex, in which the consciousness of equilibrium is produced, are the subject of congestion, chemical irritation and retention of morbidity, which have resulted in a tissue condition incapable of correctly performing the mental process which we call equilibrium. Aside from trauma, in its ordinary occurrence, it is the experience of the human family that dizziness is a symptom concomitant with abnormality of the ali-
mentary canal and digestive glands; peculiarly those of the Uver and spleen in the direct analysis, and incidentally, but not less pronouncedly, the kidneys. It is well known that the symptom of dizziness can be qtdckly produced by narcotics, or poisons administered through the alimentary canal. We do not know whether this result is produced as incident to the conduct of the liver and spleen, but there is nothing to definitely establish that effect, and the phenomenon is accounted for as a result of marked motor reaction and constriction, occluding returning nerves to the brain,
and changing the vibrations in nerves extending from the brain, thus producing the
symptom
of dizziness as
a phase of waning consciousness.
We know and
liver,
that such influences do aflfect the spleen however, for we have found by the continual
ingestion of alcohol, for instance, that in the ratio that
these organs are affected adversely, the
symptom
of
chronic vertigo appears.
The kidneys are ramified by nerves from the same trunks that the small intestine, the flexures of the colon, the ascending and descending colon are, and, therefore.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
100
they are continually affected by irritating substances in the alimentary canal affecting those nerves, producing motor reaction which centers to the kidney area of the vertebral column, causing constriction of the longitudinal
and
muscles
structures,
occluding
the
nerves to the kidneys, and in such situations the adverse conduct of the kidneys, or rather their failure to
such changes of vibration back to the brain through the nerves ramifying the kidneys, and through returning nerves occluded because of occlusion to the kidneys, as to affect corresponding cortical areas to such an extent as to produce marked and continuous phases of chronic vertigo. Because of the facts just stated, it will be understood that in all cases of vertigo, whether acute or chronic, the patient should have as complete rest of the alimentary canal as possible for a few weeks. In this connection, it is suggested that a fast of two weeks, accompanied by the ingestion of plenty of good water is an completely perform their
oflSce, results in
excellent thing. If it is
found impracticable to have a
fast,
then the
upon broths, which, for this purpose, should be strained, and kept upon them from one to four weeks, depending upon the time necessary patient should be put
for cleansing the body.
In any event, the Chiropractor should see to
it
that
his patient has only the very lightest diet of easily
digested substances,
and but one thing at a time
for
several weeks, so as to give opportunity for the alimen-
tary canal to
empty itself of its toxins, and for the
diges-
tive glands to unload themselves of congestion in order
that
all
of the reactive conditions shall be favorable.
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE Incident to the procedure just outlined,
and
101 in
beginning the care of the case, high flushing with the long colon tube should be administered once each twentyfour hours, for from three to six or eight days, depending
upon the gravity
of the situation.
Relating in a case of chronic vertigo because of the
uation just outlined,
is
sit-
required definitely at liver and
kidney areas, paramountly, of course, at liver areas, and incidentally at kidney areas; at the liver for the purpose
and seventh pairs of thoracic and at the kidney area for the purpose of freeing especially the eleventh and twelfth pairs of thoracic of freeing the fifth, sixth
trunks,
trunks.
DROPSY Therapeutists have given the name dropsy to that phase of process where, because of adverse condition of the tissues of an area, or the tissues generally, liquids pass through membranes and vessels into so-called spaces of the body, through which they nornially do not pass, filling such so-called spaces more excessively than normal.
Of course,
it will be understood, that the reason through membranes and vessel walls where they should not pass, is because such membranes and vessel walls are in such negative condition as not to present normal resistance to the pressure of such liquids. In connection with this statement it is understood that lymph normally reaches every atom of animate tissue. It is also understood that it does so by normal means of transportation under the impulsion of nerve stimulus, through normal channels.
liquids pass
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
102
It is as easily understood that under occlusion of
lymph is not propelled in the normal way, or normal amount, and that when it is not, there are excessive accumulations of it in areas, which amount to dropsy in that area. Attention has been called, under the discussion of vertigo, to the fact that abnormal accumulations of lymph is one of the phases, which superinduces dizzistimulus
in the
and other adverse conditions of the brain in the production of certain phases of consciousness, as well as in its control of functional operations of the ness,
organism.
Like dizziness, dropsy occm-s as incident to almost every phase of functional abnormality. But as it occurs in these instances, the therapeutists have not called it dropsy. This, however, does not change the fact. By way of illustrating this point, it is the accumulations of lu-emic poisons that cause that phase of abnormality
called rheiunatism.
The
therapeutists overlook the fact
in this conaection that the accumulations of such acids
not more nor less than a phase of dropsy, and of course, same thing is true of pneumonia, tuberculosis, and indeed every other phase of abnormahty. However, the subject under discussion here is that aggravated and gross phase of tissue abnormality in which very definite and cellular displacement has occurred, and in which great accumvdations of liquid have occurred, and under that general process which is Chiropracticly designated as plus Uquidity, in which is
this
assimilation
is
greatly lessened, disintegration greatly
increased, depuration greatly lessened, until preparation for
abnormal
cavities is pronoimced, in which,
due to
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE
103
and negativity of tissue much more than the normal amount of liquid accumulates. Therapeutically, dropsy is classified as an infiltration
flaccidity
into cavities, and, of course, this cavities are those
which did
whether the or those that have
is
exist,
true,
by the process indicated in the preceding paragraph. For the purpose of a general understanding, the therapeutic names and situations will be here stated. occurred
a general dropsy involving the entire tissues of the body in a general way. Ascites is an infiltration into the potential cavity of
Anasarca
is
the abdomen.
Hydrothorax
is
an
cavities of the pleura,
infiltration
into the potential
and pericardiima
of the thorax.
Hydrocephaltis is an infiltration into the meningeal sacs or ventricles of the brain, or both, or a general dropsy of the brain tissues including the
meningeal sacs and
ventricles.
Hydrocele of the
is
an
infiltration into
the potential cavities
scrotum relative to the testes. is an infiltration through the capsule of the
Ovaricele
ovary into the potential cavities of that gland, and is frequently referred to as ovarian dropsy, or ovarian cyst. In this adverse process, it is frequently the surgical method to excise the ovary, and this is sometimes necessary. It is necessary when the cyst has become so large that its relative pressures produce occlusion more rapidly than it can be reduced, and when, by the cystic dropsy, the ovary is practically or wholly disintegrated. In a great majority of these cases, however, the application of the principles of Chiropractic will soon reduce the liquid accumulation, when the tissues of the ovary
;
104
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
be completely restored. A still larger number of these cases will be saved without extirpation, when sm-geons learn to aspirate an ovarian cyst without opening the abdomen. In ascites, hydrothorax, and hydrocele, it is somewill
times advisable to have aspiration performed, and
it is
always advisable to have aspiration performed where the relative pressure of the accumulated Hquid is producing irritation, and motor reaction that result in occlusion, which can not be overcome by the principles of Chiropractic. As to when this situation has arisen, is always a matter for the ripe judgment of the Chiropractor in the given case. Relating to remove dropsy will, of course, be directed to the primary areas of occlusion causing the dropsy. Paramoxmtly, of course, it will be understood that the first attention should be to releasing occlusion of nerves to the large glands, such as the spleen, liver and pancreas
occlusion of nerves to the brain,
and to the kidneys;
these for the purpose of securing the necessary vital activity incident to overcoming the process. Next, the
attention should be directed to
all of
the avenues of
elimination. Careful relating should be addressed to the intestine, the lungs all
and kidneys. Incident to
relating,
other means which have been found helpful, such as
massage to the skin, enema when indicated for the bowel, and the very best of aeration and assistance to respiration should be employed.
HYDROCEPHALUS is taken from " hydro" " meaning water, and cephalus" referring to the brain.
The word hydrocephalus
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE The word,
therefore, literally construed,
105
means " water
on the brain." It must be understood that the situation therapeutically named hydrocephalus, is a very negative and degenerate tissue condition, presenting an aggravated dropsy.
in or
The water of the dropsical accumulation is lymph, which is carried into the brain as blood plasma, and has accumulated there because of occlusion of nerve stimulus from being normally applied to the impulsion of hquid transportation in the sinuses and veins of the brain,
and the lymph
sacs, vessels
and
tubes.
In this tissue condition, blood capillaries, venules and veins, together with lymph structures of transportation, are flaccid, relaxed, and in a negative condition in ratio with occlusion of stimulus to the area.
In the situation outlined there is an excessive extrusion of blood plasma which is retained in the areas, distending
all of
the liquid-containing sacs and vessels
within the markedly abnormal area, and
if
the case
is
sufficiently grave, within the skull cavity.
Occlusion of stimulus under this phase of abnormality is
so widespread
and grave that vasomotor stimulus
is
and generally interfered with, not only in the but in the whole organism, and because of this
greatly brain,
fact general assimilation is greatly reduced, while patho-
markedly increased, so that there a constant retention of morbidity. In this situation it will be seen that the negative phase of process has been reached in the brain areas, and frequently in many other areas of the body, and so long as occlusion keeps getting graver and more widespread. logic disintegration is
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
106
tissue conditions
and general adverse processes
continue to get worse in ratio therewith. The adverse chemistry is very irritating in
its
will
nature,
and is constantly causing irritation and motor reaction in the more normal parts of the body, which of course results in aggravated phases of the affirmative process
occurring concomitantly. Generally, the phase of abnormality called hydro-
cephalus occurs as the result of instrumentation in delivery at birth, but, of course, many times occurs from falls,
and other phases
of injury,
and may
result
from
congenital and hereditary influences.
An injury to be sufficiently grave to produce this phase of abnormality must interfere with the transmission of stimulus to such an extent as to result in a continuous fever in the brain. The fever is not usually of such height as to attract particular attention. It
may
only be sufficient to cause a continual cerebral
which causes the child to be classified as being precocious, for, of course, the phase of abnormality under discussion usually occurs in childhood. Sometimes at the beginning phase, the child, for a short period, is looked upon as being unusually bright, but it is not long until the general health is noticed to be greatly impaired, especially the digestive organs, but particularly the stomach. It wiU also be noticed that the child's kidneys are abnormal, and soon thereafter it will be observed that all of the large, digestive glands are excitation,
acting abnormally.
At about this time it will be observed that there is abnormal muscular conduct in the legs and arms, and the subject will complain of pain in the head and body.
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE
107
and legs, and the patient will become dull, moody and drowsy, but, it will be observed does not sleep well nor regularly, and if old enough will complain of dull, heavy headaches, and if too young to complain will show a disposition to lay the head down upon any convenient object, as if it were too heavy to hold up, and in connection with these symptoms, the child will be frequently attacked by spells of vomiting, not preceded nor accompanied by any sense of nausea, which is proved by the child attempting to eat some-
radiating to the arms
thing while in the act of vomiting.
About this time,
if the child has been able to walk, the becomes uncertain, staggering and stumbling; certain muscles faiUng to respond to volitional impulse. Many times there is depression, frequently accompanied by stupor, and sometimes by delirium and
gait
convulsions.
In connection with the symptoms, a careful observation will reveal that the cranial sutures are distending,
and the head enlarging with a dropsical accimiulation. As this accumulation increases, the fever apparently subsides from the external aspect. However, this must not be taken as being true, for the internal fever remains. If the process is not checked by proper aid being applied, the sutures of the skuU are forced open, and the head continues to greatly enlarge. The process at this phase may continue to enlarge the head until the segments of the skull are widely separated from each other, and until the head seems almost as heavy as the child.
When
the process has reached the gravity indicated
in the last paragraph, there is great
impairment of some
108
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
of the brain functions. Sometimes the
mind
is
wholly
lost. At other times only certain mental phases are lost. One peculiar symptom of mental loss is a lack of consciousness of the stomach or its conditions. Smell or
may either be lost, but are not usually. Sight and hearing are frequently affected. Sometimes one or the other, or both, are entirely lost. In this phase of abnormality, the diet of the patient taste
becomes a very important consideration, and it should consist as nearly as possible of the formula of which the body is composed, and should be administered wholly in liquid form; the reason for this being that the patient
can not be induced to masticate food. The liquids given should be vegetable and meat broths for the reason that the administration of dense albumens and proteids should be avoided, because of the marked debility of the digestive system. Therefore, no milk nor eggs should be given, and, of course, meat should be completely avoided. What makes the matter of feeding the patient at this time so diflScult, is the fact that the appetite must not be permitted to govern in any sense, for it is the rule that these patients, because of irritation, always express a voracious appetite; if they present any disposition to all, or none as the other extreme. Those having such patients in charge should approximate the amount and character of liquids to be administered, and fix upon the frequency of administration, governing themselves by the age and size of the patient, and remembering all the time that the adminis-
eat at
tration of food in such cases is only to preserve
the adverse process can be controlled.
life,
until
ABNORMALITY OF BRAIN—NEGATIVE
109
In the early steps of this phase of abnormahty, it is not difficult to remove occlusion, and prevent further injury, and in due time to remove the phase of abnormality; this statement being based upon the opportunity to administer the principles of Chiropractic at or near the incipiency. all other abnormahty, there is a degree of gravity phase beyond which recovery is impossible, and in the later processes where the segments of the skidl have become luxated to a marked extent, and dropsy is very great, with intense intra-brain pressures, and much destruction of brain tissue, and a general interruption of liquid transportation throughout the whole organism, the prognosis is bad. However, it must be remembered that in some very adverse cases recovery has been had. Since it is not known just how far this phase must go before recovery from it is impossible, it seems the duty of the profession to make a proper effort for the recovery of each case. Relating in this phase of abnormality will, generally speaking, be the same as that in brain fever, indicated in Chapter IX, except that more attention must be given to removing occlusion in the nerves to the kidneys and intestine. It will frequently be found necessary to go very carefully, so as not to produce grave glandular reaction, and also in relating the segments of the skull. Removal of occlusion from the cervical nerves which contribute to the formation of the phrenic trunks, to overcoming adverse phases afiEecting the diaphragm is
Like
in this
frequently indicated.
The
practitioner
must understand that
in anything
110
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
aggravated conditions of hydrocephalus, recovery will only result after long and persistent, careful and judicious eflfort. He should, therefore, not be discouraged if he does not appear to obtain an immediate response to his eflForts; for it cannot be expected that recovery from such an adverse phase can be had except after the like
lapse of months.
CHAPTER XI
—^ABNORMALITY Pinched—Stretched—Distended— Cut— Torn—Inilamed Catarrh—Disintegrated—Neurasthenia. NERVES
Symptomologicly,
it
must be understood that any
which is sufficiently comprehensive to be general, must be also a discussion discussion of nerve pathology,
of nerve trunks, nerve fasciculi, nerve ganglia
and
nerves.
In
this connection the student
wiU
recall that the
therapeutic anatomies do not discuss anything incident to ramification but nerve trunks, the subject matter in
connection therewith plainly disclosing that even
they are discussing what they
when
nerve filaments, the discussion is really appHed to small nerve trunks. But in the present instance, the discussion distinctly includes all phases of nerve substance.
PINCHED
call
—STRETCHED—^DISTENDED
wiU be seen that there is not necessarily any between nerves and nerve trunks in the symptoms arising from pinching, stretching or distending them; for if a nerve is pinched it is injiu-ed, and if stretched to the same distortion it is equally injm-ed, and if distended to the same gravity, it is also equally injured. This is also true of nerve trunks, fasciculi and ganglia, all of these, of course from the tissue standpoint, and the same is true from the standpoint of occlusion. It
diflference
Ill
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
112
Of course, the symptoms indicating pinched, stretched or distended nerves are paramountly the distortions of the areas of such nerves, and incidentally, the change of conduct at the terminals of the nerves involved, and
many
times in the affirmative phases the ganglia of the
area of extension and ramification of such nerves.
CUT AND TOKN
From the standpoint of symptoms, there is a difference between cut and torn nerves, and those which are pinched, stretched or distended, and that difference also applies as readily to nerve trunks.
not to be overlooked in a discussion of the symptoms of cut and torn nerves that nerves may be pinched, stretched or distended until they are completely occluded. This however, is not generally true, but in cut and torn nerves, it is always true of cut nerves or trunks, and it is true of that part of torn nerves or nerve trunks which are wholly severed. In this connection these difficulties are easily ascertained by a carefid examination of the relative structures. Here again the paramount symptom is the result at the ends of the nerves. Of course, it cannot be denied that the paramount symptom of a cut nerve or trunk is its severance, and that the same is true of a torn nerve or trunk.
Of course,
it is
INFLAMMATION
As an
iucipient proposition,
when nerves are pinched,
is motor reaction, which a concentration of stimulus from a widespread cortical area to the area affected, with the result that
stretched, or distended there results in
NERVES—ABNORMALITY there
is
113
congestion of the liquids of transportation, with
sweUing and increased friction, so that an inflammatory phase of conduct is produced. This applies to nerves and nerve trunks. Of course, it must be stated that as to individual nerves, the statement here made is purely deductory, but it is based upon the necessary result that must follow as incident to acute occlusion.
As to nerve trunks, it is a matter of the most common knowledge that under acute occlusion they always undergo an inflammatory process; the paramount symptom of -which is great soreness upon touch over the area of the nerve trunk, which is sometimes swollen to such an extent that the pathway of its immediate extension
is
plainly observed
upon the
surface.
Nerve trunks also undergo inflammation as a result of being immersed in certain toxins produced in the body. These toxins are usually classified as being of a rheumatoid character, or as of being incident to a general acidosis.
Many
pathologic crimes are laid at the door of acids
and acidity, which are indeed very diflScult of proof. It seems perfectly clear that inflammation of nerve trunks or nerves do not always depend upon acids, but may be produced by irritation of many characters of toxins that form in the body, which may be very far from acid in their nature.
on
However, since there is no definite proof it will be passed with the present
this subject,
interpolation.
Of course, the area of cut nerves or nerve trunks is always inflained, but that is because of the shock and toxic irritation to the terminals of other nerves, for as
114
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
to the severed part of a nerve, or nerve trunk, there
could be no inflammation produced in relative influences.
it,
except
by
There would, however, be inflammawhere
tion in the animate trunk or nerve at the place it
was severed.
The same rule would hold true in regard to torn nerves or trunks as to the parts severed.
Inflammation of nerve trunks has been therapeutically denominated " neurosis." Of course, the name is too general to be of any value, but the Chiropractor is cautioned that in case of inflammation of a nerve trunk, he is not to address himself to the immediate'tissue of that trunk, nor the osseous structm-es which construct the foramen for it, but he is to address himself for the reUef of the trunk to nerves which ramify that trunk, and is to secure the removal of inflammation by releasing occlusion in those nerves, afterward directing proper address to the area of the trunk directly inovlved, when the time to do so has come, which is always a matter of judgment.
CATARRH Incident to the process of inflammation of nerve trunks, there appears that phase of process dropsical in its
nature, which
by analogy
is
catarrh.
To put the proposition in such shape that the student understand it, he must know that during the period of inflammation of a nerve trunk there is will readily
excessive retention of disintegrated matter, so that as
the inflammation declines, the catarrhal or depuratory process obtains.
Generally the catarrhal process does not become pro-
NERVES—ABNORMALITY
115
nounced, but only amounts to a phase of the inflammatory process. However, sometimes the catarrhal process in nerve trunks becomes a marked phase of adverse process. In such condition, the exudation and elimina-
from the nerve trunk seriously affect the terminals and results in a condition ordinarily which is very difficult indeed to heal. What sore, called a
tion
of relative nerves,
the therapeutic world has usually referred to as " old sores," " white swellings," etc., are examples of the character of adverse process under discussion.
In the adverse process just discussed, it sometimes becomes very difficult to secure drainage from the area, and aside from the relating necessary to free the nerves to the area, and the direct relating process to the area itself to accomplish drainage, must be observed and performed.
The method
of accomplishing the character of drain-
age referred to cannot be described on account of the universality of its application, and the means of attaining it
may
only be demonstrated in
clinic.
DISINTEGRATION
Sometimes as a result of aggravated inflammation and catarrh of nerve trunks and relative tissues, other nerve trunks are immersed in a very toxic morbidity. In the condition just referred
to,
frequently those
other nerve trunks not only undergo occlusion as a result of
such chemistry, but actually undergo disinte-
an extent that rehabilitation of the nerve trunks so affected, and the relative tissues can not gration
to such
be accomplished.
The
fact
is
that disintegration of very small nerve
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
116 trunks,
usually
fasciculi,
referred
to
as
or
filaments,
small
very frequently undergo disintegration in
many different parts of the body, but the areas occupied by the same are so small
in comparison,
and are so well
supplied from elsewhere, that the actual results escape
the knowledge of the observer.
The
disintegration of nerve trunks
is
very frequent
in different phases of paralysis, palsy, atrophy, anaemia,
and many other phases
of abnormality.
By the statement just made it knowledge of the
situation
it
must be
to permanent and trimks. In this
incident
disintegration of nerve fasciculi
connection
intended to convey
is
also imderstood that
temporary
disintegration occurs as incident to almost all phases of so-called acute abnormality, pecuharly in the areas of stasis.
Nerves that have undergone temporary disintegration, rehabilitate themselves upon occlusion to the area being removed, so soon as depuration of the stased substances is accomplished.
As
to the methods of securing relation in this phase*
the remarks as to catarrh are controlling.
NEURASTHENIA This word by no stretch of the imagination could ever be correctly used as a word belonging to Chiropractic. From the standpoint of Chiropractic, no word could be more completely meaningless than neurasthenia. The therapeutic consensus of opinion seems to give to this
word the sense
of exhaustion of
brain or nerve system.
some part
of the
The therapeutic profession seems
to think that because of the lack of control,
which
is
NERVES—ABNORMALITY
117
paramountly apparent in what they call neurasthenic patients, that, while the brain and nerves are laboring under some phase of exhaustion, still they credit them with over action, for the paramount symptom of the patient from their standpoint is excitabihty, nervousness and lack of control. It is perfectly clear that if the brain and nerves are in such condition as to cause the individual to be highly excitable, restless and continually disturbed, it is the most complete proof that the brain and nerves are not exhausted, and the symptoms indicated are those of the
nem-asthenic.
The symptoms of so-called neurasthenia proof that the brain and nerve system
is
neither as to a part nor the whole of
it,
being irritated
by abnormal
are adequate
not exhausted, but that it is
relationship to
it
in
some
part of the organism.
By way of illustrating the statement in the last paragraph, the student's attention
any
is
called to the fact that
distortion of tissue presents as one phase of
irritation of the
it, the nerve terminals and nerves throughout
the area of distortion. It, of course, follows, as a necessary corollary that the length of time that distortion and occlusion have existed, and therefore, the extent and character of
accimaulated morbidity, wiU have a marked effect upon the extent of irritation, and therefore, will be largely
symptoms of neurasthenia. Overaction, with regard to the brain and nerves, is an inconceivable proposition. The only way in which the controlling in the so-caUed
brain and nerves could overact would be
by
receiving,
transmitting and applying to tissue elements too
much
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
118
stimulus; a thing which need not be feared, and it does not occur. It is not that the brain and nerves overact in the sense of receiving, transmitting and applying too much stimulus, but that they undergo irritation in the areas of distortion, therefore, instead of accompUshing the intended results with smoothness, rhythm and ease, they accompUsh what results are possible in tissue production and maintenance, with all characters of non-ease and adversity.
As proof
of the statement last
made, the therapeutic
world expresses the situation by the statement that the patient
is
nervous,
The
irritability.
patient tortion,
is
is
fact
hypersensitive, is
and a subject
actually to the contrary.
of
The
acting under the extreme irritation of dis-
and therefore
acts in the irregular
manner
described.
The therapeutic world has never understood the cause and there are a
of disease,
multiplicity of phases of
abnormality, the causes of which they do not even assume to know, in which it is observed that the person is
weak; that
his organs
do not absorb, aerate and
assimilate substances to properly maintain the tissues
and that these symptoms are accompanied by mental irregularity, and physical xmreliability. To the whole group coming under the last description, of his body,
therapeutists apply the terms, general nervous debility,
nervous prostration, nervous exhaustion and neurasthenia. It has been already stated as to these that they are caused by irritation of the nerves and brain on account of distortion. In connection with the distortions that irritate.
NERVES—ABNORMALITY resvilting in
the
neurasthenia,
many and
it
must
also
the prominent phases
varied
119
symptoms assigned
to
be understood that as one of
of
such diflSculty there are
anomalous tissue formations, congenital distortions, and a long line of varied phases which are remarkable for their affects.
Some
of the distortions referred to in the preceding!
paragraph are incapable of removal, and in such cases the person is consigned to suffer from the irritation incident to his adverse construction, ameliorated only by such accommodative changes as the organism is capable of making to that end. The reference in the last paragraph is to abnormal joint formations, fractures in foramina, encroachment upon certain foramiaa by exostosis and calcareous accxunulations, ankylosis or calcification of certain joints, in aponeurotic
bones,
foramina along the sides and margins of
and deposits
of solid residue,
gumma,
etc., in
nerve paths, ganglia, and plexuses. Fortunately, nearly all of the conditions referred to in the two preceding paragraphs can be ameliorated or whoUy removed, but there are some joint foramina that cannot be corrected, and there are certain foramina that cannot be reached for assistance, and other conditions referred to that cannot be removed. Relating in this phase it is observed is altogether too general in its nature to set out or specify, for in a general way it includes the entire tissues of the body. Of course, it paramoimtly includes the area of distortion, but incidentally through liquid transportation, includes the whole organism. It must, therefore, be left to the sound discretion of the Chiropractor in connection with his
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
120
instruction as to securing relation in
any part
of the
body, to intelligently direct his efforts to the greatest assistance in the removal of the particular phase of distortion.
Securing the relation of the segments of the skull com-se a paramoimt part of the Chiropractor's
itself is of
work.
He
will
proceed in this matter with the utmost he will understand that every change
care, for of course,
a skull segment produces pressure upon the brain itself. He will have to go very slowly, and with much caution, and be governed by the results of his work, indicated by the symptoms manifested, following what he does. Of course, incident to his efforts he will imderstand that proper diet, removal from excitation, reduction of all environmental situations which might irritate, etc., are of paramount necessity, and that the actual conduct in the position of
of the patient as to his life in every of the
utmost importance,
if
department of it, is to be had.
recovery
is
CHAPTER
XII
—^AUMENTAKY ABNORMALITY General Discussion—Congestion—Iniiammation— Catarrh—Abscess—Spleen Cake SPLEEN
The therapeutic profession has not as yet declared the By umuendo they let it appear
function of the spleen.
that they think possibly that the spleen thing to do, in a very distant
and
may have someway with
indirect
but they have never attempted to explain how it aids in digestion, or why they think it does. Therapeutists also indicate that the spleen is an organ which has something to do with the production of leucocytes, or lymph corpuscles, and in that way has something to do with controlling disease. It has been repeatedly set forth that leucocytes of a certain type are disease germ fighters, and that the characters so classified are produced in large numbers in the digestion,
spleen.
The
proposition of leucocytes being disease fighters
is supported by so Httle evidence that the subject is hardly worthy of discussion as a separate topic. However, since the fetish has been quite generally pro-
mulgated, it is perhaps only just that a few thoughts be addressed to it. It is undoubtedly true that the spleen is the seat of production of a large number of leucocytes; indeed a larger number in proportion to its size than is produced in any other of the large, well-organized glands. Yet, it 121
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
122
must be understood, as a general proposition, that all of the glands of the body are rich in the production of leucocytes, since their structure is largely lymphoid, and they all contain a large number of lymph glands. one of the best known facts of physiology that lymph glands, no matter where located in the body have, It
is
for their
paramount office, the production
of leucocytes.
known that if it were not for the general production of leucocytes in the lymph glands of the body, It
is
also well
the white corpuscles of the blood would not be supplied, since the white corpuscles are only leucocytes that have
passed from the lymph glands carried in suspension in the lymph vessels, into the veins where they are immediately designated white corpuscles.
No proposition is better estabhshed and sustained in the science of Chiropractic, than that through the
untrammelled nerves, these glands are stimulated to action,
and to the production
of leucocytes,
and that
occlusion of such nerves results in the lessening of the
production of leucocytes. If the student will combine the statements of the last three paragraphs, and apply the result to the large glands, and especially to the spleen, he will have a very complete illustration of the fact, and wiU understand wherein the therapeutist has made his mistake.
That
is
to say, since the large glands,
and
especially
when them and it are not interfered with, it of course follows that when the nerves to the large glands are occluded, and for the purpose of this discussion, when the nerves to the spleen are occluded, there is a proportionate reduction of leucocytes, and hence a the spleen, are rich in the production of leucocytes,
the nerves to
SPLEEN—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
123
proportionate reduction of the white corpuscles of the blood.
a fundamental principle of the science of Chiropractic that in such phases of abnormality as malaria, typhoid, etc., nerves ramifying the large glands of the It
is
body, to wit, the pancreas, liver and spleen are extensively occluded, and therefore, there is a serious reduction in the white corpuscles as the phase of disease increases in gravity. It will
be seen, in the situation outlined in the
preceding paragraphs, that so long as the phase of
abnormahty
is
increasing in gravity, there will be a
proportionate decrease in the production of leucocytes;
and
of course,
when the meridian
of gravity
is
reached
there will be immediate relaxation, resulting in lessened
and for the discussion to the spleen and therefore,
occlusion of stimulus to the large glands
purposes of this
a very rapid increase in the production of leucocytes, which will immediately pass into the blood, very rapidly increasing the number of white corpuscles, which in their virile activity, will rapidly take up and carry the toxins of disease to points of depuration and eUmination. This great increase of leucocytes and white blood corpuscles, performing the rapid work of cleansing the body, is the situation that the therapeutic world has mistaken for the great war between disease germs and leucocytes, which they have depicted so vividly, but which really is a very common occurrence when viewed under the hght of actuality. It must be said in justice to the therapeutists, that those
who depend
entirely
upon symptoms
for their
knowledge of disease and functional operations, cannot
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
124
abnormaUty has reached its climax. Indeed, they do not think it has done so until a considerable time after it actually has done so; for they must await until outward symptoms declare the tell
when a phase
just
of
change.
Now,
it is
perfectly clear that the actual functioning
in the deep tissues of the body, to
produce those
considerable period before the
symptoms begins a symptoms are manifested outwardly, and the paramoimt change
is
the lessening of occlusion of stimulus, to which
reference has been made.
In other words, the actual change that takes place is the relaxation of the deep tissues of the body lessening occlusion of stimulus which results in the production of a large number of leucocytes. And when this happy result has been accomplished the outward symptoms of the patient show marked improvement, so that the
symptoms is able to declare that the and the patient getting better.
waiter for ordinary crisis is
passed,
There
is
no doubt that the spleen
is
as important in
the hver. Indeed, it furnishes a very large quota of necessary chemistry to the liver in order that it may perform its functions. its
accessory relation to digestion as
is
These facts are fully set out in "Psycho-Bio-Physiology," the first volume of this series, to which the student is here definitely referred. It
is
also true that the spleen exercises
a remarkable
upon the general lymph of the body, and thereupon the blood. Not only in the matter of its very
influence fore,
rich production of leucocytes, but in certain chemical
changes in the lymph and blood, as these fluids pass through it.
SPLEEN—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY It is well
known
that the spleen
is
125
the place of the
number of red corpuscles, in the lymph and blood
disintegration of a very large
which
of
course
results
leaving the spleen, carrying in suspension the chemistry
that has accumulated in the corpuscles through a long process of oxidation
and
dioxidation.
and other incidents of animation, is well established by its great congestion of blood immediately upon the ingestion of food. Such function would not occur with regularity if marked changes in the liquids of transportation were not to be accompKshed in the organ
That the spleen
of great value to digestion,
is
where such conduct occurs.
CONGESTION
The
spleen
is
frequently subject to congestion, and
congestion used in this sense sustains no relation to the use of the
same term
in the last paragraph; congestion
here meaning a pathologic situation, or a retention of liquids in the
spleen
pathologicly abnormal
to
the
accomplishment of a
size.
Congestion of the spleen in this particular may be accompanied by a great enlargement of the organ. Indeed, the very function of the spleen, as already referred to, makes pathologic congestion of it rather easier than in other glands. Of course, there are two phases of congestion of the spleen. There is acute congestion so called,
and chronic congestion, and these
should be discussed in their order.
INFLAMMATION In acute congestion of the spleen, the paramount
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
126
feature of the congestion
is
of course inflammation.
Congestive inflammation would not occur except as the result of occlusion in nerves to the spleen.
When
occlusion of stimulus to the spleen exists there
congestion accompanied by inflammation, which simply means the concentration of stimulus to the spleen is
from a wider area than normal, with increased vibration, friction, and therefore, heat. When, in the acute phase, occlusion of stimulus
is
reduced, the inflammation
subsides, and is followed by another pathologic condition.
The paramount symptoms of acute congestion and inflammation of the spleen are occlusion of stimulus to that organ and the elevated temperature of it. CATARRH Catarrh in the spleen follows a reduction of acute inflammation, and in this situation the accumulated toxins,
and disintegrated matter, that resulted
in the
inflammatory stage, is depurated from the spleen through the liquid transportation. Catarrh of the spleen is very much more frequent than is generally supposed; the functions of the spleen being to a large extent of a secret nature, on account of its having no ducts of eUmination makes catarrh of the spleen a difficult phase of abnormality to detect. The inflammatory and catarrhal phases of the spleen are usually indicated by a lessening of the number of white corpuscles in the blood and by low and continuous fever, which appears to have no definite cause.
ABSCESS Abscess of the spleen occurs as incident to long con-
SPLEJEN—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
127
inflammation within it In such cases the patient Is usually very much weakened; has generally undergolle symptoms of nausea, great weakness, and has pas&ed through a marked fevered condition, in which the temperature as a rule does not rise very high, and is usually, therapeutically designated, a walking fever of some kind or other. Abscess of the spleen usually subsides without more
tinued
than a very trying process. However, abscess of the spleen may, but not frequently results fatally. Usually abscess of the spleen is not recognized by rsapeutic world until the situation has reached aj^gravated phase that recovery is impossible. Ije, feuch a situation would not be reached under I
"^®e sfclicaj^on of the principles of Chiropractic, for ^o t^ the nerves would have been removed, and the diEcuJtty ovortrone before the abscess stages were
reached, a^/q gygn jf tie abscess stage has been reached, still there woulu ggnerstly not be much difficulty in over-
coming the situatic>n by\he application of the principles of Chiropractic.
SPLEElT
CAKE
Sometimes where congestion and inflammation of the spleen have been great and prolonged, and the organ has become four or five times its ncvmal size, reaching down into the left flank, the final result what is called spleen cake.
is
the formation of
Spleen cake, so-called, is simply a hardening of the substance of the spleen in various parts, or in certain parts of
area
it,
may
so that in palpation
be locahzed.
on vhe venter the
rigid
128
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
This phase occurs as a sort of compromise between catarrh and abscess. It is usually a very serioiis condition, and if it is of marked density, and covers a wide .
In addition
area, the patient usually does not recover.
symptoms already given, that of spleen cake is merely the rigid area of the spleen. One of the pronounced and regular symptoms of spleen abnormality is a peculiar greenish-yellow or mosscolored appearance of the skin. A very careful examination of the skin will detect this discoloration in any of the phases of spleen abnormality of the chronic type. The discoloration in the earlier phases ocw irs w ith " a dry parchment-like skin, but later with a-^sl to the
.
velvet-like condition.
a
/
i™" Relating to remove splenic conditions i^^jiU^J nitely to free the nerves from the sixth tr> thwamth thoracic areas.
'
^
4^
'
CHAPTER
XIII
—^ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY Congestion—Inflammation— Catarrh— Enlargement—Abscess
LIVER Affirmative :
Incident to abnormality of
remembered organism,
that, since it
it is
is
the liver,
it
must be
the largest gland in the
related to a very wide range of tissue
degeneracy. These phases of tissue degeneracy have a part in practically every phase of tissue abnormality that occurs.
The statement is
just
made
is
true, because
when
tissue abnormality of the liver, there is also
there
abnormal-
and when the function of the liver is abnormal, toxins are produced, which are rapidly distributed throughout the organism, and by the
ity of its function,
irritatioi^of the terminals of nerves,
through the process
motor reaction, immediately result in the production of abnormal tissue and function at all places where there of
are accumulations of toxin.
Because the
liver
is
an accessory organ to the
alimentary canal, and therefore, to digestion,
it
is
title, but in many phases of be necessary to refer the subject to the liver, and its abnormality, in order to understand just how such phases come about. It will be remembered that the liver is a loosely
discussed under the present
abnormality
it will
constructed, lobulated structure,
and that it is composed and is very rich in
of a very soft, friable substance, 129
130
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
having a very rich lymph and blood ramification, and it is primarily on this account that the tissues of the liver so readily become abnormal. It will also be remembered that the Uver is the seat of the elaboration of three very important compounds, to wit: uric add, glycogen, and hile. Generally speaking, bile is the only one of these substances that has been discussed in connection with the alimentary canal, and glycogen and uric acid to some extent in connection with other phases of abnormality. It must be understood that such discussions are shortsighted and incomprehensive. Abnormahty of the liver results in the production of abnormal glycogen and abnormal uric acid, just as surely as it results in the production of abnormal bile. And abnormal glycogen and uric acid result in the production of abnormal tissues in the areas in which they accumulate or precipitate, just as surely as does abnormal bile, and they are irritants to the alimentary vascularity;
is abnormal bile. In order to present the alimentary abnormahty of the hver, as well as all phases of tissue abnormality thereof, it is necessary to discuss liver tissue under the aflSrmative and negative phases, and this chapter will be
canal just as surely as
directed to the affirmative process.
CONGESTION Congestion of the liver occurs as the primary reaction from any kind of shock which has resulted in occlusion of nerve stimulus to the liver, and therefore, of course,
would be the first reactive eflfect from occlusion produced either by trauma or chemical adversity.
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
131
The student must make a careful mental distinction between congestion in the phase now being discussed, and enlargement; for in a sense these are two distinct processes, although there are distinct aspects of similarity
of
between congestion of the
liver
and enlargement
it.
However, congestion, as it is now being discussed, is conceived to be a very much more acute phase of tissue abnormaUty than enlargement of the liver. Congestion of the liver is present when, because of occlusion of nerve stimulus to the liver, the vaso-motor not being carried out sufficiently to prevent excess accumulations of lymph and blood in the liver. In other words, congestion of the liver consists in the excess accumulation of liquids, with an excess of solids, either held in suspension or precipitated ^usually held influence
is
—
in suspension in the hquids.
INFLAMMATION Succeeding congestion of the lymph and blood with toxic accumulations, there always follows inflammation of the liver.
The student must not suppose that the whole
liver
always involved in such congestion or inflammation, may be acting under congestion, and therefore, only that relative part responding in inflammation. However, in such a situation the temperature of the whole hver will be markedly raised, but raised differently according to nearness to the center
is
for only a small part of it
of super-heat.
When there is congestion of the liver, accompanied by the toxins of accumulation, the tissues will be
filled
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
132
excessively with the accumulation, injuring the terminals of nerves in the area by excess pressure, and by
—
^both of which produce motor which conditions amount reaction, and wider and more intense constriction, and therefore, occlusion of stimulus from a wider area. Happily in such cases, usually the irritation produces motor reaction and concentration from such a wide
being submerged in abnormal chemistry to irritation,
cortical area, that depuration of the congested liquids is
rapidly accomplished, together with neutralization
of their toxins. If this result occurs, congestion quickly
subsides,
and normal
tissue
and function
is
soon
re-established.
However, sometimes the toxic accumulation is so and virulent and the pressure so intense, that even with the profound motor response, it is impossible to depurate the congestion, or neutralize the toxins. In such a case the process is fatal, and soon results in great,
dissolution.
Congestion of the liver in fully ninety per cent of cases is the result of eating to excess, and also of eating badly selected, and badly combined foods. However, it must be remembered that the character of food selected is not of so very great importance, if only a small amount of it
is
eaten.
The paramount
ingestion of foods of course,
diflScuIty is the excess
no matter what character. But, of
the situation
is
aggravated by inhospitable
combinations of food.
CATARRH Following
an inflammation
of
the
liver,
where
occlusion of stimulus has been overcome in apt time,
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
133
motor reaction from a sufficiently wide area has occurred, there always foUows catarrh resulting in the process of depuration of the excess liquids, and
or where
neutralization of the adverse chemistries.
Catarrh of the Uver in such a case could only be within the area affected, and will usually be of brief duration, because in cases such as outlined in the
preceding
paragraph,
the
whole
adversity
and normal tissue and function
quickly
soon restored. It sometimes happens, however, that either because of a prolonged congestion and inflammation, in which there has accumulated a considerable quantity of morbidity, or because of difficulty in reduction of occlusion as a result of subluxation or distortion affecting nerves to the liver, the congestion and inflammation are very slowly overcome. In such cases there is a prolonged catarrh, for of course, as a sequel to congestion and inflammation of the hver, catarrh must follow until complete depuration, neutralization and elimination has been accompUshed, and these will not be accompHshed until abnormal tissue incident to the congestion and inflammation has been completely disintegrated, subsides,
and a new and normal
is
tissue reintegrated.
Catarrh of the hver is sometimes prolonged for years and is a very disastroiis and destructive phase of abnormality, not only affecting the liver tissue, and the alimentary functional relation of the liver, but adversely affecting the entire tissues of the organism.
ENLAKGEMENT Following prolonged congestion, inflammation and catarrh of the liver, there frequently occurs a
somewhat
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
134
permanent enlargement of the tissues of the hver. It will be understood that enlargement of the liver is a very grave tissue abnormality, and never occurs as an acute phase, but is always the result of a prolonged and chronically, abnormal process. Enlargement only occurs when occlusion of stimulus to the hver results in a continually retained, abnormal chemistry of a coarse, granular type, so that a somewhat giant-celled structure of the hver is produced through the process of an indifferent assimilation with lessened cohesion, which, of course,
is
always the subject of
congestion, with a low phase of inflammation.
The
adverse process just described sometimes results becoming almost twice its normal size.
in the liver
Ordinarily in enlargement of the liver, the extension
downward may be
ascertained
by palpation
right hypochondrium, behind the chondral
in the
margin
of
the ribs. The extent of the enlargement can usually be approximated from such a palpation. However, it is also well to take into account the amount of extension ventralward, incident to the right hypochondrium, and also a careful examination of the costal aspects of the body over the hver area, for many times in enlargement of the liver the ribs relative to it are displaced dorsal-
ward, and laterally, with change of curvatm"e. Of course the distortion of the ribs just described in enlargement of the liver, only occurs incident to very excessive phases.
ABSCESS Incident to inflammation and enlargement of the liver, abscess frequently occurs.
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
135
Abscess of the liver, occurring as incident to inflammation, is caused by the toxin of congestion being so virulent upon the terminals of the nerves in certain areas, as to result in inanimation of the nerves tissues of that area.
Or
and
in such adverse process, relative
inanimate the terminals of the nerves in an area, resulting in the formation of abscess. pressures are so great as to
render
In either of the two methods just described, the abscess or abscesses produced are usually very small, and the area destroyed as a result is usually almost entirely
restored,
when
occlusion
to
the
nerves
is
removed, and new terminals have had time to form. Abscess also occurs in enlargement of the liver, and, while it is common for a great number of small abscesses to occur, as incident to a prolonged enlargement, it very frequently happens that very large abscesses occur as incident to such enlargement. In enlargement of the liver, abscesses occur just exactly in the same manner as they occur in inflammatory phases; the difference being that they are usually larger, and present a greater menace to animation. It is sometimes necessary to drain the larger abscesses of the liver surgically, and this is indeed a very dangerous and questionable rehef, and seldom meets with success, but under a very adverse situation would be a justifiable last resort. In ordinary abscess of the hver, relating to release occlusion, with proper attention to diet, will usually cause small abscesses to disintegrate, and depurate through the ordinary channels, and the tissues of the liver to be entirely restored.
136
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
It must, of course, be understood that in inflammation,
and abscess, the general functions of the liver to the whole body are as abnormal as are the tissues of the hver, and that therefore, abnormal uric acid, glycogen, and bile are being produced. Abnormal bile is incipient in liver alimentary abnormality, and such abnormality can only be corrected by catarrh, enlargement,
a correction of the tissues of the Hver. Relating of distortion to release occlusion of nerves to the hver should be performed at the fifth, sixth and seventh thoracic areas. Of course, there wiU be inci-
dental corrections, which are releasing the phrenic
nerve trunks, and
many
times the pneumogastrics.
CHAPTER XIV
—^ALIMENTABY ABNORMALITY Negative: Exuding Catarrh—Gall Stones—Dropsy— Atrophy— Cirrhosis—Displacement LIVER
It
is
the purpose of this chapter
first
to describe the
negative process in the liver, and then to proceed with the discussion of the general phases and
symptoms
of
negative liver tissue abnormality. It will be understood that under the negative phase of functional operation, there are
no
distinctly elevated
temperature conditions to discuss, but on the other is directed specifically to negative phases in which there is a sub-temperature, or, at least, in which there is a negative phase incident to a not- very-
hand the thought
well defined aflfirmative process.
In the negative phase, the liver tissue is always foimd one of two conditions of distortion: first, a relaxed, distended, flaccid condition, in which there is an excess of liquidity; second, a condition in which the size is lessened with increased density. in
The
first
of the
two conditions just detailed is more and exists because, as a result
acute than the second,
of prolonged occlusion of stimulus in the nerves to the
hver,
assimilation has been decreased,
and
disinte-
gration increased with chemical changes of such a nature is very indifferent cohesion. In the situation just described, the potential spaces, which would always be actual spaces if it were not for
that there
137
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
138
normal tone, have not become spaces but have been distended by the influx and retention of a colloid of an abnormal thickness. In the second condition indicated, the more acute phases have passed; the sohds of the colloid have
and the lymph therefrom eliminated so from an excess liquid condition, the tissue areas
precipitated, that,
have reached a minus-Uquid condition.
From
the situation just outUned, two results must
become smaller, and These two phases of result are to in this chapter under the names of
necessarily occur: the tissues will
of greater soUdity.
be dealt with later atrophy and cirrhosis. It will be seen that, as a general result of the adverse phases of the affirmative process dealt with in the last chapter, and the additional fundamentals stated herein, the condition of the lymph and blood within the liver must undergo marked changes. The changes that take place in the lymph, in the negative process, is a continual decrease in the production of leucocytes in proportion to the increased occlusion of nerve stimulus, and of course, an increase in the amount of toxin carried in the lymph.
The toxins of the lymph will be progressively retained in the hver in ratio with the decrease of stimulus to that
lymph will fail to carry the depuratory substances from the ever increasing disintegration from the organ. organ, because in that ratio the
The discussion so far is based upon the proposition of a continuing increase of occlusion of stimulus to the tissues of the hver. To complete that phase of the discussion, it is only necessary to say that if occlusion
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
139
be lessened, all of the symptoms detailed would change in ratio therewith, until the process returned from the negative to the affirmative. Since this is a discussion of alimentary abnormality, it is necessary to say that under the negative process, in Kver tissue, the bile produced will be of a very abnormal chemistry, and under the first phase of the negative process, it will be very copious, and of a very irritating nature to the intestine. Under the copious discharge of abnormal bile into the intestine in the negative phase, there occurs all of the profoundly adverse situations incident to what are ordinarily called liver reactions, which occur as incident to many phases of abnormality; not only in the process
but reactions necessary to regain health. These, however, will be detailed in connection with the phases of abnormality in which they occur. It is sufficient for the purpose here to say that under of disease,
some phases
of the affirmative
process,
and many
be necessary to copious depuration of abnormal bile from the secure a liver into the intestioe, as a preparatory step to reconstruction of liver tissue, and since abnormal bile, under
phases of the negative process,
such conditions
is
it will
toxic in its nature, that process
is
always accompanied by certain elements of danger. In this connection it must also be remembered that at the same time bile elements will be distributed throughout the system, as will also abnormal uric acid, and glycogen, and the eflfect from all of these is sometimes profound, and occasionally fatal. It is necessary, however, in order that the tissues of the liver shall be reconstructed, and again returned to
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
140
depuratory process shall be accomplished. The Chiropractor can usually control the rapidity with which it is accomplished, and the whole matter appeals to his sound discretion in the given the normal,
that this
case.
It
is
these
the proper method in securing a depuration of accumulated toxins, for the Chiropractor to
observe carefully all of the symptoms, and secure the depuration only so fast as the resistance of the organism can meet the situation; increasing the rapidity of depuration or decreasing
it
as he observes the necessity in the
particular case.
EXUDING CATARRH
The
negative phase
is
always a sequence to the from
affirmative process,
and
inflammation
catarrhal
are
of course, the exudations
in
their
nature.
excessive discharge of abnormal bile, glycogen
and
The uric
acid just referred to are in their nature catarrhal
exudates.
Analogously liver tissues must act under the catarrhal exudating phase, until depuration of abnormal chemistries have not only been accomphshed, but until rejuvenation has returned the tissue practically to the normal at least to a process of such affirmative type that there will be no further exudation; for it is well known that affirmative procedures of a very active type are not accompanied by catarrh.
—
GALL STONES In enlarged and inflammatory conditions of the liver, the abnormal bile produced, is frequently .a colloid,
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
141
which tends, to precipitate thus hindering elimination. In the phases just referred to it not infrequently happens that certain of the ingredients of bile tend to precipitate, excluding their liquids so that the residues
are of a
waxy or doughy nature. Usually such substances
are not recognized so long as they are in the ducts of the liver,
or have been discharged into the intestine, where
their presence could only
be recognized by symptoms of
intestinal irritation.
It
is
when
bile of the character just described is
the gall bladder that it may enter into such profound precipitation as to cause its presence to be recognized. The precipitation of bile in the gall bladder occurs in such manner as to produce two results. One, a waxlike pithy substance, which in passing through the cystic duct out of the gall bladder, and through the bile duct into the intestine produces much agony and the
stored in
symptoms of biliary colic. The symptoms incident to passing one
general
of these bile
is not distinctly different from that of the passage a gall stone, except that the spasm is not so long, but is usually more sudden. The second phase of precipitation of abnormal bile in the gall bladder results in the production of what are
piths of
called biliary calculi,
In
commonly
called gall stones.
phase of the process, the chemical elements of the bile actually solidify until they become very rigid, and are called stones. Sometimes many gall stones of small size form in the gall bladder, and sometimes biliary calculi of very large size
this
form. Occasionally, practically the entire contents
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
142
of the gall bladder solidifies into
one immense gall stone.
The inundation of gall stones with normal bile, usually serves to disintegrate them if the process has not gone too far.
When
the process has gone too far, they
must be
passed as stones through the cystic duct, if they are sufficiently small for that purpose, which is a very painful procedure, marked with all of !the symptoms of
spasmodic colic centered to the area, accompanied by slight rise of temperature; the pain coming on at intervals incident to the entrance of a stone into the duct,
and increasing a^ the stone slowly
progresses,
terminating suddenly as the stone escapes followed
almost immediately by another spasm ended by the stone escaping from the common duct to the intestine. At this stage of the situation, if the stones are so large that they do not readily pass, and are causing marked irritation, the only means for their removal, now known, is by the surgical method, which has never proven wholly satisfactory.
ATROPHY
There
is
in the tissues of the liver, acting under
the negative phase, a descent from the normal size, presenting a minus liquidity and a density of structiu'e
accompanied by marked changes in the liquids of transportation. This situation
is
technically called atrophy.
In atrophy of the Uver, there
is
in the first considera-
a lessened production of
and therefore, white corpuscles, accompanied
by marked retention
of
tion a lessened production of leucocytes,
exclusion of hquid.
depuratory
solids
to
the
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY There
is
143
in this situation also a lessening of liquid
because the bile discharged into the intestine has been of a very abnormal nature, and therefore, the volume of portal blood is greatly lessened, and rendered toxic, so that the amount of blood brought to
the
liver,
into the liver is
is
greatly reduced, extrusion of
proportionately lessened, and the
extruded
is
lymph
lymph that
is
heavily loaded with toxins.
blood that does go to the liver, especially that through the portal vein, is greatly lessened in white corpuscles, and because of the marked increase of carbon dioxide with reduced oxygen,
In
this situation, of course, the
presents a great decrease in red corpuscles.
In such a situation the immediate symptoms wUl be evidenced in decrease in the size of the liver, and a subtemperature of that organ. The general symptoms will be those of prostration, great weakness, melanchoha, inactive heart conditions, with a loose, relaxed condition of the skin, and many times with wet, cold hands and feet.
CIRRHOSIS Cirrhosis of the liver
is
a condition that
incident to atrophy, and of course
is,
occiu-s as
therefore, always
a sequel to prolonged enlargement of the liver. This phase occurs for the same reasons that atrophy does, except that in cirrhosis there is retention within the tissues of the hver of precipitated soUds, which have resulted in an abnormal, and low form of assimilation producing a dry, fibrous tissue condition. To the extent that the tissue change indicated in the last
paragraph has occurred in the
liver, cirrhosis is
a
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
144
graver abnormality than atrophy, for in overcoming
it
these phases of abnormal tissue
must be disintegrated, therefrom must be depurated
and the colloids arising from the liver, which increases the gravity of the reaction to a considerable extent. Cirrhosis of the liver results fatally much more frequently than atrophy. apt time, no such conditions as atrophy or cirrhosis can If the principles of Chiropractic are applied in
occur.
All of the symptoms of cirrhosis have been detailed with respect to atrophy of the liver, with the exception of those that immediately appertain to the tissues of
the liver, which are a feeling of tenseness and hardness of that organ, which may be ascertained by palpation under the right costal arch. The general symptoms are also more pronounced, the prostration more profound, and the mental attitude more abnormal and usually of a more fixed type.
DISPLACEMENT
By
the use of the term displacement, with regard to it is not intended to refer to the whole organ,
the liver,
although that occurs in connection with distortions of the body as incident to accommodations enforced by the law of compensation. It is the present intention to
mind to portions of the hver only. The displacement which occurs most frequently is
direct the student's
that of the left lobe of the hver, by being forced ventrally, the left extremity being brought around to the right, so as to
come down ventral to the stomach.
The danger in such displacement of the Hver is hemorrhage, occurring as the result of the rupture
LIVER—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY of small blood
vessels,
which
may
easily
145
happen on
accoimt of the friabihty of the organ. Hemorrhage, in such an instance, discharges the blood
abdomen, and is an irritation of a profound type, producing by motor reaction, a widespread occlusion in all of the nerves ramifying the abdominal cavity; the ultimate eflfect of which is to occlude the principal nerves controlling respiration and heart action, so that the patient dies from what is ordinarily called suffocation.
into the potential cavity of the
The symptoms
of displacement of the Uver are those
extreme drowsiness, seeming or complete coma, with marked, vertebral constriction over the liver areas, with scarcely perceptible response to attempts to of
secure vertebral relation.
When
the Chiropractor meets with
character
indicated
symptoms
of the
he should always immediately
investigate to see whether there has been such disrelation of the liver as has
To
been described.
correct the position of the liver under such dis-
placement, the patient should be placed upon the dorsum, with the hips upon a bed, bench, or the Relator's lap, while the shoulders and head lie upon the floor,
when
gentle force
may be
applied over the area
of the liver displaced in a vibratory
manner, which
will
soon have the effect of inducing its return to relation. It is hardly necessary to say that such appKcation must be made with the greatest caution, and the Chiropractor should constantly keep in
Kver tissue construction.
mind the
delicacy of
CHAPTER XV
—^ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITT Affirmative: Congestion—Inflammation—InflammaCatarrh, Negative: Dilation— Exuding Catarrh—Dropsy. PANCREAS
(a)
tory
(b)
Like the spleen, there
is
much doubt indulged by
the
therapeutic profession as to the actual functions of the
and indeed its functions are ascertain and understand.
pancreas,
The pancreas
is
diflScult
to
constructed to act in conjunction with
the liver, and of course,
its
paramount
office is
aiding in digestion; yet, like the liver,
it
that of
exercises
remarkable constitutional influences upon the whole organism.
In proportion to the
a very large quantity of blood transmitted into and through the pancreas, and yet its tissues are largely of a lymphoid size of the organ,
is
natvu"e.
It will be
remembered that the pancreas
lobulated gland, and that
it is
is
a racemose,
rich in the production of
leucocytes.
What
the substance
is,
under normal condition, that
the pancreas contributes to the general liquids of
not known. It is known, however, that the pancreas exercises a markedly important influence upon the entire organism, and that this influence comes about by a change of chemistry effected by the change of chemical formula in the transportation
abnormahty
is
of
consistence of the pancreas. 146
PANCREAS—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY The fact
is
that
all of
147
the large glands of the body are
peculiarly subject to toxic changes in the atmosphere,
miasmas, emanations from the earth, etc., and that in a general sense it is of the greatest importance to understand the pecuharity of chapge which each of the large glands produce constitutionally, when they are adversely affected.
The
and spleen, all being located in a same area of the abdomen, are ramified by nerves from the same vertebral areas. That is to say from pancreas, liver
sense in the
the fourth to the tenth thoracic nerve trunks, but principally the fifth, sixth
and seventh thoracic trunks.
Therefore, these glands are practically always abnormal at the
same time.
Of course,
it is
to change in a of the liver
possible for the tissues of the pancreas
way
and
from the tissues but generally, so far as the
peculiarly distinct
spleen,
liquids of tr'ansportation are concerned, these glands
are abnormal at the
same time, and the adverse
consti-
not to be charged wholly to one of these and ways to each of them. In this chapter, however, constitutional phases from abnormahty of the pancreas are not under discussion, except as the same are affected through the alimentary system, but this discussion is to lay the foundation for future lessons on phases of constitutional abnormahty. (a) AflSrmative process functioning wiU first be
tutional effect
is
glands, but in varying degrees
discussed, taking
up
its
peculiar
and aggressive phases.
CONGESTION
The
pancreas, like the spleen,
is
subject in
its
normal
condition to become somewhat congested with blood, but
148
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
remarkably so with lymph under the gustatory emotion, and therefore, under abnormality is peculiarly subject to congestion of blood, but pronouncedly of lymph. On account of this accommodative function, the paramount phase, under incipient abnormality, is that
marked congestion. The symptoms indicating congestion of the pancreas are not very well marked, and not very well known, the
of
organ being hidden so deeply beneath the viscera ventral to it, that is the stomach, transverse colon, and headward coils of the small intestine, etc. One pronounced symptom of congestion of the pancreas is the sense of pressure on the ganglia of the solar plexus, accompanied by an indrawing of the rectus abdominus, and its relative aponeuroses at its headward aspects and a difficulty of respiration accompanied by phases of vertigo.
INFLAMMATION Congestion of the pancreas is of course immediately followed by inflammation; the inflammatory phases being superinduced by the irritation incident to congestion, producing motor reaction, and therefore, concentration of an unusual force from a wider cortical
area,
resulting
in
increased
friction,
and
excessive heat.
Unfortunately we are not acquainted with the unfavorable symptoms of the pancreas in inflammation, for inflammatory phases are so nearly always coincident with the same phases of the liver, that those of the pancreas are merged with the symptoms of inflammation of the liver,
and are not recognized by themselves.
PANCREAS—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
149
unusual for inflammation of the pancreas, when paramount, to be mistaken for inflammation of the suprarenal glands and kidneys. There is always a marked symptom which will distinguish these, if carefuUy remembered by the diagnostician; and it is, that in inflammation of the pancreas there is always duodenal abnormaKty, while if the suprarenals are involved, abnormalIt
not at
is
all
be at the flexures of the large bowel, and to some extent in the jejunum and the ilium. Duodenal colic accompanied by supercolic impactions
ity will
gaseous accumulations are usually indicative of inflammation of the pancreas. or
INFLAMMATOKY CATARRH As a sequel
to
the congested and inflammatory
is always an inflammatory catarrh. Under mild, inflammatory conditions this catarrh, of course, is not of marked gravity, but under more
condition of the pancreas there
aggravated conditions it is frequently pronounced. When the pancreas is acting under inflammatory catarrh, there is an exudation into the intestine of a thick shme, incident to the pancreatic juice, and sometimes almost/ wholly taking the place of the pancreatic juice, which thus completely aborts the digestive process.
The
excessive
shme produced
in the pancreas
is
not
passed through the pancreatic duct, and therefore, a great deal of it is transmitted in the lymph out of the pancreas to be discharged into the blood through other channels;- a considerable amount going through the all
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
150
receptaculum chyli, and in this manner being distributed quite widely throughout the organism.
The marked,
constitutional
inflammatory catarrh
is
effect
of
pancreatic,
the influence of these abnormal
slimes primarily upon digestion, but incidentally upon the
whole organism. (b) Negative process functions of the pancreas under abnormaUty, are here to be described. DILATION
Normal congestion of the pancreas, of course, does not meet with the pathologic meaning of dilation, because it is completely temporary, and with the passage of the distending liquids it returns to its normal size. Dilation from the standpoint of pathology is a chronic phase in which the tissues are, by a combined process of anemia of certain
cells,
resulting in distension
accompanied by liquid congestion, so that the organ actually occupies a larger space than in the normal. of others,
The
process resulting in the condition just described
must be chronic
in its nature, or dilation has not
been
pathologically accomplished.
There
another phase of dilation, which should be and that is where the anemia of cells does not take place, but where morbid matter is accumulated, and a gross assimilation occurs, is
discussed in this connection,
actually enlarging the tissues of the gland. This phase of dilation does not occur so frequently as the congestive
phase, but
it
does occur under some circ*mstances.
Dilation being a sequel of congestion and inflam-
mation,
its
symptoms need not be discussed further
than to say that in dilation of the pancreas, the patient
PANCREAS—ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
151
undergoes a sensation of extreme fulness in the pancreatic area, which fullness may be detected by a careful palpation.
The
diagnostician
is
cautioned in this palpation not
to mistake the stomach in its long curvature, or the transverse colon, for dilation of the pancreas, because these structures alternate in lying ventral to it.
no occasion to make the mistake referred to, symptoms of congestion and inflammation of the pancreas have been observed, for the effect of these symptoms will be sufficient to prevent the mistake There
if
is
the other
indicated in the caution.
EXUDING CATARRH As a concomitant to dilation of the pancreas there will be exuding catarrh, which means that the slime referred to, instead of being thick and rich in exudates, will be thin and copious. ,
Frequently exuding catarrh of the pancreas, in very debihtated conditions, is mistaken for intestinal tuber^ culosis. By examiniag catarrhal exudates from the iutestine, it is not always possible to diagnose exudating catarrh of the pancreas, for it frequently happens that both the pancreas and intestine are acting under the same phase. However, if all of the symptoms of abnormality of the pancreas heretofore mentioned are noted, and the catarrhal exudate of the pancreatic type is found in the feces, a conclusion that the pancreas is acting imder exuding catarrh will not be incorrect. Of course, it goes without saying that when the pancreas has reached the degree of tissue abnormahty, in which there is exuding catarrh, anything hke
152
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS word is an be marked, and grave
intestinal digestion, in the real sense of that
impossibility,
and there
will
phases of the entire intestinal tract.
DKOPSY Pancreatic dropsy occurs
much more frequently than
When
it occurs it is always a sequel to exuding catarrh, and exists when dilation of the pancreas has become so great that the liquids are not discharged from the lobuli into the incipient ducts
the profession supposes.
that in their aggregation constitute the pancreatic duct, but, because of marked occlusion of stimulus to the organ,
remain, distending
all
of its potential cavities.
Of course, there are different degrees of dropsy of the pancreas, and dropsy may occur from the slightest retention in the potential cavities, to a distension of all of the potential cavities to their utmost, and in the same manner, the organ may reach several times its normal size. Relating to remove pancreatic, alimentary abncrmality will be accomplished by restoring relation of the thoracic area from the fifth to the ninth pair of thoracic trunks, both inclusive, but particularly the seventh
and eighth thoracic trunk
areas.
CHAPTER XVI
—STOMACH Congestion—Inflammation—Inflammatory Catarrh — Adenoids — Pharyngitis — Quinsy—Mumps —Esophagitis — Whooping Cough — Inflammation of Stomach— Ulcer GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
Affi/rmative
:
the
Alimentary abnormality relative to disease of
is
human
the most extensive theme beings.
Ninety per cent of the human family overeat. Overthe direct route to alimentary abnormality. There are some people, because of their unusual development and resistance, who can overeat, and not
eating
is
but this number is so inconsiderable that, viewed from the field of pathology,
meet with a pathologic
result,
almost negligible. It would be impossible in this chapter to treat of the entire pathology that is a sequence to abnormality of the alimentary organs. The purpose here is to lay the foundation for such future discussion by giving the immediate pathology of the alimentary canal. It wiU be recalled that the aUmentary canal begins at the lips and ends at the anal orifice. It is, therefore, incident to every phase of abnormal tissue condition and process which occurs in the human organism. A complete discussion of the symptoms of alimentary abnormality would be a practical discussion of the symptomologyof theentireorganism, therefore, in this chapter it is
no great amount of
detail of
symptoms
153
will
be indulged.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
154
CONGESTION Here, as elsewhere, congestion is the incipient phase of pathology, and occurs at any and all places where nerve stimulus
is
occluded.
must be understood as a paramoiint proposition when there is occlusion of stimulus in the nerves to the aUmentary canal for any reason, or caused in any It
that
manner, that at the terminals of those nerves there will be congestion of the hquids of transportation, that is, blood and lymph. The name given to such condition therapeutically has usually been stasis; a word which does not completely convey the meaning intended. It will be understood that the word congestion, used in this connection, is meant to convey the thought that there
is
therefore,
area involved more liquids, and more retained morbidity than there is in
in the
physiologic procedure.
INFLAMMATION
When nerve stimulus is occluded sufficiently to result in congestion in the affirmative phase, there is always
an accumulation of combustible chemistry; the accumulation amounting to an irritant. The irritant just pointed out produces motor reaction, which superinduces the concentration of stimulus from a wider cortical area to the ahmentary area involved, resulting in an increase of friction and a rise of temperature. The situation just explained amoimts to that functional process which therapeutists have designated inflammation. Of course, it will be understood that phases of congestion and inflammation may occur at
— GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY any area
of the alimentary canal, to
155
which stimulus
is
occluded.
INFLAMMATOET CATAEEH Incident to congestion and inflammation there always follows as a sequence inflammatory catarrh,
which
is
an
exudation from the area of the accumulated morbidity, together with the retained liquids, enhanced by increased disintegration.
The exudate from congested and inflammatory differs
markedly in
its
areas
upon the
density, depending
length of time the process has been operative, gravity of occlusion of stimulus to the area,
the
and the
accumulation and tissue change incident thereto.
This phase of catarrh may last only a short time from a few hours to a few days, or it may continue for several weeks.
The exudate from inflammatory
catarrh
usually
discharges into the alimentary canal,
and
the headward parts thereof, that
the pharynx and
esophagus,
it
is
is
if it
usually passed from the
occurs in
mouth
as
sputum. exudate discharges below the cardiac orifice of the stomach it usually passes through the alimentary If the
canal,
and
is
eliminated at the anal exit.
it must be remembered that a large portion such catarrhal exudate, and perhaps the larger portion, is distributed through the lymph areas relative to the congestion, and thus finds its way into the veins, and thence through the system, and it is in this connection that its most damaging effects occur.
However,
of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
156
ADENOIDS
The
general, although possibly incorrect, use of the
word adenoids to indicate congestion and inflammatory changes in the lymphoid tissues of the pharynx in that part of
it
designated as the tonsillar ring,
is
of the type
of pathology just described.
Adenoids
may assume any
of the various forms of
congestion, inflammation or inflammatory catarrh, of course run the
gamut
of all these phases,
if
and the
phase of pathology continues long enough. Congestion and inflammation of the lymphoid tissue an acute manner, and with removal of occlusion subsides almost as quickly as it began. of the tonsillar ring generally occurs in
In chronic occlusion to the tonsillar ring area, however, all this is changed, and frequently there are conditions caused by the proliferation of abnormal cells in the lymphoid tissues, until the tonsillar ring almost closes the cavity.
Sometimes these tissues become hard, and full of scar which event it is well to have the scar tissue removed by instrumentation. tissue, in
The symptoms of adenoiditis is the congestion, inflammation and enlargement of the tissues of the area. However, this situation is symptoiiiologicly related to a constitutional adversity, which has been discussed and the relation has been pointed out. In a very large majority of cases, by releasing occlusion to the area the congestion and inflammation of the adenoid tissue may be entirely overcome, with complete restoration thereof.
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
157
PHARYNGITIS pharyngitis simply means " sore throat."
The word
It will be seen that under this tissue abnormality of the throat,
meaning any phase of accompanied with the
sensation of soreness, aside from arbitrary distinctions,
comes under
this heading.
In a certain sense the term pharyngitis includes kinds of sore throat.
all
The mucous lining of the pharynx is seldom seriously by itself, and of course includes the subjacent
aflfected
tissues,
that
is,
the submucous tissues, including
all
glands, nerve ganglia, nerves, vessels, etc., which also
includes all of the tissues of the tonsillar ring, the
parotid glands, and so on. It
must
also be kept in
mind that when the
tissues of the tonsillar ring of the
to
tonsillar
pharynx are involved
any extent, the subjacent tissues
relative thereto will
be involved proportionately.
From what has been said, gitis
it will
be seen that pharyn-
presents an extensive series of adverse tissue
conditions,
process
with
—the
many
number
phases of adverse functional of
which
are
beyond enu-
meration.
However, in the incipient phases of pharyngitis the paramount symptom is occlusion of stimulus to the area, congestion at the periphery of the nerves occluded,
accompanied by an accumulation of adverse chemistry.
One
of the aggravations of a pharyngitic throat
is
abnormal use of the same in speech, song, etc., but such irritations, however, would not of themselves serve to produce this adverse phase.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
158
QUINSY Quinsy is an acute congestion and inflammatory phase of a chronically abnormal tissue condition of the true tonsils.
It
must not be supposed that this phase
of abnormal-
confined to the true tonsils, for always relative tissues are involved, and not unusually all of the ity
is
lymphoid tissues of the tonsillar ring. Quinsy so-caUed is not a dangerous phase, but it is a very distressing condition. It is in a sense a general phase, because not only the tissues of the throat, but those of the stomach and kidneys are also involved. In this phase the tonsils are so congested, swollen, and inflamed that frequently they protrude from the tonsillar recesses to such an extent as to almost close the isthmus of the fauces. The tonsillar ring is frequently so swollen that the Eustachian tube and posterior nares are almost closed,
and to such extent that the individual finds it difficult to breathe through the nose, and almost invariably breathes through the mouth. The stomach condition is such that there is usually complete loss of appetite, sometimes nausea, and almost always severe headache, with pain in the eyes, and a sense of great weakness, and inability extending over the entire body, which sensation is largely induced by the condition of the kidneys.
There
is
the throat
an inabihty to perform mental effort; dry, parched, and painful on movement.
also is
phase is quite pronounced, pus frequently accumulates in the tonsil, in which event there is chill with successive fever, sometimes rising to a considerable If the
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY height. This phase of the process is never reached principles of Chiropractic are
apphed
early.
159 if
the
On account
of the condition of the tonsillar ring, the breathing
through the mouth
is
a disagreeable the conduct ordinarily
stertorous, or of
wheezing, and in sleep there
is
a profound character. The proper care of a patient under this process is to stop the administration of food of any kind; but he should have all the pure water he will drink. If the bowel has been sluggish, there should be administered two high enemas the first day none afterwards, unless called snoring of
—
symptoms
indicate the necessity.
The
patient should
be kept in bed in a warm, quiet room, and should be related from two to five times daily, depending upon the gravity of the phase, the
first
two or three days. After-
wards once a day until recovery
is sufficient.
MUMPS This word means " closed mouth," and this phase of abnormality is particularly indicated by inflammation of one or both of the parotid glands, usually with profound swelling, which of course includes relative glandular tissue.
Mumps begin with a sHght chfll usually, and of course may assume the gravity of a profound chill. The
this
chiU
is
followed
by an
elevation of temperature.
Beside the salivary glands, the organs paramountly
stomach and kidneys, and as a result there is not only prostration of digestion and alimentary conduct, but there is congestion in the head and eyes, usually accompanied by headache and the. sense of soreness and pain in the muscles, and frequently in the affected, are the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
160
abdomen, because of the ramification of kidney nerves to the intestine.
In children, mmnps is frequently accompanied by nausea and vomiting. This phase of abnormality has been generally classified as a child disease, but this is in no sense true. The phase occurs in persons of almost any age. However, of course, on account of the great indiscretion of children in the matter of eating, and the care of their bodies, they are very much more frequently subject to this adverse phase than adults. Mumps only occur in children or adults in whom there is chronic occlusion of kidney nerves, which exists because of hereditary tissue conditions, or from injuries incident to the present organism.
On
account of this chronic predisposition, those who are subjects of it, succumb to the peculiar atmospheric condition when their chemical phase of preparation has rendered them suflSciently non-resistant. persons
Mumps,
therefore, occurs usually in epidemic phase.
However, mumps also occurs sporadically. The therapeutic world has supposed that mumps is contagious. However, there is nothing to sustain such a theory, but there is much evidence to sustain the thought that
mumps
is the result of certain atmospheric toxins or earthy emanations, which affect people similarly who are just in the right chemical attitude.
In adults there occurs in
is
frequently a complication which there is congestion
mumps. In the woman
and inflammation
of
the
ovaries,
and
congestion
both mammary glands; while in the male inflammation and congestion of the testes.
of either or
there
is
The complication just referred
to occurs only in those
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY cases in which occlusion to kidney nerves,
161
and therefore
to the organs mentioned, is marked, and because of the same a chronic tissue condition exists in those organs.
ESOPHAGITIS This phase
is
an acute congestion and inflammation mucous
of the tissues of the esophagus, pecuHarly the
and submucous
linings.
This phase of abnormality frequently occurs as incident to incipient congestion of the stomach. The symptoms are indicated by an exudation from the esophagus of a thick, ropy, viscid slime, which requires a considerable expectoration. This phase may, and frequently does, become chronic and in that form it takes on the characteristics of an exuding catarrh, and the inflammation almost entirely subsides, and in this condition the exudate is thin, and frequently has an offensive odor. Occasionally, in phases of this process, there is much irritation to the trachea as incident to the same occlusion, which causes much coughing, and frequently slight hemorrhages of the esophagus occur, and this is almost sure to take place if concomitantly the stomach is also ia grave tissue condition.
WHOOPING COUGH This phase of tissue abnormality characteristic
cough which
is its
is
named from the
paramount symptom.
Therapeutists classify whooping cough as a " nervous disease." It is, however, a phase of alimentary tissue
abnormahty. Occlusion, producing the abnormal process,
is
of the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
162
fourth thoracic trunks, which ramify the esophagus,
and pharynx.
Whooping cough
is
a sequel to esophagitis, which
has just been described. It only occurs in persons, the tissue condition of whose esophagus is chronically catarrhal.
In this phase there is constriction of the headward end of the esophagus, and when the exudate from the walls of the esophagus becomes so great as to press the ventral wall thereof forward into the dorsal wall of the trachea, sufficiently disturbing the ciliary processes, a paroxysm of coughing is set up. The paroxysm must be sufficiently pronounced to force the exudate upward and out of the esophagus. In mild cases, the paroxysm only continues for a short time, when the accumulated mucous is thrown into the pharynx. But in pronounced cases the paroxysm sometimes lasts from thirty seconds to two minutes, and the agony in straining is intense, and must continue until the bolus of slime is forced out of the esophagus when the paroxysm subsides. It sometimes happens that such a paroxysm is continued so long as to induce profound vomiting, and sometimes complete prostration of the patient even to unconsciousness.
After the accumulated slime is thrown out of the esophagus, the paroxysm entirely subsides, until the accumulation occurs again, when the whooping cough is
again resorted to for
its
removal.
To be performed from four to eight times in twenty-four hours at regular intervals, for two or three days, during which time the patient should eat nothing, but should drink plenty relieve this condition, relating should
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY of water, and, entirely
if
163
indicated, the large bowel should be
emptied by enema.
the phases of abnormality chapter should be performed at stomach and kidney places, and the suboccipital area. That is to say, relating to free the fourth, fifth and third thoracic trunks; the twelfth, eleventh and tenth to
Relating
discussed
remove
this
in
thoracic trunks, the first
and second
cervical trunks,
and, incidentally, the headward thoracic ganglia, which Ues in front of the axis, atlas and third cervical vertebrae. Incidentally
it
will
occasionally
be necessary
to
release the seventh thoracic nerve trunks, since their
occlusion
is
frequently a complication in the phases
described.
INTLAMMATION OF STOMACH Inflammation of the stomach differs in no respect from inflammation elsewhere, and, of course, includes congestion of the stomach. When, because of occlusion of nerves of the stomach area, there is sufficiently pronounced congestion in the tissues of the stomach to produce a sufficiently pronounced motor reaction from a wide cortical area, friction will be increased to the extent of producing an inflammatory condition. Of course, inflammation of the stomach is always acute at the incipiency, in one sense of the word, but children are frequently born with such indifferent tissue conditions of the stomach, and of such hereditary tissue habit, as to almost escape the acute phase of inflammation of the stomach entirely. In such cases the chronic tissue condition manifests itself very early in life.
164
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Ordinarily, however, acute congestion
and
inflam-
mation of the stomach is a process that continues for a considerable period of time. It can be well seen that the ordinary functions of the stomach under this phase are always lost in ratio with the tissue abnormality of the
stomach. In other words, digestion is always as abnormal as the tissues involved. Of course, it is known, without further discussion, that inflammation of the stomach will always be suc-
ceeded by catarrh of the stomach. In the acute phase, the exudate is thick, ropy and viscid, but in the chronic phase becomes thinner and less viscid, but usually more acid or acrid, and in grave phases of catarrh of the stomach, becomes a pronounced toxin.
The paramount symptom of congestion and inflammation of the stomach is that of lack of appetite, or voracious appetite, frequently accompanied by slight general rise of temperature, and many times by headache, and with pronounced congestion of the eyeballs; coated tongue, which is dry and parched, and also a sense of a dry and parched condition of the throat. Catarrh of the stomach wiU be peculiarly indicated by a tendency to spit up the food in the milder phases, and vomiting immediately after eating in the more pronounced phases.
ULCEK Ulcer of the stomach is a culmination of catarrh of that organ. It is a grave, and sometimes dangerous tissue condition.
As a
result of
pronounced occlusion to the stomach
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY in
these conditions
frequently
disintegration
165
has
and assimilation has been so indifferent, or so badly prostrated, that there are complete openings in the mucous membrane, or places where mucous membrane is not formed, classified as open sores. The marked danger incident to this condition is that sometimes failure of assimilation and increased disintegration have become so grave that there are perforations in the stomach wall, through which there is emission into the abdominal cavity, followed by peritonitis, from increased so extensively
which the patient usually dies. The pronounced symptoms of ulcer of the stomach are pain following eating, with nausea, and sometimes vomiting, or sometimes the necessity to spit up the food without nausea, but whether vomited or spit up, the substance may contain a mixture of blood. The pain following taking food is usually of a burning character, and begins immediately upon taking substances into the stomach, and ceases when these substances have passed out of the stomach. It is hardly necessary to say that in either congestion, inflammation, catarrh or tumor of the stomach, nothing approaching normal digestion can be accomplished.
In cases of ulcer of the stomach, no solid food should be administered. Indeed, no food should be administered at
all, if
the condition of the patient will bear
its
must be administered, should be entirely of the liquid variety, and peculiarly that kind of substance requiring the least stomach suspension. In the event that food it
and should only be administered in small amounts so as not to distend the stomach. Only enough water should be administered per digestion,
166
mouth
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS to allay the sense of thirst. In such a situation
the volume of the liquids of transportation should be kept up by normal salt solutions injected into the
rectum. So far as possible the stomach tissues should be undisturbed, until they have had opportunity to heal. Relating to remove occlusion in congestion, inflam-
mation, catarrh and ulcer, should be primarily addressed to the fourth, fifth and third thoracic trunks and any nerve area which is reacting to the stomach centers, because of irritation or otherwise. There will frequently be found a reaction from the kidney and liver centers.
CHAPTER XVII GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
—Esophagus—Stomach— —Fungi—Cancer of Stomach—Dilation of Stomach— Heartburn—Gastrodynia—Indigestion.
Negative: Catarrh of
Pharynx
As has been explained
in the preceding chapter, the
negative phase of tissue abnormality in the structures of the aUmentary canal occur as a sequence to the affirmative process.
The negative phase could never occur incipiently, but can only occur, when, by the affirmative process, the chemistries involved have been changed in consistence and
in formulae.
In the negative phase, the process of tissue reproduction will always be of an indiflFerent nature, varying all the way from slight failure of normal reproduction to complete failure to reproduce tissue. The process now under discussion occurs as the result of profound and prolonged occlusion; the situation having passed through all of the affirmative phases, assimilation, or the reproduction of tissue affirmatively, has markedly failed, and at the same time there has been a progressive increase in ratio of disintegration, so that there is an accumulation of morbidity in potential spaces, varying all the way in consistence from a dense colloid, to the thin colloid of pronounced dropsy. It will be seen that what tissue is constructed under such circ*mstances, and the tissue that still remains 167
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
168
intact, or partly so,
must be
flaccid, non-resilient,
and
incapable of performing normal function.
can not perform normal elements are so negative in their cohesion as to be incapable of receiving the application of nerve force or stimulus to them in such a way as to give
The reason such
fimction
is
that
them capacity It
is
tissue
its cell
to express power.
quite generally supposed that strength
is
attained
some mysterious way by the assimilation of food. This is a profound mistake. Normal assimilation proin
duces a tissue of such machinic organization that the force of life, or nerve stimulus, is applied to it in
way
as to enable it to perform conduct demonpower, or what is ordinarily called strength. It strating must be remembered that this phenomenon is accom-
such
plished as the result of a purely physical law,
and
in
and mechanical
no other way.
may be
such a mechanism as a muscle, when normally constructed, will respond in a powerful manner to the application of stimulus, but if its cells are deteriorated, as they are under the negative process, it can not respond to the application of stimulus It
easily seen that
except in proportion to
its
physical condition.
It wiU not be necessary to go into any wider or more extended study of the negative phase as afifecting structures of the alimentary canal in that part of it now under discussion.
CATAREH OF PHARYNX
The negative phase
of tissue condition, as applied to
the pharynx, occurs as a sequence to pharyngitis, that to say congestion and inflammation of the pharynx.
is
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY The phases discussed,
of
169
inflammatory catarrh have been
and here
all
that
is
desired
is
to call the
student's attention to that chronic phase of pharyngeal
a continual discharge of an excess of liquid from the mucous lining and the sub-
catarrh in which there
is
jacent tissue.
This phase of abnormality seldom occurs by itself, but usually incident to it there is the same process in the nasal meatus and nares, and also in the Eustachian tubes, so that there is a frequent discharge from the nose, backward into thenaso-pharynx,andfromtheEustachian tubes ventrally into the same place. These exudating slimes require one of two things that the individual shall continually expectorate them, or swallow them. Under our present laws, and the foolish magnification of the fallacious germ theory, it is most inconvenient to expectorate such slimes, and it is therefore the custom of a great many people, especially women, to swallow them, which is very damaging to the ;
process of alimentation.
CATABRH OF ESOPHAGUS Incident to the phase just discussed,
common, is
in fact
is
it is very almost universal, that the esophagus
also in a chronic catarrhal state.
Following an acute inflammatory catarrh of the the negative catarrh may express any
esophagus,
gravity from a very excessive exudation of slime, to a
an actual dropsy, in which very thin, and without the knowledge of the victim constantly seeps through the cardiac orifice into the stomach.
condition that amounts to
the exudate
is
170
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
In the phase of
this process, in
thicker, it is called phlegm,
and
which the exudate
its accumvJations
is
super-
induce a peculiar spasmodic coughing at intervals, but particularly on rising from sleep, at which times it is not unusual for the coughing to partake of the nature
whooping cough. Many patients, under phase of aflBiction, upon waking from sleep are almost immediately plunged into a paroxysm of coughing, which is continued imtil the bolus of phlegm is thrown from the esophagus, which sometimes is not accomplished until actual vomiting occurs. While the last phase of the process just discussed is very distressing and annoying, it is not so deleterious as the more advanced stages, in which the slime becomes so thin that it constantly seeps into the stomach, or, if the subject bends forward, or assumes a position in which gravity tends toward the head, the exudate flows into the mouth. When this thin, exudating phase is reached, the substance discharged is acrid and bitter, and sometimes, indeed almost universally of a very pungent and unpleasant odor, and because it continually discharges into the stomach, is a pronounced irritant thereto. of the so-called this
CATABEH OF STOMACH Subsequent to the inflammatory phases of catarrh of the stomach there frequently occurs a negative exudating catarrh.
The incipient phases of this process are co-extensive with dilation of the stomach, and are frequently incident to so-called heartburn.
Under negative catarrh
of the
stomach in the milder
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
171
phases, accumulations of the exudate frequently pro-
duce profound nausea, the peculiar symptoms of which are the suddenness with which the emotion is brought on. The subject, acting under this phase, may rise in the morning, feeling quite well, with an appetite, but on ingesting a part of his breakfast, suddenly finds himself the subject of profound nausea. He finds that he must evacuate the contents of the stomach by the process of vomiting, and when he does so is astonished by the amount of slime that is thrown off with the food. Such paroxysms as just described are caused by the accumulation of this slime or phlegm from the walls of the stomach over night, which, so long as it is not disturbed by taking anything into the stomach, does not irritate the terminals of nerves to any extent. Sometimes the taking of a glass of water is sufficient to precipitate nausea and vomiting. When one finds himself with a sense of nausea, following the taking of a couple of glasses of water upon rising in the morning, he may be assured that he is the subject of a slime catarrh of the stomach, which should indicate to him that the stomach needs complete rest, with opportunity for recuperation which can not be had while solid foods are being ingested. Therefore, the is rest from all solid food, and irrigation by drinking plenty of good, pure, cool water. Under the advanced phases of this condition, it is not at all surprising for quarts of a thin, dropsical mucous to accumulate in the stomach, so that any time, if the patient is laid upon his back, and the examiner places one hand behind the stomach and the other in front
thing indicated
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
172 of
it
and gently
rolls
the body, he can plainly hear
the sloshing of the liquids in the stomach.
In normal condition, forty-five minutes after eating, fifteen minutes after drinking water, it should be impossible to hear, by this means, any liquid in the
and
stomach.
The most
deleterious phase incident to a catarrh of
the stomach amounting to dropsy,
such a continual seepage into the intestine that anything approaching intestinal digestion is an impossibility, and there is always the absorption of a very adverse chemistry from the entire intestine; the situation being accompanied by a profound and continuous chronic is
that there
is
diarrhea.
FUNGUS ACCUMULATIONS As a phase
of the negative process, fungus
lations occur in
any and
all
accumu-
parts of the alimentary
canal.
For the present, reference
only made to fungus accumulations in the pharynx, with incidental reference to the esophagus and stomach. In the pharynx, fungus accumulations are generally confined to the tonsillar ring. In that phase, which is referred to by therapy as adenoids, there
is
frequently a considerable negative
tissue of the fungus type,
It
is
is
which partakes of a rigid nature.
sometimes referred to as scar
tissue.
Where fungus growths of the adenoid type have become hard and scar-like, it is a better process to have the fungus structures removed sm-gically, after which, of the principles of Chiropractic,
by the application
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
173
the tissue of the area can be restored to the normal. The same character of fungi are frequently produced
around the orifices of the Eustachian tubes, and in the same degree of aggravation, should likewise be removed. Fungus growths upon the true tonsils frequently occur,
and when
variety, that part
they
partake
of
the scar-tissue
which has assumed such consis-
tence should be removed surgically. It must be understood that the preceding paragraph presupposes a marked situation, for usually, even under
the negative phase, such tissues will be entirely reduced by the application of the principles of Chiropractic.
Other phases of this subject will be discussed in connection with the general discussion of cancers, and abnormal growths.
CANCER OF STOMACH This phase of tissue abnormality is of a very pronounced type, and of course, has the effect of dethroning
stomach digestion. It is, therefore, a very necessary theme to be discussed in connection with general tissue effects but is not so necessary in connection with alimentary abnormality, because the only discussion necessary is the statement already made, that so long as cancer of the stomach remains, stomach digestion is an impossibility. Cancer of the stomach will be discussed in connection with the subject of cancer generally in another part of this book.
DIIATION Dilation
is
a subject that must be discussed as
inci-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
174
dent to the negative phase, because nothing approaching the process of dilation occurs until the negative phase in the aflBrmative process is reached. Dilation of a tube or vessel is not an enlargement of the tissues of the tube or vessel, but is an enlargement of the lumen or cavity of the tube or vessel. In dilation of a tube or vessel under the pathologic phase, there is always a thinning of the walls coincident with the distension of the tube or vessel.
The thinning of the wall of the tube or vessel is usually lumen or
in ratio with the dilation of the
that
is
cavity, but
not necessarily true.
There
may
and frequently
such accumulation tube or vessel as to prevent its becoming thin in ratio with its distension. However, speaking exactly, this would not defeat the proposition stated, for notwithstanding the accumulation the general rule mentioned would maintain. Yet, the student must understand that it is not laid down here that thinning of the walls of a tube or vessel must be in ratio with the distension, for that proposition is not definitely stated. On account of the fact that the walls of the pharynx abut upon osseous and cartilaginous structures, its general dilation is not particularly noticeable. However, incidentally dilation of the walls of the pharynx is very be,
is,
in the substance of the wall of the
noticeable.
The
attention of the student
is
particularly directed
in this connection to the soft palate,
and to the
pillars
of the fauces.
The it falls
soft palate
down,
sometimes dilates so extensively that
until the uvula touches the tongue, or
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY structures of the oral pharynx, so as to cause
175
much
irritation.
Dilation of the pillars of the fauces frequently permits a sagging and bulging of the true tonsils, so as to interfere with the passage of food into the pharynx, and to change the voice, giving it a duU, flappy sound. Dilation of the esophagus frequently occurs,
and very
extensively. This occurs as incident to the exuding
catarrhal condition just described, especially that phase of it in
which there is seepage of the dropsical type stomach and nothing further need be said of it
into the
in this connection.
DILATION OF STOMACH It is with reference to the stomach that dilation becomes a very prominent feature of alimentary tissue
abnormality.
Again this phase of process occurs as incident to that aheady described of the pronounced exuding catarrh of the stomach. All that need be said then, in addition to what was said in that connection, is that frequently in dilation the stomach assumes immense proportions. Under the marked phases of dilation of the stomach, the cavity of that organ not infrequently is double in size, and is constantly subject to a profound infiltration of liquids in dropsical flow from its walls.
This
is
one of the most aggravated phases of alimen-
tary tissue abnormality, for in this connection, as in cancer, it
is
utterly impossible to secure anything like an
approach to stomach digestion. There are a great number of symptoms indicating this condition. The only ones necessary to refer to, how-
176
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
ever, are enlargement of the stomach,
which
is
detected
of a continual accumustomach by the gentle rolling
by palpation, and the discovery lation of hquid in the
process already indicated.
HEARTBURN
The stomach, being separated from the heart only by the thickness of the diaphragm, and the fundus extending up into the left cupola to a higher level than the lowest part of the heart, accounts
for.
the
name
of this
is a symptom arising from an incipient catarrhal condition of the stomach, in which, after the ingestion of certain bad combinations of food, gas accumulates in the stomach, and presses the fundus very tightly against the diaphragm at the left and behind the heart, producing a sense of pain, which has been called heartburn.
phase. So-called heartburn
In a graver phase of the same process, there is an excessive liquid produced of a bitter or sour nature, which is frequently eructed into the mouth, increasing the unpleasantness of the situation.
The symptoms of heartburn are frequently superinduced by drinking any hquids, but specifically water, too soon after having eaten solids. Following a meal no hquids should be taken for two and a half hours. Drinking within that period, in those whose tissue condition is prepared for it, frequently produces socalled heartburn.
The symptom called heartburn is notice to the individual that he has overdone his alimentary tissue, and is a signal that rest is required.
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
177
GASTRODYNIA Gastrodynia
is
the
name
given to a symptomologic
process incident to the catarrhal tissue process. It occurs as
an early phase of dyspepsia. Gastrodynia
may
occur in subacute form any time
a bad combination of foods have been ingested of exactly the right chemical type. The situation in such instances is that phase frequently referred to as stomach or beUy-ache. in the history of the individual,
if
This situation occurs most frequently in children, and especially infants at the breast,
and
is
usually
cation that the mother's milk is too rich, or
When
a mother finds
gastrodynia, or
may be
what
her
baby
ordinarily called
is
sure that she either gives
that there
is
too
indi-
too copious.
suffering
baby
from
colic,
much
she
milk, or
something wrong with the chemistry of her
milk, or that she nurses
As an
it
is
an
it
too often.
incipient phase, or as a phase of dyspepsia,
gastrodynia
is
a very uncomfortable and aggravating
symptom. However, gastrodynia subject of
it
is
a
symptom which
tells
the
plainer than words that he has arrived
at the place where he self-control in the
must
exercise unusual care
and
matter of eating.
Incipient gastrodynia will disappear upon the adoption of proper and correct diet, but in its more aggravated form it necessitates a correction of the relation of distorted parts,
which is accomplished by the
application of the principles of Chiropractic.
INDIGESTION
Stomach indigestion
is
the functional result which
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
178
must
from extensive abnormality of of the wall of the stomach, which have been
of necessity flow
the tissues to a large extent discussed in this chapter. In this connection the student's attention
is
called
to the fact that in congestion, inflammation, catarrh, dilation or dropsy of the stomach, it is utterly impossible
that anything like digestion within the stomach can
take place. Indigestion, then, goes primarily to a consideration of all of these phases of tissue abnormality,
and the
gravity of stomach indigestion will always be of the
type and character, and of
stomach
will
be in ratio with the gravity
tissue abnormality.
Attention has already been called to the fact that any phase of tissue abnormality of the pharynx and esophagus,
which
discharge
results in
into
the
an excessive shme or catarrhal stomach,
necessarily
produces
indigestion.
In
this connection the student's attention is also
called to the fact that
when
of the intestine, so that there
there is
is
tissue
abnormaUty
gurgitation of substances
from the intestine stomach indigestion must occur. The student will, of course, have it well in mind that indigestion is a comparative term, and that when the word is used it is not always meant that there has been complete failure of digestion, but it is always intended to convey the sense that digestion has been interfered with, and because of the interference has not been performed normally. To put the proposition in another light, when stomach digestion is not what it should be, it is not normal, and
into the stomach, or eruction of gases into the stomach,
GENERAL ALIMENTARY ABNORMALITY
179
formula from that of normal digestion. Of course, indigestion may result in any change of chemistry from the slightest divergence from the normal, to the most marked change, with the concomitant effect of very slight abnormal, chemical reaction to the most profound. In the light of what has just been said, the student will observe that stomach indigestion always results in the production of a toxin, which may be so mild that its effect goes unobserved, or may be so virulent as to very soon stop vital functioning. The symptoms of stomach indigestion are so numerous and varied as to be beyond the possibility of presents a changed chemical
description or statement.
The paramount symptom, however,
is
found in the
fact that following the taking of food there
is
lack of
agony.
rest, uneasiness, or positive
The symptoms just referred to are expressed in a multitude of ways, but are generally accompanied by a sense of weakness or prostration of the stomach; rifting gas accumulation, spitting
heartburn,
headache,
up
pain
a sense of prostration and
bitter
in
many
watery substances, the
eyes,
languor,
other phases of like
character.
Those who are
in the habit of excessive ingestion
frequently experience the
symptoms
a profound sense of hunger. degree of regularity,
who
Any
what they
call
one, eating with
any
of
finds himself experiencing
a
sense of hunger, may at once know that he is the subject of
stomach indigestion ; what he calls hunger being produced
by gaseous or
toxic irritations within the stomach.
180
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
In addition to the symptoms already enumerated, the always observe distortion at the stomach area generally accompanied by a constriction and fixation, in all acute stomach phases. In old, chronic phases there are distortions with flaccidity and muscular and ligamentous distension, etc. There is another form of indigestion which should be discussed with the whole alimentary canal in mind, and that will be taken up under the title of dyspepsia. Relating in all of the phases of abnormaUty discussed in this chapter, is primarily at the stomach area of the vertebral column, and particularly the release of the fourth and third thoracic nerve trunks. In addition to these, in affection of the pharynx, it will generally be necessary to release the nerve trunks of the headward cervical area, but peculiarly the thoracic Chiropractor will
ganglia that lie ventral to the axis, atlas and third cervical.
In phases affecting the esophagus, release all nerve trunks in the feetward cervical areas, particularly the trunks such as the phrenic and the seventh and eighth cervical trunks; incidentally the thoracic ganglia that
and first thoracic and occasionally the middle ganglia which Ue ventral to the fifth and sixth cervical vertebrae. lie
ventral to the seventh cervical
vertebrae,
In connection with the stomach, it sometimes happens must also be made to the liver area of the vertebral column, especially the sixth, and seventh thoracic trunks, and sometimes because of eructions of gases from the small intestine into the stomach, and motor reaction to the kidney area, it will be necessary to release the nerves from the kidney region of the vertebral column, particularly the eleventh and twelfth thoracic. that address
CHAPTER
XVIII
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
—Inflammation—Constriction— Catarrh — Tumor — Colic— ConstipationHemorrhoids—
Affirmative : Congestion
Peritonitis.
The
intestine extends
from the pyloric
orifice of
the
stomach to the orifice of the anal canal. It will be observed that this extension is from a point very near the diaphragm throughout the entire length of the abdomen, and through the floor of the pelvis. Attention must be called to the fact that the first division of the small intestine, the in its extent almost
a level with
its
a complete
duodenum, performs ending almost on
circle,
beginning.
Its terminus, therefore, is ramified by nerves from the same trunk which ramify its beginning. It must also be noticed that its colic part is ramified by nerves from the same trunks which ramify its terminal ascending part; while its infracolic and transverse parts are both ramified by nerves from the same trunk. In connection with the facts just stated, it must be remembered that the transverse colon, and the immediately related parts of the duodenum, are ramified by nerves from the same trunk. The jejunum, being a remarkably convoluted tube, zigzags backward and forward through the series of nerves from ramifying trunks, so that an area of the intestine may be principally ramified by a trunk, and 181
182
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
the termination of a convolution several feet further on in the gut wiU also be ramified by nerves from the
same trunk. In connection with the facts just stated, it must be kept in mind that nerves from the trunks which ramify the splenic flexure, also ramify the central area of the jejunum, and that nerves from the trunks which ramify the middle portion of the transverse colon also ramify the headward convolutions of the jejunum. It will be recalled that the jejunum extends over the brim somewhat into the true pelvis; the convolutions in that area being particularly ramified by nerves from the lumbar trunks on that side. But, in connection with this, it must be remembered that nerves from the same trunks ramify the descending colon and the sigmoid flexure,
and
incidentally portions of the sigmoid loop.
The ileum begins its convolutions from the end of the jejunum in the pelvis, and by a series of zigzag and headward in the abdowith the hepatic flexure of the colon. It will, therefore, be seen that in a general way the terminus of the jejunum, and the beginning of the ileum are ramified by nerves from the same trunks, and that the beginning of the ileum is ramified particularly by the lumbar trunks of the right side, and that nerves from the same trunks also ramify the cecum and beginning of the ascending colon. The middle convolutions of the ileum are particularly ramified by nerves from the second and first lumbar, irregular convolutions, extends
men into relation
and the twelfth and eleventh thoracic trunks; while the ascending colon and hepatic flexure are ramified by nerves from the same trunks progressively.
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY The headward
183
convolutions of the ileum are ramified
by nerves from the
tenth, ninth, eighth
and seventh
thoracic trunks, as are also the colon from the hepatic
middle aspect.
flexure across to its
The student
will
observe that on account of the
complexity of the ramification just indicated, discussion of tissue
abnormaUty of the
the
intestine is very
and involved; the complexity of the whole theme being increased by the fact that nerves from the trunks which supply several different portions of the difficult
alimentary canal, also supply other viscera classified as vital organs.
For instance, nerves from the same trunks that ramify the ascending colon, the middle portion of the ileum
and jejunum, also ramify the kidneys and in the female the ovaries, and in the male the seminal vesicles and prostate gland.
Nerves from the same trunk which ramify the spleen, liver and pancreas also ramify the transverse colon, and headward convolutions of the jejunum and ileum, and also the receptaculum chyli, thoracic duct, and the corresponding areas of the abdominal aorta, and ascending vena cava, etc. The student will see from the foregoing paragraph that no outline in advance, except of the most general natiu-e, can be given as to specific effects, until he knows
what
particular area of the intestine is referred to, in
order that he
And
it
may know what
must be remembered
nerves ramify therein.
occlusion to peripheral
a matter of diaggo from vertebral
that, as
nosis, it is frequently necessary to
symptom
in order to determine
the affected area, for frequently there
is
an unusual
184
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
arrangement both of convolution and ramification, which takes the subject out of the ordinary. The suggestions here made are for the purpose of preparing the student for a very careful and comprehensive study of the convolutional ramification and reramification of the nerves of the intestine. That is to
him to understand how the intestine extends out of an area of trunk ramification into the area of other trunk ramification, and then back again into the original trunk ramification, and these suggestions should be sufficient to put him upon his guard. say, to prepare
CONGESTION Congestion of the tissues of the walls of the intestine is not in any definite sense different than that of the wall of the stomach. It is in fact the same thing, and occurs because of occlusion of stimulus in the same way. Some little discussion should be made of incidental symptoms, but these can be better made under the next sub-title.
INFLAMMATION Inflammation of the tissues of the wall of the intestine is
precisely identical, so far as its pathologic effects are
concerned, with inflammation of the stomach.
However, symptomologicly, there are some differand inflammation of the intestine in the same phase of conduct in the stomach. Yet, it must be understood that these are very slight, for such phases of abnormality have a marked and definite influence the whole length of the alimentary canal. Congestion and inflammation of the duodenum must ences between congestion
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY be
very
carefully
observed,
if
same phases
distinguished from the
185
they are to be of abnormality of
the wall of the stomach.
The
controlling
Chiropractor gestion
is
symptom
that,
if
of differentiation to the
the stomach
and inflammation,
is
undergoing con-
constriction
and occlusion
wiU be most profound over the area of the fourth and third thoracic nerve trunks, whereas in congestion and inflammation of the intestine the marked area of constriction and occlusion is over the fourth and fifth thoracic nerve trunks. In the stomach phases, symptoms of the effects of occlusion will be more pronounced in the eyeballs, than when the congestion and inflammation is in the duodenum, in which event there will be greater congestion in the frontal parts of the brain, and in the temporal region.
Incident to congestion and inflammation of the duodenum, there frequently appears the supracolic, duodenal colic, sometimes accompanied with infracolic,
duodenal cohc. More frequently these phases of duodenal colic occur separately. In congestion and inflammation of the wall of the jejunum, the most profound symptoms occur in impaction in some of the coils of the jejunum, and the
same thing
is
true of the ileum.
The symptoms indicating impactions
in these portions
of the intestine are usually pain centering to the area.
However, on account of the unusual and peculiar which has been suggested, the pain frequently does not occur in the area, but occurs elsewhere, and the diagnostician will only be able to localize
ramification
186 it
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
by understanding the complexity of nerve ramification, CONSTRICTION
Under occlusion of nerve stimulus to the intestine, one of the paramount symptoms in the aflfirmative phase that of constriction of the muscular wall of the intestine, and the remarkable part of it is that both is
sets of muscles frequently constrict.
In such a situation the student will see that the gut wiU not only be shortened, but that its lumen will be greatly lessened.
Frequently constriction and fixation of the circular muscular layer results in the lumen being reduced to such an extent as to produce complete impaction, or what might better be calleJd strangulation. It will be found that in supracolic, duodenal colic, the situation is brought on by constriction of both the colon and duodenum, where they transect. The infracolic, duodenal colic, is caused not only by constriction of the muscular walls of the duodenum, but of the root of the mesentery. Frequently interference with the passage of the contents occurs at the duodeno-jejunal because of the constriction of the root of the mesentery in its relation with the mesentery of the jejunum. intestinal flexure,
Constriction
is
the paramount pathologic function
that produces impaction or strangulation in the convolutions of the jejunum,
statement applies
and
to
also the ileum,
the
large
and
intestine
this
with
same the
peritoneal coverings.
Constriction of the walls of the rectum
is
one of the
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
187
pronounced phases in rectal pathology, but it is in connection with the anal canal that these constrictions are most profoundly impressed, because here is the aggregation of circular fibers that compose the anal sphincters, which are accessorily reinforced by the sphincterly arranged fibers of the muscles of the pelvic outlet. It appears without saying oflBce of
the Chiropractor
is
it,
that the paramount
to release occlusion in the
nerves ramifying the areas of constriction, and to follow that correction
The
by securing relation in constricted
areas.
subject of constriction in the walls of the intes-
tine has Orificial
been more fully considered in the chapter on Abnormality.
CATARRH Incident to congestion and inflammation intestine, the usual
of
the
and ordinary inflammatory catarrh
occurs.
This phase of catarrh is but the depuration of accumulated morbidity incident to the failure of assimilation
and the increased
disintegration,
which have been
phases of pathology up to this time. Catarrh of the intestine in the
phase under discussion
is
an
oflSce
necessary to recovery, and will always take place in the restoration of normal chemistry.
There are a multitude of symptoms indicating this phase of catarrh in the intestine, and they are so completely a part of the symptoms of congestion and inflammation as to be incapable of separate statement. The only well-defined and positive symptom of catarrh of the intestine is the observance of mucous excretion in the feces.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
188
TUMOR Incident to the catarrhal phase of depuration, sometimes tumors are produced in the wall of the intestine. Tumors in the intestine following catarrh simply indicate that assimilation has been profoundly inter-
and that disintegration has been greatly both of which indicate a very profound occlusion of nerve stimulus to the area. Tumors of the character mentioned are usually indicated by a burning sense localized in the intestine. Usually, however, tumors of the intestine are not observed by the patient. They may sometimes be
fered with, increased,
indicated
by
but
can not be
this
soreness
upon pressure of the intestine, upon as a symptom, for
relied
and constriction of the mesentery will same sensation. Of course either catarrh or tumor is indicative of grave vertebral occlusion of nerve stimulus, and should immediately have attention, and the release should be vertebral and local, as indicated by centralized concongestion
frequently produce the
striction, for in
the affirmative phase there will always
be centralized constriction in either catarrh or tumor. COLIC Intestinal colic
that any or
all of
is
an adverse process which
indicates
the phases just discussed are true of
the intestine; in other words, actually may occur in connection with practically any other phase of intestinal abnormality. Colic
is
an accumumay, however, be from
usually a symptomatic effect of
lation of gas in the intestine. It
an accumulation
of the contents of the intestine in a
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY solid bolus, or of
189
something in the form of a solid mass
in the intestine.
Many times a profound colic occurs incident to aggregation of substances on the intestinal wall, during phases of inflammation. Intestinal colic
usually considered under three
is
heads: (1) flatulent, (2) bilious, (3) lead. Flatulent colic is incident to the accumulation of gases in the intestine.
induced by discharges of abnormal bile into the intestine. This may result in flatulent colic, but is usually indicated by congestion and inflammation. Lead colic belongs to the negative phase, and will be discussed in that connection. Bilious colic
is
CONSTIPATION
The word
means impaction, or that a substance is pressed together more closely than usual. To lengthen the word out, it really means con-stop-ation constipation
or " a stopping together."
Therapeutists
have
usuaUy
assigned
the
word
constipation to rectal abnormality, or the inability to
pass feces from the rectum. There really confine the
meaning
is
nothing to so
of this word.
The substances in the jejunum and ileum are properly That in the large intestine is called feces. The truth, of course, as usual, lies in the golden mean. The chyme comes from the stomach in liquid, or quasiliquid form, and constantly increases in density. Its
called chyle.
liquid parts are absorbed throughout the entire small intestine,
ileum.
but pecuharly throughout the jejunum and
190
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
constipate at any area to which there is pronounced occlusion, causing any of the aflSrmative phases^ inflammation, con-
The contents
of the intestine
may
—
striction, catarrh,
tumor,
etc.
It will be seen that in such areas impacting
from
(l) constriction
of the
lumen
may result
of the tube; (2)
accretion, or a sticking of the substance, to the walls,
an inflamed condition; (3) by constriction of the mesentery around the intestine, preventing its movement and therefore, the movement of its contents; (4) by constriction of one area of the intestine, and dilation of an immediate area, resulting in the production of a bolus in the dilated area, which becomes too
when they are
in
dense to pass through the constricted area. The suggestion just given more particularly applies to the small intestine, but also applies to the large intestine, and particularly to the hepatic, splenic, and sigmoid flexures thereof. There is seldom any phase of these impactions in the sigmoid loop, but they are peculiarly frequent in the ampulla of the rectum. For here frequently it occurs that the sphincters ani are constricted, while the ampulla is dilated, in which event a bolus of feces accumulates so large and solid that it cannot be induced to pass through the sphincters ani. Sometimes, in the situation last indicated,
it is
necessary to go into the
rectum per ani, and forcibly break up the bolus. In the other parts of the intestine mentioned, it is frequently the proper method to apply force judicially in the right direction of the gut to pass these solid accumulations on, and it sometimes requires prolonged and patient effort to do so.
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY The symptoms
191
of constipation are the localization of
such impactions in the small intestine, and the large intestine, with the exception of the rectum. Of course, rectal constipation is
paramountly declared by
failure
of evacuation of feces.
Constipation of any gravity, however, is symptomologicly expressed by irritation and motor reaction of the nerve trunk extensions, and by motor reactive process
constricting areas, peculiarly those of the kidney, liver, stomach and cerebral areas, such as the frontal brain, the eyeballs and areas ramified by the olfactory nerves. Congestion and hardness of the eyeballs are sometimes indicative of constipation, but not necessarily declaring it, and inflammatory catarrh of the nasal meatus and the nasal antrums also indicate constipation, through
the
visceral
system,
pecuUarly rectal constipation.
HEMOKKHOIDS In a general way hemorrhoids have been discussed in orificial correction, and will be only
connection with
incidentally discussed here.
Hemorrhoids is a phase of pathology which occurs subsequent or concomitant with constipation. The pathology of this phase of abnormality usually occurs relative to the place where true
brane
mucous mem-
transmuted into the muco-skin; that is, where tiie mucous membrane changes its charactCT as it approaches the orifice of the body. Therefore, within is
the anal canal. It wiU be recalled that the arterioles which carry blood to the mucous h'ning of the rectum extend through
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
192
the muscle wall of the gut to form in sub-mucous tissue what is called the hemorrhoidal plexus, and that hemorrhoidal veins carry the blood away through the
muscular walls of the iutestine again, and lymph is also carried in the lymph vessels through the muscle walls from the intercellular spaces aroimd the blood capillaries. Occlusion of stimulus in the nerves ramifyiug the muscles of the walls of the rectum, and the vessels just named, results in the affirmative phase, in the muscles becoming constricted with abnormal fixation, preventing the passage of blood in the hemorrhoidal veins back
from the mucous lining. In the areas where this occurs there first wiU be congestion with inflammation, and the formation of Uttle blood tumors, which continue to increase in size in ratio with the intensified occlusion.
These blood tumors are called hemorrhoids, and they may, and frequently do, occur two and three layers deep from the surface. It sometimes happens that occlusion of the character
named
is
structures
so intense that cohesion in the submucous is
so completely lost that the mucous
mem-
brane separates from the muscular wall of the gut, and in the effort of defecation protrudes from the anus. Such a situation is usually called protruding piles. Therapeutically, the
symptoms
of hemorrhoids are
the pathologic growth itself. However, Chiropracticly, there are a multitude of symptoms indicating hemorrhoids.
In hemorrhoids there is nearly always congestion in the head, and especially the frontal brain and eyeballs. There are continuous constrictions of the muscles and
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
193
ligaments at the base of the skull, with profound fixation and constriction of the muscles of the middle and base of the neck, particularly centering with greatest gravity
at the fifth cervical. There
is
striction at either the liver or
This
is
usually a center of con-
stomach area, or both.
most pronounced at the liver area, unless stomach area is pronounced and of
distortion at the
long standing.
Of course, the last statements make it clear that abnormality of the liver is always concomitant with hemorrhoids, and that generally there is the complication of duodenal and stomach abnormality, not infrequently involving the other large digestive glands with frontal brain and eye abnormality, and sometimes nasal and Eustachian inflammation, catarrh, etc. For a further discussion of this subject see "hemorrhoids " in the orificial department of this work. PERITONITIS
be an inflammation of the lining membrane of the abdomen, or an inflammation of that membrane where it invests or sustains relation to the abdominal viscera. It wUl be sufficient in this connection to say that per se, no such phase of abnormality occurs. Of course, there wfll be congestion, inflammation, catarrh and all other phases of both the aflarmative and negative process occurring in the peritoneal membrane, but it must always be remembered that these phases involve the peritoneal membrane, the subserous tissue and the Peritonitis is conceived to
subjacent tissues. If the discussion is directed to the parietes, then, of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
194
course, tissues of the abdominal wall are involved, but
turned to the peritoneal structures which relate to the abdominal viscera, then of course consideration is given to the various mesenteries; the root of the mesentery, greater or lesser omenta, etc. In any ordinary case of peritonitis, the first object of the Chiropractor is to locate the affected area, and next to free the nerves to that area; not only at their point of emergence from the vertebral column, but at other places where they may be interfered with. Usually application of the principles of Chiropractic in this way, with complete suspension of diet, will be efficacious in removing the difficulty. It sometimes happens, however, that where the gas is very pronounced, and there is much accumulation of tosdc morbidity, abdominal drainage with irrigation becomes if
the thought
is
Of course, when this occurs the case has become instrumentally surgical, and the Chiropractor necessary.
should
call to his
modern method
of
who understands the abdominal drainage and irrigation.
aid a surgeon
Incident to the surgeon's efforts, the Chiropractor must see to it that occlusion is kept down to the brain, respiratory organs, and the heart. This can be done,
without disturbing the patient, in the sitting position, is the one recommended for abdominal irrigation. Incident to congestion and inflammation and inflammatory catarrh of the intestine, sometimes in connection with exuding catarrh, constipation occurs.
which
For generations
it has been the custom of the medical world to administer cathartics to remove constipation.
There
is
no more damaging and uncalled for procedure than the administration
in all of the folderols of therapy
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY of cathartics, with the
hope
A cathartic is a paralyzer.
of
195
removing constipation,
It paralyzes the periphery
which has the producing a diarrhea. That is,
of nerves to the folds of the intestine, effect of temporarily it
interferes
leaving excess
with the absorption from the
intestine,
and precipitates ac discharge from the mucous glands of the an excess
liquidity in
it,
This serves to accomplish the purpose but it also serves to produce an inflammatory condition in the tissues of the wall of the bowel, which must have the effect of intensifying the constipation. There is no more certain way to produce chronic constipation than to habitually administer cathartics, or foods that are known to have the effect upon the intestinal walls.
of floating the solid contents out of the bowel,
particular patient of
act
upon a person
in liquid form,
Relating
to
is
moving the bowel,
in such
for foods that
a way as to move his bowels
to that organism a cathartic.
remove occlusion
of
stimulus in the
various phases just discussed reverts to the Chiropractor's sound judgment, and profound anatomic sense. Only the the most cursory rules can be stated. In a general way, then, in phases of abnormality affecting the duodenum above the colon, release of the fourth and fifth thoracic nerve trunk areas will be indicated. If the phase is infracolic, then it will be the release of the sixth, seventh, and sometimes eighth thoracic trunk areas that will be necessary.
If the area of trouble is in the transverse colon, or head-
ward aspects of the jejunum or ileum, the areas from the seventh to the ninth thoracic trunks wiU be the places to release.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
196
If the areas of trouble are the hepatic
and
splenic
and the related convolutions of the ileum and jejunum, then from the ninth to the eleventh thoracic areas will be the areas of attention. If the area of trouble is in the ascending or descending colon and the middle convolutions of the jejunum and ileum, then the ninth, tenth and eleventh thoracic areas flexures,
must be
carefully investigated.
If the center of the trouble is at the sigmoid flexure, cecum, appendix, or feetward aspects of the jejunum and ileum, then the twelfth thoracic, and first and second lumbar areas are the points of attention. If the trouble is located in the sigmoid loop or rectum,
the third, foiu"th and fifth lumbar areas are indicated, as well as attention to the ileum and sacroiliac relationships.
It
must be explained that the statements made above
are only intended to give the student a specific hint as to the area.
The
exact place of occlusion must in each
case be left to his diagnostic ability, for because of the
complexity of the intestine in its convolutions, it is utterly impossible to state with exactitude the place of occlusion. The only way in which the exact place of occlusion could be stated, would be by first knowing the exact area of the trouble.
In the extremely long intestinal tube, making as it does three almost complete circles, the only way to arrive at a positive statement as to the place of occlusion would be to first determine the exact area of trouble, and then it would be possible to state where the exact occlusion would be. However, the practitioner need have no trouble here.
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
197
because the trained palpator will have no difficulty in and therefore, the area of
locating the area of trouble,
occlusion. Or, having located the area of occlusion, will
have no trouble in knowing the area involved. What has been said here, with respect to intestinal areas, will apply in the manner stated to areas of peritonitis.
CHAPTER XIX INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
—Exuding Catarrh—Lead Colic— Diarrhea— Tumor—Flux and Dysentery
Negative: Dilation
The
negative phase of intestinal abnormality occurs
as a sequence to the aflSrmative phases discussed in the
preceding chapter.
In every phase
must have
it
of this discussion, then, the student
well in
mind that at
least the affirmative
phases of congestion, inflammation and catarrh have
passed before the phase here to be discussed becomes apparent. It
would be impossible to describe the very great
number and complexity
of
symptoms that
arise as
incident to the negative process of intestinal abnormality.
The student must understand that
occlusion, which
caused the affirmative phases, is continued in the same, or in an increased gravity; the rule being that there is an increased gravity of occlusion, because of the continually widening area affected, in which event there would be the confusion of affirmative phases, which would tend to obscure that under discussion. Of course, it is clear to the student that there will be under such a situation as outUned, a continually decreasing assimilation, and in that which is accomplished a progressively lessened cohesion, accompanied by disintegration, which will increase in the ratio of intensifying occlusion,
and
inferior assimilation.
198
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY In the situation outlined, absorption
is
199
materially
and very greatly lessened, while at the same time excretion from the mucous glands from the
interfered with,
wall of the intestine will be proportionately increased. It will be seen that in the condition just stated,
much
be absorbed from the intestine will remain in it, and that a very great excess of liquid will be discharged from the mucous glands into the intestine. It will be understood that the discharge into the intestine from the mucous glands wiU sometimes amovmt to a dropsy, and may be in any abnormal amount, from the slightest excess to the most profound liquid that should
dropsy.
Of course,
be also understood that in the profoundest exudating conditions, there will be pockets, as it were, of accumulated hquid, or profound liquid discharge from the intestine. it will
DILATION
There could not be the pockets in the intestine just if it were not for the fact that the phase of
referred to
pathology called dilation of the walls of the intestine
had occurred. Dilation in the sense under discussion result
from an actual pathologic change
the intestine, or cidity,
and
it
may
may be
the
in the wall of
be merely the result of a
flac-
therefore, fully distended condition of the
intestine.
The to
is
and distended condition just referred the situation found in the more acute type, but flaccidity
usually in dilation of the intestine there has been a pro-
found change in the
tissues,
so that the potential
200
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS and
with negative liquid, while there is an actual decrease in the substance of the walls of the intestine. Dilation here in no sense differs from dilation in the walls of the stomach, or in any other interspaces are enlarged,
filled
of the vessels or tubes of the body.
The location of such a dilation in the intestine as here described is proclaimed by a sense of heaviness in the area on the part of the patient, and can usually be located by abdominal palpation.
EXUDING CATABRH This phase of abnormality occurs in the intestine immediately subsequent to acute phases, and is usually concomitant with slight dilation of the intestinal wall. During the phase of exuding catarrh one of the profoundest symptoms usually is that of alternate diarrhea
and constipation. This phase
may be
indicated
by a continual excess what is
liquidity of the phases not within the scope of
ordinarily called diarrhea.
LEAD COLIC In connection with the phase of intestinal abnormality, in which there is slight dilation of the intestine with exuding catarrh, there frequently occurs that phase of abnormality called lead colic. This, of course, only
who are frequently and for long periods exposed to the gases emanating from lead that is used in the mixing of paint. The person addicted to lead poisoning, should avoid such gaseous emanations, and should realize that he
occurs to those
is
in
a condition requiring careful attention.
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
201
DIABRHEA This word,
literally
translated,
means " to flow."
Therapeutically, therefore, diarrhea
is
referred to as
looseness of the bowels of such gravity as to result in a
flow of the feces. Chiropracticly, however, diarrhea walls of the bowel
is
proof that the
have passed through the phases of
congestion, inflammation, inflammatory catarrh,
and
at least to the phase of exuding catarrh. In such situation as has just
been stated there
may
be diarrhea
alternating with constipation.
is
Following the exuding catarrhal period, if the gravity increased, there is the dropsical period, which is true
diarrhea.
Of course, true diarrhea peutists refer to as
the
way in its phases
for it
is
always what the thera-
chronic diarrhea, and ranges to the
all
most destructive condition;
must be understood that
in diarrhea it
is
not only
impossible to nourish the body, because of inabilty to
absorb nutrition, but the process that
there
absorbents
may
be so aggravated
no absorption at all, and that the may become tubes through which the is
lymph returns
into
the intestine, thus subtracting
from the volume of the liquids of transportation, and may materially lessen the volume of blood; indeed, may reduce the volume of blood to such extent that vital function cannot be carried on. The situation just outlined is what occurs in that phase of abnormality called Asiatic Cholera, or Bubonic itself
Plague.
Diarrhea of an abortive nature occurs as incident to impaction in the intestine.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
202
What
is
meant by abortive diarrhea
is
that, while
almost a continual disposition to move the little substance passes, and that is usually of a foamy, watery nature, and of course, is only the excess exudation of mucous in the remainder of the bowel beyond the point of impaction, discharging from there
is
bowel, very
the intestine.
The doctor should know, when he observes the symptoms of diarrhea with little or no passage from the bowel (that of the character just described) that
impaction or intussusception, which must in be very quickly removed. If the difficulty is resulting from impaction, of course the thing to do is to locate the impaction, and by direct application break it up, and pass the contents on in the intestine, incident of course to releasing the nerves to that area. If it is intussusception, which means that there is a constricted area of the bowel in conjimction with a dilated area, and that the dilated area has swallowed up, as it were, the constricted area; or may have twisted about the constricted area so as to have obstructed the lumen of the bowel, the condition must be removed. In this situation, of course, the Chiropractor must immediately draw apart the intussuscepted areas, or unwind the bowel, if that is the situation. Otherwise, toxins will be diffused and exosmosed through the gut, producing local and sometimes general peritonitis. If impaction in the process under discussion is in the colon, it can easily be removed by resort to direct application through the abdominal wall, assisted by enema to wash away the debris. Of course, if the difficulty occurs in the small intestine. there
is
either event
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY enema
203
be of no assistance, but it is usually not difficult to remove impactions or intussusceptions if the case has early attention. Sometimes, of course, where the case comes to the Chiropractor very late, and real peritonitis has already begun, it is very diflScult and sometimes impossible without instrumental assistance, in which event the case becomes surgical, and should have immediate attention, and even then the result is doubtful. In prolonged, chronic diarrhea, such copious disintegration and discharge from the mucous lining of the bowel sometimes occurs with the feces containing great quantities of mucous. This situation is generally will
referred to
by
therapeutists as
tuberculosis
of
the
bowels.
In such a situation the Chiropractor will find it necessary to apply force to the bowels in such a way aa to remove the mucous from them in connection with release of nerves to the area, for if he does not attend to securing this removal, the peristaltic effort of the
mucous
accumulate and entirely check such operation, in which event it imdergoes rapid toxification, and becomes a center of profound irritation of an affirmative type, which tends in a general way to aggravate the entire process. In removing diarrhea, or any other phase of intestinal abnormality, the student must remember that before health is reached, the intestinal tissues must go back through all the phases and types, step by step, until normal tissue has been restored. In connection with the statement last made, in case of chronic diarrhea the intestinal structures will go bowel
is
so reduced that the
\^ill
204
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
back to the exuding catarrhal
stage, the alternating
inflammation and diarrhea stage, then to the inflammatory catarrhal stage, constipation stage, inflammatory
and then to normal structures. It is always well to have the patient understand at the outset that these are the steps and phases through which he will react to recovery, and it is suggested that in such a case it would be advisable to just hand the patient a written detail of his reaction, so that he would not be suiprised when the phases present themselves, and would always have with him the written suggestion that he is recovering. Since in both constipation and diarrhea, it has been and congested
stage,
suggested that
it is
occasionally necessary to use the
enema, it is here carefully advised that enema is really a last emergency. It is to be used only as a crutch to our degeneracy, and therefore should be resorted to only
when the symptoms absolutely indicate its necessity. That is, when there is a toxic condition which must be got rid of quickly, and there is no time nor opportunity to remove it in any other way, except by washing it away, then the resort to the enema is right, and should
be instantly used, but under no other circ*mstances and for no other purpose. The statement in the last paragraph is made because it is a law that no function of any organ of the body should ever be performed artificially except in gravest emergency, because to perform the oflSce artificially is to cause the organ to cease functioning. For instance, the moistening of food in the mouth by taking liquids, instead of chewing until normal salivation occurs,
is
to cause the salivary glands to
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY become
and
inactive,
will directly
fixes
205
a pernicious habit, which
produce indigestion and
finally dyspepsia.
TtTMOK of the wall of the bowel may occur conexuding catarrh or diarrhea. with comitant Tumors occurring in the wall of the bowel, are the same as tumors that occur elsewhere, and for the same
Tumor
reason.
may be that which the patient feels of a continuously, or it may be indicated by a spasmodic soreness, or may only feel sore upon pressure, but none The symptoms
of a
tumor
in the bowel
sense of soreness at the area,
of the symptoms are invulnerable. Tumors of the intestine
may
exist without
any
of the
symptoms
indicated.
Usually, however, in tumor of the bowel there will be
an excited phase of some of the functional operations. Many times tumors slough ofif, and debris from them may be observed in the feces in the form of pus and scraps, and sometimes in the form of clotted blood, for frequently slight hemorrhage occurs. Of course, sometimes tumors of the bowels become very extensive, and there have been cases in which the entire wall of the bowel has been perforated by tumors. Of course, in such grave conditions pronounced prostration, and sometimes of pus formation will be pronounced. That is, there will be chill, rise of temperature, prostration of peristalsis, accompanied by general
symptoms of headache, nausea, vertigo, But these are not symptoms definitely indicating
constitutional etc.
this process, for
other phases.
they occur in connection with so
many
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
206
In such aggravated, phases as that just discussed, frequently exosmosis of toxins occurs,
and there
is
local and general peritonitis, in which the case may become surgical, and if it does must immediately have
that character of attention. FLtrx
AND DTSENTEKY
Flux is but a peculiar phase of diarrhea, and aU that need be said in connection with it, as a special phase of abnormality, that it occurs as incident to tumorous conditions of the bowel. It also occurs where there is such remarkable distension, because of grave occlusion, resulting in great reduction of assimilation, that an actual capillary hemorrhage of the bowel occurs. Of course, it goes without saying that flux is always an indication of a grave tissue condition of the bowel. Flux occurs as incident to pronounced inflammation and inflammatory catarrh of the bowel, and occurs as incident to long-continued, chronic diarrhea.
The acute phase
as
outlined,
occurs with great
frequency in children, especially where children are permitted to eat gluttonously and inadvised chemistries,
and
especially to continually eat concentrated sweets.
Dysentery
is
a peculiar diarrhea that exists from
eating a pecuHar form of dried foods. In. dysentery the
phases are frequently accompanied
To remove
dysentery,
by
incident
blood.
to
structures to release nerve occlusion, it
is
relating
the
also necessary
to change the diet, and especially to introduce a vegetable diet,
and a wholly vegetable
diet for a short time
is
advised.
Incident to the statement just made, in regard to
INTESTINAL ABNORMALITY
207
must be remembered that it is necessary to introduce a general and cardinal change in the diet of an individual to remove any phase of diarrhea. diet, it
Relating
to release
negative phase
is
occlusion
of
stimulus
in
the
precisely that indicated in the pre-
ceding chapter as to the affirmative phase. Nothing further need be said with regard to that in this connection.
In closing all
this chapter it is again suggested that in
cases of tissue abnormality of the intestine, in
addition to releasing occlusion of nerve stimulus,
it is
the paramovmt duty of the Chiropractor to control the intake of food of the patient; and
it is
urged that
it is
always an important matter in such cases to practically stop the intake of foods altogether, but in any event sohd foods, until the adverse process is mastered, or at least until the tissues involved show marked symptoms of recovery.
CHAPTER XX ABNORMALITY OF THE HEAKT
—Inflammation — Pericarditis — —Endocarditis—Palpitation—Hypertrophy. Negative: Dilation of Heart—Organic Heart Disease. Affi/rmative: Congestion
Carditis
Tissue abnormality of the heart, and indeed, the organs of liquid transportation in a general sense, have not been discussed by therapy until the graver
symptoms have been reached. The incipient phases of tissue abnormality
of the
heart have not been discussed in therapeutic diagnoses,
and cannot be detected by the systems used. The Chiropractic diagnostician has no difficulty
in
detecting slight abnormality in the organs of liquid
and therefore, in the tissues of the heart, because he can detect occlusion of nerves to the heart long before the adverse conduct of that organ would proclaim its abnormahty. The incipient phases of tissue abnormality of the heart that escape the attention of the therapeutic transportation,
diagnostician, sustain the
same
relation, in the sense of
gravity, as, for instance, a cold sustains to pnemnonia.
The Chiropractor by
his system, detects the difficulty
analogously at the stage of cold, while the therapeutic diagnostician would not
the gravity,
In
by analogy,
know of
it
until it
had reached
pneumonia. say that determines the
this connection, it is scarcely necessary to
the tissue condition of the heart 308
itself
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART gravity of
all
209
the adverse functions of the heart, and
that, of course, the tissue condition of the heart
upon the impediments
to nerve stimulus,
depends
and the
consequent changes in chemical formulae, and therefore, in the process of tissue maintenance in that organ.
CONGESTION Congestion in the tissues of the heart occurs when occlusion of stimulus in the vasomotor nerves have occurred.
The tissues of the heart are just as susceptible to congestion as tissues anywhere else; the difference being that,
when
the tissues of the heart are congested, the
is very much more pronounced in its impediments to liquid transportation in the heart immediately assume grave importance in their
adverse situation effect, for
relation to the entire organism.
It
would seem hardly necessary to explain that
if,
because of occlusion of nerve stimulus, the liquids of transportation in the tissues of the heart were congested, that fact would have a marked influence upon the whole general process of liquid transportation.
INFIAMMATION Succeeding the congestion in the incipient, and there-
same general phenomena that follow congestion anywhere. There wiU be irritation and motor reaction, causing a concentration of force upon the heart from a wider cortical area, increasing vibration, and therefore, friction, which fore, affirmative process,
there are the
a rise in temperature. Inflammation of the tissues of the heart, considered
results in
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
210
a most difficult thing to assess, and about the only symptom that can be definitely relied upon is evidence of excitement of the heart. Of course, it is well known that in many phases of
by
itself, is
pneumonia, and indeed every febrile some inflammation of the tissue of the only when the proposition is taken by itself
cold, all phases of
condition, there heart. It in
is
is
an attempt to
assess
the actual inflammation in
heart tissues, that the problem becomes profoundly difficult.
Generally the Chiropractor
is sufficiently
advised by
the positive evidence of occlusion of stimulus in the
nerves to the heart, and the irritability or excited phase of the heart's conduct.
The inflammatory phases
the heart, and its immediate structures, are generally considered under of
more headings, which will here be stated. (1) Pericarditis which is conceived to be an inflammation of the pericardium. Such a process, of course, never occurs by itself, but is incident to other phases of tissue abnormality, and is frequently concomitant with many grave phases, peculiarly in marked negative three or
conditions of pronouncedinfiltrationintothepericardium. tissues
which
an inflammation of the heart themselves, and has been sufficiently discussed,
(2) Carditis
is
except that it should be said that it is pecuharly presumed to be an inflammation of the membrane of the outside of the heart. (3)
Endocarditis
is
precisely
the same phase as
but is presumed to be a pronounced inflammatory condition of the lining membrane of the just referred to,
heart.
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART
211
Since the lining membranes of the heart have had careful pathologic investigation than other parts,
more
there
is
more known about
it,
and
it will
receive further
discussion under organic heart disease.
PALPITATION Incident to congestion and inflammatory conditions is practically always palpitation. but the expression of an abnormal tissue condition of the heart in which there is a break in its rhythmic performance. By reference to the first book of this series, " PsychoBio-Physiology," in the department treating of the physiology of the heart's action, the rhythmic time of the heart is given, and the student is here
of the heart, there
Palpitation
is
referred to that
work
for review in this connection.
Palpitation of the heart
is
by deviations normal heart beat, and
characterized
from the approximation called refers the whole matter to the irregularity of beat. Therefore, we have the following descriptive terms, applied to the alternate systoles and diastoles of the
heavy, thudding, pounding, skipping, irregular, hght, fluttering, tremulous, and so on. Palpitation of the heart does not occur in persons heart:
who
rapid,
are not suffering from
somewhat grave glandular
abnormality. It
is
well
known
that tremulous conduct of muscles
under occlusion of nerve stimulus occurs as a resxilt of and light or slow heart beat may occasionally be accounted for in this way. But it must be remembered that irregular beating, pounding, skipping beats, etc., must be accounted for in some other way. incipient excitation,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
212
These last phases of process, and others of their nature occur in the heart only concomitant with, or as a sequence to, profound abnormality of the glands, particularly those of the liver.
a well-known fact that as a sequence to certain phases of abnormality in the conduct of the spleen and liver, that there follows tremulous conduct, such, for instance, as in palsy, paralysis agitans, etc. This It
is
always true of the character of palpitation of the heart now under discussion. No case of excited and irritable heart palpitation has ever occurred that did not occur concomitant with liver abnormality, or as a sequence thereto. In connection with the last paragraph, the student should also recall that when there is such chronic abnormality of the liver as indicated, there is always a compUcation abnormality of the kidneys, so that it can be generally laid down that palpitation of the heart only occurs when there has been precipitation in the tissues of the heart and the cardiac ganglion of abnormal chemistries produced by the abnormal liver, remaining in the liquids of transportation because of abnormal kidneys. It will be seen that, Chiropracticly, two phases of situation
is
palpitation are recognized:
(1)
that general agitated
conduct of the tissues of the whole heart, in which aU of the pecuhar, irregular and excitable conduct may be performed, and (2) a peculiar holding of the systole of the ventricles, which increase the period of the beat, socalled, and give it a heavy, pounding sound, sometimes causing it to miss entirely in the rhythm. The first phase of palpitation is very largely caused, aside from the glandular abnormality already referred
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART
213
by occlusion of the nerves that reach the heart through the cardiac triuiks from the gangha in the cervical region, and occlusion of nerves to the cortical areas of origin of the pneumogastric nerve trunks, or byocclusion of the contributions from the cervical nerves called the vertebral accessory nerves. The second character of palpitation is peculiarly caused by grave occlusion of kidney nerves, resulting in profound motor reaction through the visceral system, centering at the eighth cervical nerve trunk area. The nerves from this area normally control the rhythm of the to,
systole,
and for that reason function incident to occlusion
of these nerves has been called the eighth cervical heart
beat.
because of the phenomenon just mentioned that we have learned from the Japanese, in case of profound prostration in which there is absence of heart beat, to concuss the seventh cervical spine. This practice was a little intuitive Chiropractic on the part of the Japanese. It
is
HYPERTROPHY Hypertrophy is the inflammatory enlargement of the heart. It is a well-known fact that any tissue of the body under the affirmative phase of the congestion and inflammatory process, increases in size. The increase in size of a tissue, however, under the affirmative phase of abnormality is not necessarily, an addition to its tissues, but is the result of a process by which it is not only congested with liquids, but is congested with a certain phase of disintegrated
solids;
distending
its
potential
spaces,
and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
214
occupying those spaces to the determent of constructive processes.
Hypertrophy of the heart, then, is nothing more nor less than the same character of process and condition that occurs in any tissue of the body indicating congestive and inflammatory phases, excepting that, of course, because it
is
the heart, and, therefore, so
closely connected with the vital process of distribution
of the Uquids of transportation, it
is
always a pro-
nounced and dangerous condition.
The
symptom of hypertrophy, in consymptoms of congestion, inflammation
only reliable
nection with the
and palpitation of the heart is its actual enlargement, which may be ascertained by careful measurement in palpation over the
As has
left
thorax.
just been indicated, hypertrophy
accompanied by a very profound and
is
usually
irritable palpi-
tation.
Proper diet, proper exercise, and correct rest, accompanied by an intelligent process of correction of distortions of the body, will usually serve in a much shorter time than would be expected, to reduce hypertrophy of the heart. Of course, the student will understand that before hypertrophy of the heart can be removed, the glandular diflSculties to which reference has been made in this chapter, must first be reduced, and that in ratio with the reduction of such phases will it be possible to reduce hypertrophy.
THE NEGATIVE PHASE
The
negative phases of tissue condition of the heart
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART do not
differ
215
from those found elsewhere in other
tissues.
no way to definitely follow these tissue changes by the symptoms, only the simplest Since, however, there
reference
is
made
is
to such conduct.
The student wiU know
that as a sequel to the affirm-
ative process there will be the inflammatory catarrh,
and
exuding catarrh of all negative tissue conditions. This may be so intense as to amoimt to a distinct dropsy. That phase, however, so far as the heart is concerned, is never known. However, it is a well-known fact that infiltrations into the pericardium occur, and it is a correct deduction finally the
that infiltrations from the tissues of the heart, into the by the fact that the
heart occur, but these are obscured
infiltrated liquid is carried away in the blood and lymph from the heart, and do not accumulate in it. These facts, however, must not cause the student to fail to understand that the tissue conditions here, change exactly as they do with respect to other tissues under the same phase of process.
DILATION OF HEAET Therapeutically, the whole subject of enlargement
under the name of hypertrophy. However, it must be remembered that there is a distinct difference between hypertrophy and dilation of the of the heart is discussed
heart.
As has just been stated, hypertrophy is incident to inflammatory or affirmative processes; while dilation is incident to the negative phase. Dilation of the heart therefore, always a sequel to hypertrophy,
and
is,
results
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
216
when
there has been such chemical change that the
tissues of the heart are distorted,
and its walls thin, flaccid
and anemic; disintegration has so much exceeded assimilation, which has been very much reduced, that, while the heart in form occupies a great deal more space than normally, yet
actual tissue
its
is
very
much
reduced.
In other words, while enlarged, the walls of
all
its
of its chambers are much chambers are very much
decreased in thickness, so that actually the heart
much
smaller than
it
would be
is
very
in the normal; assessed
from the standpoint of its weight, or the actual space its tissues occupy. However, measured from the outside in such conditions, it would measure much larger than even in hypertrophy. Dilation of the heart is a very grave tissue condition, and is usually fatal. Symptoms of dilation of the heart, following those of hypertrophy will only be such symptoms as proclaim a negative phase in the large glands, while the action of the heart will be modified from any symptom it has been expressing.
ORGANIC HEART DISEASE Organic heart disease is a phase of tissue abnormality which represents both the affirmative and the negative processes.
Organic heart disease
and palpitating
is
processes,
a sequel to the inflammatory and also incident to hyper-
trophy.
However, the tissue process which ordinarily causes this phase of tissue condition to be called organic heart disease, is purely of the negative type, and occurs
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART
217
when there has been sufficient precipitation of abnormal the subserous areas to result in endocarditis, which has gone on to such
glandular toxins, urates,
etc., in
an extent that there is bhstered and irregular surfaces on the valves of the auriculo-ventricular apertures, and also those at the bases of the arteries, which prevent those valves from closing blood tight. It will be seen that if such conditions occur in the valves which should close the auriculo-ventricular apertures, there will be regurgitation at each systole
back into the It will also
mahty occurs
auricles
from the
be seen that,
if
ventricles.
the same phase of abnor-
in the semilunar valves, that at each
diastole of the ventricles there will
be regm-gitation
from the bases of the arteries back into the ventricles. It, of com-se, foUows that there may be one or more areas of regurgitation there may be regurgitation through both auriculo-ventricular orifices, or there may be regm-gitation from one artery or from both. It will be profoundly plain to the student that, if the adverse condition referred to be removed, the valves will ;
again close blood tight, and organic heart disease will be at an end. It will be understood that there are such grave, adverse
glandular conditions, and such profound precipitations into the structures of the valves of the heart that the tissue
abnormahty at such areas cannot be
restored.
It will also be understood that scar tissue may form upon these valves by prolonged, adverse process, of such a nature that it cannot be reduced. In either of the situations referred to in the last two paragraphs, organic
heart disease cannot be removed.
218
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
mind that usually these situations are not in existence, and the general, adverse glandular condition can be removed, and complete restoration of the membranes of the valves However,
it
must be kept firmly
in
can be accomphshed, in which event, the valves will close blood tight, and there will be an end of so-called organic heart disease.
The paramount symptom
of organic heart disease
the sigh of regiu-gitating blood. This may usually be heard by placing the naked ear over the ventricular area of the thorax, and should be easily heard by the aid of the stethoscope. The student should be cautioned to be very careful not to mistake a bronchial murmur for regurgitation of blood, as is very often done; for usually patients suffering from organic heart disease are of an aggravated phase of the typical distortion, and therefore, present a ventraUy protruding left thorax, so that the left bronchus is thrown close to the thoracic surface. The author has observed this mistake in diagnosis many is
times, especially as incident to the anaesthetizing of
persons for surgical purposes. Relating to
remove occlusion
of nerve stimulus to
the heart is to be particularly directed to the third thoracic
nerve trunks, the eighth cervical area, the fifth cervical center and the suboccipital or first, second and > third cervical areas.
By
the correction advised, primary release
is
given
to the third thoracics, but incidentally to the second
and
fourth thoracic trunks also, and particularly for the purpose of controlhng the rhythmic beat of the heart, primarily the eighth cervical trunks, but incidentally
ABNORMALITY OF THE HEART
219
the release of the so-called feetward cervical ganglia thus releasing the visceral thoracic trunks, rearranged
through that center. Corrections at the fifth cervical center are for the
but are to release thoracic nerves rearranged through
release of the middle, so-called, cervical ganglion,
those ganglia extending to the heart.
Correcting relation of the atlas, axis, and third from releasing cervical nerves, has the
cervical, aside
influence of
also
releasing
the headward, so-called,
which in fact release thoracic nerves through these ganglia and extending to the heart. In addition to these objects, the cervical release indicated, releases the Aasceral branches of the cervical nerves, which extend up inside the duramatral theca, entering the sheaths of the pneumogastric nerve trunks in the jugular foramina and thus extending to cervical ganglia,
rearranged
the heart.
By the means aheady indicated, visceral nerves extending to the cortical areas of origin of the pneumogastrics released, thus releasing nerves extending through those sheaths to the heart, and also specifically releasing the trunks of the pneumogastric in relation ventrally with the first, second and third cervical
are
vertebrae.
Release at the
fifth cervical
release the diaphragm,
to relieving the heart.
which
is
center also serves to essential
many
times
CHAPTER XXI VASCULAB ABNORMALITY
—Inflammation—Catarrh— Hemorrhage—Aneurism. —Puerpera Negative Rupture — — Hemorrhagica Lymphangitis.
Affirmative : Congestion
Arteriosclerosis
:
At the outset, the student should turn back, and read the introductory paragraphs of the preceding chapter, for what is there said, in connection with the affirmative and negative phases of the heart, applies equally to the tissues of the vascular system. The in the
observations in this connection
must be divided
mind
of the student into a discussion of (1) arteries, (2) veins, (3) capillaries, (4) lymph vessels and (5)
lymph
glands.
While the subject
is
thus divided,
it
will
not be
necessary to specifically discuss the phases of tissue abnormality that can occur in cormection with each of these, for they are precisely similar.
It will be necessary in this chapter, however, to dififerentiate as to
same pecuharly lymph glands.
some important
propositions, as the
relate to capillaries,
lymph
vessels
and
CONGESTION Congestion occurs in any part of the vascular system, to which the nerves are occluded. It will be seen that since the vascular system
is
VASCULAR ABNORMALITY
221
co-extensive with the entire organism, anything like
whole subject is an impossibiUty, and the theme can only be treated in the most general way. The student will understand that in order to know a
specific discussion of the
what vascular area tissue abnormahty is occurring he must be able to extend his investigations from the in
area of vertebral occlusion to subsequent areas of and to the periphery of the nerves involved.
occlusion,
This is sometimes a simple procedure, and sometimes a very complex one. However, if the student is proficient in anatomic palpation, he will never be at a loss in his effort to reach the correct diagnosis.
INFLAMMATION Inflammation, of course, always occurs in the affirmis congestion, and the locations of inflammation wiU be co-extensive with those of
ative phase, where there
congestion. The difficulty here, as elsewhere, occurs because of occlusion of stimulus to the area; congestion within the area, which serves to change the formula of chemistry, producing an irritant, which causes motor reaction, cortical
and area,
therefore, concentration
increasing
vibration,
from a wider and therefore,
friction, resulting in superheat.
Inflammation could not occur without a lessening of
and an increase of disintegration in the which prepares the way, and renders necessary
assimilation, area,
an increased elimination.
CATARRH Inflammatory catarrh situation
just
referred
is
to,
the
name
which
is
of the peculiar
a process of
222
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
depuration of accumulated morbidity incident to congestion and inflammation. In catarrh it frequently occurs that there has been
such a profound disintegration, or breaking down of tissue structures, that, incident to depuration certain complications occur.
HEMOBBHAGE Hemorrhage
is
one of the pronounced complications
that occur as incident to exuding catarrh in the vessels of liquid transportation.
Hemorrhage attention
is
of the kind to
now
which the student's
directed, occurs as incident to catarrh,
where the substance of the capillary walls has been so depleted that the winking valves do not close with normal virility, presenting a certain degree of flaccidity, in which the little mouths or orifices are actually increased in size, so that red corpuscles actually escape
through the winking valves. In a hemorrhage of the kind just referred to, it must be remembered that white corpuscles also sometimes escape, but these are not observed, because they lack color, but are observed when blood thus escaped has been permitted to clot. Hemorrhage of the kind just described is stopped when the capillary tissues involved have been rehabilitated, or if the exudation of blood is because of flaccidity or relaxation, when the capillary tissues have been restored to tone. In nearly all phases of hemorrhage now under discussion, release of nerve stimulus to the area, will effect a restoration of tone in the capillaries, sufficient to render their winking valves resistant to the
VASCULAR ABNORMALITY
223
passage of corpuscles. In very rare cases, to secure this result requires mucli time, and occasionally cannot be accomplished. In the other phase of hemorrhage referred to, attention is directed to trauma, and of course, the subject includes
aU phases of exudations
of blood or
lymph
because of injury.
The
injuries referred to, as causing
be bruises,
hemorrhage, may In such injuries
tears, cuts, lacerations, etc.
the capillaries are actually opened, and frequently large vessels.
When
these occur in small capillaries, release
always have the effect of quickly producing lymph and blood clot of sufficient density to stop the abnormal orifices; accommodative anastomoses to supply the permitting area, until rehabiUtation of the injured parts has taken of occlusion to the area will nearly
place.
In the larger
vessels,
however, extraneous assistance
must be lent to the functional office, which is accomplished by ligature, or other means, which artificially closes the open vessels, until they are rehabilitated. In any phase of hemorrhage, release of occlusion to is of the first importance. Incidental hemorrhages need not be considered of much importance, but are always, except when caused
the area
by
direct trauma, indicative of grave tissue difficulty, which need not be overestimated as to gravity, but should always put the person on guard that his
requires specific and judicious attention. Of course, traumatic injury, which results in hemorrhage, should have immediate and controlling
condition
attention.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
224
ANEtTRYSM used therapeutically to express abnormal dilation or enlargement of an artery, but, of course, should also include any blood vessel. Aneurysm is a tissue condition precisely analogous to
Aneurysm
is
a
term,
hypertrophy or dilation of the heart, and as in those conditions, it also follows an inflammatory tissue process, just as dilation in any muscular tissue always follows an inflammatory process.
The
tissue condition called
aneurysm occurs when
marked, and generally to some circ*mscribed part of an artery, in which event it becomes dilated, and in a sense forms a pocket in the occlusion of stimulus
is
artery.
An aneurysm may take place at any area of an artery, but generally occurs at areas easily affected by occlusion. These include the larger arteries near the heart, the abdominal aorta, the carotid arteries, the arteries relative to the knee joint and so forth.
Aneurysm occurring at
its
in the thoracic aorta beginning
ascending portion, furnishes an illustration of
occlusion produced
by
visceral displacement; for the
enlargement of the aorta in this area impinges upon the trachea, and indeed, the mediastinal tissues generally, producing occlusion in the nerves locally, which becomes widespread by motor reaction, resulting in extensive
and occlusion. Therapeutically, aneurysm is described
vertebral constriction
as being (1)
true, or (2) false.
These tissue phases are distinguished in the following manner: true aneurysm is said to be a sac-like dilation in the walls of the arteries, only the walls are unbroken;
VASCULAR ABNORMALITY false aneurj'^sm is said to
be a
225
tissue condition in
which
the coats of the arteries are ruptured, and the surrounding tissues of the artery retains the blood in a pocket.
They may occur
single or multiple, and, of course,
vary
greatly in size.
Generally aneurysms result from the direct influence of occlusion of stimulus to the area, but, of course, they
may be
produced by direct injury to an area, but in
either event there will be specific occlusion of nerve
stimulus to the area; for in the latter case the injury will
serve,
by motor
reaction, to
produce
specific
occlusion.
Aneurysms are (a)
classified
according to their form as
sacculated, (b) fusiform,
These
different
(c)
dessective, (d) false.
names, however, are only intended
and no value.
to give illustrations of the adverse tissue process,
further discussion of
them here would be
of
be observed that the primary danger in that an open rupture in a large artery, not suflBciently exposed to be reached for assistance, may occur, from which the person wiU bleed to death before assistance can intervene. But, of course, the large thoracic, abdominal and other hidden arteries can not be reached in time, if at all, to prevent death. Of course, aneurysm of such gravity as indicated in the preceding paragraph occurs very seldom, and indeed never occurs, if at the incipient symptoms, correction of distortion is performed to remove occlusion It wfll
aneurysm
is
to the area.
Aneiuysm is just as true of the veins as of the arteries, but the therapeutic world has selected different names to indicate the same character of abnormality. The
226
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
weakened condition incident to the inflammatory phase they call phlebitis, and indicate what they call chronic phlebitis, or phlebosclerosis is substantially
identical
with arteriosclerosis. Varicose veins
is
the general
aneurysms of the veins are
title
under which
all
classified.
understand, varicose veins are a sequel to congestion and inflammatory conditions in the veins of a local area, the walls of which have become greatly dilated, and filled with a quasi-stagnant blood.
As the student
will
Distension of the walls of veins of an area is an abnormality which may become so great that in order to secure recovery dissection of some of the masses is necessary.
Generally, however, complete recovery will occur releasing occlusion of stimulus to the area, assisted
by by
taking the weight off the part, which in aggravated cases in scrotum requires the person
to assume
the
recumbent position for several weeks.
THE NEGATIVE PHASE Negative tissue conditions with respect to vascularity and need not be discussed further than to say that they always present a weakened and distended tissue pocket, or weakened parts without distension. are identical with those of the heart,
RUPTURE Rupture
and veins, but especially of with pecuUar frequency as incident to the congestive, inflammatory and catarrhal phases of vessels which have been described in this chapter. of
arteries
capillaries, occurs
VASCULAR ABNORMALITY
227
course, the phase of rupture now under discussion not that which occurs incident to aneurysm definitely speaking, but occurs as the result of injury, or sudden culmination of tissue degeneracy. As has been indicated, in rupture of large vesselsj immediate surgical assistance is indicated. In small vessels and capillaries release of occlusion to the
Of
is
area,
and placing the part so that
gravity will be all that
is
it will
be assisted by
necessary for recovery.
ARTERIOSCLEROSIS
means hardening or thickening, or both hardening and thickening of the walls of arteries and Sclerosis
veins. Sclerosis in the vessels of transportation presents the
very opposite condition from aneurism, but presents differentiated phases of the same nature as those, for instance, enlargement of the liver, and cirrhosis of the liver.
Arteriosclerosis, speaking therapeutically,
confined to the arteries, but there
is
would be
no occasion for such
a distinction, for the same general processes occur both as to arteries
So-called
and
veins.
arteriosclerosis
never
occurs
except
in
persons that are gravely abnormal as to the liver or kidneys. Indeed, the liver
and kidneys,
for that is the
order in which the affection takes place, and, of course,
both of these phases must have been in existence long enough to have become chronic. Sclerosis of the arteries or veins really
amounts to
rheumatism within the walls of such vessels; the areas affected becoming subject to calcareous deposit, so that
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
228
the walls of the vessels thicken and harden, and incidentally
become very
brittle.
The adverse functional effect of arteriosclerosis
is
that
and diastole of the arteries is rendered very much is entirely lost, which has a marked effect upon the blood, and, of course, serves to lessen the lumen of arteries and veins, and depletes their receptiveness to systole less,
or
the necessities of blood transportation. of
Aside from the debility just mentioned, the danger sudden rupture, resulting in fatal hemorrhage, must
be considered.
The symptoms
of these adverse conditions are not
very definite until in their very aggravated stages. Chronic congestion in certain areas is about the most profound symptom. If taken in time, aneurism and arteriosclerosis can be completely removed, but just as in all other abnormal tissue phases, a condition may be reached in which correction will be impossible. These, however, very seldom occur, and if the principles of Chiropractic are applied
when the first symptoms of abnormality appear,
these aggravated phases will never be reached.
PUERPERA. HEMORRHAGICA This phase of abnormaUty is a capillary hemorrhage, and, of course, occurs because the capillary walls are so distended that red corpusclespassoutthroughthewinking valves and may be seen through the superficial skin. This phase of tissue difficulty occiu-s in the subcutaneous and submucous areas of the body. In other words, in the areolar tissue, by which the skin and mucous membranes are attached to their subjacent structures.
VASCULAR ABNORMALITY The phase incident to
229
under discussion occurs as adverse processes, and is always an
of abnormality
many
indication of grave, general tissue abnormality.
Puerpera hemorrhagica never occurs in cases except those in which kidney abnormality is chronic, and has been dominant for a long time. Usually correction should be directed to the release of nerves primarily, but usually the large, digestive glands and quite generally the large glands of the body.
LYMPHANGITIS This
is
name therapy has given to an inflammalymph vessels. The general phases of this
the
tion of the
have been sufficiently covered with respect to aneurysm and sclerosis, that nothing further need be discussion
said in this connection, except as regards
further than to say that
when
lymph
glands,
extensive areas are
acting under pronounced stases from occlusion, there is
lymph hemorrhage, and
which results in
therefore general infiltration,
becoming almost impossible to secure
it
depuration from such areas. Referring the discussion to lymph glands, of course, occlusion results in these becoming more distended by congestion and very inactive, therefore, failing in performance of their paramount function, which is the
production of leucocytes, in which event, if the areas involved are large, there will be a pronounced reduction of leucocytes and, therefore, a great falling off of white corpuscles, which,
continued sufficiently long, will result in a marked lessening of red corpuscles, which simply means failure of depuration, and a progressive toxination.
There
if
will
be a
much more extended
discus-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
230
sion of this phase in connection with venereal disease. Relating to secure release of nerve stimulus, incident to the various phase of tissue abnormality discussed
be directed to securing release of the nerves to the area primarily as they may be interfered with by distortions in the vertebral column, and incidentally as they may be interfered with in their extension to herein, will always
the place of ramification.
In order to illustrate what is here meant; suppose there is aneurysm at the knee, then it wiU not only be necessary to release occlusion at the exit of the lumbar trunks extending to that area, but to release sacro-iliac, sciatic
and fascial
interferences with the nerves of those
trunks, from the point of their exit at the vertebral
column to their periphery. It will be seen that no distinct area can be given, but these must be searched out by the Chiropractor, and for that purpose he must rely upon his anatomic proficiency.
CHAPTER XXII
—AFFIRMATIVE Nose—Pharynx— Croup—Diphtheria—Larynx— Laryngitis— Trachea—Bronchi—Lungs—Pleurisy— Pneumonia—La Grippe—Spanish Influenza RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
The been
affirmative process in tissue abnormality has
sufficiently discussed in the preceding chapters
herein that the
most
superficial review is all that is
necessary in this connection. It will
be imderstood that the phases of abnormaUty
to be discussed in this chapter will begin with the tubes of the nose,
and will follow the tissue walls down through
the pharynx, larynx, trachea, bronchi, bronchioles, atria or infundibula
and
alveoli, or the terminations of
the
and will also include the lungs and their membranous coverings, and linings of the thoracic wall air tubes,
called the pleura.
The phases
of abnormahty discussed herein are based fundamentals; occlusion of nerve stimulus, upon the causing congestion and inflammation, resulting in such pronounced changes in chemical formula in the area
affected as to lessen assimilation, increase disintegration
and at the same time increase morbid
retention.
The changes in chemistry referred to amount to an irritant, which serves to produce motor reaction and the concentration of stimulus from a wider cortical area to the area affected, resulting in an increased friction, and therefore, elevated temperature, for it will 231
be remem-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
232
bered that all affirmative phases are accompanied by elevated temperature.
NOSE all of the adverse processes that can occur anyin the respiratory tissues of the nose, yet, occur where, generally speaking, about the only phase that is credited
While
to it
is
that of catarrh. However,
it
must be remembered
that under occlusion of stimulus to the nose, congestion, inflammatory catarrh,
and
it
undergoes exuding
finally
catarrh.
The
tissue
changes,
effected
in
the nose, result
frequently in scar tissue formations,
and polypi
or
fungus growths, in changes of the relations of the walls of the nose by constriction incident to occlusion, thus immediately affecting respiration. Each of the various phases of abnormality discussed express their pronounced symptoms by their presence and the influences they have on respiration. It is the duty of the Chiropractor to remove occlusion to the nose, and to secure such regulation of its shape as to remove all impediments to inspiration primarily, and respiration generally.
PHARYNX
The various phases of abnormahty that occur in the pharynx have been discussed. It is only necessary in this connection to refer to the same, and call attention to the fact that the pharynx is frequently, as it were, the theatre of the war in respiratory difficulties. As has already been stated, under occlusion of stimulus, the pharynx is an area of congestion, inflammation
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY may
233
a majority of cases be referred to as adenoiditis. However, the pharynx is the seat of many phases of abnormaUty of a grave type, and these should be discussed in this connection.
and catarrhal
condition, which
in
CKOTJP
Croup
an acute, inflammatory process occurring in chronically abnormal tissue of the pharynx. The pecuUar symptoms presented by croup are congestion, inflammation and swelling of the true tonsils, the isthmus of the fauces, and the relative structures of the tonsillar ring. There is a proliferation of what really constitutes a fungus; gray in color, and not dissimilar to is
that found in so-called diphtheria. If the gray
membrane
be found that the underlying surfaces, however, are not so red nor inflamed as those is
forcibly removed, it will
in diphtheria.
The croup accumulation
usually occurs very rapidly,
and the great danger of croup
is
that the person will
strangle to death, because of occlusion of the air passage.
Incident to the croupous accumulation, the cervical tissues are in
a state of profound constriction. The
longitudinal muscles of the neck are also profoundly constricted,
and
this constriction extends
down to about
the eighth thoracic vertebra.
In the young child (and croup
is
nearly always
confined to children), there wiU be an acute kyphosed area,
extending usually from the
thoracic
vertebra,
incident
to
first
the
to
the fifth
intensity
of
constriction.
The
relating indicated is release of the cervical con-
striction
by the
longitudinal traction,
and the reduction
234
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
of the acute kyphosis
by the broad hand
contact,
and
usually these procedures with proper attention to the pharynx, which will sometimes require removing the accumulations from the throat, will be sufficient.
DIPHTHERIA Diphtheria really comes within the classification of constitutional abnormality, although its pronounced and most noticeable symptoms occur in the throat.
must be remembered that the adverse process is incident to a chronic abnormality of the kidneys, and It
the adverse glandular phases that occur as incident to
motor reaction therefrom which serves to produce occlusion of nerves to the thyroids, and the lymph gland areas of the whole cervical region. Diphtheria presents a great range of gravity, from only a slight temperature, with soreness of the throat, to a process of such intensity as to soon result in death. Generally the onset of the phase is sudden, occurring by pronounced chill, which is soon succeeded to by a high fever, which will always be of a gravity proportionate to the gravity of the chiU. Diphtheria almost always occurs in children; has been observed, however, in adults, but it never occurs in any person, except those suffering from hereditary or congenital kidney abnormality of a chronic type. The throat aspects are manifested by swollen lymph tissues, and the mucous membrane generally, which is red and covered with a thin, gray substance, called the diphtheritic membrane, which, if the case is grave, soon becomes thick and tough, and of a whitish or ashy color. This so-called membrane is simply the solid residue
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
235
from the gland tissues of the and of course varies much in different cases. In graver cases it forms an unbroken sheet over the tonsils, and back of the throat, sometimes almost obstructing the respiratory passage, and occasionally entirely so. of catarrhal elimination
throat,
In milder cases it only appears in patches over the. tonsils and back of the throat. If the gray or ashy colored diphtheritic membrane should be suddenly torn, there will be observed a bright red and bleeding surface, over which new membrane will be quickly reformed. In connection with theformation of this membrane, it wiU be remembered that there is swelling of the parotid glands,
and of the cervical glands,
and' also inflammation of the larynx.
Diphtheria so-called is unquestionably of environmental origin. It frequently occurs sporadically, but
many
times in epidemics.
demics,
it is
But when
it
occurs in epi-
nearly always confined to circ*mscribed
territory.
The
therapeutic world does not profess to present a
means for its cure lies in what they consider to be a preventive, or prophylactic injection of a serum called anti-toxin. cure for diphtheria. Their
Statistics plainly show that anti-toxin does not prevent diphtheria, and also that the disastrous effects of its inoculation are very much more widespread and
injurious than
is
the so-caUed diphtheria.
In connection with anti-toxin, laymen should know enough about the body to understand that a poison can not be injected into it that will have the effect of purifying it, and they know that the thing to be altogether desired, to remove any abnormal phase, is to
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
236
from the body. Nothing more absurd or destructive than the serum theory has ever been devised or promulgated. In diphtheria in children, the longitudinal traction properly applied to the neck, with the broad hand release of the headward thoracic kyphosis will be all that is necessary except the further release of the kidney nerves, and usually stomach nerves, becaus€( there will be motor reaction from the kidney area to the stomach. In addition to these, however, careful attention should be given to the throat, and if the membrane is formed so rapidly as to encroach upon respiration, it should be removed by direct means. It can usually be swabbed from the throat, but in any event, it must be kept from interfering with respiration, until, by relating, the nerves are released, in which event it will begin to disintegrate under the reparative
remove
toxins
all
influences incident to restored function.
LAKYNX
The phases
of abnormality of the larynx are very
numerous, since that organ has such a multiplicity of The student, however, will keep
functions to perform. in
mind that
this discussion
is
particularly directed to
respiration.
However, in incident
to
must be said that inflammation, inflammatory
this connection it
congestion,
catarrh, there will be
many
disturbances of speech;
the most pronounced of which
Aphonia
is loss
is
that called aphonia.
of voice. This occurs as
a result of
inflammation, constriction, and flxation of the vocal is impossible to properly vibrate the
processes, so that it
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
237
and direct it against the resonant apparatus head in such way as to produce voice. The pecuhar changes that take place in the vocal processes in aphonia result in their being too closely approximated, in which event sound is produced which will be but a squeal, or of their being constricted but too widely apart so if any sound be produced, it will be but a gurgle. Sometimes the constriction and fixation is so great that no sound of any kind can be produced. Of course, the larynx is subject to exuding catarrh, not only from its own walls, but from the tubes below, which must be discussed in connection with other phases. expiring air, of the
LARYNGITIS
aU of the phases of abnormality of the larynx come under that very comprehensive term, which simply means an inflammation of the larynx. Practically
Or, in other words, stimulus, congestion
it
is
the result of occlusion of
and inflammation
of the tissues of
the larynx.
This phase qf abnormality
by what
is
is
frequently brought about
ordinarily called catching cold, but
is
many
by abnormal and straining uses of has been called name was apphed when it was the custom for preachers
times brought about
the larynx. For this reason it " clergyman's sore throat." This
many
years ago,
to labor at eloquence, which has happily fallen into disuse.
Occlusion, causing laryngitis third thoracic nerves, tion
and nerves
is
of
of the fourth
and
immediate ramifica-
from the pneumogastric trunks.
In order to release the area immediately feetward to the skull, and therefore, to release the nerves ramifying
238
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
the larynx from that area,
it is
sometimes necessary to
produce dorsal movement of the first three cervical vertebrae, thus releasing the thoracico-cervical ganglia, and the pneumogastric trunks. Many times laryngitis occurs because of irritation that peculiarly centers at the kidney areas, or the liver
from both, and when this application is apparent, not orJy must the primary irritation be removed, but occlusion of these areas, so that reaction from these centers through the nerves areas,
and many times,
of course,
ramifying the larynx will be aborted.
TEACHEA Of course,
it
must be
well understood that the tissues
of the traches are involved in all of the various phases of difficulty of
any
of the other tubes of the body,
peculiarly other air tubes. Therapy has not differentiated in the
naming
of phases of abnormality of the trachea.
It goes without saying that tracheitis, being Chiro-
practicly translated, simply
means that there is occlusion
of the nerves to the trachea, resulting in inflammation
with an elevated temperature, succeeded to by inflammatory catarrh, and finally by exuding catarrh. However, all these phases are generally treated of therapeutically under abnormality of the bronchi, and will be discussed in that connection.
BRONCHITIS Bronchitis is an acute inflammatory phase of abnormality affecting chronically abnormal bronchial tissues. This is not the therapeutic conception, but is the simple
truth about the matter.
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
239
Therapeutically, bronchitis has been given a verybroad scope, and includes the entire bronchi, bronchioles, alveoli, all
and
inf undibula,
which, of course, would include from the
of the phases of respiratory abnormality
beginning of the trachea down. No real assistance to the student
is
accompUshed by
discussing bronchitis further than to call attention to
the fact that
many times inflammatory
processes of the
and bronchi do occur, which only to a slight involve the atria and lung tissue. extent The paramount symptoms of bronchitis are expressed in what people generally call a deep cold. This sense of a deep cold is usually accompanied by great constriction and rigidity of the muscles of the upper part of the neck, and the headward part of the thorax, accompanied by a feeling of soreness and rawness in the tubes trachea,
themselves.
At the first onset of bronchitis
there is usually a hacksometimes quite painful. The process always begins by a sense of chill, and with the chilly sensations there is an elevated temperature. In graver cases the chill is pronounced, and so is the accompanying fever. There wiU be evidences of congestion in the fore ing cough, which
is
part of the brain, the eyeballs, and tissues of the orbit. Release of nerves to the trachea and bronchial tubes will usually serve to reduce this process in a short time. Relating cervical,
cervicals,
is
and
addressed to the fourth thoracic, eighth first, second and third
incidentally the
because of the influence constriction at these upon the nerves rearranged through the
areas cast
cervico-thoracic ganglia, gastric trunks.
and
also
upon the pneumo-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
240
LtTNGS
Many
phases of abnormality occur in the lungs, and these really should have specific attention, but if the student wiU remember that all phases of tissue abnormality that occur anywhere, can occur in the tissues of the lungs,
he
will
not be without assistance.
The incipient, acute, inflammatory phases of abnormality of the lungs
have not been described therapeutically.
Incipient phases of abnormality of the tissue of the
lungs occurs as incident to occlusion of stimulus, congestion, inflammation
and inflammatory catarrh,
in lung subsequent exuding catarrh. the As to these phases the therapeutists have satisfied themselves by classifying them as colds, and it is only when the phases become pronounced and the exudation profound that they have any resort to specific names. tissue, with, of course,
Some
of these are discussed herein,
and some
in subse-
quent chapters.
PLEUKISY Therapeutically, pleurisy has been discussed as being
an inflammation
of the pleural
membrane
fining, the
thoracic cavity, that covering the lungs, or both. Of course,
it is
perfectly clear that pleurisy
kind, but that
it
is
nothing of the
may be, and usually is an inflammation
of the pleura lining the thorax, in connection with
an
inflammatory process of the intercostal tissues of the
same areas
respectively.
Inflammation of the pleural membrane covering the is completely included in phases of abnormality of the lungs 'per se, and is not involved in pleurisy
lungs
specifically speaking.
— RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY The
general
symptoms
of
pleiirisy
identical with those of so-caUed
are
241 precisely
pneumonia, except
more aggravated intercostal difficulty, with very sharp pain radiated from the region of the nipple to the axilla on the side affected, or both that there
sides
if
is
generally a
the pleurisy
is
double.
In connection with pleurisy neglected, there sometimes occurs an infiltration into the pleural cavities,
and
sometimes becomes so grave that aspiration by a hollow needle securing drainage of the cavity, is employed. However, if the principles of Chiropractic are apphed in anything like the early this
the punctm-e
phases of pleurisy, soon follows.
it
quickly subsides, and restoration
Relating to remove pleurisy
is
precisely identical with
that of pneumonia, and the student subject for advice.
is
referred to that
PNEUMONIA Pneumonia is usually classified as an acute congestion and inflammation of the lung tissue. However, it must be stated that pneumonia would not occur
if
the tissues involved were not already
chronically abnormal
and of indifferent resistance. Pneumonia, usually, if not always, begins with a pronounced chill, which is soon succeeded to by an elevated temperature of equal gravity, which if not properly attended produces a very grave situation.
Some
of the
pronounced symptoms of pneumonia
are hot, dry skin; great sense of thirst; pain in the head
and eyes, with pronounced inactivity of the digestive system; congestion of the face, and generally with a
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
242
on one or both cheeks, all of which symptoms are accompanied by a sense of great rigidity and tonicity of the thorax, accompanied by a dry,
bright, red spot
ringing cough, which occasions the patient
much
pain,
by which he raises no phlegm. The breath is short and labored, while the pulse is rapid and feeblePneumonia may be classed as lobar or lobular. That is, it may eflfect but one lobe specifically or it may eflFect all of the lobes of a lung, and indeed, may be double pneumonia, affecting both lungs. Many phases of pneumonia occur to which therapeutists have given very refined distinctions. It is suflBcient to say that in some phases of pneumonia there
is
others,
much accumulation
of a pus-like formation. In
on account of the breaking down of intertubular wiU be accumulation of blood and lymph
tissue, there
and morbidity in the potential spaces thus produced, and frequently in the more advanced stages there will be infiltrations and dropsical accumulations in the lungs, and many times an infiltration into a cavity, such as occurs incident to pleurisy. in
The proper care of a pneumonia patient is to have him a comfortable bed in a light and comfortable room,
from which the direct rays of the sun are excluded, and into which there is admitted a free passage of air without draft. The temperature should be kept at about seventy-five degrees Fahrenheit.
The
patient should
wear substantially no clothing, and have light covering. Careful attention should be given to the release of the headward four thoracic areas, the eighth and fifth cervical, and in the sub-occipital area with particular attention to the release of the pneumogastric nerve
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
243
trunks at the base of the skull, and to release nerves ramifying the cortical origins of the pneumogastric
nerve trunks, which will almost always be found to be occlusion of kidney nerves, but will also be found to be
those at the liver area.
LA GRIPPE
The name
a sudden, severe, which usually occurs in epidemics during the abruptly changing weather of fall and spring. Just what the irritant is that produces this phase of abnormaUty has not been ascertained, but there is la grippe is applied to
catarrhal
fever,
suflficient
evidence
to
disclose
that
it
is
wholly
environmental.
This phase of abnormality does not only peculiarly affect all of the glands of the body, but also very greatly affects the tissues of the brain; sometimes resulting in almost complete prostration, and occasionally in loss of mentality.
In addition to the general symptoms of a profoimd character, there will be a sensation of profound prostration of the brain, accompanied by inability to perform mental labor, and, of course, in graver cases accompanied by deUrium.
The symptoms of so-called la grippe are generally those aU the organs of the body are involved. It because of this fact that frequently individuals suffering from this phase continue to grow worse, and are
indicating that is
by
therapeutists to develop other diseases. person affected in this manner should be immediately put to bed in a warm, dry, comfortable room, with plenty of free air, which should not be permitted to said
A
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
244 strike
upon the
patient.
There should be a complete
cessation of foods of every kind, unless possibly strained
vegetable broth taken hot, and the patient should have plenty of water. The temperature of the room should be
kept at about eighty degrees Fahrenheit, and the patient should be either kept naked, or with a light gown and only a light sheet for covering. Relating to remove this phase of abnormality it will be observed, must be constitutional and general, and should be performed from two to four times daily. Of course, it will go without saying that release of the nerves to the areas particularly affected is of primary attention.
SPANISH INFLUENZA Spanish Influenza is an acute inflammatory phase, completely epidemic in its nature. Its flrst pronounced occurrence took place in the fall of 1918, and there has been some slight return of it subsequent thereto, but not to any considerable extent. The exciting cause is undoubtedly an atmospheric condition. The therapeutic world, of course, thoughtitwas contagious, but it was clearly demonstrated not to be so. Like la grippe, Spanish Influenza is a general attack and effects all of the glands of the body, and indeed aU of the tissues of the body, but specifically acts upon the muscles of the body. The irritant, whatever it was, had the effect of producing motor reaction with great muscular constriction and fixation, which universaUy centered at the area of the fourth thoracic. Of course, the kidneys and liver were profoundly involved.
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
245
Chiropractors handled these cases successfully.
The
show that over the entire United States, the by death in all of the cases to which Chiropractic
statistics
loss
attention was given was one-tenth of one per cent. In
Oklahoma
City, the fourth city in gravity of this
epidemic, the Chiropractors cared for over half as
many
cases as the entire medical profession without the loss of a single case.
The
relating
attention
in
Spanish
Influenza
is
primarily release at the fourth thoracic area, but of course, release
must be had to all of the large glands, and
attention should be directed to releasing all of the longitudinal
and
large somatic, muscular areas.
CHAPTER XXIII
—^NEGATIVE Nose— Catarrh—Abscess—Asthma—Hay Fever— Emphysema—Empyema—Galloping Consumption RESPIKATOBY ABNOBMALITY
The
negative phase of respiratory abnormality
marked by many pronounced must be here explained.
The
first
tissue conditions,
thing to which the student's attention
directly called
is
the fact that
when abnormal
is
which is
respira-
tory processes have reached the negative phases, there is
always rdarked distortion of the thorax.
The
distortions referred to are peculiar
and usually
striking, and are those changes which have been brought about by muscular, fascial, and ligamentous
constriction incident to the structures of the thorax. It is lateral
common at this stage of abnormality, for the curvature of the ribs to be increased, while the
heads of the costal aspects thereof are approximated, thus markedly widening the chest, and in ratio thinning
it
dorso-ventrally.
This, of course, serves to put abnormal pressure
upon
the viscera dorso-ventrally, and distension laterally, interfering with the nerves ramifying the viscera
by
actually distorting the viscera.
Another marked phase respiratory
abnormality
of
distortion
occurs
in
loss
incident of
to
lateral
rotundity of the ribs, thus diverging the heads and costal aspects, producing " barrel" or " chicken 246
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
247
breasted" condition, which serves to put abnormal pressure
upon the
viscera laterally,
and distension dorso-
ventrally; therefore impinging the nerves by lateral pressure,
and occluding them by traction
dorso-ventrally.
Another marked distortion occurs as incident to the diaphragm particularly, in which, because of chronic constriction of the tendon and median aspects, the is drawn dorso-headwardly, producing repression of the feetward extremities of the sternum, permitting the domes of the diaphragm to encroach upon the lung spaces headwardly and to
enciform cartilage
present a rigidity resistive
to
respiratory function.
By this abnormal conduct of the diaphragm, occlusion is caused by abnormal diaphragmatic headward and dorsal direction, and stimulus by lateral traction of the lung
of nerve stimulus
pressure in a occlusion of tissues.
Distortions of the nose have been sufficiently discussed in the affirmative phase.
only necessary here to call attention to the fact that in the negative phase, respiration is frequently interfered with by distortions in the neck, peculiarly It
is
at the intake of the thorax. It is because of the situations here discussed and pointed out that consumptives present a characteristically distorted thorax.
EXUDING CATABRH Catarrh has been sufficiently discussed with respect and also the trachea; for exuding catarrh is a sequence to inflammatory catarrh and always occurs incident to any chronic, affirmative to the nose, pharynx, larynx
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
248
process. Its aggravating phases
become pronounced, and smaller tubes
however, when of the lungs. It is the catarrhal discharge that sets up that functional depuratory process ordinarily called coughing. Of course, inflammatory catarrh will accomplish that result, but it is only in the chronic and exuding form that it becomes prolonged and pronounced and applied to the bronchi
exceedingly destructive.
The
process of coughing while
assistive,
may
as easily
become
it is
intended to be
destructive; for
it is
accomplished by muscular paroxysm, which has direct influence upon the vertebral column, and intercostal areas, to say nothing of the diaphragm, and where individuals form the habit of coughing they are sometimes very depleted by its effects. It sometimes occurs that catarrhal exudation is so excessive as to seriously affect the intertubular tissues, inducing a series of adverse processes.
ABSCESS Abscess occurs as incident to the atria of the lungs, where stases become complete. Generally such abscesses break down, and discharge from the tubes the substance being depurated in the ordinary way. Sometimes, however, abscesses are so prolonged and numerous, as to seriously injure the tissues of the ;
intertubular areas, introducing other pronounced defects.
EMPHYSEMA Following abscessed conditions, the cell partitions are frequently broken down and disintegrated to such
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
249
an extent as to make spaces around the atria; that is to say, the partitions between the alveoli disintegrate so as to leave large air cavities. This condition
is
called
emphysema.
The pronounced symptom of emphysema is that it requires much more time and effort on the part of subject to expel air than to inspire
it.
In
whereas longer time
this phase,
ordinarily inspiration requires a very
much
than expiration, the process is reversed, and expiration requires more time than inspiration. Usually as a corroborating symptom, the whistling sound of the air being forced from the large cavities can be heard by placing the naked ear over the thorax, and can usually and easily be heard with the stethoscope. This phase of abnormality used to be considered beyond help, but where the case has not gone too far, the application of the principles of Chiropractic wiU usually entirely restore the patient.
The author has seen a number of cases that were indeed in very grave condition fuUy restored. As would be expected, however, restoration requires considerable time, and very careful and regular corrective application. Asthma and hay fever are fully discussed under "Combination Abnormality" in Chapter XXIX and therefore, will receive
no further notice at
this time,
other than the statement that frequently the incipient phase of emphysema appears under what is called bronchitis and asthma. However, when asthma has been discussed, it will be fully understood why this statement is
true.
However, inspiration
must be remembered that in asthma, performed with great labor, and is very
it
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
250 labored reverse
compared with expiration, while the very true of emphysema,
is
EMPYEMA Incident to abscess within the lungs, frequently there what is called empyema, which simply signifies
occurs
pus in a cavity. In such situations,
it
intertubular,
tissue
be understood that the is breaking down and disintegrating, and because it does not find an avenue of escape is transmuted into pus, and can only escape when disintegration has occurred into some tube. The pronounced symptom of empyema is what is called septic fever; that is to say sudden chill, and rise of temperature sometimes without any apparent cause, but is the result of accumulation of pus, which always cellular
will
same character of symptoms when it anywhere occurs in the organism. It must be remembered, however, that in empyema the rise of temperature will be more sudden and pronounced, and sometimes prolonged, because of the character of tissue in which it occurs. In other words, on account of its occurring in what is called " vital tissue." introduces the
GALLOPING CONSUMPTION In this phase of tissue condition of the lungs, it will be observed that by reason of decreased assimilation,
and retention of morbidity, because of an ever-widening and intensifying occlusion of stimulus to the area, the tissues are weak, distended, increased disintegration,
flaccid
and
invirile,
resistant substance.
and are composed
of a very non-
RESPIRATORY ABNORMALITY
251
Galloping consumption so-called only occurs in those persons of chronically or hereditarily weak lung construction. It is a phase of abnormaUty that is frequent in the children of inbred parents. It also frequently
occurs in the children of parents that were improperly
mated. It sustains
no
relation to
what
tuberculosis, further than it is
is
ordinarily called
a breaking down of lung
and in its no tubercles. It is just a progressive, incipiency there are tissue.
But
its
processes are very rapid,
rapid degeneration to a usually fatal result. If the case has the principles of Chiropractic applied at
its
very incipiency,
it
patient restored. However,
may be if
checked, and the the process has gone on
much
lung tissue has been disintegrated that reasonably good aeration cannot be accomplished, the
until so
case will be fatal. If alimentation is reasonably good, the diet of
patients should consist of one simple
such
and nutritious food
administered at a time, not to exceed three times a day.
The
patient should, of course, have the best of sur-
roundings, being kept dry and exposure,
and as quiet as
warm, and
free
from
all
possible.
The environment should be
as congenial as possible,
and be a mountain valley about two thousand feet above the sea, and land-locked, where the temperature has very therefore,
little
usually, the best location will
variance.
remove abscess of the lung, emphysema, empyema, and galloping consumption will be to correct the relation of the fourth and third thoracic centers; the eighth cervical, and first thoracic areas; the fifth Relating to
252
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
and sixth cervicals and the and third cervical areas.
The
suboccipital, or
correction referred to
releasing the
is
first,
second
for the purpose
of
headward thoracic nerve trunks, and the
thoracico-cervical ganglia located in the cervical region.
Also to release the nerves of the spinal accessory, which extend through the pneumogastric trunks. Incidentally also to release the phrenic trunks so as to secure release
of the diaphragm.
To secure still further thoracic release, it will be found necessary to relate the vertebrae at the liver area, and to fxu-ther relaLx the diaphragm it will be frequently found necessary to perform relating at the eleventh and twelfth thoracic areas. It will also be necessary to secure active depuration
through the kidneys, as well as the small intestine.
CHAPTER XXIV ABNOKMALITY OF SKIN Under the caption
of "diseases of the skin" thera-
two hundred. This, and very deceiving.
peutists designate something over of course, is very erroneous
be understood that there is skin abnormality, which means change in the chemistry, size, form, shape and relation of the formative particles but the pathology is all one, expressed in a multitude It must, of course,
of phases.
AbnormaUty
of the skin presents the
two phases that
have been so carefully discussed several times in this work the affirmative and negative and these will be only briefly noted separately herein. As a prefatory thought to any discussion of the skin, the student must remember that the skin, taken altogether, presents the most extensive depuratory system of the whole organism. Indeed, there are large portions of the body to which the skin is the only means of depuration and eKmination, except that which incidentally takes place through lymph movement. In the ordinary sense it is the function of the skin to eliminate gases and certain liquids from the peripheral lymph areas of the body, particularly the subcutaneous, submucous and subserous areolar tissues, and the student will remember that this function is very comprehensive when he carefully takes into account the whole organism.
—
—
253
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
254
understand how extensively pathology of the skin affects the whole organism, when he remembers that under the pathologic process incident to skin abnormality, the lining of all the vessels and tubes of the body, with their subjacent structures may be involved, which will include arteries, veins, capillaries, lymph vessels, bladders, sacs, (which includes the urinary and gall bladder with their several tubes) the ventricles of the brain, the meninges of the brain and cord, together with the sinuses and antri of the head,
The student
and
all
the
will
marrow
cavities of bones,
and the lymph
glands and subcutaneous tissues of the whole body. It must be remembered that abnormality of the skin
seldom,
if
universally
by itself, but that it is almost outward expression of some grave
ever, occurs
the
abnormality of the viscera generally, or some part of it especially, but more particularly and specifically it is the expression of grave visceral, glandular abnormality. Pathology of the skin caimot be understood untU the student has a very comprehensive knowledge of the pathology of the glands of the body, but especially of the large visceral glands, and the student is cautioned in this connection that whenever he is called to observe a grave skin condition, he must always have in mind that there is a correspondingly grave visceral skin
and act accordingly. The paramount proposition
condition,
in connection with the pathology of the skin for the student to remember is that, when the skin is abnormal it in ratio ceases to perform its depuratory function to the body, and in that
sense becomes destructive
within the body toxins,
by enveloping and keeping which have no other means of
ABNORMALITY OF SKIN escape except through
the
other
three
255 depuratory
channels, which in such conditions are usually deficient in conduct.
Skin abnormality, therefore, is always a very profound study for the student, not only because the conduct of the skin is so important in normal function, but because the skin in function is so closely connected with all other phases of pathology that its conduct is a subject of great diagnostic value.
AFFIRMATIVE PHASE
The
many with
affirmative phase of skin abnormality has in
instances already been disclosed, for in connection
all
of the organs so far discussed, there has been
general reference to the inflammation of the serous
membrane. Therefore,
connection
all
mucous and
that was said in that
apropos of this discussion. taken in their order are, occlusion of stimulus to the area, congestion in the area of occlusion, followed by inflammation and inflammatory catarrh. These various expressions represent all of the phases of the affirmative process.
The
is
steps, then, to consider,
Of course, it must be understood that many of the phases of skin abnormality that are incipiently affirmative, finally continue into the negative phase, and in that particular sense it is not important to designate them by names. Generally speaking the phases of skin abnormahty that represent the affirmative process are pimples, fever eczema, ring-worm, favus, nettle-rash, erysipebarber's itch, molluscum, impetigo, exthyma, pempigus, purigo, puritis, sweat rash, rupia, seborrhea. blister,
las, itch,
256
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
To
these there should also be added corns, bunions,
and
the incipient phases of leprosy. Of course, the student will understand that all of the names just enumerated are only those given to fanciful differences,
and actual
differences in appearance of these
processes as they occur in individuals, but he will under-
stand that they are aU phases of the inflammatory and inflammatory catarrhal processes of the skin, at least at their incipiency, and until they have become grave and chronic. Of course, it wfll be understood that several of the phases mentioned are only the outward appearance of a very profound, constitutional, glandular abnormality, and must be so considered. Lupus is one of these. So is that phase called molluscum. Leprosy, as is well known, is classified as a skin disease, but the skin phases of that abnormality are but the outward symptoms of a profound, adverse, glandular process.
In this connection it is well to remember that there is no doubt that in its incipiency leprosy can be corrected by the proper and faithful application of the principles of Chiropractic to the case, as certainly
and
as easily as
any other phase of abnormality. In making the preceding statement, the author wants it understood that so far as he knows so-called leprosy has not come under the application of the principles of Chiropractic, and therefore, no specific demonstration can be ally first
will
cited,
but
it is
the author's intention to person-
make a demonstration
in
a case of leprosy at the
opportunity, and he fully believes that the all that he expects.
resiilt
be
It goes without saying that in the affirmative process
ABNORMALITY OF SKIN
257
the peculiar changes in the color and relation of the elements composing the skin that have been observed, from jaundice, that accompanies spleen
we have
and
all of
copperish-brown of socalled Addison's disease, and the piebald condition incident to abnormality of the suprarenals in connection with the liver and kidney, and indeed all other phases liver abnormality, to the
of discoloration.
There is
also presented all the different changes in the
and the peculiar changes and the structures result-
thickness of the skin; swellings, in the
subcutaneous
tissues,
ing in that horrible distortion called elephantiasis.
NEGATIVE PHASE
The negative phase
in skin abnormality
is
precisely
phase anywhere. The tissue conditions that began in congestion, inflammation and inflammatory catarrh, are succeeded to by exuding catarrh, by distension and by dilation, usually accompanied with pallor, flaccidity, and marked phases of discoloration. Of course, in the negative phase the conduct of the skin has been more pronouncedly depleted, and therefore, a still greater burden is placed upon the other three depuratory channels, with the result that there is always a greater general retention of morbidity within the identical with the negative
and continuing intensity abnormahty, as well as those of the organism,
Practically all of the phases
of
all
phases of
skin.
named as being
at their incipiency, to the affirmative process,
incident,
may appear
and graver conditions in the negative phase. The phases therapeutically named, which indicate
in chronic
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
258
the negative phase, in addition to those already referred to, are liver spots, fish skin, piebald skin, fatty tumors,
tumors, subaceous tumors, dry teter, abnormal finger nails, and the advanced phases of bimions, corns, warts, and other fungus growths. Some of these phases require a Kttle further discussion, and for that purpose similars
be discussed together. For instance, dry teter, fish skin and abnormal finger
will
nails
identical.
practically
are
The phases
just
mentioned occur as incident to chronic occlusion in is a lack of liquidity, accompanied by an elimination of toxins of a nature to render nerve termi-
which there
nals inanimate. This
and
is
especially true as to dry teter
be understood that in be pronounced vaso-motor
fish skin. It will, of course,
these conditions there will occlusion.
Abnormal
finger nails
are the direct
symptoms
of
prolonged chronic occlusion of the nerves of the brachial plexus, peculiarly those which extend to the ends of the phalanges.
Abnormal
finger
nails
therapists to indicate tuberctilar
or
may
by conditions. They may,
have
been
declared
on where occlusion centers to However, it must be admitted that
not, depending
cause tuberculosis. incident to
all
the process
lung abnormality, especially of the apices,
is
accompanied by abnormal finger
nails
because of marked occlusion at the brachial plexus. But it must also be remembered that abnormal finger nails occur as incident to many other phases of process, peculiarly motor reaction incident to orificial abnormality. Piebald skin is a peculiar phase of abnormality, which occurs as incident to a lack of distribution of pigment.
ABNORMALITY OF SKIN and
is,
therefore, a
symptom
259
that the suprarenal glands
are not acting normally, which, of course, never occurs
by itself, but occurs as incident to general glandular abnormahty of a grave type. Bunions grow as incident to rheumatoid conditions in certain joints, peculiarly the metatarso-phalangeal
Bunions never occur except in those who have grave kidney abnormality. Corns are a negative phase of skin condition, subsequent to an inflammatory condition, in which a
joint of the great toe.
proliferation
of skin cells
of
a giant character are
must be understood that so long as the corn remains, there is, accompanying the negative phase as an incident, an affirmative inflammatory one. Itch, barber's itch and ringworm may be present in the negative phase, and are always the result of an attack of germs of prey. They may only be removed, therefore, by an external application to them which will destroy the germ life, and this for the reason that it produced. Of course,
is
it
impossible to apply the principles of Chiropractic to
them
since they are outside of the functional process
of the body.
The student should imderstand in this connection that the statement made in the last paragraph is true of all other attacks by germs of prey, such as vermin of one type or another, or of those germs of prey which attack the skin, or deeper tissues of the body. Many other phases of the affirmative and negative process of skin abnormahty wiU be taken up in connection with other subjects, and particularly incident to venereal abnormality. Orificial abnormality, as it affects the skin, has been discussed.
260
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Relating to remove skin abnormality must, of course, be addressed to release of nerves ramifying the area
must be stated in this connection that in a general way in order to remove skin abnormality address must be incidentally to release nerves to the large gland areas. Usually the paramount of these are the kidneys, suprarenal glands, spleen and liver. However, many other skin areas come in for consideration, but they will be more specifically referred to in coninvolved. However,
it
nection with the organs necessarily discussed with them.
CHAPTER XXV
—UEINARY SYSTEM
ABNORMALITY
Discussion of the Affirmative and Negative Phases
The organs of the urinary system constitute one of the four principal depuratory channels of the organism. would be impossible to go into all of the details and abnormahty of this system in a way to be of value to the student. A complete discussion of the pathology of the urinary system woxild be very nearly a discussion of aU the phases of abnormahty which occur, but would especially require a discussion It
ramifications of the effects of
of all phases of fever, practically all pathological con-
pain and in which there is irregularity of muscular function. The discussion ditions in
which there
is
be more particularly directed to the actual pathology of the organs involved, with cerhere, therefore, will
tain reference to other phases of reaction.
The
world
knows very
about urinary abnormality until it becomes so grave and general in its nature as to demand attention and to be nearly, if not quite, impossible of correction. It is well known that no deviation from normal performance of the urinary organs can occur without the tissues involved in that performance being proportionately abnormal, and therefore, the slightest deviation in function proves organic abnormality to exist. Occlusion of stimulus here, as elsewhere, causes abnor-
mal
therapeutic
little
tissue conditions, presenting adverse processes.
261
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
262
THE AFFIRMATIVE PHASE Congestion occurs in any area in the urinary
tract to
which the nerves are occluded. Congestion, then,
may
occur in the kidney, in the pelvis of the kidney, in the Almost at once
ureter, in the bladder, or in the urethra.
is another marked phase of conduct which must be discussed.
following congestion there
INFLAMMATION Inflammation occurs in the aflBrmative phase in an area in which congestion has occurred, resulting from irritation, superinduced by congestion, so that, by motor-reaction, nerve stimulus is concentrated from a wider area, resulting in an increased friction and elevated temperature. It will be seen that inflammation may occur at any place in the urinary tract, but, of course, are
its
symptoms
more marked when it occurs in the substance of the and much more hidden when it occurs in the
kidney,
pelvis of the kidney, the ureter or the urinary bladder,
becoming more marked
should occur in the urethra, especially in the prostatic part of it in the male. if it
The pronounced symptoms of congestion and inflammation of the urinary organs result in a general rise of temperature, but, of course, if the inflammation is of the kidneys it will not be difficult to discover the excessive heat of those organs by palpation of the areas dorsal to them.
There is also a disturbed function of the urinary tract concomitant with incipient inflammation of a marked nature. This is usually presented by a lessening of the urinary discharge. If the inflammation is sudden and
ABNORMALITY—URINARY SYSTEM high, the small
263
amount of urine passed will be clear, and
contain no solids, showing that the kidneys are not
performing their depuratory functions. In later stages, even in the affirmative process the slight discharge of urine may be loaded with gases, so as to be deeply colored.
INFLAMMATORY CATARRH
The
situation stated in the last paragraph
is
incident
to inflammatory catarrh of the tubes of the urinary
system, and the
symptoms here
are usually of a nature
already stated, but the urine discharged may be accompanied by mucous which has partly undergone disintegration from the effect of being suspended in the urine. Usually the inflammatory process is of short duration and of course quickly disappears under the application of the principles of Chiropractic.
SUPPRESSION Frequently, incident to the inflammatory catarrh, which occurs as incident and subsequent to congestion and inflammation especially of the kidney but also of the entire tubes of the urinary tract, there
is
suppression
of the urine.
The suppression just referred to, results because of accumulation of the mucous relative to the urethral orifice in the trigone of the bladder preventing the liquid from passing. In cases of the inflammatory type of the urinary organs, suppression of the urine will be almost conclusive proof of the accumulation of such mucous in the bladder,
and
indicates that careful irrigation, to
mucous, should be performed.
remove the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
264
Irrigation of the bladder
is
accomplished by the use enough to fill the
of a very small catheter, not large
and and continuous stream to flow into the bladder, and at the same time flow out, around the catheter. By this means the mucous can generally be entirely removed, permitting free urination in the urethra, using water of about blood temperature,
allowing a gentle
normal way. UBINALYSIS Therapists have contended very
much
for the use-
what they call urinalysis. There are two very important sides to this proposition. The therapeutic claim is that by an urinalysis they are able to discover what phase of abnormal function is taking place in and through the kidneys. While the author does not intend to wholly deny the force of this proposition, stfll he feels it necessary to call attention to the fact that an urinalysis proves that depuration is being accompUshed, of no matter what
fulness of
character,
The an
from the kidneys.
student, however,
urinalysis,
is
definitely cautioned that
which reveals nothing abnormal,
may
be
the profoundest proof of great abnormality for, of the kidneys are so prostrated as to their functions that they are unable to depurate the subcourse,
stances,
if
an urinalysis cannot be reUed upon to
the exact situation. Indeed,
it
is
disclose
unreliable for
any
a well-known fact that practically any depuratory substance may, under certain accommodative phases, be depurated through the kidneys, purpose, because
it is
the lungs, or skin.
ABNORMALITY—URINARY SYSTEM
265
view of the situation, to find the kidneys depurating a substance which they ordinarily should not, may only be proof of the virility of the kidneys, and that they are undergoing an accommodative function to other organs, which are incompetent. Urinalysis is of no value to the Chiropractor, for he
In
this
has other and better means for determining the degree of abnormality of the kidney. He is able to determine
amount of occlusion of the nerves to the kidney, and the incidental symptoms expressed from occlusion, and therefore, is in position to properly assess abnormaUty of the kidneys, or any other part of the tubes of the urinary system, and does not need other measures. the exact
THE NEGATIVE PHASE In the
tissues of the organs of urinary depuration,
the negative phase occurs just as
it
occurs elsewhere.
After having passed through the period of primary
—congestion, inflammation and inflammatory arrived at the negative catarrh—the tissues have occlusion
finally
phase.
The it
tissues of the area effected, or the
whole tract
if
should be involved, wiU have become distended,
and invirile. There will be great retention of morbidity, incident to profoundly increased disintegration, and lessened assimilation. The symptom
flaccid,
declaring this situation
is
represented in a pathologic
process.
EXUDING CATARBH
The symptom manifested by
exuding
catarrh
declares that the negative phase of tissue condition has
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
266
been reached. Incident to exuding catarrh, in the negative phase of urinary difficulty, there is frequently much disintegration of kidney structure, and solid discharges from the mucous lining of the tubes. Frequently in such conditions there wlU be passages of slime of a milky appearance from the bladder. Occasionally in a case there wiU be a rather excessive discharge of this type. pelvis of the kidney
is
That
is
especially true
if
the
particularly involved. If the tubes
from the kidneys out are not greatly involved, but the kidney substance itself is, then there will be accumulations in the uriae that will look
much
like sand.
An
exuding catarrh of this character and gravity indicates that the kidneys are in a rather grave situation, and should have most careful attention.
DURATION
As
incident to the process of exuding catarrh there
frequently
is
in the tissues of the kidney, pelvis of the
kidney, ureters and bladder, one or
a marked dilation. Where the kidneys are profoundly involved
by themselves, the
dilation
referred
all,
to
frequently
kidney increasing very much in size, sometimes becoming twice the normal size. Such conditions are called dropsy of the kidneys, results in the
and the method is to remove the kidney. However, this is wholly unadvised usually, for by proper attention to diet, and application of the principles of Chiropractic, the trouble can be wholly overcome, and the kidneys restored to their normal consistence, size and function. therapeutically,
ABNORMALITY—URINARY SYSTEM
267
GRAVEL Incident to the exuding catarrhal phase, frequently a
drop of exudate, or sometimes a drop of blood that has escaped, forms the basis of an accumulation
and precipitation
of the solids of urine, resulting in the
formation of a stone-like substance in the pelvis of the kidney which is called gravel. Usually before these have attained
to
a
impossible to pass through
size
the ureter, they descend into the bladder. Sometimes,
however, a gravel assumes such size that it wiU not pass. Usually restoration of the kidney function will serve to deluge the forming gravel in the pelvis of the kidney with normal urine, thus disintegrating it so that it will
pass.
In some very aggravated disintegrate, fills
and
is
cases, the gravel will not
too large to pass, and so completely it is necessary to
the pelvis of the kidney that
remove
it.
However,
this is
not by any means frequent.
STONE IN THE BLADDER Stone in the bladder succeeds to gravel, and
is
is
an adverse process that usually a condition in which the gravel
has descended through the ureter into the bladder. However, stone in the bladder may occiu* in the urinary bladder itself, when there is a tendency to precipitation of calcareous
and other substances ordinarily suspended
in urine.
Relating to remove occlusion of stimulus to the organs of the urinary
system
is
primarily addressed to
the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic nerve trunks.
Of
must be frequently performed in than that named, the order stated
course, the address
different order
268
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
being the usual situation. Incident to the release of nerve stimulus at the locations mentioned; address must also be made to the lumbar areas from which nerves extend
and to the pudic trunks male, and the ovaries and uterus of the female. to the prostatic region,
of the
CHAPTER XXVI VENEREAL ABNOBMALITY
—Gonorrhea—
Leucorrhea Incident to the
many
Gleet
changes of abnormal tissue
condition found in the procreative apparatus, ordinarily called the sex organs, there are three phases that stand
out with peculiar prominence, because of the typical
and individual process
in each.
Notwithstanding the remarkable deviations in the symptoms in each of these characteristic tissue processes, the phases of expression have been named by the therapeutic world as being gonorrhea, venereal ulcer, and syphilis.
The
first
of these processes will be discussed in this
chapter. Venereal ulcer
and
syphilis
wiU be discussed
the following chapter. From the fact that the animals that are wild by nature, and have not been domesticated, do not present phases of abnormality called venereal disease, it is reasonable to conclude that in
there
was a time when the human family was not the
subject of these adverse phases.
However,
it
must be admitted that
history fails to
record the period of the inception of these phases of
abnormahty. The human family has been subject to the adverse tissue conditions called venereal disease so long as there is any authentic record relative thereto.
There are other facts which tend to sustain the conclusion that man, before he entered into the evolu269
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
270
tionary process called civilization, was not subject to these phases of abnormality. These evidences are found in the fact that savage
men of no race or clime have ever
been found presenting any such phase of adverse tissue condition; and it is also found to be true that so soon as savage people mingle with so-called civilized people, least to some extent, the habits of the they become subject to this phase of abnor-
and adopt, at civilized,
mality.
have not been contaminated by civiliised or domestic conditions, can not be inoculated in such manner as to produce venereal disease, and it is only possible to produce the process in domesticated animals most nearly approachIt
is
ing the
also true that wild animals that
human
type, such as the ape, etc.
Be all these things as they may, we are confronted with the terrible fact that the huma,n family is at this time, and has been for many centuries, subject to these deteriorative processes that are the most pronounced " thorns upon our rose of life," and are probably doing the human family the greatest injury of any phase of abnormality incident to the whole social relationship. If it is true that there was a time when the human family did not present these phases of adverse process called venereal disease, then the first case of that character that presented this phase was imdoubtedly the result of a peculiar and characteristic physical degeneracy, which grew out of abnormal sex relationship and sex emotion, incident to incipient civilization. It seems overwhelmingly clear that such was the condition, and such was the incipiency of the process. A careful and impersonal view of the whole field points
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
271
the fact that humanity
degenerated sexually to the production of the phases of abnormality incident to venereal disease. It is clear that this degeneracy is one of the severest burdens the human family bears today. The influence of venereal disease is retarding evolution, and has unerringly
to
increased the production of hereditary tendencies, congenital tissue conditions that will require
and great care
and
much time
for complete eradication.
is much more common than is There are many persons who, during their experience do not present the active phases of this abnormal process, because fortunately they have avoided inoculation, but at this time there are few, if any, persons wholly relieved from the adverse influences of tissue degeneracy directly produced by these adverse
Venereal abnormality
generally
supposed.
by direct heredity or collateral tissue tendency. Proud society attempts to cover these gruesome truths, but the truth is that the influences incident to general venereal abnormality form an adverse tissue
processes
taken in connection with other adverse tissue influences produces multitudinous phases of grave tissue abnormality, prime among which is so-called paralysis, consumption, tuberculosis, locomotor ataxia, insanity, and so on, that sweep from usefulness into untimely graves unnumbered thousands each year in basis, which,
the so-called civilized nations of the world.
One
of the
prepared the
marked phases
way
for
of tissue degeneracy that
venereal abnormality
is
the
anomalous sex organs already discussed in "Orificial Abnormality," Chapter III, to which the student is here definitely referred.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
272
abnormality works in the production of ventwo-edged sword. That is, venereal abnormality is a strong factor in the production of sex orifice anomaly, and sex orifice anomaly is a marked producing phase in the inoculation and production of venereal abnormality. Orificial
ereal possibility like a
LEUCORRHEA if
Venereal abnormality of any phase would be impossible there was not a tissue degeneracy preceding the
specific introduction of the virus, for otherwise the
healthy structures would destroy the effect of the virus, and eliminate it from the body.
The adverse
tissue
condition
necessary
incipiency of venereal abnormality, therefore
for is
sion of nerve stimulus, congestion, inflammation
inflammatory catarrh, which has become chronic to render the of contact
The
membranous
and
sufficiently
surface at the point
open to endosmosis of venereal
chronic inflammatory, and
the
occlu-
still
virus.
more chronic
exuding catarrh in the female has been called leucorrhea it has been called urethral catarrh. The processes are precisely identical. Of course, it is not necessary that these phases of adverse processes shall be of sufficent gravity to be called leucorrhea or urethral catarrh by the therapeutic means of examination, in order to present a recipient condition to venereal inoculation, but the adverse tissue conditions must be while in the male
present.
Purulent leucorrhea, incident to intercourse, was undoubtedly the phase through which the incipiency of venereal abnormality occurred. It is not erroneous to
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
273
suppose that this character of exudation was perhaps produced, but in any event increased, during that period of human history where women were not consulted as to the use of their bodies, but were the prey
men who
The revulsion to sex relation thus imposed would have a marked tendency to produce catarrhal exudates, which, by lack of instant care, of
desired them.
would readily become purulent leucorrhea.
GONORBHEA This phase of venereal abnormality is commonly called " clap." It is an inflammation of the mucous lining of the sex organs of both the male and female, together with their subjacent tissue. In the male gonorrhea particularly affects the tissues of the urethra and the adjacent spongy body of the penis, sometimes including
and even the urinary bladder. In the female the inflammation may be of the mucous hning of the urethra, the vagin*, and may extend into the uterus, and in rare instances into the Fallopian tubes. In either the male or female, in from twelve to thirtysix hours after inoculation there is exuded an excessive mucous discharge, which at first is somewhat clear, but almost at once becomes cream colored, and within a few hours or days, in aggravated cases, becomes a yellowish the prostate gland
green, or moss-green tint.
Therapists have called this discharge gonorrheal pus. By the time it has become really pus it contains a pecuUar, small germ called a gonococcus or micrococcus gonorrhea. This germ is a scavenger, and is incident to the retained morbidity which accompanies the catarrhal tissue condition.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
274
As has been before hinted, the origin of "clap" is more ancient than human history. In society, as at present organized, it is transmitted by inoculation, and usually by unclean sexual intercourse. However, it is possible for inoculation to take place by bringing into contact the fresh pus of gonorrhea with a recipient
mucous surface in such manner as to result in endosmosis. This type of abnormality has been known to be communicated from one female to another from using the same towel after a bath. But from this fact it must not be thought that inoculation of gonorrhea is so easy. hide the means by which this phase of abnormality is transmitted has resulted in much falsifi-
The attempt to
cation and novelty, and, therefore, has resulted in
the
human
family having a very erroneous conception
must be stated in this connection almost universally transmitted by
as to that matter. It
that gonorrhea
is
means of unclean sexual intercourse. As has been before stated, it is not necessary that the female shall be undergoing the process of gonorrhea in order to inoculate the male. The woman suffering from piu"ulent leucorrhea may sometimes inoculate the male with virus of such nature as to produce the typical phase called gonorrhea in him. The author has observed cases in which gonorrhea has
been produced in the husband by inoculation from the wife who was subject to a purulent leucorrhea. He was brought into cognizance of several cases of this kind during the period of his experience as a lawyer, and took pains to investigate to complete satisfaction. So-called gonorrhea is a simple catarrh, and its gravity has been very largely overlooked. Ordinarily in
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
275
abates in a few days if the patient keeps the parts clean, and in position to depurate without any serious adverse symptom. If, however, the pus is forced the female
it
up the urethra
up the vagin* into the uterus, the process may become very complex and dangerous, and if the pus should find its way into the Fallopian tubes, or through them, the situation becomes into the bladder, or
very grave. For,
if
the pus
is
forced into the abdominal
almost sure to follow, which may result in death. However, there is no need of this result if the case has proper care from its incipiency. In the male, the process of gonorrhea is very different, the urethra being a long and constricted tube of from seven to nine or more inches. When swollen it does not furnish an easy means of depuration and it is necessary that the bladder shall be emptied cavity, peritonitis
by passing urine
is
entirely through this tube,
the adverse catarrhal process
is
which
in
not only of a very pain-
but a very irritating one. In connection with the length and small lumen of the urethra, it must also be remembered that the sinus ful nature,
pocularis
is
situated in the floor of the prostatic portion
and contains the orifices of the ejacul*tory and on that account there is considerable danger of pus entering these ducts and inoculating the tissues of the prostate, seminal vesicles, and ducts. In connection with what has just been stated, it must also be remembered that the orifice of the bladder is situated just above the sinus pocularis, and there is of that tube,
ducts,
danger of pus passing into the bladder. It will be seen that by these means prostatic inflammation can be produced, or even inflammation
276
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
wluch is almost sure to bring about the complication of inflammation of the testes on one or both sides, and, of course, pus entering the bladder would produce inflammation of the bladder. The phases just mentioned seldom occur, and need never occur if proper attention is given to the abnorof the seminal vesicles,
mality at
its
inception.
The
wall of the urethra
is
thin,
and the tissue adjacent is loose areolar and lymphoid. During the inflammation period there is often pocketing through the urethral walls into these adjacent tissues, in which event pus may accumulate and pass down between the layers of adjacent muscles, even into the femoral canal of the thighs. In this phase of process, pus sometimes escapes to the surface at the sides of the transversus perinei muscles, and
even back at the sides of the anus Such irritations produce grave motor reaction in other areas with widespread occlusion, which therapeutists call gonorrheal rheumatism. .
The same
character of injury as described in the last
paragraph affecting the male, may occur in the female from the pocketing of pus laterally through the walls of the vagin*, in which event, she also may present what is called gonorrheal rheumatism. The care of gonorrhea is simple and common sense. The parts must be kept clean, taking the utmost precaution not to further spread the pus, and therefore inoculation. The patient should, therefore, be treated exactly as though he, or she, were ill; should be put to bed and kept very quiet; should have no food of any kind, but should be induced to drink plenty of water, and should be related from one to three times a day in the active phase.
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
277
keep the parts cleansed, especially in the male, it will be necessary to use a syringe with some cleansing liquid, usually plain, warm water of blood temperature, being careful on introducing the douche for cleansing purposes, not to let the pus go on
Sometimes
in order to
beyond its present extent. Under proper care usually, if the case is taken at its very incipiency, the active symptoms will disappear in from five to ten days. Of course, in cases that have been neglected, or treated medically, it
may
last
a
much
longer time. Relating to remove gonorrhea primarily consists in securing correction at the second lumbar nerve trunk
In
areas.
addition
thereto
release of kidney nerves
is
usually
necessary,
attention
and
to
practically
always release at the fourth lumbar nerve area is necessary, to remove occlusion from the pudic nerve trunks. Incident to this correction, release of the sciatic ligaments and gluteus maximus muscles, as they apply themselves to the sciatic nerve trunks, and pudic trunks, are necessary.
GLEET Gleet is a dropsical phase of gonorrhea. It only occurs where occlusion has been allowed to extend until the tissues involved have become so degenerated that lymph escapes through them by exosmosis. The phase of abnormality called gleet never occurs
except
when the
at
incipiency,
its
all of
case has not received proper attention
and
therefore, has
passed through
the inflammatory and negative phases, until this
most aggravated dropsical one.
278
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
It goes without saying that gleet
is
a very depleting
process, and should have the most exacting and careful attention. The patient should be kept very quietly in
bed, and be fed carefully selected and nutritious food temperately and should have Chiropractic correction at least once a day.
He
should not be permitted to use
exciters, such as tobacco, and intoxicants, and should not be allowed to undergo any kind of sexual
any
excitation.
Relating to
remove the adverse process
called gleet
should be chiefly constitutional in its nature; for by the time this phase of abnormality has been reached, there
be complete and general debility. However, the primary areas of attention are the same as those in will
gonorrhea, and as to the other locations, the Chiropractor will have to determine
them by
his diagnosis.
CHAPTER XXVII VENEREAL ABNORMALITY Syphilis
The
—Venereal Ulcer
introductory statements
made
in the preceding
very apropos of what must be stated need be said in a social general way of the aspects of the phases of abnormality to be discussed in this chapter, except as they present themselves respectively. As an introductory statement, however, it should be said that with regard to the phases of abnormality to be discussed herein society at large has a great many erroneous conceptions. The most pronounced of these conceptions seem to be the intolerance and lack of sympathy exercised in the attitude toward the unfortunates who are overtaken by these adverse processes. Society confuses the imfortunate victims with the loathsome malady, and hates one as much as the other. Society seems to feel toward the victim of syphilis, or venereal ulcer, that he is very unworthy, and guilty of a heinous form of dereliction, when a majority of
chapter are here,
and
all
therefore, nothing further
human beings are guilty of the same acts by which he made his downfall; the difference being that they were not so unfortunate. SYPHILIS Syphilis
is
confined wholly to the
particularly to civilized or domestic 279
human
man.
race,
and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
280
Therapy claims to have inoculated some of the higher manner as to secure the
orders of apes with pus in such
typical reaction. This proposition, however,
much
doubt, and even
is still
in
has been accomplished, it has been accomplished in the ape degenerated by civilized
modes
if it
of living.
a certain stage of the reaction, a germ called the treponema pallidum or spirochaeta pallida, an organism so small as to be seen only by the use of very great magnification. The therapeutic world thinks that the treponema There appears
in the virus of syphilis, at
palhdum
is the cause of syphilis, because this organism found so frequently in the syphilitic pus. It is perfectly apparent that the disintegrating morbidity produces the germs, and is as fully conclusive that the germs do not produce the pus.
is
The
process called syphiHs occurs in
all
parts of the
civilized world, and no phase of civilized society escapes
it.
a phase, of abnormality that presents its characteristic symptoms more particularly through the lymph system, which is the same as saying that the injury is generally to the minuter parts of the body beyond the It
is
blood capillaries, or in the areas of assimilation and depuration.
The adverse for
discussion
tissue process called syphiUs
into
three
phases
called
is
divided
primary,
secondary and tertiary. These phases will be discussed in this order, but it must be remembered that each phase merges into the next succeeding, so that there is no well-defined line of demarcation between them, and therefore,
these phases only constitute the typical.
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
281
adverse process, which, in the fullest sense is but one. The first phase is that in which the symptoms of the adverse process
first
present themselves.
In order that the student may understand this phase, he must know that this form of typical reaction to poisoning can only occur by the process of inoculation, or in other words, syphilis, so-called, can only be transmitted from one to another by the process of inoculation. Inoculation in the sense here discussed respects a vaccination accomplished
is
in all
by endosmosing
the active pus or virus from a person undergoing the active phase of syphilis into a recipient
lymph area
of
another.
not make the mistake of arriving at the conclusion that in order that this character of vaccination can take place that actual scarification must first be made, but he is to understand that
The student
the
surface,
must
mucous
or
otherwise,
must be
in
an
analogous state of scarification. That is, its integrity must be injured to the extent that it cannot resist the encroachments of the pus or virus. Since the adverse process called syphilis
is
transmitted
through the process of vaccination by syphilitic virus, which, like any vaccination that " takes," is proof that the individual vaccinated
is
abnormal. It
is
well
known
that undergoing this phase of abnormality does not protect against a subsequent inoculation,
the entire process
is
and in
this respect
in alignment with vaccination in
general.
Therapists, to meet with the idiosyncrasies of society, have classified transmission of syphilitic pus as being accomphshed in two ways; what they call syphilis inno-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
282
centum, and syphilis by coitus. It
is
not the intention of
pus is never transmitted the author from one individual to another, producing the peculiar to say that syphilitic
phases of typical reaction, in ways and means wholly aside from sex relation, for he knows that occasionally
such transmission occurs.
For instance, doctors have been inoculated through hand in performing their work. Inoculation has occurred by an abrasion on the lip in a kiss, and so on, but it must be remembered that syphilitic virus is nevertheless very seldom conveyed from one abrasions in the
individual to another
There
is
much
said
by these means. upon this subject, and much
of accidental inoculation is stories of being inoculated
a part of folk
by the same
lore.
fear
The
towel, pipe, or
drinking vessel that another has used, will practically
always be found, upon investigation, to have no basis in fact, but to be stories told for the purpose of hiding social dereliction.
Inoculation in the transmission of syphilitic virus
is
practically always accomplished as incident to sexual intercourse. It is
must not be thought that
syphilitic virus
easily inoculated. Inoculation is just as diflScult as
more and no less so, and it must remembered this phase of abnormaHty can that be only be caused by the transmission and inoculation vaccination; no
during the active pus
forming period of so-called
syphilis.
The
first
proof
of
inoculation
that
occurs
is
that of congestion and inflammation of the area where the inoculation has occurred, which inflammation quickly subsides, because the nerve endings and the
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
283
become inanimate, but remain in a chemical preservation, and between
tissues of the area
strange state of
and the animate
tissue a dense, hard ring Hunterian or hard chancre, and is what the therapeutists call "the initial lesion." The hard chancre is a peculiar and characteristic sore, and its appearance is absolute proof that inoculation of syphilitic virus has taken place. It is a this center
forms. This
is
called the
symptom
paramount value, and the practitioner should become so profoundly acquainted with it as to render a mistake as to it impossible, and once a typical chancre has been seen and felt, the diagnostician need never be in doubt if the sore is where he can feel it. diagnostic
of
The chancre, or sore, is about the diameter of a United States dime, and is generally nearly circular with a considerable thickening of the skin, resulting in an abrupt, raised, red, hard margin, that feels like gristle, and presents the same sense in touch as the so-called " rooter" of a hog's snout. The hard rim of the chancre just described is red at the outer circumference, but pallid on the inside wall, and has an umbilicated center, occupied by a dirty gray, pus-like substance, which has already been referred to as the inanimate tissue elements in the area of the
inoculated virus.
The remarkable part
of the
hard chancre
is
that
it is
not sensitive. There is no sense of pain or uneasiness upon its being handled. It is numb, or feelingless. It is really dead, but, as has
been
said, in a peculiar state of
preservation.
Immediately preceding the occurrence of the chancre
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
284
there are constitutional symptoms, beginning with chill slight fever. However, the most profound symptom that of a sense on the part of the patient of being profoundly abnormal; a sense of being wholly undone.
and is
However, he
is
able to go about, and only experiences
lassitude, weakness,
The symptoms
and sometimes
stated, last
slight nausea.
but for a short time,
chancre appears, these symptoms disappear. At about this time it wiU be observed that the lymph glands in the immediate area of the chancre
for as soon as the
and hard, but they are not painful, and there no general sense of uneasiness accompanying the phenomenon. are swollen is
The chancre always no matter where that lated
by the
occurs at the point of inoculation,
may occur.
If the
pus was inocu-
process of sexual intercourse in the male,
the area usually will be around the margin of the prepuce, or frenum of the penis, while in the female
be at the labia minora relative to the
cl*tor*s,
area along the vagin*l tube, and, of course,
anywhere in the If the
it
may
or at any
may
occur
tissues of the vulva.
chancre as described herein is on the sex lymph glands will be enlarged and
organs, the inguinal
They wiU be slightly painful upon heavy pressure, but otherwise occasion no sense of uneasiness. From the time of inoculation to the complete presentation of the chancre requires from thirty-six hours to several days, and so soon as the chancre is fully presented, the general symptoms subside. The lymph glands, however, wiU remain swollen and hard, and the chancre will remain without any changes whatever for a considerable hard.
period of time.
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY During
this period of
apparent quiescense, which
really is a general period of
whole organism, there in the muscles
and
285
will
lymph
inoculation of the
be a tendency to soreness
body upon the same heated and cools quickly.
tissues of the
if the person is The second phase becomes manifest usually after about seven to twelve weeks from the formation of the chancre. This phase is characterized by swelling of the lymph glands in various parts of the body, but especially those
being used, or
of the groin,
if
the sore
is
at the sexual organs, or
if
else-
lymph glands of that area. Swelhng of the lymph glands, and incidentally those of the skull, and in the vicinity of sutxires in the bones, will be accompanied by chill, succeeded to by fever,
where, the
usually of an intermediate type, but sometimes rising to a
considerable height, and occasionally producing delirium.
The much
chill
and
fever
in
this
like that incident to measles,
phase
and
are after
very a few
hours of fever a rash breaks out upon the skin, especially upon that part of the body ramified by nerves from twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic trunks, which usually extends over the whole trunk, and sometimes to the face also.
when the rash has fully appeared the temperature rapidly declines, and soon retiu-ns to the normal. The syphilitic rash very closely As
in measles,
so here,
resembles that of measles except that the spots
are
a more dirty, -rusty, red color. Concomitant with the rash eruption there exudes from the skin a noxious odor, very similar to that from dirty iron rust, which is very repulsive, and once smelled is never forgotten. larger,
and
of
286
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
The syphilitic rash usually remains for several weeks, when it begins to gradually fade, and finally wholly disappears, but almost always leaves permanent scars, and sometimes these may be quite marked, or even pustuled.
The most remarkable symptom upon the appearance
that occurs
is
that
of the rash, the original sore, or
its first development up to this unchanged, begins remained substantially time has to heal rapidly, and within a period varying from six weeks to four months it will have entirely disappeared, except a big, white scar, which may be called the globus pallidum, which will always remain, and will always be proof positive to the expert diagnostician that the individual has undergone so-called syphilis. By the time the chancre is completely healed, the rash will have entirely disappeared, except for the permanent scar tissues that may occur as incident to it, which will remain permanently. The third phase begins from six to eight months from the appearance of the primary sore. It is characterized by the presence of a chemical compound called gumma that, when it first forms is soft, producing lumps or bumps under the skin relative to aggregations of nerve
chancre, which, from
ganglia and
lymph
nodes.
Gumma also precipitates along the margins
of bones,
especially in interosseous positions relative to
glands,
and nerve
lymph
ganglia.
The gummatious accumulations
just
referred
to
most frequently occur along the interosseous margin of the tibia, and interosseous margin of the ulna. They may occur however, relative to the sympheses, and particularly the sutures of the skull.
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY If
upon the
precipitation of
287
gumma in any such areas
as described, it is not quickly disseminated, it hardens and
becomes very resistant, and feels like gristle or bone, and
when once hardened, it is almost impossible It must be remembered that the phase
to remove. of process
under discussion acts particularly through the lymph areas of the body, and that the deposit and formation of these gummatious nodules is the most damaging fact, because they frequently impinge upon nerve trunks, nerve ganglia and plexuses to complete occlusion, and in any event to great interference. The most profound injury from sohdifying gumma occurs incident to the skull relative to the sutm-es, in
such manner as to impinge upon nerve trunks at the point of exit from the foramina, and in such locations as to impinge areas. It
more
upon the brain substance
fruitful source of insanity, paralysis,
ataxia,
in certain
wiU be readily understood that there can be no
and
all
locomotor
of the other degenerative phases of
abnormality than gummatious accumulations within the skull cavity, so placed as to impinge directly upon cortical areas.
believes that much will be done for cases which such accumulations have occurred, that can not be reached by the simple application of the principles of Chiropractic, through and by means of an intelligent and judiciously applied surgery. The phase under discussion in the most favorable case, lasts from one and a half to two years, but in the majority of cases there are latent symptoms which may occur for years, and in some cases for the remainder of
The author
in
the person's
life.
288
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
must be understood that the discussion of syphilis up to this point has been from the standpoint of its having received no attention. If from the outset it was treated medically, many other adverse symptoms, not here stated will have occurred, and if it was treated by the use of mercury, the tissue injury accomplished by the time the third phase has been reached will have aggravated gummatious tendencies and tissue degeneration, so It
that complete recovery will be doubtful
if not impossible. been fully demonstrated that the injury done It has to the human family through medical treatment of syphilis, has exceeded the injury that would have resulted from that phase of abnormality if it had never received any treatment of any kind. Relating to remove the process called syphilis is primarily to remove occlusion from the nerves to the location of the primary sore. If the chancre is on the sex organs, relating will be to remove the occlusion from nerves extending through the second and first lumbar, and twelfth thoracic
trunks.
However, when the constitutional symptoms manifest themselves, motor reaction and columnar constriction will be so intense that there movable foramen.
will
be occlusion at every
At this phase of the process it will be the duty of the Relator to break up constitutional constrictions as fast as they occur, and during the active period he will usually find
it
necessary to administer correction from
two to four times
daily.
Constrictions incident to this adverse tissue process
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY
289
are peculiar in that they change about. For instance, in the morning the constriction may be greatest in the lumbar region, and in the afternoon greatest in the headward thoracic, at bed time greatest at the base of the skull and so on. These symptoms must be watched, and the constrictions broken up, for they tend to muscular and aponeurotic fixation and great injury. If, from the time of the appearance of the chancre, this
phase of abnormality receives the application of the
symptoms described in chapter wiU only manifest themselves as types, and the patient will at no time be very gravely affected, and will, during the whole time, be able to be up and
principles of Chiropractic, the this
about, and no permanent injury will result from the
accumulation of gumma. The doctor should see to it that the patient lives upon a frugal diet of the simplest, nutritious food, in so far as possible making it a mono-diet, that is, one principal thing at a meal, and never to exceed three things at a meal. The patient should not be permitted to use tobacco or intoxicants, or any form of exciters, and should be induced to sleep regularly, and many more hours than usual; shoidd exercise frequently and regularly in the open air, and should not be long upon the feet at any time, and should perform no work calculated to produce a heated condition. The clothing worn should be as light and open as possible, and in cold countries this must be made possible by comfortable housing and artificially produced heat. About a year and three months to a year and a half after the first appearance, there will occur the period of emaciation, which must have careful attention. After
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
290
the subsidence of the febrile condition, and the healing of the chancre, three relatings a week will be sufficient
symptoms indicate the period just when the patient should have the careful until the
referred to,
supervision
of the doctor each day, for it is dm-ing the period of
emaciation that gummatious accumulations are most likely to occur.
This period of emaciation lasts from six weeks to
two or
three or four months, after which, correction
three times a If
the
applied,
week wiU be
principles
and
of
sufficient.
Chiropractic
are
faithfully
careful attention be given to the details
as outlined, within
two to
foiu*
of this phase of abnormality
years every
symptom
wiU have disappeared and
every danger of transmission of adverse, hereditary tissue tendency will have disappeared.
VENEEEAL XJLCEE
The virus of this phase of abnormality is communicated like that of so-called syphilis by inoculation. primary The sore, is a soft chancre, which looks almost precisely like the hard chancre, but it presents none of the characteristic symptoms. It is soft, and sensitive
—
to the touch.
the
virus
is
The
venereal ulcer
not so
virulent
is
a real
as to
sore,
because nerve
destroy
periphery.
make the mistake of thinking a hard one, and, therefore, entirely
Physicians frequently that a soft chancre
is
mistake the process, and without any delay begin the mercurial treatment for syphilis, which soon produces all
all
the
symptoms
and presents practically and destructive effects of that
of syphilis,
of the depleting
VENEREAL ABNORMALITY adverse, tissue condition.
Much and
291
grave permanent
injury has been done in this way.
There is another remarkable and distinctive feature between the soft chancre and the hard chancre. Pus may be taken from the soft chancre in its active state and as
many
vaccinations of the individual in different
body may be accomplished as desired; while virus taken from the hard chancre and inoculated elsewhere in the body will present no apparent effects. This
parts of the
indicates the difference in virility of the toxin or virus.
Venereal ulcer
may be
transmitted in other ways, but
the inoculation usually occurs through the
medium
of
sexual intercourse.
"When inoculation has occurred as incident to sexual lymph glands become markedly swollen, much more so than incident to hard chancre, and there is greater inflammation, the condition being very painful. Sometimes these glands swell so much as to show blue through the skin, when such swelhng is called bubo, hence the name frequently given to this phase is that of bubo, or blue balls. Sometimes in the swollen lymph glands the tissues break down, and pus occurs, and in such cases it is good practice to have the area opened and thoroughly drained.
intercourse, the inguinal
Under the administration
of the principles of Chiro-
practic this phase of abnormality soon disappears permanently, and without leaving any scar. Relating to remove occlusion causing venereal ulcer will be directed to the second and first lumbar trunks, and to the twelfth thoracic trunk. However, the necessity may go much wider than this; for, of course, if motor reaction is pronounced, there will be increased
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
292
occlusion at all subluxated areas of the vertebral column.
The
patient should be put to bed and kept off his
lymph glands has He should be fed very sparingly, and
feet until swelling of the
subsided.
entirely it
would
be better if the administration were wholly of broths and soups. No tobacco or exciters should be used, and the patient should not be submitted to any sex excitation.
CHAPTER XXVIII GLAND ABNORMALITY Jaundice
—Pellagra—HooJc Worm
In order to understand gland abnormality in the fuU significance of that term, the student must have a very complete knowledge of the anatomy of glands. In addition to a very comprehensive knowledge of the anatomy of glands he must also have a thorough conception of the liquid transportation systems of the organism. In the last statement the plural of the word system is used, intending thereby to definitely point out the arterial system, and venous system, but particularly the capillary system in its relation with lymph transportation. If the student has a splendid conception of the exudation or extrusion of lymph or plasma from the blood through the winking valves of the capillaries, in what has been called, for the want of a better name, "the spaces of the body," he is prepared to advance into the phases of gland abnormality. As prefatory to taking up a discussion of the details of gland abnormality the student must understand that analogously all glands of the body are lymphoid in their
and that really the principal difference that between glands is their size, and their peculiar
nature, exists
organization.
The reference
to organization in the last paragraph
is
intended to definitely refer, upon the one hand to ductile glands, and upon the other to ductless glands. 293
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
294
The
principal difference between ductile glands
and
ductless glands, however, exists in that there
is
opportunity in a measure to understand
the
or function of a ductile gland, than there
to under-
stand the
office or
is
a better oflSce
function of a ductless gland.
Too much emphasis must not be placed upon
the
thought of there being a difference between these two characters of glands, for aside from the ducts
all
glands
are really ductless in function.
To
illustrate what is meant by the statement in the consider, for instance, the liver, which paragraph, last is a ductile gland, in so far only as the bile is concerned,
and
in that restricted sense only after the bile has been
collected into the tubules of elimination.
Back
of that,
even as to bile, the liver is analogously a ductless gland; but as to all other gland functions, the liver is distinctly a ductless gland.
meant the production
By
its
of glycogen
other functions
and
is
uric acid.
a well-known fact that abnormality of the liver results in abnormality of the three known products, which it produces ^bile, glycogen and lu-ic acid, and it It
is
—
may be well
understood in addition that all of the other influences which it normally exercises over the liquids of the body as a ductless gland are equally abnormal. The spleen, as the largest ductless gland, is known to exercise a remarkable influence upon the lymph and blood generally. Just what characteristic changes the spleen produces are indeed problematical, but no physiologic fact is better known than that it does exercise a potently constructive chemical office in
normal conditions, and equally destructive in abnormal conditions.
GLAND ABNORMALITY
295
The kidneys are usually looked upon as exereters of but it is known that back of the excretion of urine
urine,
the kidneys are ductless glands, and exercise a remarkable influence upon the consistence of the lymph and
blood passed through them. It is surely well understood that when the kidneys are abnormal they return to the lymph, and through it to the blood, adverse chemistry, which exercises
a marked influence upon assimilation. These adverse effects are prominently observed in all phases of kidney abnormality, but distinctly so in the phases which have received the
Much
names Bright's Disease and
diabetes.
upon the and many and remarkable
discussion has been lately indidged
subject of ductless glands,
things have been said with respect thereto.
There have been
many
persuasive editorials as to
the adverse effects incident to abnormality of the suprarenals effecting pigmentation,
and many other
been an entire dearth of thought with regard to the remarkably constructive value incident to the normal chemical formula excreted from the suprarenals in health. In like manner much discussion has been indulged as to abnormality of the thyroids, pituitary, and indeed all of the other small things. But, incidentally , there has
glands.
Some very bizarre ideas have been expressed with regard to the functioning of the pituitary gland; the which is that the pituitary gland is a very important nerve ganglion. Aside from the fact that there is absolutely nothing to sustain the thought that the pituitary is a ganglion of any considerable importance, there is nothing to last of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
296
indicate that
it is
even a gland of any great importance.
The situation of the pituitary indicates that it is perhaps of considerable value as an anchor to the very important and medial portion of the cerebrum, and, of course, is a safe means of extension and rearrangement of the nerves necessary to that immediate area. Hence it is connected with one of the most important nerve paths of the cerebrum. But that is not sufficient even to indicate that
it is
that as a gland
The glands
its
a ganglion of any unusual value, or function is remarkable.
fact about the whole matter, with respect to the of
the
body,
is
that they
are
distributed
throughout the entire organism in rich profusion, all the way from the point of a cambric needle to the liver. There is no doubt that each and all of these glands exercise a stabulating or equilibrating office to the liquids of the body. It cannot be doubted that the host of infinitesimal ductless glands scattered throughout the organism, exercise a remarkable influence upon the elaboration of the lymph that has passed through them incident to the process of assimilation, and that if tissues are to be normal the glands of the area must be normal, as a primary and incipient necessity. It is also true that the chemistry of the liquids of the body, particularly the lymph, cannot be abnormal or change from normal consistence without soon rendering the glands through which it is transmitted abnormal; thus changing their excrescence to abnormal consistence. ranging in size
There is no doubt that the primary effect of abnormal chemistry introduced into the body is upon the multitude of infinitesimal glands scattered through-
GLAND ABNORMALITY
297
out the body, and in case of occlusion of stimulus to the area, the first adverse effect incident to the stasis is the chemical contamination of the glands of that area. If students,
would
who are
of
an investigating turn of mind,
direct attention along the line of action sug-
gested in this chapter,
much
could be done toward
solving the very intricate problems touched
upon and
pointed out.
With these brief, general observations, specific attention must be directed to a few individual themes. JAtTNDICE
Returning for the present to the liver, the student remember that the elements for the production of bile are brought into that organ in the blood of the portal vein, and perhaps a small portion through the hepatic artery. The elements for the production of bile are almost entirely extruded as lymph through the winking valves of the portal capillaries into the sowill
called
lymph
spaces.
From
the intermolecular spaces, the substances for the elaboration of bile in the normal are collected and directed by nerve stimulus into the biliary canalicuU, and finally into the biliary tubes; while the remaining lymph is carried back to the blood through lymph vessels.
Under occlusion
certain is
phases of
liver
adverse
function,
so grave to the tissue elements of the hver
not collected and directed into the beginnings of the bile tubes, but are permitted to be carried out of the hver in the general lymph movethat bile
elements
are
ment, and to be distributed through the transportation
298
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
systems, and precipitated in areas of stasis wherever
the same exist.
The student
of Chiropractic physiology will
remem-
with the statement in the last paragraph, that in order that the tissues of the liver may be so abnormal, as just stated, the spleen will be abnormal also, and the chemistry sent to the liver from it will be of an abnormal compound. In the condition of these two large glands, just described, it will be seen that these adverse chemistries will precipitate in areas of stasis in the deep and superficial tissues of the body, but that when they precipitate in subcutaneous areas, the marked change of color ber, in connection
in those areas
is
easily observed.
In certain adverse conditions of the glands named, and of the skin, these subcutaneous deposits become so marked as to change the color of the skin to greenish-
brown or
greenish-yellow,
and
in
certain localities
of the skin almost to a moss-color.
Such changes in color incident to abnormal spleen and liver conduct are multitudinous, and it is only the very profound discoloration that has been called jaundice.
The symptoms
of jaundice generally are those of
profound lassitude, mental incapacity, dizziness, accompanied with nausea and vomiting. Generally the incipient greenish-yellow tinge begins in the conjunctiva of the eyes, and spreads to the face and body. In such a situation the kidneys, if sufficiently strong, are depurating a very excessive amount of bile constituents, and, therefore, the urine is dark and smoky colored, with a pungent acid odor, and because little
GLAND ABNORMALITY
299
or no bile
is being passed into the intestine, the feces very light-colored, sometimes almost chalk-like. In jaimdice the patient should be kept in bed in a warm, comfortable room; should have a relating every twelve hours. He should be induced to drink plenty of water, but to eat no soUd food. If anything in the way of food is given, it should be vegetable broth containing no oil; for there is nothing to emulsify fats being discharged into the intestine, and this fact would
is
strictly prohibit the use of oil, including milk,
cream and
butter.
Relating to
remove jaundice,
consists in correction of the liver is
the
areas.
fifth,
But
sixth
and seventh
of
course, primarily
and spleen
areas; that
thoracic nerve trimk
incidentally the thought
must be directed
to securing depuration, especially through the intestine,
kidneys and skin. This will require a somewhat extended attention, and will at least require relating at kidney
and
intestinal areas.
PELLAGRA a phase of glandular abnormaUty. It is caused by the irritation and motor reaction from the constant administration of a small quantity of a specific poison; abnormally affecting all of the infinitesimal glands that have been referred to in this chapter. In the last few years it has been definitely ascertained and pointed out that the poison causing the phase of disease called pellagra is derived from water, which has passed through silica. Dr. E. M. Perdue, of Kansas City, Missouri, has searched out and made a very extensive map of the Pellagra
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
300
and has published which the student definitely referred for a more extended discussion. The symptoms of pellagra are indicated by a profound
pellagrous areas in the United States,
a valuable work upon the is
subject, to
general debility, the incipient
marked symptom
of
inflammation and reddening of the skin in the spring and fall, accompanied by the same character of inflammation of the mucous and serous linings of the body. This increases until finally there is a complete derangement of the whole vascular system, and, the glandular system, but especially incidentally the large digestive glands and the intestine.
which
Two (1)
is
things are essential to recover from pellagra:
that the patient shall cease drinking the
silica-
poisoned water, and shall substitute a lime-bearing water, or a water derived through limestone; and (2) release of occlusion of stimulus to the areas of trouble. Incidentally, in procuring these results, careful attention
must be paid to the
diet of the patient. Incident to this
phase, the patient should have good, strained broths
and soups, with regular administrations of lime water, which can be had by putting ateaspoonful of quick lime into a five gallon jar of water, stirring thoroughly and keeping in a cool place; giving the patient three glasses of this per day, at intervals, between the administration of broth, and about two and one half hours after the same has been taken. Relating to
remove
pellagra,
of
course,
primarily addressed to releasing the nerves to large glands of the body,
and
lungs. This
is
about
and all
will all of
be the
in addition, the intestine
that can be said specifically,
except that careful address must be given to release
GLAND ABNORMALITY of nerves to the areas of stasis, will
have no
301
which the diagnostician
difficulty in localizing.
HOOK WOEM
Hook worm abnormality.
another grave and general, glandular This phase of abnormality is called is
by the therapeutic world, and it presumed is to be caused by taking a peculiar worm or embryo with the drinking water, or taking such worms in through the feet from the earth. It is presumed by therapy that worms taken through the skin of the feet go in the lymph and blood to the heart, thence to the lungs, and finally up through the air passages from the lungs into the pharynx, where they are swallowed, and in this manner get into the intestine. AU that need be said for this route is that it is rather less direct than could be desired! If it is true that these germs are taken in through the feet, and there is pretty good evidence to substantiate such fact, then it is much more certain that they reach the intestine by going directly in the arterial blood to the intestine and being extruded with the lymph in those
uncinaria duodenalis
areas.
The prime point is, that the first tissue contamination lymph glands of the body generally, and it is the depletion of these lymph glands that induces the is
the
peculiar
anemia that accompanies
this
phase of abnor-
mality for it is demonstrably true that when hook ;
worms
mucous linings of the intestines they are also found in the lymph tissues of the body
are attached to the generally.
Two
things
are essential for recovery from hook
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
302
worm:
(1) that the patient shall have water and food not contaminated by hook worms, and (2) that he shall not expose his body to ground infected by them. If these two precautions are observed, with the assistance of proper correction to release nerve stimulus, the patient will make rapid recovery. Relating in hook worm may be necessary at any area of the body, but, of course, will be prhnarily to release nerves to the great gland centers of the body, and
that
is
incidentally to all of the four depiu'atory channels,
and to any area
affected
by
stasis.
CHAPTER XXIX COMBINATION ABNORMALITY «
Dyspepsia—Asthma—Hay Fever—Appendicitis— E'pilepsy
There are a number of phases of abnormality which are really glandular, but because they involve the aUmentary and respiratory systems, and incidentally the ductile and ductless gland systems, they have been grouped under the title of this chapter. The particular details and incidental influences of adverse, glandular affection will be indicated under some title with respect to each phase. DYSPEPSIA
Dyspepsia is a general class name given by therapists to a series of adverse functionings of the alimentary canal, generally referred to the stomach. The word dyspepsia really means " not digestion," but is usually given the significance of bad or indifferent digestion, or, in other words, indigestion.
This phase of abnormality condition
and process which
and small
intestine.
is
an adverse
tissue
applies to the stomach
In discussing this subject, therapists and it is the
practically always refer to the stomach,
general conception that dyspepsia only applies to the
stomach. However, in some general cases dyspepsia apphes to the duodenum more than to the stomach, and in anything like aggravated cases the duodenum and stomach act adversely together.
CHmOPRACTIC ANALYSIS
304 It
is
a remarkable indictment of the civilized
human
family that dyspepsia has never been found among savage peoples, nor among animals of the jungle of the
human
type, nor yet
Dyspepsia
is
among
a very
the wild animals.
common phase
of abnormality
in all of the civilized countries of the world.
The
fact
that savages have never presented indigestion, forces upon our consciousness the fact that civilized methods of living are responsible for dyspepsia.
It
is
said that ninety per cent of civilized
human
beings are continually digging their graves with their teeth, while
that statement, in
its
ultimate,
is true,
the fact is that a large majority of humans are going to premature graves as a result of wrong and excessive eating, but the principal difficulty is that they do not use their teeth.
Humanity has paid small attention to the fact that the baby's mouth and stomach are constructed and operate to a different result than the adult. The baby has no teeth, and the salivary glands are just behind the lips, and his first food is milk, nursed and insalivated at the same time. In due course he grows teeth and changes the character of his stomach, and should never after have mUk, but should eat like the babies of all such animals do, just what his parents diflferently,
eat.
Failure to observe the fact just stated has resulted in
human
family not only breaking the clearly defined law, and drinking milk in adult life, but failure in that the
they eat a great deal of
and
soft,
pulpy and liquid foods,
this fact is responsible for at least eighty
of all cases of dyspepsia.
per cent
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
305
goes without saying that dyspepsia is a chronic phase of abnormality, and coidd not exist except It, of course,
for the fact that the
the
acute
catarrh
—
^to
stomach has passed through
all of
inflanxtnation,
and
—congestion,
changes
some degree
of dilation.
Grave, chronic cases of dyspepsia furnish the Chiropractor one of his most difficult problems, because the
stomach must have time to rejuvenate, and at the same time the patient either does, or thinks he must, take food, and his stomach is not in a condition that it can digest food properly, and, therefore, the whole problem is involved and difficult. Usually, however, if the patient really wants to get well, and has confidence in his doctor, he can be induced to practice abstinence from food entirely, for a sufficient length of time to give the stomach that rest and advantage sufficient to start it upon the way to recovery. debilitated tissues of the
The first step lay down a rigid
in caring for a case of dyspepsia
is
to
That is, the work in which
rule as to general conduct.
patient
must be required
there
exhaustive phases; so far as possible drop cares
is
to leave off
and
worries; cease all phases of dissipation, such as smoking, drinking, dancing, and even the generally considered innocent amusem*nt of tea parties, card
He must adopt regular habits of sleep, out door exercise and must be influenced to look upon hfe cheerfully and not to take events, or his condition, too parties, etc.
seriously.
It
is
forego
also of the first necessity that all
indulgence
in
sex
he
shall
excitement,
wholly
and sex
indulgence of any kind, and in connection with the rigid rule of
conduct just stated, he must have a regular
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
306
food resume established. In other words, if he fasts it must be done after a given manner, and if he is to take no particular character of food, the quantity and the times at which it
is
to be administered are to be strictly
established. All of the various things that
he must do
body in the way of sponge baths, rubs, ventilamust be strictly laid down and followed. The symptoms arising from dyspepsia are so many and varied as to be impossible of enumeration. The principal ones, however, are fermentation and production of gas, frequently accumulating and producing pain, radiated from the left feetward thorax downward and to the right, which the patient frequently construes to be pain in the heart. There is usually marked congestion in the eyeballs, and sometimes in the capsules of Tenon, accompanied by pain in the forepart of the head, with congestion around the base of the skull; tensed and fixed dorsal muscles of the neck, accompanied by cold, shivering sensations, and the feeling that the stomach
for his
tion, etc.,
has turned over or dropped there are
symptoms
of nausea
down
inert. Occasionally
and vomiting.
It goes without saying that water
is
the patient's
best food in this connection, because water contains
a large portion of the necessary gases of the body. MiUc and eggs are wholly forbidden, as are all other Uquid foods after the patient's stomach or alimentary canal has recovered sufficiently to digest food. At the start a bad, chronic case may be given strained broths as an analogous fast. But so soon as the stomach has recovered sufficient tone the food should be solid, should be light and easily digested, and must be thoroughly masticated. There should be but one food
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
307
taken at a meal, and the meals should be sufficiently wide apart to permit complete digestion and evacuation of the stomach or other portion of the alimentary tube, so as to give rest before other food is administered. After a dyspeptic's stomach has begun to recover tone, the best foods to administer are such as whole wheat bread, properly French fried potatoes, thoroughly matured meats, not of the fine-grained variety, which excludes fish and all sea foods, but such, for instance, as beef steak, mutton, etc. Usually it is indicated and advisable to leave butter entirely out, until the patient
is
well
on the way to
a very fine oil, and is practically indigestible in the dyspeptic's stomach. It is not here intended to lay down what shall be ingested. The thought is pecuKarly directed to advising what shall be prohibited, and to give a general idea of what shall be administered, leaving it to the resource of the doctor in charge to pick and select the things that will tend more nearly to the solution of the problem. It must be explained that a large number of persons are dyspeptic as the result of motor reaction superinduced by irritation from anomalous sex orifices.
recovery, for the reason that butter
is
Of course, there are many others that are dyspeptic because of adverse eating. The student is cautioned that it is impossible to permanently recover a case of dyspepsia in a person
who
presents an anomalous sex orifice, for in such case
there will be motor reaction centering to the stomach,
and, while palliation can be accomphshed,
it
will
never amoimt to anything more than palliation until the anomalous orifice is corrected.
308
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Relating to remove dyspepsia will, of course, be primarily directed to a release of nerves at the stomach area, that
is,
the fourth and
fifth pairs
trunks. However, since dyspepsia of
abnormal
tissue conditions in
intestine, correction
may go
may
any part
very
of thoracic
be the result of the small
much more
widely,
the extent of which will be indicated in the other phases of abnormality discussed, in this chapter.
ASTHMA
Asthma
is
a phase of abnormality that occurs as
incident to the respiratory system,
and usually occurs
in the phreno-costal portions of the lungs.
However,
it
must be remembered that this phase of abnormality is really superinduced by intestinal abnormaUty; for in connection with asthma there is always intestinal abnormality, liver abnormality, and phreno-costal lung abnormality.
The real situation resulting in what is called asthmatic paroxysms occurs as the result of a composite of both the aflBrmative and negative phases in the tissues of the lungs, in which the atria of the phreno-costal lungs are relaxed and distended, while the walls of the same tubes, and the tissues adjacent thereto are subjected to a precipitation of acid residues that cause them to undergo hypertonicity from any phase of excitation. The asthmatic paroxysm usually occurs suddenly, in which there is constriction of the bronchioles in adjacent lung tissue, also profound constriction of the thoracic muscles, so that transfusing areas of the lungs
are greatly reduced.
becomes very
On account
difficult, for
of this fact inspiration
the air must be forced into
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
309
the tubes against the constricted and fixed tissues; it sometimes requiring three or four times as long as
normal inspiration. Because of the symptoms just stated, the patient undergoes a sense of suffocation, and the thoracic constriction results in occlusion of nerves to the heart
and large vessels, resulting in the face becoming pale, and the extremities cold. Profound occlusion of stimulus to the lungs results in failure of aeration, resulting in
the extremities and especially the face, becoming of a bluish tinge. During the paroxysm of asthma, the skin is negative and cold, and yet at times there is considerable exudation of sweat. Incident to the sense of suffocation the face usually has an expression of distress, and in the very aggravated phases the patient appears like one about to expire. However, there is little danger of that result, and there is no case on record where one has died from a paroxysm of asthma. The paroxysm may last from a few minutes to many hours, and even many days, but is usually of only a few hours duration. At the termination of the attack there is usually copious expectoration, the substance expectorated is ropy and thick, being the catarrhal exudation held back in the tissues adjacent to the bronchioles and atria during the paroxysm. It must be understood that errors in diet, errors in sexual conduct, excessive emotion on any subject, unusual physical effort, and indeed, almost any character of excitement brings on attacks in those addicted to asthma. It must be explained in this connection that irritation
from an anomalous sex
orifice is
very largely
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
310
responsible for the production of asthmatic conditions.
This phase of abnormality may occur from other causes, but in a large per cent of cases the superinducing cause is
an
irritation
from an anomalous orifice. in the last paragraph
The statement
is
made
in
view of the fact that asthmatic attacks frequently
from a prolapsed rectum, of such a natm-e that a portion of the rectum drops down into the grasp of the anal sphincters. Such a condition will produce an asthmatic effect almost instantly in those who have
result
undergone the prolonged irritation from anomalous sex orifices that would not otherwise. It should be well understood that a continuing irritation at the cl*tor*s or glans penis definitely reacts
through the visceral system to all of the glandular areas of the body, but particularly to the kidneys, to the spleen, liver and pancreas, to the stomach and to the brain. It must be remembered that of the
stomach and
it is
occlusion
liver nerves that causes the adverse
tissue condition that prepares the
way
for asthmatic
spasm in the phreno-costal lung.
The asthmatic liquors,
patient should drink no intoxicating
and should abstain from narcotics and
exciters
He
should also undergo little or no sex excitation; should live upon a plain and simple diet, and the doctor should at once investigate the matter of all kinds.
if found to present an anomalous or abnormal orifice, that irritation should be immediately removed. No case of asthma, given proper, judicious, and
of his orificial situation, and,
correct care, as to diet, as to the general
and having had the assistance
modes
of
life,
of orificial correction
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY when needed,
followed
by
careful
311
and regular applica-
tion of the principles of Chiropractic, will resist complete
removal. Relating to remove occlusion in the phase of abnormality called asthma is primarily addressed to the hver
and to the nerve trunks in the order named: and fifth thoracic trunks. All chronic asthmatics are kyphosed in the dorsal area, the gibbosity being reduced from the fifth to the seventh, and sometimes to the eighth spine. It will be area,
seventh, sixth
seen,
therefore,
that
incident
to
indicated, the Chiropractor should
the
relating
just
have in mind the
correction of the kyphosis.
HAY FEVER
Hay
is but another phase of asthma, and is an inflammation of the mucous lining of the nose, and its relative sinuses and antrums. Asthmatics do not always present the symptoms called hay fever, but no person ever presents the symptoms called hay fever who is not an asthmatic. He
fever
peculiarly
may
not be apprised of that
fact, but, nevertheless,
it is true.
The author has never seen a case of hay fever in a human being that was not also an orificial case of a marked type. He has seen many httle children, five or six years of age, presenting the aggravated
symptoms
of hay fever, and always, upon examination they were
found to present the most marked anomalous conditions at the sex orifices.
When the orificial irritation, together with the asthmatic tendencies have produced the tissue condition
312
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
necessary for
it,
there are
many phases
of irritation that
hay fever attacks. Intense and prolonged heat; pollen from many flowers and weeds;
result in aggravated
new mown
clover hay; plain dust in the road; the
air striking into the eyes, incidental to riding swiftly in
an automobile or
train,
and many other
irritations are
known to produce hay fever spasms. The first duty of the Chiropractor, upon examining a case of hay fever, is to ascertain what the orificial abnormality is, and have same removed, and thereafter follow the same regime, diet and conduct indicated in asthma. No case so handled has ever been known to resist complete recovery after suflicient time has elapsed to restore the adverse tissue condition.
Relating to remove hay fever
is
the same as that in
asthma, with the exception that more definite care must be giveii to release all occlusion at the suboccipital area,
and incidentally to
release occlusion of the fifth
and
sixth cervical trunks, thus releasing the phrenic nerves
to the diaphragm,
and by
this
means stopping and
preventing muscular paroxysms.
APPENDICITIS This phase of abnormal process is generally the combination of abnormal phases of the spleen, liver and pancreas, the kidneys and the tissue result of the
intestines.
The abnormal
condition and process called appendifrom a chronic inclination to impaction in the cecum, with marked tissue abnormality of the
citis results
walls of the gut.
So-called appendicitis never occurs as
an acute phase
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
313
abnormaKty, notwithstanding that therapists and chronic. Let it be remembered that the tissue situation is always chronic, and that incident thereto there is always dilation of the cecum. It will be remembered that the appendix opens into of tissue
classify it as being acute
the cecum near or at
feetward aspect, and that normally it is the oiler of the cecum. Incident to the chronic phase of tissue abnormality of the cecum, the immediate part of the ileum and the appendix are, of course involved. In the situation just outlined there is its
a continual retention of toxins in the appendix, so that
from the congestion and irritation, motor it is produced, with a concentration of stimulus from a wider area, resulting in inflammation. This is the so-called acute phase of appendicitis, and in this phase abnormality is quickly removed under finally,
reaction to
the application of the principles of Chiropractic.
However, it must be remembered that many times the appendix undergoes slight inflammation, which will subside and occm* again and again for a long time, while the tissues of the appendix, and incidentally the cecum, are continually undergoing depletion, until the base of the appendix loses tonicis, and only liquids of an irritating nature escape into the not appendix, but also solids. In such event, the appendix
finally
may become greatly enlarged, and may present a suppxu-ative catarrh, or even
an accumulation
of pus,
which
may
take on the phase of gangrene. Of course, such an advanced condition as that last expressed very seldom occurs, but does sometimes occur. Occasionally
in
very
prolonged inflammation and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
314
catarrhal condition, the appendix wUl have
become sore,
with other viscera, and will have and healed so as to be attached to the mesentery, or portions of the small intestine, presenting a drawn scarified in relation
which prevents normal function of the appendix and cecum. There are some very aggravated conditions of the character just mentioned, or the supurative type, in which an appendectomy is indicated. There is also occasionally an anomalous appendix, which, because of its character, should be removed, and occasionally, because of an hereditarily distorted cecum and appendix, the cecum should undergo corrective condition,
surgical assistance.
The Chiropractor
is
cautioned to be on the lookout
for such cases, in order that such
anomalous situations
may have
proper and timely care. So-called appendicitis is always, except in the anomalous conditions referred to, the result of adverse and excessive eating, and, therefore, of course, the very first duty of the Chiropractor, upon being called to a case, will
is
to establish such dietetic measures as
overcome that phase of the
diflficulty.
The very first
upon complete from food for time abstinence indicated by the sympa toms, being all the way from a few days to several weeks. The first duty of the Chiropractor on coming to a case
step
usually
of appendicitis
advisable
is
to
is
to
insist
make a very
the abdomen, and to ascertain
careful examination of
by
palpation, percussion
and the further must be taken in strict accordance with found by such palpation.
or otherwise, the actual tissue condition,
steps in the case
what
is
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
315
Here again orificial abnormality plays a very remarkand definite part. If there is an abnormal orifice, the irritation and reaction will center to the area of the weakened tissues of the appendix and cecum, and will
able
greatly retard recovery in the given case. Therefore, is
it
the duty of the Chiropractor to look into this matter
at the very outset.
time of calling upon the patient, or at the time the patient is brought to the doctor, there is an impacted condition of the large bowel, careful and painstaking enemas should be administered to remove all fecal matter from the rectum, and to remove conIf at the
gested conditions from
the colon.
Enema
for
this
purpose should be by long colon tube. Enema administered in this connection should usually consist of the administration of from a quart and a half to two quarts of water at three different periods separated by about fifteen to twenty minutes, during the intervals the patient should be permitted to rest. After this has been accomplished, if, by original examination no indication of perforation has been found, the Chiropractor will proceed to release aU nerves to the area of the appendix. Relating to
remove appendicitis wiU
consist
of
releasing the nerves in the areas of the second lumbar,
however, any of the thoracic trunks may be involved up to the sixth pair, for at the same time there may be impactions in the ascending colon, the hepatic flexure, or the trans».nd twelfth thoracic trunks. Incidentally,
verse colon.
However, caution
is
here given that there must be
painstaking avoidance of a liver reaction, which
is
316
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
likely to occur
if
relating
is
performed at the sixth,
seventh, or eighth thoracic areas, and, therefore, the
Chiropractor must proceed cautiously. Before administering more than the relating at the
second lumbar and twelfth thoracic areas, great care should be taken to carefully release the musculature of the abdomen, particularly that from the ninth costal area to the right inguinal region. This muscular release should be accomplished without putting any depth of pressure into the abdomen.
Usually in a few moments after releasing the second lumbar and twelfth thoracic vertebral areas, it will be possible to secure such relaxation of the muscular walls of the
abdomen
as to
make
definite palpation of the
and the Chiropractor
will be guided by the situation he then finds. If the intestinal condition warrants it, the Chiropractor should proceed to again release the nerves at the vertebral areas indicated, and then, with the patient upon the back, proceed to pass the feces down from the sigmoid flexure; then from the descending colon down through the sigmoid flexure, then around the splenic flexure, down the descending colon through the sigmoid flexure; then around the hepatic flexure across the transverse colon, around the splenic flexure, down the descending colon, through the sigmoid flexure; then carefully release the ascending colon, going around the gut in the same manner. At this point the Chiropractor should wait a short time, allowing patient to rest, and then should perform release of the second lumbar and twelfth thoracic nerve trunks, with release of the eleventh thoracic and fourth lumbar
intestinal situation easy,
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
317
the same are indicated. He should then turn the patient upon the back, and place the heel of his hand over the region of the cecum and appendix, below and areas
if
medial to both, and should make the hand into a triangle which directs the force toward the hepatic flexxu'e, and then should begin a slow, vibratory movement in the direction of the hepatic flexure, with most gentle pressure.
At the time
of the application just being described,
the operator will find
it
possible to very clearly define
and sense the exact location of the viscera involved. He must continue the gentle vibration and pressure, coming back every few seconds and starting over again, until
he
pressure.
feels
the tissues giving
During
deeper into the
all of
way
in front of his
the time, he should be getting
abdomen with the
heel of his hand,
and
continuing to go a little nearer to the appendix. In a short time the impacted contents of the cecum will pass
upward into the ascending colon, thus drawing the accumulation in the appendix out into the cecum, and up into the colon.
At the point
just indicated, the Chiropractor should
cease his efforts for at least half an hour, following relate again, releasing the same trunks as indicated, and at this time should release the stomach, respiratory and heart nerves, and also those to the brain; following which he should carefully impel
which time he should
the bolus around the intestine
if it
has not already gone,
and then wait a period all the way from two to three hoxirs. If, by that time it has not been expelled, another long colon tube enema should be used, with plain water at blood temperature, and at this time two and a half
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
318
to three quarts of water should be used, very slowly
the whole bowel, and then great care should be exercised in securing a complete expulsion of the water,
filling
and was
all
that
in the
is
contained with
cecum
it.
Usually the bolus that sometimes it will be
will pass intact,
broken up. After the bolus has been passed, or is
when the bowel
emptied, as indicated in the preceding paragraph, to completely remove occlusion
should be continuous at periods all the way from twelve hours to twenty-four hours apart for several days. After which relating from four to six weeks should follow, durrelating
ing which time the patient should be required to eat
very lightly of wholesome and nutritious food.
EPILEPSY This phase of abnormality receives its name from the is a sudden seizure, and was " formerly called the falling sickness." The student must be careful to fix the fact in his mind that there are many phases of falling sickness, and sudden seizures, which very closely simulate the phase called epilepsy,
character of attack, which
which
really are entirely different.
It has
become a fad among physicians
in late years
to call almost any kind of sudden hysteria, or lapse, epilepsy.
But such phases
are the result of different
causes entirely. In the hysterias referred to, these peculiar
symptoms
occur:
becomes unconscious, and
the
individual
may remain
considerable time; another phase lapse of a
moment,
the work in hand,
is
is
suddenly
so for
some
a short mental
after which the conversation, or resumed; or the individual jumps
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
319
moves without being conscious of it, or in walking, suddenly stops and sits down, gets up and goes on again without having any recollection of what occurred. Such phases result from congestion of the brain, and are not accompanied by the other phases of so-called
or
epilepsy.
The general and
unqualified fear of epilepsy, because
therapy has declared it to be incurable, is so great it is suggested that Chiropractic practitioners avoid as much as possible the use of the term and indeed there is no occasion for its use. The phase is but a varying process after aU, the same as any other process of abnormality.
The symptoms regular
of so-called epilepsy are sufficiently
and pronounced as to leave no necessity
for
doubt as to the process. Usually the paroxysm comes on quickly, and generally without premonition. It is quite common for the individual to feel pecuHarly better than usual just before a seizure. In certain types of the phase under discussion, the subject may have recognized the approach of the paroxysm by a sense of depression, by being either moody, excitable or irritable. A real seizure seldom, if ever, occurs while the individual
is
and generally and
in bed,
occurs during or following an emotional condition,
most frequently within an hour or two
The immediate
sensation of seizure
is
after a meal.
usually that of
a ball or some solid substance starting from the lower part of the body, and passing upward to the throat. Sometimes this sensation is as though the ball started from the feet. In either event the sensation of the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
320
arrival at the throat marks the peculiar, inarticulate cry accompanied with, or immediately preceding the fall. During the seizure the muscles of the entire vertebral
column, and indeed the skeletal muscles generally, suddenly become violently constricted, so that there is grave occlusion of nerves to all parts of the body. At this time the body is flexed; the head being turned
and generally to the right side; this on account of the typical scoliosis. The heart action is greatly depressed, and the liquid transportation in the superficial vessels almost stopped, so that the face is of to one side,
an extremely bluish paUor, and there expression of the eyes. of equilibrium
by
The person
is
falls,
a fixed staring because of loss
flexion.
After the subject has fallen, the constriction of the skeletal muscles continue with great violence; the color of the face slowly changes from pallor to a dark red, then a purplish hue, resulting from congestion in the capillaries of the head, which of course means that there is congestion of both blood and lymph in the tissues of the brain, and if the body were naked these symptoms could be observed in the tissues relative to the solar plexus, and indeed all over the body. In persons having very strong muscles, such constrictions have been so violent as to displace bones, and even fracture them. After a time the muscular spasm ceases, and the person lies in the position he is then in, usually on the side, or face
down, for a considerable period of time.
Occasionally, after the violence of the constriction has
passed, the subject lying
still.
may
roll
about for a time before
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY The muscular paroxysm until the toxic gas
just
321
described continues
accumulated in the
alimentarj'' canal
has either been forced therefrom, or has been so distributed in the canal as to lessen the irritation. During the intensity of the spasm, breathing is almost wholly sus-
pended, but upon its abatement breathing becomes slow and stertorous almost precisely the same as in apoplexy, and, indeed, from this time on recovery from the paroxysm is very much like its acute phase. Usually the seizure is not followed by another for several days, but in some cases one spasm follows another in quick succession; the subject having scarcely escaped from one attack until another seizure comes on. It is some hours after a violent paroxysm before the
mind
of the individual
becomes
clear.
Upon
his
becoming conscious after the attack, the subject is usually silent and depressed, seeming to be in a grieved state of mind, and is frequently subject to delirium, as to those about him, his care-takers, etc. Practically always in grave epilepsy the result finally
mental force generally. However, the indibe subject to epilepsy of a somewhat grave type for years with no apparent adverse condition. It is said that the Great Napoleon was an epileptic, and although he died young, he died possessed of unimpaired mental faculties. is
loss of
vidual
may
The adverse process called epilepsy is truly a gastric The irritating toxin that by motor reaction
abnormality.
produces the paroxysm is a ptomaine, conine or autopoison that accumulates in the small intestine, and when the accumulation rises to a certain gravity, precipitates into a free gas, with practically the force of
an
explosion.
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
322
If instantly the cry
and
fall
thrown across the lap face down,
occur, the subject
is
and the ear placed
to
the wall of the abdomen, the violent rushing of the gas through the intestine cannot only be plainly heard as of a hissing and rushing sound, but can be felt. This toxin or irritant producing the epileptic paroxysm has not been isolated, and its chemistry is
unknown, but
its
occurrence
is
positively
known, and
the cause of its production is quite well understood.
To properly care for an epileptic, he should be surrounded by good conditions; right mental attitude, etc. On account of the general fear and awe of epilepsy it is impossible to secure these conditions except in an intelligently conducted sanitarium. The
first
attention to the subject in the sanitarium
aside from correcting his distortions should be to ascertain and control any adverse habits to which he is addicted. He should not be permitted to use any alcohol, or habit-forming drugs of any kind, and should not drink tea or coffee, and should indulge in no rich
condiments. Practically
all epileptics
sooner or later
acquire the habit of self-abuse or masturbation. This
must be looked into, and if the habit is established, it must be stopped, and the patient should not indulge in any sort of sex excitement or sexual relation. Epileptics are practically always victims of voracious
have the habit of excessive ingestion of foods. The diet should be limited to great frugality. It should be limited to but two light meals a day, which should occur at eight in the morning, and five in the afternoon, and should consist of substances that must be chewed, if the patient has good teeth. appetites, and, therefore,
COMBINATION ABNORMALITY
323
and should be administered as amono-diet. If thepatient's teeth are deficient, he can be carefully fed liquid food. The patient should never, under any circ*mstances, be fed milk or eggs, or any other liquid foods of such dense and rich character as milk. He should be encouraged to drink copiously of good, soft water, being careful that he drinks nothing until two and a half hours after each meal. The patient should be induced to sleep from ten to twelve hours out of the twenty-four, but during his waking time should perform regular, light work of such nature as to give him thorough exercise.
The phase generally if
abnormaUty usually
of
makes
its
taken at once
called epilepsy
appearance in early childhood, and
is
removed by the Of course, operation, the more
usually quickly
application of the principles of Chiropractic.
the longer the process has been in diflScult is
the removal. By the time the patient
is
twenty and
to thirty years old, he should be in a sanitarium,
under careful application of principles of Chiropractic all the way from six months to two or three years. Relating
to
remove epilepsy
is
particularly
and
primarily addressed to the stomach, liver, and kidney areas.
That is
to say, the release of the third
and fourth
and sixth together with the seventh thoracic trunks, and the eleventh and twelfth thoracic trunks. Further, the intestinal aspects will thoracic trunks, the fifth
require correction at the
the motor reactive
eflFects
headward lumbar areas, and from the toxins will require
constitutional correction in
many
parts of the body.
Persistent and inteUigent care, and application of the principles of Chiropractic , are the only things that has ever been
known
to wholly
remove epilepsy, especially in adult life.
CHAPTER XXX EHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS .
Neuralgia
—Angina Pectoris—Sciatica—Muscular— Articular— Gout
symptomatology addresses considerable attention to the subject of rheumatism, and gives Therapeutic
much
space to theory as to
its relief
or palliation. It
is,
however, nowhere asserted in therapy that rheumatism can be cured, to use their term, but there seems to be some contention that it may be palliated. The tissue condition called rheumatisni is always chronic. In other words, the incipient phases of the conditions called rheumatism present no tissue symptoms that are observable. The reason for the fact just stated is that the process called rheumatism is a sequence to a somewhat grave glandular abnormality, and is never presented except as a sequel to much glandular abnormality, finally being paramountly expressed through the liver with the spleen as its accessory,
and the kidneys.
The part played by
these large glands in the pro-
duction of rheumatism occurs in this way. The liver, in its tissue abnormality, produces an excess of uric acid,
which of course
is
contributed to by the spleen. This
is
and at the same time, produces an abnormal glycogen and
really a ductless office of the liver, of course, the liver bile,
so that the system generally loses
resistance,
and
its characteristic
chemical equilibrium, which
is
added to
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS by the abnormal
325
causing the absorbed substances be of an adverse chemicial nature. The liquids of the body, and particularly the lymph and blood, being loaded with an adverse chemistry, of course, puts upon the depuratory channels of the body an unusual burden, which particularly and paramountly falls upon the kidneys; for they must particularly expel the excess uric acid, and a large part of the abnormal
from the
bile,
intestine to
glycogen.
From
the condition just stated, the kidneys soon
become over-taxed, and fail
to perform their eliminative with sufficient virility to carry away the excess toxins being produced, and those which are not eliminated through the kidneys are thrown back, through the ductless offices of those organs into the general, liquid-transportation systems, concomitant with which,
office
the skin and lungs
fail in
excess depuration,
body becomes loaded with the toxin
and the
called uric acid.
In the situation just described, congestion of this abnormal chemistry to areas in the body to which there is
occlusion of stimulus
is
certain to occur,
and when
such accumulations arise to sufficient gravity, irritations from them become so profound as to result in motor reaction to the area, which results in the production of the pecidiar symptoms which are called rheumatism. The student will observe that rheumatism so-called is but the accumulation of these acid toxins in some specffic, or more widespread areas of the body, and precipitated in such nature as to directly affect the terminals of the nerves involved, causing motor reaction, constriction, pain, etc., that are incident to the adverse tissue condition
and
process.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
326
It is because of the adverse situation just described, the accumulation of the toxins or adverse chemistries,
from failure of elimination, that has caused the therapeutic world to say that the sickness called rheumatism is because there is some " rheum" or poison resulting
but the therapeutic world has never understood just what they mean by rheumatism. Rheumatism, or the adverse process that has just been described, may be discussed under the several headings of this chapter as a matter of convenience, but the student must understand that there really is no in the blood,
difference in these phases, except in the location in
which they occur, occlusion
causes
and
their
therefore,
varied
the
location
of
and,
of
expressions,
course, the varied specific effects that result therefrom, for it
must be well understood that all adverse symptoms
but accumulated toxins, because of glandular abnormality as described, and consequent of the character indicated are nothing in the world
plain, adverse effects of
failure of elimination.
NEURALGIA There are two phases of neuralgia, so-called. There is pain, incident to sudden and acute occlusion of nerve stimulus. This, from a Chiropractic standpoint,
first
really does not constitute neuralgia, but, since it is pain
might be very properly classified under that head. This phase of pain, or neuralgia, is instantly removed by correcting the distortion causing it. The other phase of neuralgia is really a rheumatoid condition, surrounding and in a nerve trunk, so that by the in nerves, it
disintegratory influence, exercised
by the submergence
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS
%rt
nerve trunk is irritated, and there is much painful expression. In this condition, the nerve trunk may become swollen, and severely congested and inflamed, of the toxin, the
which event it is sometimes classified as neuritis. diagnostic problem presented to the Chiropractor, when a case of neuralgia comes to his attention, is to determine whether the result is acute, and therefore, just a plain neuralgia, or whether it is a rheumatoid neuralgia, therefore, an incidental symptom, arising from
in
The
a general adverse, glandular condition.Thishewillhaveno trouble in determining from a Chiropractic examination. ANGESTA PECTOKIS
name is
given to a peculiar phase of rheumatism, which occurs in the chest or thorax; usually in the region
This
and has been supposed to be produced some abnormality of the heart or aorta. This,
of the heart,
because of however, is not true.
The adverse process is purely of a rheumatoid nature. So-caUed angina pectoris never occurs except conditions,
when the
general,
adverse, glandular
already described in this chapter, have
existed chronically for
some time, and when there
is
subluxation or distortion so that nerves are occluded to the areas of the thorax, in which this phase occurs.
Like
all
muscular rheumatism, the phase of abnor-
mality under discussion occurs in spasms, in which constriction may be so great as to occlude nerves to the heart and respiration, sufficiently to result in death. SCIATICA
The
therapeutic world does not classify sciatica as
rheumatism at
must be remembered that more than plain rheumatism.
all,
sciatica is nothing
but
it
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
328
In order not to be misunderstood, the student should understand that there are two phases of difficulty often called sciatica, one of which is not of the rheumatoid type, to
any
definite extent.
The phase just referred to is the motor reactive one, which frequently results, as already described, in neuralgia, from irritation or injury of the terminals of nerves, so that there is intense motor reaction, constricting the sciatic foramina,
and the
tissues in the
imme-
diate area, so that the sciatic nerve trunks are acutely
occluded.
The phase just described occurs
as the result of
many
but is most definitely afid generally produced by the wearing of shoes that are too tight, or shoes which throw the feet in abnormal positions, injuries to the feet,
is constant irritation upon the nerves. This a very sure and regular means of producing sciatic neuralgia; which, however, always partakes somewhat of the rheumatoid nature. The other phase of sciatica is nothing in the world
so that there is
but regular rheumatism, that is, an adverse situation in which, because of occlusion of nerve stimulus the acids and toxins produced by the adverse condition of the glands, continually precipitate in the gluteal tissues. Occlusion producing sciatica results from displacement of the sacrum,
by
its
beiag either tipped base ventrally,
or apex ventrally, with incidental occlusion of the fourth
and
fifth
On
lumbar trunks.
account of the location of the difficulty just pointed out, it will be seen that the effect of occlusion is in the gluteal muscles, and aponeuroses around the sciatic foramina, and incidentally the muscles extend-
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS ing through these foramina,
and
329
in the hamstring
muscles, and those of the calf of the leg, and the plantar surfaces of the feet, and also the intrinsic muscles of the feet.
The
rapid increase of so-called sciatica, which has
occurred in the last several years,
is
to be accounted for
particularly because of the ridiculous footwear that has
been the fashion, especially for the past twenty-five which has become more and more bizarre and ridiculous each year. years,
All persons should
know
that the foot
is
constructed
upon the same level as the ball and unless carried in this manner, the whole body is thrown out of equilibrium, and the nerves are all put upon a strain and thus irritated. to be used with the heel of the foot,
The
a shoe that raises the heel of the foot above the ball, throws the entire body out of heel of
and makes it necessary to accommodate by changing all of the ctirves of the body, and particularly the lumbo-sacral curve must be increased, whereby unusual pressure is put upon the fourth and fifth lumbar trunks. To sustain the erect equilibrium,
to the situation,
posture in this situation, the dorsal longitudinal muscles of the colunm are put upon a strain, which tends to
produce disrealtion of the sacrum headwardly. Careful investigation will disclose that about seventyfive per cent of so-called sciatica is the result of wearing abnormally constructed footwear, and footwear that has become distorted by use. goes without saying that in order that be removed the person must adopt a normal posture shoe, such as that which has this year It, of coiu*se,
sciatica shall
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
330.
been placed upon the market by Dr. E. E. Hosmer of New York City. The wearing of these shoes alone would ordinarily overcome sciatica of the neuralgic type, and the wearing of such shoes with the proper application of the principles of Chiropractic will quickly
overcome any phase of
sciatica.
MUSCULAR RHEUMATISM This phase of abnormality needs no discussion further than to say that in muscular rheumatism the abnormal toxins described
and
referred to in this chapter, pre-
cipitate in certain areas of muscle tissue.
Of course,
it will
be understood that the reason that
the toxins center and precipitate in certain areas of muscle tissue, is because of occlusion of stimulus to those
formation of stasis, and therean accumulation and precipitation of rheumatoid
tissues, resulting in the fore,
toxins.
Because muscles are soft in their natm-e, and theredo not so rigidly confine the accumulated toxins, and do not bring such resistance to congestion and swelling, muscular rheumatism is' not so intensely painful as articular rheumatism. In its incipient phases muscular rheumatism is nearly always classified as neuralgia, wry-neck, lumbago, and is sometimes merely referred to as wandering pains through the muscles of the body. However, it must be here suggested that when a person observes wandering pains, and the tendency to painful conditions in the soft tissues of the body, he should immediately understand that his general glandular condition is not as active as it should be, and
fore,
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS
331
a lack of equilibrium in the acid production of his body, and a failure of elimination, which should immediately have intelligent attention. If the incipient phases of muscular rheumatism, such as neuralgia, wry-neck, lumbago, etc., are not to be classified as muscular rheumatism, then we would have to reach the conclusion that muscular rheumatism is always chronic, but there is no reason for any such classification, for the phases mentioned, and many others that might be enumerated, are nothing other than incipient phases of muscular rheumatism. If the general glandular condition causing muscular rheumatism is neglected, the adverse process may continue for that there
many
is
years, progressively
becoming worse, and
may
produce great damage, and even permanent changes in muscular structures. One of the marked symptoms of muscular rheumatism is the sensations produced by changes in the weather. Those affected with muscular rheumatism are, to a large extent a barometer; they are always put upon notice when a cold, damp period is coming on, by the tissue changes incident to the accumulated acids. So-called muscular rheumatism is especially affected by the diet of the individual; it being rendered much worse by over-eating, and is generally lessened by care-
be markedly and one adverse phase should use no intoxicants
ful eating of light diet. It will, of course,
affected
by the use
suffering this
of exciters
and
narcotics,
any character. Muscular rheumatism most frequently occurs in the intercostal and subscapular muscles, those of the dorsum, and particularly those in the regions of the kidneys. or habit-forming drugs of
332
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
in the muscles of the neck, the muscles of the thighs,
calves of the legs,
and
feet.
It goes without saying that for rapid recovery from muscular rheumatism every attention possible must be given to the diet, to proper clothing, housing, ventilation, and care of the body, incident to the faithful
and painstaking application
of the principles of Chiro-
practic.
ABTICtTLAR RHEUMATISM Articular rheumatism, sometimes called rheumatic fever, presents the
violent
symptoms
The statement
most marked, and perhaps the most of any so-called rheumatism. just
made
is
equivalent to saying
that stasis and precipitation of rheumatoid toxins most frequently occurs in articulations. This is
is
not just what
intended to be said. The symptoms of articular rheuma-
tism occur so frequently, because of the rigidity of the articulations,
and the
necessarily close approximation,
so that the slightest irritation of the joints, resulting in congestion and swelling, introduces the element of pronounced pain. The further fact should be carefully taken into account, that joints generally suffer primary
distortion, incident to locomotion
and work. Distortion
most frequently occiu-s in that part of the vertebral column incident to the trunks which constitute the brachial plexus, at the headward extremity, and the lumbo-sacral plexus incident to the lower extremities.
These facts account for the frequency of articular rheumatism in the shoulders, elbows, wrists, and hands; and the thighs, knees, ankles and feet. The elevated temperature which occurs so frequently
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS in articular
rheumatism
congestion of
acids
results because of the
the
in
joint
capsules,
333
extreme because
of the close confinement, producing such intense irrita-
motor reaction, and, therefore, columnar constriction and such pronounced concentration of stimulus to the area, which results in a very excessive friction, tion,
and, therefore, elevated temperature.
not decreased, and depiu*is not secured, marked swelling occurs, the only amelioration of which is the partial separation of the joint surfaces ^really a If occlusion to the area is
ation of the toxins from the joint
—
functional subluxation of the joint.
the painful condition
thus gained it
is
again
is
When
this occiu-s
lessened at least until the
room
filled.
In cases in which the process is permitted to continue, frequently happens that the joints are so injured by
being forced apart that there
an infusion and precipiSometimes in such cases
is
tation of solid residues of acid.
complete calcification of the joints occurs, in other words, the fluid cavities of the joints are destroyed, in which event there is complete loss of the joint which is stiff
and
The tism
is
rigid.
therapeutic
method
of treating articular
rheumaand
to administer certain internal medicines,
if in an appendal joint, higher than the body, and entirely at rest. The medicines administered generally serve to increase the solidity of the precipitation. Permitting the part to remain still is
to place the area affected,
the surest means of securing calcification and ankylosis,
with loss of joint cavities.
The Chiropractor articular
caring for
rheumatism must see to
a case of so-called it that the joints are
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
334
moved with regularity, regardless of the pain such movement causes the patient. This phase of attention wiU not be attended with so much difficulty, because very soon after the vertebral release of nerve trunks to the area affected, movement of the joints in that area will not occasion anything like the pain one would anticipate. After vertebral release of nerves to the area affected has been accomplished, if the case is an old one, and especially if it has been treated therapeutically, some preparation should be made before the actual joint movement is attempted. This consists in very delicate relating movements around the area of the joint, incident to which, if the joint is excessively painful, it is well to inhibit nerve stimulus and blood to the area for a short time, by pressure on nerve trunks and arteries to the area, at some distance from the joint involved.
The author has afflicted
secured sleep in patients severely
with articular rheumatism by inhibiting nerve
trunks and arteries to the area
by
direct pressure,
when
they had been unable to sleep eveji as a result of sedatives. If the principles of Chiropractic are properly
and
regularly applied to acute phases of articular rheumatism, it is surprising how quickly the painful part of the abnormality will disappear; depuration takes place from
the joints, and the patient
is
on the highway to rapid
recoveiy.
In the usual cases of ankylosis, in which the joiut cavities are not destroyed, careful application of the principles of Chiropractic for a period varying aU the way from three months to a year, wiU secure mobility of the
RHEUMATISM AND SEQUELS joints
and
restore
335
them to practically normal conditions.
GOUT Gout is but the chronic result of articular rheumatism and sciatica as applied to the feet. almost wholly confined to the tarso-metatarso-phalangeal joints of the great toes. However, any articular rheumatism of the feet is conceived in Chiropractic as falling within the Therapeutically
speaking,
gout
is
same classification. Under our social environment, the habit on the part of practically aU women and nearly all men, to wear shoes all the way from one to three sizes too small, with thin, soft soles, tends to the production of goutlike or rheumatoid conditions of the feet. In the case of gout, there is no possibility of recovery unless the person adopts a sensible, normal footwear, which must be sufficiently large that the foot is not squeezed or compressed, and the sole should be sufficiently thick and stiff, and so adapted to the plantar surface of the foot as to result in an easy and sustained condition at
all
parts thereof.
Gout used to be a fashionable to those
under
who
disease, largely assigned
lived hves of idleness
the prevailing social
and
customs
but departments
profligacy,
all
of society are subject to this adverse phase.
any
of the phases here
mentioned must be left to the anatomic knowledge and sound judgment of the Chiropractor. That is to say, he must know the nerve trunks vertebrally involved, from the location of the difficulty or symptoms, and must proceed to secure Relating in
their release.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
336
In neuralgia of the
face, the area
third pair of thoracic trunks, while,
if it is
headward
wiU usually be the
and the suboccipital area;
intercostal, the area will usually
thoracics,
but
may be any
trunks
be the
down
to
the eighth thoracics.
In angina pectoris, the area
will usually
be the trunks
of the brachial plexus, particularly the eighth cervicals,
but may be at some of the headward thoracic trunks. In sciatica, attention will be given to the fourth and fifth lumbar areas, and the sciatic foramina incident to correcting the position of the sacrum. In muscular rheumatism of the arms, attention will be directed to the brachial plexus; of the legs to the lumbo-sacral plexus, tissues of the pelvic girdle, those around the acetabu-
lum and obturator foramina. In articular rheumatism of any of the joints of the headward extremities, the brachial plexus will be primary; those of the lower extremities, the fourth and fifth lumbar and sciatic trunks, and the obturator trunks in those foramina.
In gout, particular attention wiU be given to lumbar and pelvic release, and in addition thereto the head of the fibula at the knee joint, and the bones of the ankle
and phalangeal joints. phases of rheumatism the student must remember that the paramount correction to remove the phase of abnormality is to release the nerves to the kidneys joints; also the metatarsal
In
and
all
liver,
disease.
since
rheumatism
is
specifically
kidney
CHAPTER XXXI INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY
Anemia
—Sunstroke—Dropsy
There are certain phases of abnormaKty that, while not coming within the urinary system specifically, are so closely related in tissue condition,
and therefore
function, as to be a part of the general discussion of
kidney abnormality,
and these phases must have
general consideration here. It has already been stated that the kidneys are organs of at least dual function. That is to say, they
excrete urine,
The
and perform a ductless function.
kidneys, as will be remembered, have a complete
vascular transportation of the same analogous character as that of the portal system in the liver. In other words, blood in the kidneys passes through two sets of capillaries, indicating
functional changes incident to both.
There are two distinct functions to be constantly kept in mind, and traced in any diagnosis with respect to the kidneys.
In the first instance, it is always a matter of extreme importance to ascertain whether the kidneys are eliminating the proper amount of urea, and to ascertain whether other depuratory substances are being eliminated in proper chemical relation, and if this is found to be true, it is a strong indication that the kidneys are normal.
However,
it is
not conclusive proof that the kidneys 337
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
338
are normal because there
is
being eliminated through
them a proper amount of urea with the salts, etc., which should be excreted from the kidneys, for in the situation it may be necessary, in order that the bbdy shall not be poisoned, that a great deal more than the regular or proper amount of these substances should be excreted.
In an investigation, then, to ascertain whether the kidneys are normal, the same character of inquisitive attention must be given to the entire glandular system
but particularly the large glands, and especially the spleen and liver. In this view it has become quite the custom to think only of the liver, but it should be remembered that the spleen is fully as important, of the body,
being accessory thereto.
Some
reference
was made to
this proposition in con-
nection with liver abnormality, and incident to rheuma-
tism and stiU further reference wiU be made to connection with other phases of abnormahty.
thought to be presented here glands,
and
is
it
ia
The
that abnormality of the
particularly the large glands referred to,
produce tissue changes, which necessitate other and more extensive depuration than the usual and ordinary. It is the purpose of uric acid to protect and preserve tissue constituents, and glycogen is one of the principal constituents of tissue formation and maintenance. In other words, in the construction of tissue glycogen, albumin and uric acid must be in equilibrium, or in proper formula or the tissue will lack resihence, that is to say, resistive cohesion. If, therefore, uric
abnormal formula,
is produced in excess or in has the effect of preventing
acid it
INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY resistive cohesion of glycogen
and albumin
339
in their
an immediate in the production of a non-virile tissue, but finally and in the ultimate, resulting in one or both of these substances being depurated from the organism as an element of tissue relations, resulting as
waste. If glycogen
be produced in excess, and in abnormal
consistence, it does not enter normally into the pro-
duction of tissue, but results in the production of a nonvirile tissue,
and
in the
more aggravated
conditions, in
an excessive waste of glycogen through the depuratory functions of the body.
a chronic and prolonged acidosis there is an excess of albumin, the character of which is injured by an excess of abnormal uric acid, it may fail to take its place properly in tissue formation resulting in the production of invirile tissue, and in advanced phases excessive discharges of albumin through the depuratory channels of the body. As to the last statement, it must ako be remembered that the simple excess accumulation. jof albumin in the body, necessitates an eUmination of that excess constantly, and particularly through the intestine, but also through the kidneys and to some extent through the skin; in the advanced and abnormal phases of abuminous waste, pronouncedly through the four channels of elimination from the body. In the various ways indicated in the preceding paragraph, tissue degeneracy comes about, which is of If in
course in such phases accessorily contributed to
abnormality of
all
by
the small glands deposited vari-
ously in the tissues of the body.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
340
ANEMIA
Anemia
is
—
heads simple anemia.
The
considered
therapeutically
anemia,
and progressive,
therapeutic conception of anemia
is
under
two
pernicious
that
it is
a
deficiency in the production of blood, or in the convey-
ance of blood to a part. are erroneous,
matter in
its
and
of
To
say that such conceptions is simply stating the
no value
simplest form.
Anemia does not
necessarily refer to regeneration of
blood, or specifically to the production of blood, but
wholly refers to a tissue condition.
Anemia takes place in any tissue to which there is pronounced occlusion of nerve stimulus, which, of course, serves to lessen the transportation of blood, and therefore, lymph to the part, resulting in less than normal assimilation taking place in the area, and necessitates an increased or pathologic disintegration, or depuration, from the area. It will be seen that when the process just stated is taking place in any area of the organism, the tissues involved must undergo anemia. The phase of tissue construction under the adverse conditions just stated may, for the purpose here, be considered as simple anemia.
There is the adverse and general process which has been quite completely covered in the introduction to this chapter, which in certain phases of it results in an adverse tissue condition and process, which for convenience might be called progressive-pernicious anemia. That is to say, progressive, because in such adverse condition, unless assistance is given to the organism, the adverse phase continues and in pernicious in that the
INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY
341
tendency is always to worse tissue conditions. All of which is not more than saying that in the adverse, glandular condition referred to in the introduction of
must be
overcome; absorption very greatly interfered with; the production of leucocytes in the lymph glands greatly retarded with a lessening of the production of white corpuscles; reduction of aeration with a material lessening of red corpuscles; the accumulation of carbon-dioxide greatly increased, with not only depletion of the lymph of the whole organism, but also of the blood. The situation does not justify making a mystery of anemia from the standpoint of occluded nerve stimulus.
this
chapter,
digestion
largely
SUNSTROKE This term is really applied to prostration by heat. It must not be thought that heat to produce this must
come from the sun. The same character of prostration will occur by exposing the organism to too great and prolonged temperature, no matter how applied. The phase of tissue condition called sunstroke, however,
more
particularly
refers
incident to kidney abnormality.
subject to
what
is
to
heat
Many
prostration
persons are
called heat prostration, or sunstroke,
which all persons acclimated should not suffer at any time from the heat. in the temperate zone, in
The
reason for the truth just stated
the fact housing and clothing, and especially to the pernicious habit of tub bathing a tissue condition of the kidneys and general body is brought about, which makes it very susceptible to heat above the ordinary temperature. that,
owing to modes of
—
life
lies in
—eating,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
342
No
case of heat prostration, or sunstroke, has ever
been known to occur in persons who did not present a chronically abnormal kidney, and therefore, acid tissue condition.
The symptoms
indicating so-called sunstroke begin
by a sudden chill, which is sensed as cold waves up the back toward the occipital region. The heart's action labored;
there
a sense of throbbing
is
greatly
in
the temples, and of complete prostrsltion. Sight
is
becomes dim, as though a dark mantle were thrown over the eyes. Sweat, which usually has been profuse, ceases entirely, and sometimes the patient completely loses consciousness.
Usually,
however,
only
falling
and remaining inert. A patient suffering from sunstroke should be placed in a shaded room in which the temperature should be
prostrate
brought to about seventy degrees Fahrenheit. No ice or extremely cold water should be applied to the body or head. However, the clothing should be removed, and the surface of the whole body should receive Ught and rapid friction with a rough towel or with the hands, for the purpose of breaking up the fixation of the skin. Relating in a case of heat prostration or sunstroke, should be first directed to release of the nerves of respiration and the heart and brain ; foUowed by release of
nerves to the kidneys, which should be succeeded
by
such incidental corrections as are indicated. Under the application of the principles of Chiropractic, equihbrium of Uquid transportation will soon be restored, and in a few hours or at least days, the patient will seem as well as common, although it will take some weeks to remove the general, chronic, adverse condition.
INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY
343
DROPSY a term applied to the tissue conditions of in which lymph accumulates in excessive quantities, and in abnormal places, or, in other words, in the spaces of the body, which should only be potential cavities, and should not be occupied by an excess amount of liquid. In connection with this statement, and in explanation thereof, it must be understood that lymph normally reaches every atom of animate tissue of the organism, and in this physiologic sense there would be no places in tissue where the presence of lymph would be abnormal, but the reference here is wholly to pathologic accumulation.
Dropsy the body
Dropsy
is
refers
particularly
to
the
pathologic
accumulation of lymph or the failure of transportation of lymph, which results in actual liquid distortion of tissue, and a persistent occupancy by liquids in excessive quantity.
It must be understood that the accumulation of lymph in what are ordinarily classified as the cavities of the body, such as the thorax,
abdomen,
etc., displaces
the walls of those cavities and produces distortion.
Certain reference to dropsy, either directly or by made in connection with every phase
analogy, has been of abnormality
work, using such terms as liquidity," etc., and the student is here cautioned to carefully observe those different statements. The phase of abnormality called dropsy is the culmination of the negative process in so far as it can be accomplished, and the part or organism remain animate, and therefore, of course, dropsy is always a grave phase of abnormality. " excess
in
this
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
344
In the process of almost any phase of abnormality that tends toward a fatal issue, dropsy finally occurs. It need not be pronouned, but it always occurs as incident to pernicious disease at some phase before the culmination.
Dropsy, however, more frequently occurs as incident to the general glandular condition discussed in this chapter,
and as a sequence
of that phase of abnormality
called rheumatism.
Therapeutists sometimes suggest that rheumatism causes dropsy. This, of course, is not true, but the eflfects of widespread occlusion as incident to general glandular
abnormality, and specifically abnormality of the large glands, which always precedes rheumatoid conditions, it can be plainly
seen prepares the way andfinally results in
the negative tissue condition in which dropsy culminates. It will, of course, be understood that in a tissue con-
which dropsy occiu'S, that assimilation has for a long time failed very markedly; that disintegration has been greatly in excess; that the structtu*es of the area have been acting under anemia some time and the tonicity is so wholly lost by these adverse phases, that distention and liquid accumulation readily occurs. The accumulation of liquids in excess in a cavity is called infiltration, and under various phases of abnormal dition in
process infiltration
may, and frequently does occur,
in
any
of the cavities of the body. Therapeutists have seen fit to classify dropsy under
several different heads, which, while
it is
not necessary,
and cannot be conceded to distinguish the processes, still since the names give some convenience of reference they will
be adopted in this connection.
INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY
345
is a general dropsy involving the entire body in a general way, and of course it will the tissue of be understood that this is only an analogous dropsy, for
Anasarca
anything like a complete dropsy would result in death before complete accomplishment. Acites is an infiltration into the potential cavity of the abdomen. This process may become so marked as to
produce such general pressure and irritation as, by the process of motor reaction, to produce constriction and
and
occlusion to the heart
respiratory organs, resulting
in death.
Hydrothorax
is
an
infiltration into the so-called pleu-
and pericardial cavities of the a very dangerous phase, and unless it has intelligent and apt attention will speedily result
ral cavities, or pleural
thorax. This
is
in death.
Hydrocephalus is an infiltration or dropsy, occurring in the meningeal sacs, or ventricles of the brain. This situation may result from an accumulation of liquids in either of these or both,
and
is
usually
an
excessive
accumulation in the meningeal sacs and ventricles of the brain. Hydrocele
is
an
infiltration into
scrotum surrounding the
testes,
the cavity of the
the scrotal tissues being
subject to great distension. It frequently occurs that
much
liquid thus accumulates. Ordinarily, under the
application
of
the
principles
of
Chiropractic
the
dropsical condition called hydrocele will be quickly
removed by exosmosis. Ovariocele is an infiltration through the capsule of the ovary, and is frequently referred to as ovarian dropsy or ovarian cyst. In this adverse tissue condition surgeons
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
346
always recommend extirpation of the ovary. However, this is no more necessary than excision of the testes in hydrocele, for under the application of the principles of Chiropractic ovariocele will usually be quickly reduced by the process of exosmosis. Of course, it must be admitted that there are cases in which ovarotomy is indicated, and should be performed. In practically all accumulations of liquid into cavities under the process called dropsy, drainage of those cavities is paramountly indicated. Of course, it must be suggested that in hydrocephalus draining is very difficult, and is always a dangerous proceeding, and yet it is believed that much will be accomplished when the
method
is
better imderstood.
Drainage of cavities is accomplished by a process which is the projection of a hollow needle through the wall of the cavity from which the
called aspiration,
Uqiiid
is
drawn
oflf,
when
needle is removed and by placing over it a little
the
the opening closed, usually
adhesive plaster.
There was formerly a method of inserting a silver tube through the wall, into which a stopper was fitted, but this method has properly fallen into disuse. In cases in which aspiration is indicated the Chiropractor should not hesitate to have it performed, for dropsical accumulations in a cavity are very irritating, and cause all phases of adverse process under which the body is laboring to be worse. Relating to remove dropsy, of course, will be directed to the release of nerves to the area of accumulation, and incidentally, but paramountly by releasing nerves to the kidneys and liver. specifically
INCIDENTS OF KIDNEY ABNORMALITY
347
Of course, in this connection it must be suggested that primary attention in such cases is always directed to release of nerves to the brain, to the heart lungs.
and to the
CHAPTER XXXII MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY There are certain distortions of tissue which seriously affect the tissues of the kidneys, and also their functions, and incidentally aflFect tissue condition and function in other parts of the body. These must be given definite consideration in this connection.
The distortions referred to in the preceding paragraph what has been termed movable and floating kidney, and they will be discussed in the order named.
are
MOVABLE KIDNEY Recalling the anatomy of the kidneys, it will be remembered that they are placed in what are called renal depressions in the muscles of the posterior wall
abdomen, and rest in relation with the psoas and quadratus lumborum muscles, and incidentally the crura of the diaphragm. of the
It will also be recalled that the kidneys are sometimes
completely shut out fiom the abdominal cavity by a complete covering of peritoneum, or serous membrane, but that sometimes the peritoneal covering on the ventral aspect of the kidney is deficient. In the condition just described the kidneys undergo two remarkable phases of conduct in their distortion,
which constitute the pathologic differences between movable and floating kidney. In distortions of the kidney, where the peritoneum is 348
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY
349
not deficient, the situation presents a movable kidney, but where the peritoneum is deficient the result is a fioating kidney, which phase will be considered later in this chapter.
not deficient, but it sometimes pathand progressive occurs as a result of pronounced ology, or as the result of trauma, that one or the other, or both kidneys, are disrelated by separation between the fatty capsule and the fibrous capsule, in which event the kidney drops feetward and ventrally, and produces a peritoneal pouch in which it moves obliquely
In cases where the peritoneum
is
covers the ventral aspect of the kidney,
upward and downward.
The of a
situation just described presents all of the phases
movable kidney or of movable kidneys. happens in persons that have undergone
It sometimes
severe emaciation as a result of prolonged disease, that
the peritoneal pouch becomes greatly elongated, so that the right kidney passes colon,
ing
down behind the
and between the hepatic
flexure
and the descend-
duodenum almost to the umbilicus, but, is
of course, in
can only go as far as the peritoneal long. The left kidney is never perceptibly
such a situation
pouch
transverse
it
movable. It is very seldom that movable kidney results from traumatic injury 'per se; that is, it sometimes results from traumatic injury, as incident to emaciating pathology, but it may be safely said that it never results from independent trauma. The student must definitely fix it in his mind that the cardinal difference between
ing kidney
is
movable kidney and
float-
that in movable kidney the kidney remains
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
350
behind the peritoneal membrane, which is not deficient, and therefore, does not enter the abdominal cavity; while in floating kidney, the kidney has not only left its seat but has passed into the abdominal cavity proper. The general symptoms of movable kidney are practically identical with those of floating kidney, but are usually very much less pronounced in their general nature, and particularly the mental phases are not so aggravated, because the irritation is not so intense and continuous. It should be said, however, in connection with movable
kidney that it is very much more easy to restore the kidney to its seat, and to recover the parts from the abnormal tissue phase in movable kidney than in floating kidney. However, the method of procedure is substantially identical.
The
entire subject of care in case of
will find its definite discussion
which subject
will
now be
movable kidney
under floating kidney,
discussed.
FLOATING KIDNEY In
this
situation,
phase of abnormahty the peculiar anatomic by which there is a deficiency of the peritoneal
covering on the ventral aspect of the kidney, permits its
somewhat easy escape ventrally and downward
into
the abdominal cavity.
A
careful examination of the anatomic situation of
the kidney will; disclose the fact that except for the retention of -the fatty capsule, and the buoyant resis-
tance of relative viscera, there is not much to retain the kidney in place ventro-feetwardly, except its peritoneal covering.
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY
351
In floating kidney, where the peritoneal covering is deficient, and the kidney pulls loose from the fatty capsule, it descends between the duodenum and the hepatic flexure behind the transverse colon in the abdominal cavity, and not behind the peritoneum as in movable kidney. The discussion just given apprehends the right kidney as being displaced, and it is displaced about as six to one with the left kidney. When the left kidney is floating it descends behind the transverse colon, and under the tail of the pancreas, between the splenic flexure of the colon and the stomach, and comes to occupy a place relative to the umbilicus, and near to it on the left side. When the right kidney is floating, it occupies one of two positions. It is either found near the umbilicus, or in the right iliac fossa,
and
in either of these places it
is
sometimes found adhered to relative mesenteries. When the right kidney is floating in the same maimer described
it is relative, generally speaking, to the mesentery, to the convolutions. of the ilium, and sometimes to the ascending colon; while, when the left kidney
in relation with the
mesentery of the jejunum, and with the descending colon, which, because of its median direction, forces the kidney toward the umbilicus in relation with which it is often adhered. It will be remembered that the right kidney hes on a lower level than the left, and a considerable portion of it extends below the more rigidly placed relative viscera; only a little more than its headward half being closely surrounded by such relationship. This accounts for the greater frequency of displacement of the right kidney; is
floating it
is
CHmOPRACTIC ANALYSIS
352 the
left
kidney being closely
hemmed about by
rigid
viscera.
a grave phase of abnormality. The general situation and results are sufficiently described under the subject of visceral distortion, and visceral relating in the first volume of this work, to which the student is now requested to refer. It is only necessary Floating kidney
is
here to remark that the irritation from a floating kidney widespread motor reaction with columnar
presents
constriction,
and many
locations of
marked
occlusion
substantially involving the entire organism.
To
symptoms of floating kidney would be to recount the symptoms of substantially every phase of tissue abnormaUty, and therefore, all adverse describe the
function that can occur in the
human
organism, which
would be a useless effort and waste of time. For the student's particular advantage it said that the most pronounced symptoms of
may
be
floating
kidney are those of excessive general debihty of the tissues of the abdomen, pronounced gaseous conditions of the bowels, marked constipation, pain in the abdomen, usually
radiated
from the right lumbar up across
the body towards the heart; pain radiating from the nipple on the side affected to near the umbilicus; pain radiating
down the
legs to the ankles
and
feet incident
to the hypertonicis of the psoas muscles; all areas of
motor reaction of the vertebral column greatly conwith extreme tendency to fixation in the somatic musculature over the whole body. The motor reactive centers and muscular constriction just referred to will be found more pronounced relative to the following nerve trunk areas; third thoracic, stricted,
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY
353
and second
and
eighth cervical,
first
cervicals, eleventh
twelfth thoracics, and the second and fifth lumbar trunks. Of course, the student wiU understand that the most
marked motor reaction and fixation, will
definite constriction
and
be at the eleventh and twelfth thoracic
trunk areas.
The motor
reaction, constriction
and occlusion
just
referred to will, of course, result in a fixation of the
thorax and parietes of the abdomen, especially of the affected side, and in the thoracic area there wiU be a
continuous tendency to the production of neuralgia amounting frequently to mild pleurisy, while the
abdominal parietes will be so constricted as to prevent anything like normal conduct of the bowels. If the patient be a female, the abdominal constrictions will cause a compression of the pelvic viscera, to such an extent that normal conduct cannot be had, and the woman will suffer from such conditions as prolapsis of the uterus, suppression of urine, catarrh of the bladder,
catarrh of the urethra, vagin*l catarrh, diflScult menstruation, uterine hemorrhage,
and so on with
this
type of
abnormality, to say nothing of rectal difficulty, hemorrhoids and the production of pathologic fungi in the anal canal. If the subject
be a male, the visceral compression
into the pelvis will result in catarrh of the bladder, prolapsis of the bladder, enlargement
and catarrhal
condition of the prostate, prolapsed prostate, urethral
inflammation or catarrh, congestion and disturbance of the seminal vesicles, the loss of sex power and phases of that character
accompanied
with
and
also rectal prolapsus, usually
sigmoid
prolapsus, constipation,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
354
hemorrhoids, and pathologic fungi in the anal canal.
Another pronounced symptom of floating kidney is great congestion of lymph and blood in the head, but particularly in the brain, eyes, capsules of Tenon, etc., accompanied by a "dazzhng" sensation in the eyes; that is, rays of light seem to tremble, and there are specks and dots before the eyes, and not infrequently a tendency to apparent shimmering of the landscape.
The
congestion of
described, results
lymph and blood
in the head, just
from the extreme motor reaction and
muscular constriction referred to in preceding paragraphs of this chapter. Many times these symptoms become so pronounced as to result in incipient apoplexy.
As a result of the congestion in the brain there is always much mental disturbance. This will be almost universally indicated
by the
please the patient or satisfy
fact that it
him
in
is
impossible to
any way.
No matter
what you do for the floating kidney patient, he is always quite sure to think you did it wrong, and that instead of helping him you hurt him; instead of making him better he has been
One
made
worse.
subject to floating kidney usually sleeps poorly,
is restless and irritable, and is constantly obsessed with vague fears of adverse and impending events. The mental attitude uppermost is the overwhelming desire for rest. The patient does not want to be disturbed, but wants to rest, and will assure his doctor that if he could just rest for a long time he would be all right, but rest does not avail, and after lying in bed for hours he is more excited and irritated than when really tired. If the diagnostician fails to locate a movable or float-
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY ing kidney, but has a patient in which the
355
symptoms
and when the patient has been under the proper application of the principles of Chiropractic for two or three weeks, and his mental attitude remains the same, and there are no pronounced symptoms of improvement, he may be very certain that there is one of two conditibns: either movable or floating kidney, and if he has not been able to verify such diagnosis, he should call consultation.
detailed are pronotmced,
A diagnostician especially skilled in palpation should have no difficulty in locating a movable or floating kidney. In practically aU cases he will find it in one of the locations that have been described, and he will know it immediately, for when touched it wiU have somewhat the sensation of a hard ball floating in a thick fluid.
The
diagnostician
movable or
is
cautioned that in palpating for
floating kidney of the right side to
be especan impacted hepatic flexure, an impacted supracohc duodenum, or the fundus of the gaU bladder from the kidney. It is someially careful to fully distinguish
times quite easy to mistake one of these for the kidney, if the palpator is one of limited experience.
When to
be
the displaced kidney
is
located,
and
is
found
be the first object of the Great care is necessary in temporary adhesions, and sometimes
floating, it will, of course,
Chiropractor to replace freeing
it
from
its
it.
best not to loosen
it at the first attempt, and iudeed, usually better to proceed with the matter of releasing the kidney from its temporary adhesion very it is it
is
slowly, releasing
ing attention to
it
a
it
little
at the
first
time,
and address-
at the second or third subsequent
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
356
from its adhesion always in the patient, profound most excitement produces the and prolonged effort to release it frequently results in utter prostration and sometimes complete unconscioustimes, for releasing the kidney
ness.
When the kidney has been released from its temporary back to its seat, which must, of course, foUow the actual path of its descent. The Relator, of course, knows the seat of the kidney, and his force must be applied to it in a general way on the part opposite to that seat, which will cause adhesion,
it
to
move
toward
No
it
must be
carefully palpated
slowly through the folds of the mesentery
its position.
real force
must be projected upon the kidney
in
such conduct might and hemorrhage. When, by gentle palpation, the kidney has reached its seat, it should be pressed into place with considerable force. This should be done each time the kidney is corrected in its position, for the purpose of producing at the seat of the kidney slight irritation, for the purpose of superinducing the capsule to readhere in its normal securing
its
return to
its place, for
result in rupture of small blood vessels
position.
In order to properly secure the replacement and restoration of the capsules of the kidney the patient
should be induced to take to his bed for several weeks, and while in bed the patient should be thoroughly exercised daily in all the muscles of the in extent to walking a mile or two. All
body equal
such exercise should be given while the patient is lying upon the back by the process of tensing the muscles and elevating the feet and arms above the body.
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY In addition to the
357
exercises indicated, the nurse or
attendant should sponge the patient's body following the exercise, and follow the sponge with a dry-towel rub, and thorough and careful massage, as this character of care wiU tend to the equihbrium of transportation, and to check muscular constriction and fixation. During the whole of the time that the patient is in bed, he should have thorough Chiropractic correction and relationship each day, which should be performed ia the early part of the day, in order that the excitement, which always follows the application of relating to a floating kidney patient, shall have fully worn off before sleeping time at night. In some cases it is advisable to free the heart and brain nerves just before the patient's time for sleeping. Before taking the patient out of bed to perform relating, a band about a foot wide should be placed around the body, the kidneys having first been carefully placed, and drawn tight in such position so as to extend three inches above the normal seat of the kidney, and four or five inches below, and under the bandage in front and below the kidney a pad of cotton should be placed in such manner as to insure that the kidney shall
remain in place.
After the relating process has been completed the patient should be returned to bed and laid flat
upon the
back, and the bandage be removed, after which the Chiropractor should see to it that the kidney is in its seat,
and should put some pressure upon
it
to
make
sure of that fact.
During the early part of the patient's lying in bed, he should he as much of the time as possible upon the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
358
back. Later he after
may
turn upon either side for
two or three weeks he may
rest lying
rest,
and
upon the
venter.
When
supposed that time enough has elapsed for the kidney to be readhered in its seat, testing may be made by having the patient sit, observing if the conditions are favorable. If the kidney does not descend the patient may go about, carefully and gradually increase exercise each day, until he comes back to normal conduct. During all this time, while the kidney is cohering in its seat, the pathway through which it descended should be deeply massaged, for the purpose of breaking up the inviting relationship of the viscera, and to change the tissue habit and conduct in that area. The most disastrous thing in connection with floating kidney is the fact that therapeutists frequently make very adverse diagnoses of other phases of abnormality which the patient does not have, and this is especially true with regard to the female. As strange as it seems therapeutic doctors are generally unable to detect that it is a case of floating kidney, and therefore, arrive at the diagnosis of appendicitis, inflammation of the it is
ovaries, etc.
Fully ninety per cent of laparotomies performed
upon the female
in the last twenty-five years are for
supposed abnormality of abdominal viscera that really does not exist; the symptoms causing the diagnostician to make the mistake, being those arising from the irritations of movable, or floating kidney. Relating in a case of movable or floating kidney it can be seen is really of a very comprehensive nature, and
MOVABLE AND FLOATING KIDNEY
359
may
be the correction of any distortion that can occur. Nothing more can be said than that paramountly the displaced viscus must be restored to its place; the care and attention that has been detailed given to the patient in connection with the greatest care in diet, particularly
requiring a very light
The
and simple
diet.
specific relating, of course, is to correcting the
distortion at the eleventh
and twelfth
thoracic nerve
and and break up and check as far as possible the continual tendency to motor reaction, constriction and fixation. trunks,
to correct all other distortions,
CHAPTER XXXIII
—COMBINATION Disease—Nephritis—Diabetes
KIDNEY ABNOEMALITY Bright's
As a sequel to the regular and more usual phases of kidney abnormality there occur two widely separated phases of adverse conduct called Bright's Disease and Diabetes, which will be discussed in this chapter. These phases of abnormality, the student must understand, are a combination of glandular, liquid transportation, and
gastro-intestinal.
In these phases there
always a general, adverse, all of the ductless glands, and ductile glands of the body. is
glandular condition of practically
Accompanying the general gland abnormality referred to, there are certain phases of abnormality of
the respiratory organs, more particularly superinduced
by abnormality
of the glands contained in
and along
the tubular structures, and also abnormality of the
alimentary canal, particularly as to its glandular aspects. In order to get a complete understanding, and be able to view the
situation comprehensively, the student
should here read carefully again the chapters on Gland Abnormality, and Combination Abnormahty in this volume.
bright's disease
—NEPHRITIS
This phase of abnormality these days under the
is
usually discussed in
name Nephritis. Back some 360
thirty
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY—COMBINATION
361
years ago, the word Nephritis was not heard, but the
common term was Bright's
Disease.
a strong and general tendency in the therapeutic world to get away from plain and simple language and statement as much as possible. In the simplest form that the proposition can be put, Bright's Disease or nephritis is a shifting process of tissue abnormality which really amounts to consumption of the kidneys. The therapeutic world has made much mystery of this phase of abnormality, because it does not understand the cause of it, and does not understand how the phase occurs. Bright's Disease is always a critical phase of abnormality. It may be, and frequently is, an acute phase of chronic abnormality, but the tissue process designated by the name Bright's Disease never occurs except after the tissues of the kidney have been gravely abnormal for a long time, or are congenitally or hereditarily
In
this
day there
abnormal as a
The cause
is
result of adverse tissue tendency.
of the adverse tissue process under dis-
cussion relates peculiarly to the production peculiarly influenced
by the abnormahty
by the
liver,
of the spleen,
an excessive and abnormal uric acid, which has placed upon the kidneys the burden of an unusual function of
a long time, under which burden the tissues of the kidney finally reach the adverseandinflammatory process which present some of the phases of so-called Nephritis. For convenience of classification the adverse tissue condition may be divided into the acute and chronic phases, but the student must remember that the basic tissue condition is always pronouncedly chronic. for
362
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
acute phase begins suddenly by a sense of pronounced chill with great weakness and prostration,
The so-called
frequently accompanied
by nausea, and
practically
always with severe headache, or dull, heavy pain in the head. There is usually marked pain in what is ordinarily called the " small of the back," that is, in the muscles behind the kidneys, accompanied by pain radiating down the legs, and up the vertebral column. The elevated temperature is always of a pronounced type, corresponding to the chill. The outward temperature does not appear to be high, but there is every indication of pronounced internal and general heat. The
and head are usually slightly swollen, and the skin is of a copperish-red, the eyes being congested and bloodshot. At this phase of the process aU of the motor reactive tissues of the face
greatly congested,
centers are violently constricted with grave occlusion
and to the extremities, body from the eleventh thoracic
to the brain, heart, stomach, liver especially affecting the
trunks down; so much so that quite frequently long before the final result the patient loses the use of the legs, and is frequently affected by stupor or coma.
Because of the pronoxmced inflammation of the kidneys, there is very little urine excreted, although there is an almost constant impulse to urinate. The fluid passed is of a deep reddish-brown color, and presents a very pungent odor. Toward the final stages of a fatal case, the odor of the urine passed is much like that of fresh blood mixed with urine, which it really is, for at this stage capillary hemorrhage is taking place in the kidney tubules. In a few days, or perhaps hours, a marked dropsy
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY—COMBINATION
363
begins to occur in the feet and soon reaches to the abdominal cavity, and gradually fills that cavity until the patient dies from occlusion, resulting from irritation,
motor reaction and columnar constriction. In the phase of abnormality just described, what is to be done for the patient must be done quickly, for the process goes to a fatal termination with
much speed
unless checked. If, before the consumption or disintegration of the kidney has progressed too far, application of the principles of Chiropractic are addressed to the adverse process, it can be stopped, and recovery had. If, however, the tissue disintegration has gone too far, which means that there is not sufficient machinic structure left to perform the necessary eliminative office, the case will be fatal. In the so-called acute phase no food of any kind should be administered to the patient. The bowel should be thoroughly cleansed by a colon tube enema, administered two or three times the first twenty-four hours, and thereafter each twenty hours, as long as the condition of the intestine indicates the need for it. The normal volume of liquid of the body should be kept up as much as possible by normal salt solutions injected per rectum. The patient should frequently be given small quantities of water to drink. The patient should be kept in a room from which bright light should be shaded, and in which the temperature should be maintained at about eighty degrees, so that the body can be kept practically nude. The patient's body should have moist friction once each twelve hours, and should have relating about three times
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
364
a day the first two days, and thereafter according to symptoms. So-called chronic Bright's Disease finally results in the
same conditions as the
acute, but
may be many months,
or even years, in accompUshing the adverse tissue
efifect.
The adverse tissue condition in this phase is brought about by a slow, low, continuous inflammation of the kidney; the adverse chemical changes taking place gradually but finally reach the same condition as described in the acute phase.
In the phase under discussion the patient is frequently work up to within a few hours of his death. Usually, however, as death approaches there is a short period of acute symptoms, in which, however, none of
able to
the phases are marked as they are in the acute process.
The
chronic phase, of course,
is
very
much more
remove than the so-called acute. This would not be true if at its incipiency the principles of Chiropractic were applied, but such cases seldom come to a Chiropractor until the symptoms indicating a fatal termination begin to present themselves, when of course the result is rendered very much more doubtful. However, the whole matter is determined by the rule laid down under the acute phase. That is, if there still remains sufficient of the kidney tissue to perform the eUminative office of the kidney, and the other glands of the body have not imdergone too great deterioration, recovery can still be made by the application of the difficult to
principles of Chiropractic.
The student must remember
in this connection,
ever, that always in such cases there
is
how-
a gravely adverse
general glandular condition of the organism to correct.
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY—COMBINATION
365
and he must, ant.
He
therefore, not be too sanguine or expectmust, however, do for the patient everything
of which the situation permits.
remove so-called Bright's Disease, of course, is paramountly an address to free the kidney nerve trunks, but as has been indicated, correction will go very much more widely than this, for release of the brain, heart, and respiratory nerves is just as strongly Relating to
indicated as are the nerves to the entire alimentary canal,
and incidentally to the correction of glands every-
where in the body, so that the matter rests in the sound judgment of the Chiropractor, and not much can be definitely stated in the abstract.
DIABETES Diabetes is
is
the
name
phase of abnormality which two heads, which have
of a
usually considered under
received the designations, diabetes insipidus and diabetes mellitus, stages,
which
and
really
in its
means diabetes
advanced
in its beginning
stages.
two pronounced symptom of excessive sugar in the urine may be lessened or removed by stopping the ingestion of sweets, and the second phase in which dietetic changes do not effect the lessTherapeutists conceive
phases, in the
first
of
as being separated into
it
which
its
ening of the sugar in the urine.
Any attempt diabetes
is futile,
to
name
because
or designate characters of
it is
a shifting, changing tissue
and once begun continues to a fatal some assistance is brought to the rescue
condition,
result,
unless
of the
organism.
The phase
of abnormality
under discussion was
366
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
named from
the therapeutic supposition that the pro-
nounced and paramount symptom is always that of finding what they have called grape sugar or dextrose in the urine.
The student
not understand this phase of abnormality unless he also understands what is stated in the chapters on Gland Abnormality, and Combination Abnormality, herein, and he is referred to those chapters now. In the general, glandular abnormality of the body, and peculiarly the abnormality of the spleen and liver, in which an abnormal and excessive glycogen is produced, accompanied by a uric acid of a nature to prevent the assimilation of glycogen into tissue, the phase is presented that is now being discussed. Of course, in connection with the glandular abnormality referred to in the preceding paragraph, the pancreas is always abnormal, and in its ductless office exercises an influence upon the Uquids of the body, adversely afifecting assimilation. The bile from the liver, and the pancreatic juice from the pancreas are both gravely abnormal as to consistence, and therefore, seriously affect the process of digestion, and as markedly affect the process of absorption. Not only is the process of absorption gravely affected, but the chemical consistence of the substance absorbed is markedly changed, and frequently rendered dewill
structive.
The substance found by
urinalysis in diabetes, of
course, contains a substance analogously like grape
sugar, but
must be remembered that it is produced and it is immaterial what drugs or diet are
it
in the Uver,
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY—COMBINATION
367
administered, unless the conditions of the liver are amended, it continues to be produced, and its pro-
duction increased. Diabetes so-called is always the result of prolonged, functional abnormality, and incidentally it always follows a prolonged inflammatory condition of the hver, and a shorter inflammatory condition of the kidney.
The inflammations
referred to in the preceding para-
graph are not of the type that are recognized therabut are of sufficient gravity to greatly lessen the cohesion and general tissue consistence not only of those glands, but of the tissues of the body generally. peutically,
It
is
impossible to teU
by
urinalysis
how much
of the
abnormal sweets are being discharged from the body, because it can never be known how much is being passed in the feces, from the lungs, and through the skin. It
is
a fact that therapy does not seem to attach
much importance
to or
know
that there
is
constantly
lu-ine a certain amount of sweet found as a symptom of diabetes. The dietetic habits of the people, in which there is such a pronounced excess of sweets used, result in the necessity for the elimination through the four depuratory channels of an excess of sweets, which cannot be used in the economy of the body. Of course, it will be understood that the heaviest burden of eliminating the excess, resulting from ingestion,
being excreted in the
substance which
is
upon the kidneys, and because thereof, ance is frequently overcome, and expresses symptoms of diabetes. falls
their resistit*elf in
the
In the advanced stages of the prostration of the kidneys, those parts that should separate urine particles
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
368
from the lymph uriniferous
and the walls of the tubules are so relaxed and flaccid, that fail
to do so,
lymph, bearing glycogen in excessive quantities, pours through them, frequently to the extent of several gallons each day. It must be borne in mind that the lymph that thus passes through the kidneys is the nutrient lymph that should not only furnish tissue substances to the kidneys for assimilation, but should carry the residues and disintegrated matter back to supply tissue substances and by-products to other parts, and to other ehminating channels for the depuration of the debris.
Consequent to the failure of the lymph mentioned to be returned to the body, and because of the waste of the nutriment through the kidneys, assimilation is greatly lessened throughout the whole organism, which soon becomes thin and anemic.
At the occurrence
of the phases just mentioned, the
weak and without ambition, with great difficulty that he brings his mind to
patient will notice that he
and
it is
is
He wiU find that he has an inordinate appetite, and that there is almost an irresistible desire to drink water. Shortly after the phase mentioned in the last parathe performance of ordinary tasks.
graph it will be observed that there is a dropsical tendency in the feet and hands; that the gums are pale
and
flaccid,
and the teeth
loose in the alveoli; that
a congestion in the capsules of Tenon, so that the eyes protrude and the Uds are baggy and flaccid. The symptoms last mentioned are the indication of the graver phases of so-called diabetes. Incident to this phase of the process the appetite for both water and there
is
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY—COMBINATION
369
food becomes uncontrollable. The patient is not only weak throughout his whole body, but is weak mentally, and usually cross It will
and
sullen.
be seen that so-called diabetes
is
always a
chronic tissue condition, and that anything like careful
body would have disclosed approach long before it takes on the phases that have
diagnostic attention to the its
been therapeutically 'assigned to it. In this connection it must be remembered that if Chiropractic was a generally used system, no such tissue condition or functional phase as diabetes could occur, and no such phases of abnormality do occur in those who have adopted Chiropractic as the system to be applied for the removal of their adverse situations. So-caUed diabetes, if advanced to such a stage that any of the large glands have deteriorated so that there is not sufficient tissue left to perform their functions, is a fatal process. At any time before that the patient may be recovered. After that phase of the situation has occurred recovery wiU be doubtful, and in the graver phases impossible. Therapeutically,
but
diabetes
is
this fact should
classified
as
a fatal
not influence the Chiromuch can be done for the patient by the application of the principles of Chiropractic, which can not be done by any other system. The thing of prime importance to the Chiropractor in handling a case of diabetes, is to secure the proper conduct dietetically on the part of the patient. The patient needs nourishment, but cannot obtain it through the ordinary means of feeding. disease,
practor to any extent, because
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
370
The paramount
thing needed in the patient's body and regeneration.
is
an opportunity
A
rebuilding process can never be accomplished while
for glandular rest
the debiUtated glands are put to the necessity of functional work.
In anything first
like the earlier stages of diabetes the
thing to insist
upon
complete abstinence from under this regime, he may
is
food. If the patient frets
receive the administration of strained vegetable broths,
given hot, with sufl&cient paprica and salt to render it palatable. However, it is very much better that the patient have no food at
all,
for all the
way from a week
to three weeks.
The
intestines will
be found to be in bad condition as
a rule, and should be thoroughly cleansed by irrigation and the volume of the Uquid body should be kept up as
much
as possible
by normal
salt solutions injected per
rectum.
In connection with the dieting of a patient suffering from this phase of abnormality, it must be remembered
no proof that the administration of sweets produces sweets in the body, and that there is also no proof that starches produce sweets. In cases where any food is administered, the patient should be fed for tissue nourishment, and the diet must be a sensible one, and the residt of it can only be told by noting the symptoms of its effects. In cases in which fasting on the part of the patient is insisted upon and secured, if the patient frets too much, it is permissible to let him hold some kind of hard candy in the mouth, letting it slowly dissolve, and swallow it. It has been found by careful observation that that there
is
KIDNEY ABNORMALITY— COMBINATION this does
371
not increase the sweets in the body, but tends
to their reduction. Relating in diabetes, of course, consists in for release of the twelfth, eleventh
an address
and tenth thoracic
nerve trunks, but will in addition to these require a constitutional supervision with paramount attention to the fifth, sixth and seventh thoracic trunks; the nerve trunks of the brachial plexus to the brain, heart and and a careful local attention to all
respiratory system,
glandular areas of the body.
The
corrections indicated
should not be administered at once, but must be applied
way as to produce a general tendency to constanicimprovement.
in such
tive
No
case of either Bright's Disease or diabetes should
be turned away by the Chiropractor, but he must have well in mind the limitations, and in the advanced phases of either of these processes must not promise too much, but should exercise his highest skill and best judgment.
CHAPTER XXXIV gONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
From
the mysterious dogmas of the past there has
descended, even mito this day of enlightenment, a
theory and beUef that disease is contagious. This strange, strained, and impossible conception
is
hugged to the consciousness of perhaps ninety-five per cent of the hiunan family. The remarkable part of the situation rests in the fact that there is not one scintilla of evidence tending to sustain the proposition of contagion.
The
belief in the possibility of
contagion rests solely
upon the remarkable fact that human beings know more about any and every other thing than they do about the human body. The average human being knows of nothing more mysterious than his own body.
The remarkable is
thing about the statement last made the fact that, while the average human or even the
human believes his body is the greatest mystery, still he makes no definite effort to solve that mystery, but with regard to the body accepts without question almost any ridiculous theory presented to him by any one who assumes to understand. A few simple propositions must be investigated before one can scientifically take any definite position upon the matter of the possibility of contagion. Before a sane person can believe in the possibility of contagion, he must have reached the conclusion that intelligent
disease
is
an
entity, or that diseases are entities.
372
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
373
In other words, before a person can legitimately reach the conclusion that a disease can be transmitted from
human being to another, he must first establish in mind the belief in the individuality of disease, for it is most overwhelmingly conclusive that unless there are one his
such things as disease entities, or individul diseases, there can be no such thing as the transmission of them.
The
therapeutic world never having understood the
functioning of the nerve system, never had oppor-
tunity to understand the cause of disease, and therefore,
has some excuse for
its
erroneous conceptions as to the
but for Chiropractors there is no such excuse, and no Chiropractor can be heard to plead ignorance as a mitigation for belief in contagion. To the student engaged in a study of the actual truth respecting the human body, regardless of the ancient theory and dogma, there is no more impossible conception than that there are diseases or that there are disease entities. Such students know that disease is one thing, expressed in a multitude of phases, and, therefore, that transmission of a phase of disease is an imentification of the disease;
possibility.
Actual, irresistible, indestructible fact usually, however, has small weight with the human family when it is
made
to confront a rehgion founded
mysticism, and that uncontrolled
is
upon theory and
the situation that students,
by anything but
fact,
must meet and deal
with in their present efforts. However, there is one glorious ray of hope that shines in, and that is, facts continually presented displace theories, faiths and mysteries.
Facts pertaining to disease will eventually wear
away
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
374
the mysticism and
dogma
of contagion. It
cannot be
expected to occur at once. It cannot be expected to occur until that portion of the human family, dealing with the subject of disease, come to understand that
no such thing as disease entities, and therefore, that there can be no such thing as contagion. The fact is, that if contagion was a possibility, every contagious disease must have been caught somewhere, and since there must have been a time when there was no one from whom to " catch " the contagious disease, the proposition of contagion fails. This fact has had small there
is
weight with the human family. If there is now, such a thing as a contagious disease, in order that it could exist as such, it must always have been a contagious disease, and if it was always a contagious disease, the first human being that had it, had to catch it somewhere, and if there was no human being who had it, then it could not have been caught, and if it could not have been caught it is not contagious. The argmnent is plain, but not five per cent of human beings have ever thought of it, or would give it a moment's consideration if they had. To tell the ordinary human being that there is no such thing as contagion; to tell him that a so-called contagious disease must have been caught originally, and since originally no one had it, it could not be caught, only serves to wring from such individual the statement, " My doctor says that so-and-so disease is contagious. I do not know." This statement in the face of the absolute impossibihty of such a thing! The criticism made is that in matters pertaining to the human body, its health and disease, human beings
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
375
upon what
their doctor
revert to the religion of relying says,
and not upon
their
own sound common
sense.
To
illustrate: persons will drink unfermented grape juice, because a doctor advises it, when they are troubled with gas productions in the stomach, notwithstanding the fact that they know better than anybody that a fresh fruit juice, disassociated from its pulp, will ferment quicker, and produce more gas than almost any other substance. If they wish to aUay gas in the stomach they must take the fruit juice, after it has completely fermented, thereby excluding its fermentation gases. The fact is that persons can be poisoned, and yet reactions upon a specific poison are only phase-like ia type, and are not specific reactions. To illustrate the statement made in the last paragraph: twenty persons, each taking two ounces of whisky from the same receptacle will present twenty different phases of reaction, because they represent twenty different chemical formulae. Chemists have long sought vainly to secure specific, functional reactions, but have failed most pronouncedly, and will always continue to so fail, because each himaan being will always represent a specific chemical formula, and wiU react upon any poison injected into him exactly in correspondence with his individual formiila, which will be to that extent different from the reaction of any other human organism. The fact that persons can be poisoned, and in a sense typically react upon that poison, has furnished the whole foundation for the mystery of so-called contagion. Persons living in the same environment and atmosphere are poisoned in the same way, and those whose chemical
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
376
formulae are of the nature to respond, react somewhat typically
upon the
particular poison,
and
society at
large proclaims another demonstration of contagion.
To make the subject specific, inoculation is the process we
are discussing.
inject into,"
The word
and a poison
is
inoculation signifies " to injected into a person
no
matter whether the injection is accomplished by the use a needle, by scarification, or by inspiration, ingestion
of
or endosmosis.
In other words inoculation has been accomplished when poison per se has been introduced into the animate structures of the organism, no matter by what process or by what means. It is perfectly clear that if a person is inoculated with a ptomaine, he typically reacts upon that poison, and it is just as clear that if he is inoculated by some unknown miasma arising from the earth or accumulating in certain circ*mscribed areas in the atmosphere, he will just as readily,
and
just as specifically react
upon that
poison.
There is overwhelming proof that toxins emanating from the earth, and accumulating in the atmosphere in certain localities, at certain times of the year, do inoculate persons, and sometimes very extensively, who happen to be living in those locahties. Sometimes there is a toxin which accumulates in the atmosphere, or from the earth, which seems to be quite general, for it inoculates persons very widely over the
face of the earth. This occurred in the so-called Spanish
Influenza epidemic which took place in 1918. There little
is
or no question that the toxin which caused the
peculiar reaction called Spanish Influenza
chemical formula in the atmosphere.
was a pecuhar
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
377
The paramount
proof of the statement in the last paragraph the fact that not all persons reacted upon that poison. If so-called Spanish Influenza had been contagious the whole human family would have is
succumbed, but only those succumbed in whose organism a negative condition of the right chemistry had been produced, and this preparation had been made in those persons by a long, hot, dry summer that had preceded.
The tagious
belief that so-called is
Infantile Paralysis
is
con-
quite general, notwithstanding the fact that
now well known that infantile paralysis never occxirs except when an incipient and pronounced distortion in it is
the pelvic girdle produces exactly the right adverse influence
upon the nerve system,
setting
up a
reaction-
ary condition that may only serve to influence the muscles and tissues of a leg, but usually of the leg and
arm on
the side of the injury.
on the part of serum and it to be believed that germs are the cause of disease, and that vaccines and sera transmit germs, aU of which is most damaging and fallacious. There is no serum nor vaccine which contains any germs. Therefore, when understood, these propagandists lend their force in substantiation of what has aheady been said that poisons produce typical There has been an
eflfort
vaccine commercialists to cause
—
reactions.
In other words, if diphtheria antitoxin is inoculated into an organism, that organism reacts upon it, and if sufficiently virile produces an array of scavenger germs, to aid not only in the reduction of the antitoxin, but the morbidity produced by it, and the phase of abnormality the organism was undergoing before the injection.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
378
The same
thing as just stated with regard to anti-
and vaccines now forming such an extensive part of our degradation com-
toxins
is
true of
all
of the sera
mercially.
In the statements that have been made in this conis no desire on the part of the author to avoid meeting the fact that if a person has developed
nection, there
a condition of great negativity in himself, and therefore, of recipiency to a characteristic toxin, and has just about reached the point where his resistance is overcome, that to bring
him
in contact with another person,
who
is
body a great deal of that characterand probably would, be sufficiently inoculated by it to immediately lose his resistance, and react upon it and the characteristic toxins of like chareliminating from his istic
poison, might,
acter in his
The
own
organism.
would only furnish proof of the truth of inoculation, and would in no manner refer to,or sustain the proposition of contagion. In other words the human organism may' be overcome by the inoculation of poisons, and it does not make any diflference where those poisons come from, whether from the bodies of other persons who are emanating poisons, or from accumulations of poison in the atmosphere, or emanations from water or from the earth. The fact remains the same that if the person succumbs to the poison, he is succumbing to the inoculation of poison and not to contagion; for if he succumbs to contagion he must have taken a disease from another to himself completely and in toto; whereas, if he had only succumbed to inoculation he has only received from some source a sufficient amount of poison, which, combined situation just detailed, however,
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE witli the poison already in his
379
own organism
to over-
come his resistance. The final proof of inoculation, and defeat of the theory of contagion, however, rests in the fact that any poison inoculated into the body, or elaborated in
it,
tends to be
and eliminated, and if the body is sufficiently virile will be wholly neutralized and finally eliminated. In consonance to the facts just stated there is no phase of contagious disease a person has had once, but what, under the right circ*mstances, he will have again. In other words, there is no phase of so-called contagious disease that the records do not show persons to have had all the way from twice to many times. The author has known one person in Oklahoma to suffer from measles three times in the same winter, and has known persons to have small-pox two and three times; to have so-called gonorrhea several times and syphilis twice. If immunity was a possibility, the quickest way to produce it would be by the injection of the virus of the disease itseK, but since there is no disease that presents a toxin that prevents its own recurrence in the same organism, therefore it is perfectly clear that no serum neutralized
or vaccine will ever be produced that
by inoculation will
cause immunity, either against that same kind of poison, or against any phase of disease.
To put the matter in its most concrete form, if even smaU-poxwiU not prevent a recurrence of small-pox how can varioloid from vaccine prevent small-pox.? If even syphilis will not prevent re-inoculation of syphilis, what serum can produce such immunity? In this phase of the proposition, the whole matter becomes disgustingly laughable.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
380
It
One further fact as a suggestion to the common sense. is well known that toxic poisoning takes place by
inoculation in those whose organisms are sufficiently
loaded with the peculiar morbidity that renders them nonresistant to ivy and other woodland poisons, for it is
known
that such persons riding through the woods in
the spring, without touching anything, will immediately enter
upon the process
incident to that character of
poisoning.
In view
of the
statement last made,
that ivy poisoning
is
it is
not thought
contagious, or that ivy poisoning
a disease, or that any other woodland poisoning is a but in this simple matter the human family uses its common sense, and knows that the result is but a typical reaction upon poison. But they fail to make adaptation of this fact to the general process of inoculation, and of the development of inoculatory phases of is
disease,
disease. If the
commercial aspect was eliminated from the
proposition of vaccines, antitoxins, and of
all
characters
injections, the promulgation of them, and the them would pass from the human mind forever than a decade. But the fact that the fad of such
serum
belief in
in less
inoculations furnishes a lucrative business explains the
whole matter.
The human family will not endure this character of abuse much longer; for in the past fifty years the human family has progressed very rapidly in the investigation of the human organism, has more and more appropriated to itself the privilege of applying common sense to these important matters, and when liberty has been attained along these hues, not only will the imposition of
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
381
vaccinations and serum injections pass from society, but
with them
will
go the
belief in contagion,
and the
belief
in the fetish of the entity of disease.
Just a few remarks to bring all that has been said in this chapter down to practical application, must here
be made, notwithstanding that it is a direct criticism of the mysticism and misconceptions of therapy. Colds have been held to be contagious, notwithstanding that it is a well-known fact that colds ocdu" in epidemic form incident to remarkable changes in the atmosphere or general weather conditions, and incident to nothing else. Of course, the toxins of colds result in the production of scavenger germs, and it must be remembered that only those persons have colds who present a chronic non-resistance. Mumps, whooping cough, rubiola, measles, chickenpox, smallpox, scarlet fever and diphtheria are held to
be contagious, but
it will
be observed that these only
occur in persons
who have produced a
toxic condition;
mumps
typical, adverse only occurring in those who present negative conditions of the racemose glands; whooping cough in those who have negative conditions of the esophagus; rubiola in those who have chronic kidney disease, and the same is true of measles, except that in such phases the chronic kidney phase is
worse. Scarlet fever occurs
in
those whose kidneys are
chronically abnormal as a matter of hereditary tissue
tendency, aggravated
by
sex anomaly,
and the same
is
true of diphtheria, only in diphtheria the irritation from
sex anomaly has produced a
marked negative condition
of the tonsillar ring, especially the true tonsils.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
382
Typhoid fever
is
a combination abnormality of the
kidneys, hver and intestines, but could not occur except
most superinduced by kidney abnormality, aggravated by anomalous sex orifices, and these adverse situations prepare the way, and constantly prepare the tissue, for venereal disease. It cannot be doubted by those well informed that no such a thing as venereal disease would have existed in the human family if it had not been for the irritation and consequent reaction upon these tissue conditions were chronic. Sore eyes are
frequently
the
human organism
incident to the anomalous sex
orifices.
In
all of
these phases, and
Chiropractic
is
many
others, the value of
in the sense of a prophylactic. In other
to prevent disease, which
is accomfrom interference, generally called occlusion. The highest and surest form of immunity is that condition which results when all of the nerves are free, and when the radiation of stimulus is unimpeded; when respiration, digestion and absorption are being performed in proper amount and time; when aeration is taking place
words, in
plished
its ability
by keeping
unobstructedly; is
being
made
when
disintegration
of the nerves free
extrusion of the right substances
amount and proper time, so unimpaired, and when physiologic being accomplished without inter-
in right
that assimilation ference,
all
is
is
and when depuration and
final elimination are
keeping exact pace with all of the other phases of process. In other words, when elimination is holding its proper ratio to raw material intake.
In the ideal condition just stated, there can be no doubt that the human organism would be absolutely
-
CONTAGION IMPOSSIBLE
383
immuBe from all inoculatory influences, and would, therefore, be immune from aU phases of abnormaUty or disease,
and
Chiropractic
is
this is the grand ideal toward which always striving.
CHAPTER XXXV MAIiARIA
—Intermittent—Remittent— Yellow Fever—Bubonic Plague
Intermittent-^Pernieious
The word malaria simply
signifies
" bad air," and
it
has always been the thought of therapeutists that the disease called malaria was caused by " bad air." It is indeed a grave question whether the adverse
comes from bad air, or from an emanation from the earth, and incidentally from drinking water. tissue condition called malaria
The
evidences surrounding the malarial situations
strongly indicate that the adverse tissue condition
is
superinduced by a combination of emanations from the earth miasma in the air, and substances in the drinking water.
much upon the cause what they call malaria, and they have unhesitatingly announced that it is a miasma that emanates from the earth in certain, low, moist and warm climates. It has Therapeutists have speculated
of
also
been contended that malaria
is
the result of
a vegetable organism that enters into the certain individuals, which causes
body
of
the adverse tissue
condition.
The
announcement from the therapeutic world is that certain mosquitoes transfer malaria by their stings, but in this view of the situation they do not stop to explain where the mosquito of this type originally got last
384
MALARIA or found malaria, nor where
lie
385 gets
it
in the present
instance.
One difficulty about the miasma theory is localities
can not be marked out purely from their
topographical situation, for there are
which
that malarial
all of
many
localities in
the conditions that would indicate malaria
are present, in which areas no malaria occurs, and, on
the other hand, there are localities in which malaria
from the therapeutic conceptions would not occiu-, in which this adverse phase is almost constant. Notwithstanding the last observation, however, it is perfectly
clear
that the irritant that produces the
adverse tissue condition by the reactions of the organism
upon it, is incident to chmatic conditions, emanations from the soil, and atmospheric chemistry. Notwithstanding this fact, however, only persons
who
are suffering certain phases of abnormality are
subject to this phase of adverse, tissue condition.
No one has ever been observed to present the adverse who has not for a long time been subject to pronouncedly abnormal, glandular condition, peculiarly of the spleen and liver with the concomitant of abnormal intestine. Persons presenting the adverse, glandular conditions just described, living in localities where the untoward conditions in this chapter enumerated apply to them, tissue process called malaria,
will at certain seasons of the year,
when the adverse
conditions reach their irritating height,
and
suffer the
symptoms
fail in resistance,
of so-called malaria,
and when
the irritations are less at other seasons will not be so pronouncedly affected, but will be malarial subjects the year round while living subject to such irritations.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
386
It cannot be doubted that persons
who
are negative
as to the glandular conditions mentioned might very easily
from
have
their resistance
overcome by the
irritation
the sting of mosquitoes bred in the filth of malarial
environment, to such an extent as to overcome their resistance. Yet it must be remembered that this fact fails entirely to account for the production of the poison or virus which
is
the irritating cause of malaria.
In connection with the thought just expressed,
it
must be remembered that in the Canal Zone in Central America, and in other localities that have been the environment of malaria, cleaning up the conditions which caused the mosquito, and keeping those conditions so sanitary that mosquitoes cannot breed, has removed the virus of malaria, and has made of those areas healthy communities, which fully proves that the poison, or virus, which superinduces malaria exists primarily to the breeding of the so-called malaria transmitting mosquitoes. Persons presenting the chronic, glandular abnormality indicated in this chapter should not live in localities where they are subjected to the virus or miasma of malaria, but should move into countries where it is known that such conditions do not exist, unless, by securing sanitary conditions, the adverse conditions can
be eradicated.
The adverse
tissue condition called malaria presents
under several phases, the symptoms of which typical processes, will be described in this connection. Intermittent fever is the commonest phase of malaria, and appears under many diflferent names in different itself
commonly and so on.
locaUties. It is
swamp
fever,
called ague, chills, shakes,
MALARIA The symptoms
of this phase are so familiar to
387
most
people that no extended discussion need be made. Of course, the tissue condition is chronic, but the onset of the acute phase is usually by a very peculiar and pro-
nounced chill. Concomitant with the chill the skin is dry and constricted, presenting evidences of venous and lymph congestion. These are not only presented in the head and eyeballs, but at all of the extremities, which feel cold, and present a marked, blue color. This will be especially true around the lunula of the finger and toe nails.
Incident to the rapidly
The
rise,
chill,
the temperature begins to
and the fever usually becomes quite
high.
sense of extreme chill remains until the fever has
a considerable height, when it begins to disappear but the sense of chill does not completely cease until the fever has reached its maximum. At the termination of the sense of chill there occurs what the therapeutists have called the " hot stage," which may last from one to several hours, and sometimes accompanying it there are nausea and vomiting, with marked pain in the eyes and extremities. After a time the vertebral and other constrictions, which are caused by motor reaction from the irritant or accumulation of toxins in the organism, begin to relax. So soon as this occurs stimulus is released, and the temperature begins to rapidly descend; the skin opens, and then begins what has been therapeutically termed the " sweating stage." During the sweating stage the patient's body and clothing will be saturated with a profuse discharge from the skin, during which process a suflScient amount of arisen to
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
388
from the body to defer a subsequent acute attack or returning chill for a considerable period of time. In other words, the fever whoUy disappears, and the sense of chill, because of the elimination of the toxin, and the patient feels that he is toxins are eliminated
recovered.
The
period of intermission between chills
differs
markedly in individuals. In some the malarial toxin accumulates so rapidly that it may be only a few hours or a day or two until the acute attack returns, and all of the process as described wiU be gone through again. In others it may be many days or weeks before a sufficient acciuBulation of toxin wiU occiu* to again over-
come the
resistance of the organism.
Cases have been observed in which one or two chills by fever would be all that would occur during the pronounced malarial period of the year, but these would continue each subsequent year, generally becomfollowed
ing
more numerous
as the patient lives longer in the
adverse environment.
The symptoms so far described have been those which occur where the patient receives no assistance, or perhaps with therapeutic treatment, for therapy has never found a remedy for malaria. Quinine has been much exploited, but quinine has never been known to remove malaria. The author has had a sufficiently complex experience of that kind himself to personally know the facts of quinine in malaria, and has observed it in thousands of cases.
No more adverse thing can be done for a person, who is
already glandularly weak, and therefore subject to
malaria, than to administer to
him
quinine, for quinine
MALARIA
389
and definitely aflFects the glands of the body and the evidences of those adverse effects can be easily
particularly
read in the in
many
irides.
The
taker of quinine only pays for
other ways, and under
many
it
other adverse
conditions.
Under the application
of the principles of Chiro-
practic, the acute phases of intermittent malaria are
usually quickly removed. However, the chronic
and
glandular abnormality, which forms the basis of the difficulty
is,
of course, slow
and
difficult of
removal,
even under the most advantageous circ*mstances. It can be easily seen that to restore a patient while living in, and enduring an adverse environmental irritation, is indeed a very difficult thing to do, and the length of time required to accompUsh it in any event will always be governed by the adverse tissue conditions. In this connection it is well to observe that some organisms are so negative, and some adverse environmental irritants are so active, that when the two occur together
it is
impossible to remove the adverse tissue
condition against such an environment.
Diet is always a very important consideration in any phase of malaria, and as to diet the main thing is to reduce the intake to the minimum, and to avoid all
substances that require the emulsifying influence of
and
bile,
also substances that readily ferment. This includes
milk, eggs,
Raw,
and foods that are too
succulent
vegetables,
starchy. coarse,
whole-wheat
breads, and hght, coarse meats, such as beef, are the proper things to select the diet from; constantly remembering that these must be taken upon the plan of the mono-diet, and the patient should use no exciters at all.
390
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Pernicious intermittent attacks of malaria are only a graver phase of the adverse tissue process just described. In this phase of abnormality, the fever becomes continuous, and is frequently very high. It never entirely abates, but the temperature falls markedly at the "sweating stage," and then after a time rapidly
ascends again.
In this phase of abnormality, while the sweating more so than the phase before described, the body is not successful in eliminating a sufficient amount of toxin to keep pace with the incoming accumulation, so that even while the sweating stage is coming on, toxic conditions, often arise to such height as to cause the sweating stage to abate incident to the development of a high fever. Incident to the sweating stage and the sudden rise of temperature, there are all of the pronounced symptoms of chill, which as before remains until the temperature has reached its maximum, when again the sense of chiU disappears, and the hot stage continues for a period of time. Incident to the phase now being described, the bile produced by the liver is very abnormal in consistence, and not infrequently of an excessive amount, and continues to be discharged within the intestine. On account of the marked occlusion of stomach nerves the pyloric orifice of the stomach is frequently open, and the sphincters are sometimes fixed in that position, in which event gurgitation of the bile into the stomach occurs, which produces pronounced nausea and vomiting with many adverse symptoms. The patient frequently dies from exhaustion superinduced by the constant irritation of bile being stage occurs as pronouncedly, or even
MALARIA
391
is, therefore, of the very importance to the Chiropractor in attending a case
gurgitated into the stomach. It first
remove occlusion of the stomach nerves to secure the closure of the pyloric
of this character to sufficiently
orifice of
the stomach, in order that the bile will pass
on down the intestine. Under ordinary circ*mstances, where the environmental condition is not too adverse, and the patient's not too negative, the Chiropractor will be able to very soon overcome the adverse symptoms of the acute phase. This he should be able to do in from tissue condition
two to five or six days. However, if the Chiropractor follows a physician in the case, he must be cautious, for the drugs administered
by therapy
cumulative reaction under the activity which wiU be produced by release of occlusion of nerves, and sometimes to secure a cumulative reaction of drugs is very dangerous to in such cases are subject to
the patient.
duty of the Chiropractor in following a physician to give definite attention to removal of occlusion to the heart, brain and stomach, until he has had time to see whether or not there has been cumulative reaction from drugs, and then proceed as hereIt
is,
of course, the
inafter detailed.
When the Chiropractor is called to a case of pernicious intermittent fever,
usual to find the bowels gravely constipated with marked impaction of the lower bowel. it is
In such a contingency he should unhesitatingly resort to enema, and thoroughly clean and irrigate the bowel, so that when the Uver reaction begins there will be free opportunity for escape of the accumulated bile and other
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
392
debris, for it
would be very
matter retained in the intestine necessary for
it
have this toxic longer than the time
injiirious to
to reach the anal orifice.
most important in this phase of abnormality, must it be remembered that during the acute phase and no food of any kind should be administered to the Diet
is
He
should be induced to drink copiously of good, soft water, which should be of the temperature of spring water. If the patient frets for food, there might be administered a light, strained broth, seasoned with a httle salt and paprika, say a cupful once in six hours. This broth should never be made of anything but patient at
all.
—
—
and should ^never from meats be strained free from any particles of solid matter. Later on in the case the lightest and most nutritious substances should be administered, but only as a monosucculent vegetables
diet,
and
in very small quantities.
Remittent fever, so-called,
is
really
about the same
adverse tissue condition as that just described, except is usually by an abrupt chUl, followed
that the attack
by a very high fever, which remains for several days, and only remits but does not cease. The remission may be for only a very short time, and it may last for ,
several days.
In this phase of the process generally in a very short time the tissue condition is such that there is a continuous high fever, which remits each day sUghtly, reaching its lowest register at about four o'clock in the morning, and ascending, reaching its highest registration at about four o'clock in the afternoon. Incident to this adverse tissue process there are frequently symptoms of grave prostration, with
MALARIA
393
complete stupor. These symptoms are those of that adverse process which has been called " typhoid fever," and have occasioned this delirium
adverse
sometimes
and
process
when
it
presents
these
marked
symptoms, being called therapeutically "typho-malarial fever."
Diet and other suggestions which were given in the phase last discussed are fully applicable in this phase. However, in this phase of abnormality, the greatest care must be observed not to administer any character of food whatever, while there are symptoms of delirium or stupor, and of course no foods that require any digestion, so long as there
is
any
fever.
Ordinarily the Chiropractor will have no difficulty in allaying the fever phases of the tissue condition being
been wiU be much more difficult to remove the acute phases, and of course it will take" a much longer time. The Chiropractor must very carefully remember the caution in discussed,
if
he
is
called to the case before it has
medicated. If the case has been medicated
it
such cases to look out for adverse, cumulative medical reactions.
YELLOW FEVEE a very grave phase of malarial fever. the pecuUar yellow jaundice that occurs as incident to this adverse tissue process. Yellow fever occurs only in warm climates, where the soil and atmospheric conditions are substantially those discussed at the beginning of this chapter. The fact that yellow fever does not occur except in
Yellow fever
It receives its
warm
is
name from
climates,
where there
is
an excessive moisture.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
394
and
in the vicinity of the ocean, does not in
any sense
give us the basic toxin that superinduces this phase of malaria.
Persons
who
are gravely abnormal as to the spleen,
and kidneys, are the only ones that are particularly subject to yellow fever, and this is true for the same reason that the same character of persons are subject
liver
to malaria generally.
acute onset of yellow fever is marked by chill that does not seem so grave as that of ordinary malaria, succeeded to by a fever that does not seem to range
The
very high. However, the internal heat is intense. There is chill, great pain in the stomach and duodenum as a result of the discharge of abnormal bile. This is usually accompanied with unusual nausea and vomiting and the sense of great thirst. The patient complains of pains in the muscles of the small of the back, much the same as that in small-pox. The intestine is almost wholly prostrated. State of calm is the therapeutic designation of the
symptoms that occur
after the fever has continued for
several hours to several days, in which, although the
temperature
is
much
reduced, there
is still
considerable
fever.
In mild cases the state of calm marks the beginning of recovery, but in graver cases the remission is incident to a new accumulation of toxin, which causes the organism to react upon it, and a very much graver situation is
precipitated. State of collapse
is
the
name given
to the succeeding
phase to the period of remission, which occurs as incident to the second accumulation of toxia in the body.
MALARIA In
this
395
phase of the process the patient becomes wholly
prostrated,
aborted. It
and is
all
of
the functions are practically
become very hemorrhage to the
at this juncture that changes
marked, and incident thereto there is skin, and almost always into the alimentary canal. The phases so far described have been based upon no proper assistance having been given to the patient, and therefore, of course, did not contemplate any checking adverse process by constructive assistance. immediately upon the first symptoms of the adverse phase presenting themselves, a Chiropractor is called, he should have no diflSculty in checking the chill, and soon removing the fever, and should have no trouble in preventing the return of the chill or fever. However, it must be remembered that he will encounter and have to deal with a somewhat protracted, glandular reaction, and this will always take considerable time, and will in many instances be fraught with much danger. In this phase, as in malaria, enema should be resorted to, and if necessary regular irrigation should be estabhshed, so that every aid will be given to the elimination of the toxins when glandular reactions are produced. of
the
If
Diet in this case
is
strict prohibition of all foods,
and
no food must be administered until the fever has been and intestinal conduct re-established, when the patient may have hot, strained broths made from vegetables, until all of the functions of the body are completely restored. Of course, incident to this phase of abnormality, it is of the first importance to have the patient drink a great deal of water, and the body can be moistened and frictioned several times a day, if it is found to be pleasant to the patient. entirely abated,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
396
the phases of malaria and in yellow fever are primarily directed to securing release of stimulus in the nerves that ramify the glandular areas Relating in
all of
of the body, particularly the large glands which are accessory to the small intestine, and to the kidneys. Therefore, of course, the release will be to the fourth,
seventh and eighth thoracic nerve trunks; the twelfth and eleventh thoracic nerve trunks. However, the glandular abnormality being general, and the toxic accumulation being general, the Chirofifth, sixth,
practor will be very particular to give such general attention as will secure the release of nerves to the glands.
As a matter
of
primary attention, he
will always, of
course, in the first instance attend to releasing nerves
to the heart, lungs
and
brain.
CHOLERA This
is
the remarkable phase of abnormality some-
times called Asiatic Cholera or Bubonic Plague. Thera-
know very
little about this phase of abnorunquestionably environmental, and always occurs in epidemics. The field of its operation is worldwide.
peutists
mality. It
is
The symptoms,
so far as they have been recorded,
show that there is a complete prostration of all of the glands of the body, and indicate that the irritant is a terrific toxin.
Indeed,
today as
its
What it comes from has never been settled. is as much a matter of discussion
origin
has ever been. Occlusion is so general that there is dropsy into the alimentary canal, the discharge from which through the it
"
MALARIA mouth and and "
intestine
is
397
called " rice water vomiting
water stools" respectively. The discharge of the rice water vomiting and stools are the first definite symptoms of the adverse process called cholera. At the beginning of the vomiting, small, solid particles of food that have not been digested, because of the complete absence of the digestive juices, are cast off. Later the mucous lining of the stomach is cast off in the vomit. At the beginning the stools are of the same nature as rice
the substance vomited, being solid particles of food, but later on contain small pieces of the mucous lining of the intestine.
During the early stages of the process the vomiting and pm-ging are very profuse; indeed so profuse is the discharge of lymph from the alimentary canal that the blood is very soon depleted, and becomes thick, blue and sluggish in the veins.
Due
to the very rapid dropsy, or escape of the liquids
from the body, the tissues soon become emaciated, so that within a few hours after the attack a person of full habit looks emaciated and shrivelled as with old age. This loss is so great that a person of one hundred and sixty
pounds
will lose thirty or forty
pounds weight
in
twenty-four hours. Occlusion of the nerves to the heart is so intense that the diastoles and systoles are rendered rapid and feeble, frequently indicating one hundred to one hundred and forty pulsations a minute.
body are quickly
The the
The
other functions of the
depleted.
patient usually remains markedly strong during
first
phase of this abnormahty, and
and walk about,
suffering
no sense
is
able to get
of prostration
up
which
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
398
approximates the destructive debility lie is undergoing, until the approach of the end of the process. State of collapse is the name the therapeutists have given to the phase of the adverse process when the body succumbs. This situation is presented in a complete prostration, sometimes with coma. Incident to the state of collapse relaxation sometimes occurs, releasing occlusion. The vomiting, stools and sweating cease, and the liver begins to act, discharging a bright green bile, so that the stools that continue are of a bright green color.
When usually
this
phase of symptoms
occiirs the patient
is
on the way to recovery, and if circ*mstances are
right will recover. State of reaction
the improved
is
the
name given by
symptoms
therapeutists to
just detailed.
If,
however,
reaction does not occur in the instance described, the
patient very soon dies, for the state of prostration
is
an
indication in such cases that the resistance of the organ-
ism has been wholly overcome. It seems wholly unnecessary to discuss diet in the case of the type under discussion, for it is plainly indicated that no food should be administered. The patient should be induced to take to his bed, and relating should be performed at close intervals until complete relaxation has been obtained, or, in other words, until glandular reaction evidences itself, after which the frequency of relating must be left to the sound judgment of the doctor in charge. Relating to remove cholera it will be seen must be addressed to releasing occlusion in all of the nerve trunks extending to and ramifying the alimentary canal,
MALARIA
399
incidentally including all other vital centers. will
have to depend upon
must at all events prevent and break up those already
The Relator
his diagnostic ability,
constrictions
but
from forming,
in existence.
This phase of abnormality is indeed very grave. Therapy has never suggested any treatment or remedy for it, but if immediately upon the attack the principles of Chiropractic would be faithfully applied, a very large majority of the cases would be fuUy recovered.
CHAPTER XXXVI EKUPTIVE FEVER Roseola
—Rubella—Measles—Scarlet Small-Pox— Chicken-Pox
It has heretofore
been stated in
this
Fever
work that
there
are two characters of fever for discussion, the first being
which has already been discussed, and the second eruptive, which must now be discussed. simple,
The
distinctive feature
of
eruptive fever
is
that
concomitant with the adverse tissue condition and process, there occurs, incident to the elevated temperature an eruption
upon the
The eruption same time, and
referred to sometimes occurs at the
skin.
in connection with the elevation of
temperature, in some cases occurring before the temperature reaches
its
height,
and in other phases the eruption
being most profuse at the time the temperature
is
at
its
height.
In
phases of eruptive fever, the eruption is but the symptom, pointing out the fact that there has been and is a precipitation of morbidity or toxins in the subcutaneous areas of the body, which must also be understood to be in the subserous and submucous tissues. The morbidity or toxin referred to in the preceding all
expression or
paragraph would not precipitate or deposit in the areas mentioned, if it were not for the fact that there is chronic, abnormal, glandular, tissue conditions, which function to that result. 400
ERUPTIVE FEVER
401
Generally the morbid precipitation that results in the eruption, which gives character to the fever vuider discussion, results
from a chronic abnormality of the
kidneys, which
usually aggravated
liver
and
The
is
by a disordered
spleen.
eruptions that occur incident to fever are
all of
the acid type, and usually occur because the spleen and
have been producing too much, or at least an abnormal, chemical compound, which the kidneys have been unable to depurate, and which therefore has been finding escape through the skin, excessively loading subcutaneous areas. Any atmospheric or environmental condition, which has the effect of producing a constriction and fixation of the skin, of such gravity as to result in fever, will usually serve to produce some phase of the various eruptive processes. Therapeutists usually discuss eruptive fever under three stages as follows: (1) the period of invasion, (2) the period of eruption, (3) the period of desquamation. As would be expected these three stages will not always be fully apparent, but will generally typically manifest themselves. liver
ROSEOLA Roseola, as the to
any
name imphes,
rose-colored rash that
as incident to
any
is
may
peculiarly applicable
appear upon the skin
febrile condition.
There is not necessarily any distinction between this phase of abnormality and so-called measles, but usually it is
the
name given
to a milder type of rose-red rashes,
which occur as incident to many adverse, kidney conditions, occurring as incident to so-called
heat conditions.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
402
The
invasion in this phase
is
usually indicated
by a
slight chill, soon followed by a rose-red rash upon the skin. This, however, is not usually seen in crescentic patches, but is distributed over the area of the acid
accumulations.
Roseola usually subsides within a few days without any attention to it whatever. However, it does not always do so, and may require that the patient shall make a radical change in his diet, for usually this difficulty occurs as incident to some grave error of diet. Usually the eruption in this phase of abnormality is not followed by desquamation, distinctively speaking, and yet in its more active phases there may be a desquamation, especially from the area of the eruption, and in this phase the eruption may be quite circ*mscribed. Relating to
remove roseola must be directed to
of the nerves to the area of eruption as a
proposition.
But
release
primary
incidentally, of course, release of the
nerves to the kidneys and those to the liver and spleen are paramountly indicated.
KUBELLA This phase of abnormality has sometimes been called It is an adverse process, not dissimilar in ordinary type from that of ordinary measles. The invasion so-called is usually by a not very pro"
German Measles."
nounced
chill,
followed
by a general
fever,
which does
not range very high. Incident to the fever there are ioflammatory catarrhal symptoms, accompanied by sore throat, with wandering pains through the muscles of the extremities, and at about this time the eruption of red papules upon the skin of a lighter color than
ERUPTIVE FEVER
403
those of measles occurs, but not in crescentic masses.
This phase is not materially different from roseola, except that the papules are usually more marked. Ordinarily rubella disappears without attention within a few days, and without desquamation. In this phase of
abnormality the same should be said about diet as in roseola, for the difficulty is of a glandular nature, and arises out of practically the same situation as that phase. Relating in rubella is precisely the same as that in roseola, and therefore, nothing further need be stated.
MEASLES (bUBEOLA) Rubeola, or so-called measles, is a phase of abnormality that came into existence as an outbreeding of the tissue condition that was originally superinduced through syphiUs. The eruption occurring in measles is very typical of that which occurs in secondary syphilis, except that it does not emit such a pungent, rusty odor, and is a bright, instead of a dirty-red color. The intention of the author is but to declare that if the hiunan family had never suffered the degradation of syphilis, and its devoluting tendencies, there would never have been such a phase of abnormality as measles. The symptoms of the onset of measles are usually those of deep lassitude, and a sense of inexpressible weakness; pain in the head and eyes, usually sore throat accompanied by pain and weakness in the socalled small of the back, wandering pains through the body, especially the thighs and the legs. About the time the symptoms indicated in the preceding paragraph become thoroughly manifest, a sense of chill pervades the vertebral column, which is usually
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
404
expressed as chills running up the back. This chill usually becomes pronounced, and soon the temperature begins to rise
somewhat rapidly, and always rises
in ratio with
the chill. If the chill, therefore, has been very pronounced, the fever will be very high. If the chill has not been
marked, the temperature will not be. Generally the chill is not marked, and the temperature is not very high. Usually in from two to three days after the first
symptoms are noticed, the rash begins to appear; at first upon the forehead and temples, and over the area of the trunk ramified by nerves from the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracics. In some cases the rash upon the face is as far as it goes but sometimes it covers the area of the body described, and in the graver cases extends all over the whole body so that it becomes as red as a lobster.
The and
rash in measles closely resembles that in roseola
rubella,
and
also in scarlet fever, except that in
measles the eruption
is
a rusty red, and
patches, while in roseola red,
and
and
rubella, it
is is
in crescentic
of a brighter
in scarlet fever of a very bright red
and not
in crescentic patches.
The
eruption of measles occurs in raised, welt-hke,
upon the skin, which at first have the appearance of the eruption of small -pox, with the exception that the eruptions are not hard, and are very much smaller than those of small-pox. The remarkable difference in the eruption in measles, distinguishing it from scarlet fever so-called, is that the eruption of measles presents a raised surface of skin, which can be easily palpated, while that in scarlet fever does not break the smoothness of the skin. crescentic patches
ERUPTIVE FEVER The
rash in measles
is
405
accompanied by an itching is not so aggravated as the
sensation as a rule, but this
same phase
in scarlet fever.
The temperature
in measles increases during the time
of the eruption until the skin loosens, or until the
fixation of the skin
is
broken by the swelling incident
to the eruption, which permits the elimination of the shut-in toxins,
The
and recovery from the adverse
process.
loosening or breaking of the skin, permitting the
escape of the toxins
is
indicated
by the rapid fading
of
the color of the rash, concomitant with which the skin
and the temperature as rapidly descends. Incident and subsequent to the rapid dissipation of the temperature, desquamation occurs, and the skin, loosened by the adverse process, rapidly comes away opens,
in small patches.
Owing to the fact that in the subcutaneous and subserous areas of the body, there is the same accumuand discharge of toxins, it frequently happens under therapy, or no assistance, that sight is gravely injured or perhaps lost, and sometimes deafness results. The most frequent sequel to measles, not having the application of the principles of Chiropractic, is such a change in the tissue condition of the larynx as to result in complete or partial loss of the voice, or if not so grave, stiQ a marked change in the voice, frequently resulting in it becoming squeally or shrill. If so-called measles has the application of the principles of Chiropractic from the onset, the process will only be shown in type, and will usually wholly disappear lation
in within twelve to thirty-six hours.
Diet in measles
is
an important thing,
in that there
406
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
should be no food administered until the process has entirely abated. The patient should be given all he will drink of good, pure water, should be kept in bed, warm
and comfortable,
in a well-ventilated room, the
windows
of which should be shaded to keep out the light, for the
eyes will be very sensitive.
So soon as desquamation is fairly on its way light broths may be administered, but the patient for several days, or even weeks, should not be allowed to return to full diet; during which time the kidneys and liver should be corrected to good condition. Relating to remove measles so-called, is primarily addressed to the twelfth, eleventh, tenth thoracic nerve trunks and the sixth, seventh and fourth thoracic
motor reactive condineed to be looked after, that will require release of heart and brain nerves and those of trunks. Of course, there will be tions,
which
will
the suboccipital area.
SCARLET FEVER This phase of process begins with a sudden and
somewhat violent chill, followed by an equally, rapidly and elevated temperature, concomitant with which a pecuhar and characteristic scarlet red rash rising
occurs. Incident to the chill there sometimes occurs
nausea and vomiting, and there is generally a sense of soreness in the throat, pain in the head and eyes, ringing in the ears, and all of the symptoms that have been described in so-called measles. The student must remember that the symptoms of this phase of abnormality vary greatly. Sometimes they are so mild as to escape notice of the individual, and
ERUPTIVE FEVER
407
again are so pronounced as to soon result fatally. Cases have been observed in which toxin was so virulent that chill was the only symptom; the patient dying before the reaction of fever set third
day
in.
Usually on the second or upon the body
after the chill, the rash appears
over that portion of it ramified by the nerves of the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic trunks. In graver cases the rash extends over the whole trunk and extremities.
The rash
very different from that in measles, and occurs in small, bright red specks or dots, usually in irregularly shaped patches. The skin, however, remains perfectly smooth. It is swollen, but does not in scarlet fever
is
present any protrusions.
Incident to the swollen skin in scarlet fever, there is the most aggravating itchy sensation, and it is usually
with great difficulty in graver cases that the patient can be prevented from tearing the skin. When the rash begins to appear, the temperature, which is already somewhat elevated, begins to rapidly rise, and continues to so rise until the eruption has reached its height. The reason for the rapid rise of temperature just described is that the accumulation of toxins in the skin becomes such a profound irritation that there is a
marked motor
reactive constriction, so
much
so as to
practically prevent toxic elimination through the skin.
Incident to the completion of eruption,
symptoms
all
the other
most pronounced, especially those of the throat, eyes, and pains generally throughout the muscular body. The throat symptoms sometimes become so pronounced as to be mistaken for of the adverse phase are
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
408
diphtheria. Incident to this phase of so-called scarlet
fever
there
is
frequently
deUrium
with
complete
prostration.
From
the fourth to the sixth day after the eruption, and loosens, permitting the elimination
the skin cracks of toxins,
and the temperature begins to rapidly subside
and the
patient's constitutional condition to rapidly
improve.
Soon following the breaking of the skin, desquamation begins, and in this phase of abnormahty the desquamation is very much more pronounced than in any of the phases so far described. Large areas of skin loosen and come oflF as an entirety. Frequently the skin of a whole finger
is
cast complete, just as a snake
desquamation will be complete days after it has commenced. The crisis of so-called scarlet fever is at the time when the eruption and temperature is at its height, for frequently there is such a precipitation of toxins at that time as to result in complete prostration and death. The discussion of scarlet fever so far has been upon casts its skin. Ordinarily in
from
six to ten
the basis of the application of therapy, or no attention at
all. If,
at the beginning of the premonitory symptoms,
or at the onset, the case has the application of the principles of Chiropractic it will never present
more
than merely the simplest and mildest types as they are described herein; usually the symptoms will be entirely abated within two or three days. Relating in so-called scarlet fever will be precisely the ,that just described in measles, except that in
same as
addition thereto greater attention will necessarily need to be given to the kidneys,
and to the pharynx,
for
ERUPTIVE FEVER sometimes in scarlet fever there
409
analogous diphtheritic membrane, and in the graver cases this should be carefully watched,
and
this is especially true in chil-
has accumulated before the Chiropractor called, he should see to it that the isthmus of the
dren, is
and if
is
fauces
is
it
freed incident to his other attention.
smaCl-pox So-called small-pox received its
name
originally to
it from great-pox, from which it was a development during the period when great-pox or
distinguish
was epidemic in many of the countries of Europe and Asia. In that time, and periods succeeding them, but before our modern sewerage systems and sanitation and before the discovery of our sanitary syphilis,
conditions as to housing, clothing, bathing, food, etc., so-called pox was
a scourge, and was called "the plague." In the ancient days when the only sewerage systems that cities had were open ditches into which all of the refuse and oflFal were thrown, there to rot and stink to high heaven, all of the eruptive fevers, but peculiarly sruall-pox, was much dreaded, and a scourge of great destruction.
For
centuries,
under
those
conditions,
so-called
small-pox occurred in epidemics, from which people died in untold thousands. However, under our present
very splendid sewerage systems, and somewhat mild approaches to sanitation, so-called smaU-pox, except in very adversely located areas, and unsanitary districts, has entirely ceased to be a grave phase of abnormality. If it
were not for the
minds of people, for
silly
notions inculcated into the
financial advantage, that it
is
410
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
by vaccination to produce immunity by producing smaU-pox in varioloid form, by the inoculation of vaccine into well human beings, this phase of abnormality could be eliminated from the human family
possible
entirely.
However, so long as human beings submit to inoculation of small-pox through vaccine virus, so-called small-pox will always be 'with us, and as long as human beings generally submit to such poisoning the human family wiU remain subject to pronounced epidemics of this adverse condition. People sometimes express themselves
as
being
astonished that syphilis results from vaccination. This
should not by any means be astonishing, for it must be remembered that such a result is only a reversion to type, for small-pox originally came from syphilis, and therefore, it will frequently result in a syphilitic taint.
Small-pox tinuous, yet
in it
some
localities
is
practically
generally occurs in epidemic.
occurs as a result of filthy conditions. This
con-
SmaU-pox
may
not
appear in the grossest sense, but small-pox never occurs any person who is not filthy within, which, of course, produces a peculiarly recipient, tissue condition. So-called smaU-pox is not contagious, although it has for centuries been taught that it is so. A person whose body has been habitually clean inside and out, and who is strong and weU, and has never been contaminated by vaccine pus is perfectly safe, and can mingle at wiU with those who are undergoing the adverse process without any danger to himself whatever. The particular irritant or toxin that produces socaUed smaU-pox has never been isolated, and is unknown. in
ERUPTIVE FEVER
411
however, unquestionably environmental and atmospheric. No persons are subject to small-pox except those who have chronic kidney and liver abnormality. The acute phase of the chronic, adverse tissue process called small-pox is by an abrupt chill, followed by a It
is,
fever of the
same character and
gravity.
The symptoms
of this fever are completely identical with that of so-
called ague, or congestive chill.
The premonitory symptoms indisposition for several days,
are
usually
those
of
and the same negative
a bilious attack. be a peculiar sense of pain in what is referred
lethargic sensations of those preceding
There
will
to as the small of the back, pains in the muscles,
and
shivering sensations occasionally, with a sense of fulness in the head, inflammation of the conjunctiva of the eyes,
and congestion
of the capsules of
Tenon.
At the time the chiU occurs there is marked pain in the muscles of the back dorsal to the kidneys, usually accompanied by pronounced pain in the back of the head, radiated over the temples to the eyes. infrequently at this time there
In children
at
this
phase
Not
nausea and vomiting. there frequently occur is
convulsions.
At the marked
chill, and in the beginning phases of the rapidly increasing fever, there is frequently
onset of the
suppression of the urine, and partial paralysis of the
lower
extremities.
The
gravity
of
the
subsequent
symptoms are generally in ratio with the violence of the onset. Cases have been recorded where incident to the chiU, the patient became completely prostrated and died without developing further symptoms.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
412
Usually on the second day after the beginning of the ehiU, the eruption begins to occur. This appears first at the wrists and ankles and on the face, and then covers the breast, arms and thighs, until in the graver cases the whole body is covered. The first definite proof that the abnormality is of the type called small-pox is when the small, red papules occur at the wrists and ankles, which upon palpation small shot under the skin. When these are found no longer any question of the type of difficulty. Of course, these shot-like papules can only be felt upon the wrists, ankles and forehead. feel like
there
is
The papules red,
and
of small-pox
when they
first
appear, are
raised above the surface. In a short time the
center of the papules tiu'n white, indicating an area of superficially stased
lymph. These continue to increase
in size as the eruption continues to appear.
When
the
papules are about five days old their centers are sufbroken down to permit a sagging, which is
ficiently
Sometimes several papules coalesce forming large ones, which are then called pustules. called umbilication.
At
the time the eruption reaches
in other words,
when the
its
maximum,
or
pustules are quite well umbili-
cated, so that the toxins are escaping through the skin,
the temperature begins to rapidly subside, and if umbilication has been sufficiently complete that the toxins
from the subcutaneous areas can
entirely escape,
the fever entirely subsides.
At
the juncture just stated, the
lymph
or colloid in
the umbihcated papules rapidly evaporates, leaving only the solid residues from the disintegrated tissue, so
that in five or six days there
is
only the renmant which
ERUPTIVE FEVER
413
what is called a scab, and it is at the time these scabs form that the process called desquamation really begins. Sometimes when the liquid from the colloid escapes, scabs form too rapidly and too continuously, and again close the skin, preventing the elimination of toxins, and when this occurs there is
called pus. This dries, forming
a secondary elevation of temperature, which usually ranges higher than the first fever, because the scabs thus formed are more difficult to break than was the is
skin originally. Ordinarily, however, the scabs do not close the skin,
and
day or two after their formation they begin to and the process of desquamation is fairly on its
in a
loosen,
way.
At the time of the loosening of the scabs just described, is an emission of a very unpleasant and sickening odor, which once smeUed wiU never be forgotten. It is there
the odor from the pus of the disintegrating tissues.
Incident to the
first
eruption of the pustules, there
is
a peculiar odor which emanates from the body, which is a characteristic symptom, and concomitantly with the shot-like papules aids the diagnostician in arriving at the knowledge that the process is typically that phase called small-pox.
One papule
of the greatest dangers of small-pox
may
is
that a
occur in the conjunctiva of the eye, or in
the cornea, or so near
it
as to encroach
upon it, the effect
which is total or partial loss of sight. There is another condition that is equally dangerous, for, on account of the regulations in substantially all of of
the
cities as
to quarantine, so-called small-pox
attended, or neglected, at
what are
is
usually
called retention or
414
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
pest houses, under the direction of a public health officer, who is invariably a doctor of medicine. All characters of adverse conditions which are sequences of small-pox occur because of the neglect at such places.
The
patient showing the
symptoms
of this type of
adverse phase should be put to bed in a well-ventilated coiofortable room, shaded so as to keep the light out, for the eyes are sensitive.
The temperature
of the
room
should be raised to about seventy-five degrees, and kept at that. The clothing should be entirely removed
from the patient's body, and he should be covered by but one thin sheet. From the very onset he should have the application of the principles of Chiropractic about four times the first day, and three or four times the next day, followed by about two each day until all of the symptoms have subsided, which result will usually be attained in from two to five days. Diet in small-pox is of the greatest importance, for no food of any kind should be administered until all the symptoms have whoUy disappeared, and until the functional offices of the patient are all active, and particularly until the liver and kidneys are active. The author has apphed the principles of Chiropractic in the removal of so-called small-pox with great regularity for many years, and has had many reports from his graduates in the field in the South, where this phase of abnormality almost continuously prevails, and finds himself in position to announce that, imder the application of the principles of Chiropractic, this phase of abnormality is a very simple matter, and its active symptoms may be abated usually in a few hours. Relating to remove so-called small-pox is, of course.
ERUPTIVE FEVER
415
primarily addressed to the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic trunks, liver
and the seventh,
and stomach
sixth
and fourth
or
areas. Incidentally, careful attention
should be given to the nerves to the heart, respiratory organs,
and brain; which
will usually
be
sufficient to
take care of the eyes and throat.
CHICKEN-POX This phase of abnormality rate discussion.
is
hardly worthy of sepa-
The symptoms are precisely the same
as
small-pox, except that they are not usually so grave.
The papules in
so-called chicken-pox, instead of being
red and hard, are soft and pale, and almost from the first in the form of blisters, and they do not undergo the characteristic umbilication.
As soon as the eruption occurs, which is usually within twenty-four hours, but may be a couple of days, the temperature begins to rapidly fall, and so soon as the eruption is complete the temperature presents normal registration.
Usually on the third to the sixth day the pustules begin to dry up, leaving red spots as large as a small pea, and desquamation goes on rapidly, usually being complete within a week.
Chicken-pox so-called begins with a a fever. If at the beginning of the
chill,
followed
by
the principles of Chiropractic are applied, and two or three relatings administered during the first hom* or two, usually the
whole of
difficulty subsides,
chill,
and there
is
nothing more
it.
Diet is of the same importance in connection with this phase of abnormality as those in this chapter discussed,
416
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
and no food shoiUd be administered symptoms have disappeared. Relating in so-called chicken-pox as that in small-pox, this connection.
is
and needs no
until all of the
precisely the
fiu-ther
same
remarks in
—
CHAPTER XXXVII QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER
The phases of abnormaUty to be discussed in this chapter are those febrile conditions in which there occasionally occur an eruption upon the skin. Without going into any particular
many
of these phases.
fever,
which
The
detail, there are
is sometimes " called heat," nettle rash, woodland poisoning, and a great many others are of this type. So-called spotted
the
title
will
be
eruption that
later discussed in this
Cerebro-spinal Meningitis,
is
work under
of the quasi-
eruptive type, for occasionally, as incident to that typical process, there
hence the
is
name. This
an eruption upon the skin eruption,
however,
seldom
occurs.
It has already been called to the student's attention that frequently in diphtheria, so-called, there is an
eruption upon the skin, and while this does not frequently nor generally occur, still that phase of process
should be mentioned under this classification. The eruptive phases of syphilis have been discussed in connection with the general discussion of that subject,
and the only reason
for the reference here
is
to call the
comes under the present classification. However, the pronounced and typical phase that comes fully under this discussion is very general in its student's attention to the fact that that phase also
nature,
and
is
sufficiently evident to
417
comprehend
all of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
418
the types, and
its
general details will be suflSciently given
in this connection.
TYPHOID FEVER an acute disease by therapy, but it must be constantly kept in mind that it is but the acute phase of a chronic tissue So-called typhoid fever
is
classified
as
abnormality.
The chronic tissue condition is brought about by the kidneys failing to remove the toxins from the blood, while the abnormality of the digestive glands results in the production of an excess of uric acid, and other adverse, chemical compounds. Of course, these glands would not act thus abnormally if it were not for the fact that they are acting under chronic occlusion. It must be remembered that chronic occlusion to the digestive glands
The results
is
also chronic occlusion to the intestine.
situation as outlined in the preceding paragraph in
intestine,
the constant particularly
accumulation
through
the
the jejunum and ileum, of a
toxin which precipitates into the recesses of the walls
within the folds of the valvulae conniventies.
The
situation just referred to
is
aggravated by the
which are usually portions of fermented and putrified remnants of food, the liquid excretion from them proceeds down the bowel, and peculiarly accumulates around the glandular areas fact that as these toxins accumulate,
called Peyer's patches.
The
Peyer's patches, together
with the rest of the wall of the bowel, being very inactive, there is said to be a progressive disintegration of these tissues, which not only serves to weaken the wall of the bowel, but in the first instance is a profound irri-
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER and
tant,
later results
419
a disintegration of nerve
in
terminals.
Incident to the toxic condition of the intestine described, there will nevertheless be a certain
amount
of absorption and the substance absorbed will, of covirse, be morbid, and distinctly poisonous, and as soon as it comes in contact with the periphery of active nerves, it sets up profound motor reaction, which particularly centers to the brain, from which it reacts to the whole organism generally, but particularly to the kidneys, spleen, liver and pancreas, the phreno-costal lung, and the skin over these areas, and indeed generally. While, of course, all returning nerves to the brain will be suffering marked occlusion, and the symptoms of the adverse process will be particularly pronounced in brain tissue. A careful examination of the record of any person
who
ever presented the
symptoms
will disclose the fact that for
of typhoid fever,
a long time before the
symptoms occurred, there were many premonitory symptoms pointing to that result, so that, while
actual
therapeutically the phase tissue
condition,
is
but the
called acute, not only the
symptoms,
are
chronic.
The adverse symptoms of the acute phase usually manifest themselves several days and sometimes weeks before the individual is finally prostrated.
The
victim of this adverse phase expresses chilly
sensations in the mornings shortly after rising; spirited; finds it diflScult to enter
either mentally or physically.
upon
is
low
active labor,
He experiences wandering
pains through his body, especially in what
is
ordinarily
called the small of the back, radiating through the lower
abdomen and down the
legs,
and outward from the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
420
region of the fourth thoracic area to the shoulders; experiencing a profound congestion in the head, especially
by the
naiddle of the afternoon.
There is frequently headache or dull pain in the head, and pain in the eyes, with occasional disturbances in the vision, such as specks or spots before the eyes, and an indifferent and fluctuating appetite. The symptoms just detailed are usually accompanied
by
inactivity of the bowel, alternating with diarrhea.
Sometimes the constipation is marked, and at other times the diarrhea is marked, and after the first few discharges the stools take on what is ordinarily called a " pea soup" appearance, and afterward become a watery, blubbery passage, and occasionally may contain a small amount of blood. For some time before taking to bed, the
symptoms
of the victim are frequently like
much
those of bilious fever, and really are very
like
that for a period after prostration. Finally there is a distinct chill every morning, with a slow elevation of temperature until about four or five in the afternoon,
by a
chill
when
it declines,
the next morning, of a
type with the temperature rising a day, and declining a chiU
is
only to be followed
little
more pronounced
little
higher in the
little less, until finally
the sense of
very pronounced in the morning, notwithstand-
ing the fact that there
is
considerable fever, and the
by the afternoon. symptoms last indicated
fever ranges very high
By
the time the
in the preceding paragraph occur, the temperature does not change much in the twenty-four hours, often no more than one or two degrees, and at this time the brain
symptoms usually become quite pronounced.
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER
421
Usually before the symptoms have advanced as far as already described, but not always, the patient feels
compelled to remain in bed. Sometimes, however, until the symptoms have become as pronounced as those described, the patient insists upon remaining up. Usually about the time the symptoms have become
pronounced as those described, the patient is compelled to remain in bed all the time, and during the afternoon and evening, usually suffers some delirium, and thereafter lies in a prostrated condition very quietly as a rule during the early morning hours, but usually expressing a pronounced delirium by four o'clock in the afternoon, but sometimes demonstrating a great deal as
of restlessness.
By
the time the gravity of symptoms already de-
scribed has been reached, there will be a dull red flush
accompanied by an indisposition of the patient to notice anything; a certain inertness, sometimes approaching coma, and nerve occlusion to the brain is always profound. As just indicated, where brain tissue has been abnormal for a long time, there is almost from the beginning markedly adverse mental symptoms, indicated by delirium, amounting to nightmare, in which the mind conjures all kinds of strange and fantastic things. Many in the face,
times the patient imagines himself in strange countries, or surrounded by strange beasts and men, and is peculiarly inclined to the notion of strange
and fan-
animal or insect life threatening or disturbing him. In a few cases there is no delirium to speak of, but in such cases there are profound symptoms of mental prostration. In so-called typhoid there is one symptom tastic
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
422
always marked, and substantially unvarying, is a severe pain in the tissues of the back behind the kidneys a pain that, no matter in what position the patient lies, does not disappear, or produce much relief, and while the victim is conscious of the pain, he usually does not complain about it, but upon being asked about it, will admit he is suffering, and this no matter whether he is conscious or delirious. Where the pronounced pain in the back appears very early in the symptoms, it is followed almost at once by intense delirium, or great mental prostration. These symptoms prove that there has been pronounced and prolonged occlusion of the nerves ramifying the kidneys and digestive glands and that the tissues of these glands are very abnormal. Relative to the last paragraph, the student should also remember that the area of the intestine in which Peyer's patches are very large is ramified by the that
is
and that
twelfth richly
—
and eleventh thoracic nerves, and also quite by those from the sixth, seventh and eighth
thoracic trunks, so the glandular areas will be quite
abnormal, to say nothing of the general tissues of the intestine as incident thereto. Therefore, in such cases the bowel complication, as the therapeutists call it, is and will be a marked emergency. Where the tissue degeneracy in the region of Peyer's patches is marked from the very onset, there is danger of disintegration, resulting in hemorrhage, and cases have been recorded in which there was perforation of the bowel. It is in cases where the bowel complication is marked, and where there is danger of hemorrhage, that an eruption sometimes occurs over the abdominal area.
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER
423
by nerves extending through the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic trunks. This eruption sel-
ramified
dom
occurs, but nevertheless has been observed.
So-called typhoid fever is classified by therapists as being a self-limited disease. That is, they claim that it is a disease that, without any treatment, runs its course in twenty-one days. This attitude, taken in connection with the fact that
the therapists also claim that typhoid fever
is
caused
by the bacillus typhostis, causes the matter to present some very strange inconsistencies, which are not ameliorated at all by the fact that they also claim that the active principle is introduced into the body through contaminated food and drinking water. The inconsistency of this claim is heightened by the fact that they claim typhoid fever to be contagious, and that the is contained in the typhoid stool, notwithstanding the fact that so-caUed typhoid fever to a very large extent occurs sporadically, and thousands
contagious principle
of cases
have been known to occur in the most isolated and in places and at times of the year when
conditions,
the possibility of production or transmission of poison stools is absolutely impossible.
from
It seems quite unnecessary to say that the thera-
peutic theory has no foundation in fact, and that this phase of abnormality, in the face of all the evidence is no nearer self -limited than any other, it being the truth that any abnormal phase will cease to present the same symptoms in time, if the resistance of the individual is not overcome by the adverse, chemical combinations incident to that phase of abnormality. In the same sense in which typhoid is self-limited,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
424
pneumonia, gonorrhea, and even syphilis are seE-Iimited. That is to say, if the individual has the resistance to endure these phases of pathology sufficiently long, all of the symptoms will completely change. In connection with the statement in the last paracolds, laryngitis,
graph, the student should remember that an adverse tissue and functional process depends upon the consistence of the tissues, and that in turn depends upon
the situations which control construction and disintegration of tissue, and the removal of disintegrated
substances from the area of tissue construction. In this view of the situation, it wiU be seen that the
symptoms of typhoid fever are those arising from the irritant, and motor reaction incident to a particular character of retained morbidity, and when that retained morbidity has been eliminated or neutralized, or its tendency changed, the adverse process called typhoid fever
is
at an end.
Therapeutic books not only say that typhoid fever is a self-limited disease, but they suggest no remedies for it; their contention being that the body must be supported until it overcomes the disease. The symptoms and conditions so far discussed are those that pertain to the situation where no valuable assistance is employed, in other words, are the steps and phases that usually occur as incident to this phase of abnormality cared for therapeutically. In the adverse phase called typhoid fever, the very first thing to be done is to remove occlusion to the brain, heart and respiratory organs, not because these are primarily involved, but because their vital activity is primarily necessary.
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER
425
The next step on the part of the Chiropractor is to remove occlusion to the kidneys and intestines, particularly to that part of the intestine in which Peyer's patches are most numerous. It will be the next duty of the Chiropractor to see to it that the large bowel is empty, and that it is in a sanitary condition, and for this it is advisable to resort to an enema of plain water, which should be at first of the temperature of the blood. Afterward,
if
the bowel
has not yet been brought to a sanitary condition, the water may be as hot as the patient can weU receive it, until the bowel is rendered sanitary, after which in some very aggravated temperatures, cool water may be injected. However, this is seldom necessary or advisable.
So soon as the bowel is rendered free, careful attention should be addressed to the large digestive glands, but in releasing the nerves to these glands the Chiropractor should be especially careful not to set up an exaggerated, glandular reaction, and to secure a depuration of the
accumulated toxins of these glands, only in such amounts as the intestines can easily transmit without unusual irritation to the nerve system.
When the patient finds it necessary to take to his bed, the bed should be in a room from which the light should be shaded, for the eyes
will
The room should be thoroughly
be sensitive to
light.
no draft of air should be permitted to strike upon the body of the patient. The temperature of the room should be maintained at about 70 degrees Fahrenheit. Every inducement to depuration through the skin should be made, and therefore, the patient should wear no clothing ventilated, although
426 in
bed at
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS all,
not even a gown, and should only be
covered by a sheet or light blanket. The patient's skin should be frictioned twice or three times in each twenty-four hours, and for this purpose may be moistened with tepid water, but only a small portion moistened at once, after which it should be frictioned dry with a rough towel. On parts of the body
which the patient senses chilliness, the friction bath may be followed with an alcohol rub the irritation of the alcohol many times tending to produce a hyperemic in
—
condition that will encourage depuration. The head of the patient's bed should not be less than
and the patient should be encouraged to lie upon the side, or obliquely upon the front of the body as much as possible, and he may lie upon either side. The thing to avoid particularly is the patient lying upon his back, for it is very deleterious six inches higher
than the
foot,
for a patient undergoing this character of abnormality lie upon the back. Notwithstanding this fact, every typhoid patient will try to lie upon his back, and it will be a constant care to the attendants to see that he does not do so. The particular reason why a person suffering from so-called typhoid fever should not be allowed to lie upon his back is because there is already pronounced occlusion of the twelfth, eleventh and tenth thoracic nerve trunks, as well as usually the headward lumbar trunks. The solar plexus, the aortic and hypogastric plexuses therefore, will be already abnormal from this occlusion, which will be incidentally accentuated through the nerves from the digestive, glandular areas, and the weight of the viscera pressing dorsally upon these
to
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER plexuses
and ganglia
will
tend to
still
427
further aggravate
the already adverse situation. Diet is an important consideration in so-called typhoid fever, for the reason that so long as there is any fever
no food
of
any kind should be administered to the
all. If the patient frets for food, it is sometimes advisable to administer light, strained broths,
patient at
merely to overcome the adverse attitude, and not because there is any hope that food under such circ*mstances can be of any benefit to the patient. Generally nothing but cool (not ice) water, should be administered to the patient in as copious quantities as he desires, and if the patient does not express a desire for water, he should nevertheless be induced to drink not less than a gallon of water each twenty-four hours. Usually the patient has a desire for water. The reason for giving the water is that the body stands greatly in need of this liquid by which it can be internally cleansed. If broths are
vegetables, not
administered they should be
from meats, from which
made from
all of
parts have been strained, and no solids
the solid
must be put
and they should be administered as warm as and may contain a little salt and considerable paprika suflficient to give them a pungent odor. ^ One thing that must be particularly and always prohibited is the administration of milk in any form, and that means milk, sweet or sour, butter milk, cream, ice cream, or anything of that character. It also means the into them, is
tasteful to the patient,
elimination of milk, coffee, cocoa, or things of that kind.
There should never be administered to a so-called
428
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
typhoid patient any fruit juices of any character whatever during the time of the fever. If, at the time of the premonitory symptoms of typhoid, or even at the time the patient begins to suflfer from the morning chills, he has the proper application of the principles of Chiropractic, the case will progress no further, and all of the typical symptoms will soon disappear. If, however, the Chiropractor is not called until the patient is completely prostrated in bed, it will usually require from two or three days to a week to abort the symptoms, but even then none of the aggravated symptoms that have been herein described will occur.
Of course,
if
the Chiropractor
is
called in to the case
following the treatment of a therapist, there
is
really
nothing that can be definitely said in advance about it, except that he must ascertain what, if any, medicines have been given; how long the patient has been pros-
and what have been his general characteristic symptoms, and be governed accordingly. If the Chiropractor comes to a case of typhoid fever at the time the patient is first prostrated, he should trated,
relate the patient four to six times the first twentyif the symptoms indicate it, as many the next twenty-four. He should in any event administer frequent corrections until the fever ceases, after which
four hours, and
the frequency of administration must be
left to his
sound judgment. If the Chiropractor follows the therapist in the case,
he must in
his first investigations
be very
ascertain the condition of the bowels,
and
careful, to if
he finds
the patient has been constipated, and that the bowel
QUASI-ERUPTIVE FEVER has been wholly inactive, which after releasing heart, brain
is
429
frequently the case,
and respiratory nerves
his
should be directed to securing a sanitary condition of the bowel, and from this on, he must work slowly, and with extreme caution, for on account of there
next
eflfort
having been no bowel outlet, toxins will have remained in the small intestine, and there is always considerable danger of perforation. After a day or two of slow work,
be able to tell what the bowel situation is, and if there is no apparent danger of perforation, he will advance rapidly in his work. Typhus fever is a peculiarly aggravated phase of socalled typhoid, and needs no further discussion than what has been said herein; the symptoms being substantially identical, and the result under the application of the principles of Chiropractic practically the same. Typho-malaricd fever is a phase of adverse process which has been discussed in connection with malaria. he
will
The
therapist conceives here that the
symptoms
of
malaria have finally merged into typhoid. This phase needs no further discussion, for it responds under the application of the principles of Chiropractic identically
with typhoid fever, Typho-pneumonia is a phase of typhoid in which the phreno-costal lung condition is most aggravated, and in which the patient has a cold, which finally results in the phase symptomaticly like that of pneumonia. In this phase of abnormality the application of the principles of Chiropractic will require in addition to that of
typhoid the address ordinarily given to pneumonia, and the same care and attention in that respect as in a separate case of pneumonia.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
430
hardly necessary to say that when a Chiropractor is called to a case of typhoid fever, that such a case will require that he shall give it specific and careful attention, and for the first two or three days he should see the It
is
patient at least three or four times,
the greatest care and caution in
and must exercise aU phases of his
attention.
to remove occlusion causing the process typhoid fever, must of course be primarily addressed to release of the nerves to the kidneys, large digestive glands; that is to say, the twelfth, eleventh, fourth, sixth, and seventh thoracic nerve trunks, and incidentally giving attention to the release of nerves to the whole of the small intestine which may be any of the trunks from the fourth to and including the second lumbar area. Incidentally, as has been already explained, careful and persistent attention should be given to releasing occlusion of the eighth cervical, and second thoracic nerve trunks, the fifth cervical and the suboccipital area, the latter to release not only the cervical nerves, but visceral nerves from the pneumogastrics, and vertebral accessory trunks; for through these the heart and respiratory systems are supplied.
Relating
called
'
CHAPTER XXXVIII LOCAL SWELLINGS Congestion
— Eruptions— Pimples— Boils Carbuncles—Felons
One of the most remarkable symptoms attendant upon tissue conditions and functional processes is the phenomenon of swelling, and, while many things are known about swelling, there is much more yet to learn. The latest therapeutic authority makes these assertions as to swelling " (1)
A degenerative phase in various
tissues, characterized
by
swelling; a cloudy appearance,
and albuminous
and often ending in fatty change which takes place in the
:
infiltration,
degeneration. (2)
A
protoplasm during the process of nutrition." It will be seen that while these definitions are highsounding and apparently scholastic, yet they really fail to tell us anything, except that in swelling there is a change in the tissues, which even the simplest novice knows. It is well known that the integrity of tissue is maintained by a continual addition of new matter in the process that
we
continuous
disintegration
call assimilation,
of
and as regular and as matter, and
cohered
depuration of the debris.
When
the processes just referred to are carried on in
equilibrium, the physiologic order
normal
is
maintained, and
tissue is produced.
The words
" normal tissue" in the last paragraph 431
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
432
refers to tissue of right size, color, consistence,
and
cells in such tissue are of chemical consistence, and correct relationship. Such tissues are normal. There are two departures of a cardinal type from this situation. One is the production of a tissue less in size than the normal, which may receive one of two designations atrophy or anemia. The other condition is a tissue that is too large, and receives the name congested
relation.
In other words, the
the right
size, right
—
or swelled. It has not been conceived that a congested tissue, although remarkably enlarged is swelled, because the thought of congestion has been confined to the liquids of
the body, particularly the lymph,
which under
occluded stimulus accumulates in excessive quantity in a tissue, distending the potential spaces of the tissue.
But
has not been thought that such condition changes the actual consistence of the tissue, although it must be remembered that is the very result which it
occurs.
The student must keep little
difference
many
in
mind that
there
is
indeed
times between congestion and
demarcation is not well where congestion merges into swelling is impossible to determine in a great many cases. Congestion, it will be seen in one aspect of it is an infiltration of liquids into the tissues, which liquids are swelling. Indeed, the line of
fixed,
and
just
retained there because the depuratory offices are aborted
through occlusion to the area. In other words, then, congestion is a damming-up process. It is very difficult to distinguish swelling from congestion as described in the last paragraph, yet there are
LOCAL SWELLINGS
433
do not fall wholly within that purview, and these should be expressed. Paramountly swelling occurs when there is occluded stimulus to the area, which causes the disintegrated colloids of that area, particularly the albuminous and
some phases
of swelling that
be retained as morbidity within the potential spaces of the area. This situation substances
glycogenic
to
constitutes true swelUng,
There is another phase of swelling equally important, and accomplished in much the same way. Where the integrity of tissue has been destroyed by a bruise or contusion, or by the injection of a toxin of such virility as in either case to injure the nerves of the area, so as to
dethrone assimilation and abort depuration, except to a very limited extent. In such situations true swelling takes place.
an intermediate upon the one hand, and production upon the other, and is actually
Swelling,
therefore,
is
actually
condition between congestion giant cell
neither of these.
The paramount fact
that the student must remember
with swelling is that the phenomenon is is a preparation for, an unusual means of depuration, because the ordinary channels are stopped by occlusion. Therefore the only means left open is an eruption to a surface, which will give release. in connection
incident to,
and
Accumulated substances, incident to
swelling,
is
not animate, and under the heat and moisture surrounding it, can retain its integrity for a short time, when it undergoes those putrifying processes transmuting it into pus, which is a morbidity, in the sense that
virulent poison.
it is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
434
The student
observe that while the process of swelling is not understood, yet the various steps are understood, as well as the object to be attained, which is to accomplish depuration or elimination of chemistry, will
which cannot be used in animate economy, and which
way
in the
is
involved,
of possible restoration of the tissues
and wiU recognize the fact that swelling, like and enemia, are, when properly
congestion, atrophy
considered, friendly processes.
ERUPTIONS
The process of eruption has been
quite fully discussed
in connection with eruptive fevers, and not
much more
need be said here. The means of depuration by eruption are multifold, and the characters of eruption are almost numberless, and incapable of being described. However, they may be to some extent classified. There are the smooth eruptions, by which morbidity is projected to the surface, and eliminated by breaking the covering of that surface. This classification reaches its
highest illustration in so-called scarlet fever.
There
is
another phase of eruption that
is
rough and
granular, but not pustular, which reaches the surface,
and escapes by breaking the integrity of the surface. However, before doing so, causing the surface to become rough, raised and irregular. This phase of eruption is observed in
all kinds of so-called measles, eruption that occurs incident to syphilis, and a great many rashes that occur upon the body.
The justly
third phase of eruption classified
is
that which
as being pustular,
may
be
where there are
LOCAL SWELLINGS
435
accumulations of morbidity in subcutaneous areas, which break the surface in pustular formation, and thus permit their toxins to escape. This character of eruption reaches
its
highest illustration in chicken-pox, small-pox,
and a considerable number
of
other constitutional
conditions.
PIMPLES
A pimple is really one form of eruption, but there are certain typical phases of process which
must be
intro-
duced in connection therewith. A pimple is a morbid accumulation, occurring in the subcutaneous tissues and the skin, and is a means of elimination to that area. A pimple, then, never occurs except in an area of stasis, where the colloids accumulated or retained are there because of occlusion of nerve stimulus to the area. There have been many theories exploited with regard to the cause of pimples, none of which have been satisfactory, because they have not fully stated the truth.
One phase vulgaris,
of pimples has received the
name
of acne
from the conception that they are caused by
vulgar eating, or are the results of gormandizing. This however, is never specifically true. If it were true, in this
age the whole
human family would be covered
with
pimples. It has
been charged that pimples are the result of
uncleanliness of the feet, lack of proper bathing, and
many
untenable propositions.
Generally speaking, pimples are caused by occlusion of nerve stimulus to an area, which causes tho retention of morbidity in the area,
which
results
from increased
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
436
disintegration
of
cell
elements,
and
of
decreased
assimilation; resulting in small areas of colloid
which
undergoes putrefaction and erupts to the surface. Pimples on the face of young males, are frequently caused at the time when the growth of the beard begins, because there is an unusual concentration of matter to that area for the production of the beard, which cannot be normally brought and distributed on account of occluded nerve stimulus, with the result that pimples occur,
and the process
but
finally
is
of beard-growing is delayed, accomplished after which such pimples
disappear.
The
application of the principles of Chiropractic to
of the body under pimple formation will remove them in any case. That is to say, vertebral occlusion of nerves to the area must be removed, and any occlusion between the vertebral foramina and the periphery of the nerves must also be
an area entirely
removed. This requires definite application usually in the immediate vicinity of the pimple area. A pimple, it will be seen, always occurs in a circ*mscribed area, and it follows out step by step the processes that result in graver abnormality of the same type. BOILS
A
boil
is
a circ*mscribed accumulation of morbidity
larger than a pimple, occurring in the soft tissues of
the body under the skin, or under the superficial
membranes of the body near some surface. A boU occupies a more extensive area than a pimple, but it is really the same process of depuration. If a boil should occur within a cavity, that is to say, in a submucous or
LOCAL SWELLINGS
437
would usually be referred to as a tumor or abscess. However, many boils occur in these areas, and the practitioner must expect to find the same character of depuration going on in the subserous and submucous areas as upon the outside surface. subserous area,
A
it
boil usually begins
coUoid in an area of
by a
precipitation of dense
stasis; occlusion
to the area,
by
motor reaction, becoming more intense untU the complete capillary system in the area ceases to operate, of putrefaction proceed rapidly. The animate tissue surrounding the area is walled ofif by the formation of a peculiar membrane, and the morbidity
when the phases
and other substances within the membrane rapidly transmute into pus. This process is called " heading up" by the therapeutic profession. Eruption now occurs to the surface.
membrane
When
the core
disintegrates,
is
the walling
expelled,
and the cavity partly
animate tissue and partly with scar
fiUs
with
tissue.
CARBUNCLES
A carbuncle is a morbid accumulation in or under an aponeurosis, deep fascia, or ligamentous tissue of a rigid character,
except for
and is
in all respects precisely like
a boU,
its location.
Carbuncles always occur near
joints,
and they are upon
usually located on the dorsal aspect of the region
which they occur. Morbid accumulations of the type called carbuncle occur with great frequency on the dorsum, or back of the neck, on the dorsal aspect of the pelvis, the dorsal aspect of the knees, and with some degree of frequency at the wrist.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
438
The
process of depuration
by means
of carbuncle is
indeed a very painful one, because of the rigidity of the tissues which lie between the morbid center and the surface, and because it requires a long time, and much incidental congestion to erupt to the surface.
And,
of
course, without assistance the process must continue until it has disintegrated a pathway from its place of formation to the surface. The process by carbuncle is always accompanied by general symptoms; by chilly sensations, sometimes by
and frequently by slight elevation many times by high elevations temperature with marked gastric symptoms. actual
chills,
temperature, and
of of
FELONS
A
is a morbid accumulation not in any sense from a carbuncle except that the seat of accumulation occurs beneath and in the periosteum of
felon
diflferent
makes eruption to the surface prolonged and painful process; for disintegration must occur through the periosteum, and then through the deep fascia, aponeurotic and ligamentbones, which, of course,
a very
diflBcult,
.ous tissue
which intervenes between that area and the
Siuface.
It also will be plainly seen that the congestion and morbid accmulation necessary for eruption or disintegration to a surface results in terrific pressure in the area. This frequently serves to force the morbid matter into the adjacent, cancellous bone tissue, with the result that before eruption to a surface has been accomplished the bone has undergone pronounced, and sometimes
complete disintegration.
LOCAL SWELLINGS
439
No process that occurs as incident to function is any more painful and continuously distressing than that of a felon left to itself to " head up." The
have receiving no
discussions of the several processes so far
been given from the standpoint of their assistance, except as to pimples. These processes must now be discussed under the application of the principles of Chiropractic. If
upon the
first
evidence of morbid accumulation
incident to boil, carbuncle or felon, the principles of
Chiropractic are applied to the situation, occlusion of
nerve stimulus to the area will be removed, thus restoring the depuratory process by which the morbid accumulation will be carried away and eliminated, which will entirely abort the adverse process. However, if there has been delay in the application of the principles of Chiropractic so that the morbidity has temporarily centered, release of occlusion of stimulus to the area wiU not serve to depurate the morbidity, but will, however, serve to increase the congestion to the area, and will hasten the eruption to the surface, but if the assistance of the Chiropractor should stop by simply removing occlusion to the area, these good oflSces would also greatly increase pain.
In view of what has just been stated in the preceding paragraph, it will be seen that the correct method for the Chiropractor to pursue in case of boil, carbuncle, or felon after sacculation of the morbid center has occurred, is to have the boil, carbuncle, or felon lanced from the surface to its deepest point, for the purpose of taking oflf the intra-pressure, and to permit the rapid and iminterrupted escape of the morbid accumulations.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
440
In connection with what has just been stated in the preceding paragraph, the practitioner is cautioned that before he has a boil, carbuncle, or felon lanced he must make careful palpation to assure himself that the situation permits the removal of occlusion to the area
may know that he can control adverse process, for if there phases of the the subsequent was ankylosis or any impediment, so that he could not remove occlusion, he could not control the subsequent involved, in order that he
phases.
Surgeons are taught to believe that boils, carbuncles, and felons must come to a head before they are lanced, and that if they are lanced before that time there is danger of sepsis or blood poisoning, and usually they will advise against the
method laid down in this chapter.
However, the Chiropractor must assume the responsibility, and must secure the services of a surgeon who will do as he says, and strictly follow out the rules as here laid down. It is an unjustifiable indignity to require a human being to wait and wait from one to six weeks under a process of poulticing to bring a boil, carbuncle, or felon to a head, when all the pain and difficulty can be removed in a few minutes by the sharp edge of a lancet, since it is really true that under the application of the principles of Chiropractic subsequent to the lancing,
not the least possibility of bloOd poisoning. in his own, and in the practice of graduates from his institutions, has observed thousands of cases handled in the manner as outlined, and has never known a case of sepsis or blood poisoning to result. Indeed, such a thing as sepsis, or blood poisoning. there
is
The author
LOCAL SWELLINGS under the application
known It
way have
been
to occur. advisable, after the surgeon has lanced the
is
morbid
of Chiropractic has never
441
have him dress the wound in such a remain aseptic. The best method is to
center, to
that
it will
covered with a large, antiphlogistic poultice, covering a much wider area than the morbid center, which should be thick over the incision, and gradually it
thin off in
all directions.
The
antiphlogistine should be
covered with two or three layers of medicated cotton out to or beyond its margins, which cotton should be covered with oiled silk and then carefully, but not too tightly bandaged. Before placing the poultice as described, the siu-geon should prepare for easy and sure drainage from the bottom of the incision, by placing a little surgical gauze in the wound, and letting it extend beyond the margin of the poultice under the cotton, so that there will be no impediment to depuration of disintegrated substances from the morbid center. After the morbid center has been lanced, and poulticed as just described, the Chiropractor should apply the principles of Chiropractic, in milder cases three times, and in graver cases as much as six times in twenty-four hours, to remove occlusion from all of the nerves to the area; and see to it that occlusion at other areas is removed. The surgeon should redress the incision, cleansing it thoroughly but using no antiseptics, each twenty-four hours until the so-called core has disintegrated and come out, which it will usually do at the second or third dressing.
When
the core comes out the surgeon should dress
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
442
the wound, providing for drainage as before, but being careful to draw the wound together, carefully approxi-
mating the edges; placing a little ridge of medicated gauze lengthwise of the incision, and strapping the same crosswise with short strips of adhesive bandage to hold the edges in position, and then with wider and longer strips of adhesive, applied to tissues further
back.
The whole area should then be covered with one or
two thicknesses
of medicated cotton, depending
upon
the condition of the weather, covered with oiled silk
and If
lightly
bandaged.
these simple rules are followed
practor, all of the horrible
agony of
by the Chiro-
boils, carbuncles,
may
be quickly removed, and the wounds minimum of scar, and with no danger whatever of sepsis or blood poisoning.
and
felons
recovered with the
Relating to remove occlusion in case of boil, carbuncle or felon, of course,
is
addressed to the vertebral area
from which the nerves extend to the area of the boil, carbuncle or felon, but will incidentally require removal of local occlusion all along trunk nerves from the vertebral area to the place of morbid accumulation. Incidentally, general areas of occlusion must be removed in order that the general functions of the body shall be carried on in a positive and healthful manner.
CHAPTER XXXIX ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION
— Tetanus—Chorea—Meningitis—Cerebro-
Convulsions
spinal Meningitis
There are marked and peculiar constrictions, which concomitant with, and the most prominent symptoms of certain phases of abnormality. These must have attention at this place. A most remarkable and least understood phenomenon in connection with functional operations is that of hypertonicis under nerve irritation, whether irritation comes from an extraneous source, and in that sense is traumatic, or whether it comes from chemical adversity within the body. As an incipient proposition the irritation of nerve terminals beyond the normal, results in an abnormal are
contraction of the tissue elements stimulated
by such
amount equal to the excessive irritation. ameboid movement applies to all of the animate cells of an area when they are subjected to an irritation from an extraneous source to such an extent nerves in an
The law
of
overcome resistance, or are submerged in a colloid of abnormal chemistry. While we know the facts as stated, we do not know as to
why
these things are true.
We know
that they are
a part of the phenomena of all animals that have well developed powers of locomotion and many others. In the normal, it is well known that nerve stimulus 443
444 radiates
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS from the
cortical center equally
and regularly
nerves of the system, and it is also known, although not so generally, that any inter-
to the periphery of
all
ference with the radiation of nerve stimulus results in
nerve rhythm becoming spasmodic. It is one of the pronounced phases of nerve occlusion that from the point of occlusion to the periphery of the nerve, the rhythm is not only changed, but becomes spasmodic and acts as it were in waves of three, each being more pronounced, followed by quiescence, when the waves of three occur again. It is also true that from the point of occlusion vibratory reaction to the cortex is changed and irregular, so that a part that is injured by continuing occlusion does not produce the consciousness of pain in the same amount continuously, but produces the consciousness of spasmodic or periodic pain. Any person who ever enjoyed the process incident to a toothache will need no further illustration of the proposition here being discussed, for it is a well-known fact that a tooth does not ache steadily and constantly, but aches by what seems to be waves or impulses; that is
to say, periodic pain.
Inflammatory conditions in the body at almost any place, acquaint the sufferer with this periodic pain,
which should make him understand that the chief difficulty experienced is with the rhythm of nerve stimulus transmission, which is interrupted, and being interrupted, the functional results occur in an interrupted or periodic manner. A few of the more pronounced phases of these periodic constrictions, it is hoped wiU lead the student to a
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION fairly reasonable
445
understanding of the situation, even
though the actual and fundamental reasons for them earmot be basicly given.
CONVULSIONS
A
\
merely a phase of abnormality in which suddenly the parts involved are abnormally drawn together. The word itself is from the Latin convulsion
is
" convellare," meaning " to pull together," of course in
a violent manner. It is not necessary, in order that conduct shall be classified as convulsions, that the parts shall remain for any definite length of time pulled together, but they may almost at once relax. Shivering from cold is a convulsion, and yet, if the shivering is not pathologic, it is not so classified.
There are convulsions from traumatic
injuries
and
contraction of tissues under sudden and violent titillation
which conduct therapeutic terminology has designated as reflex action. However, it is really nothing less than convulsion, and yet if such movement of nerve terminals
not pathologic it is not classified as convulsion. Convulsion, as it should be presented here, means all of these phases of pathologic, violent, involuntary constrictions that occur as incident to many and varied phases of abnormality. In this particular view of the situation there are is
gastric
convulsions,
biliary
convulsions,
convulsions
and esophagus. There are also convulsions of the pillars of the fauces, and of the roots of the tongue. There are also mesenteric and of the trachea, larynx, pharynx,
pleural convulsions.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
446
The intention in the preceding paragraph is to call the student's attention to the fact that under occluded nerve stimulus substantially any tissue of the body may present
the remarkable
phenomenon
of convulsive conduct.
Ordinarily release of occlusion of nerves to the area involved in convulsions will very soon correct the rhythm, and secure normal conduct; and this will always
be true unless there is such a profound accumulation of adverse chemistry as to result in constant transmission of irregular vibration to the cortex of the brain.
In cases of convulsions where the periphery of the nerves are being constantly irritated by a toxic accumulation, the convulsion will not be wholly overcome until the toxin is depurated, disseminated or neutralized by continual release of occlusion, so that the normal rhythm of nerves involved
can be restored. So soon as
this
accomplished, convulsions will cease. Dilation
result
is
of the
rectum
is
a great help in overcoming convulsions.
TETANUS This phase of abnormality is not well named. The is taken from a Greek word meaning " to stretch;" the idea being that in the convulsion the tissues involved are put upon the stretch, and in this sense only is the term applicable. Lockjaw is the usual and ordinary name for tetanus, because one of the incipient and paramount symptoms is the fixation of the muscles of the mandible, so that the jaw is locked as it were in one position. It is the therapeutic idea that tetanus is caused by the badUus tetani. This theory, however, is wholly unestablished, and the facts do not in any sense sustain the contention.
word tetanus
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION
447
Incident to the fixation of the muscles of the jaw, as
aheady pointed
out, there
is
pronounced constriction of
the tissues of the neck, with a staring, strange expression In the convulsions of tetanus the
of the countenance.
chin
is
pulled back toward the neck as though
going through
it
were
it.
The symptom
just
explained
usually
occurs
in
paroxysms with intermediate relaxation, while the jaw remains fixed and rigid in one position. This may be with the mouth open, or it may be closed.
may
Therapists say that lockjaw
may be
chronic.
The
fact
is
attack suddenly, or
that so-called tetanus
is
always an acute phase of a chronic, tissue abnormality. The phase of abnormality under discussion only occurs in persons who are subject to certain phases of toxic retention, and therefore, only affects those subject to glandular abnormality of a peculiar character, but particularly those whose kidneys have in a certain sense been inactive for a long time. No person has ever been known to present the .
symptoms of tetanus whose general glandular condition was not chronically abnormal, and whose paramount glandular abnormality was that of the kidneys. Therapeutists class tetanus as a nervous disease. It is is but an acute phase of chronic condition
not. It
incident to the phases of glandular abnormality already
There is a very close resemblance between the muscular conduct in tetanus, and that in catalepsy. Indeed, cataleptic subjects are highly susceptible to the described.
adverse process called lockjaw. Such persons are frequently found lockjawed as a result of adverse suggestion.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
448
In the acute phase of lockjaw no food of any kind be administered, and nothing will be administered
will
except water. After the fixation of the muscles is broken, a light diet which will not adversely aflfect the glandular condition
may be
administered.
Under the application of the principles of Chiropractic, lockjaw usually disappears very quickly in from a few two or three days. remove occlusion causing lockjaw should be directed to freeing the first, second and third cervical trunks, and the cranial and visceral trunks ventral to the first three cervicals, and incidentally the third
horn's to
Relating to
thoracic trunk areas.
Incident to this means of release, address must be made directly to the muscles of the mandible by direct
must be taken not to such efforts. Of course, incident
application to them. Great care injure the mandible in
to all of these corrections, release to the kidney nerves is
next in order, and after the convulsive period a careful
address to the whole organism, to secure activity of the
glandular body,
is
indicated.
CHOREA This phase of abnormality is frequently called St. Vitus Dance, and occm-s in many and varied ways. It is
really
a phase of paralysis in which the muscles, not
quite correctly called voluntary, cease to respond to the control of the will.
One chorea
of the is
pronounced and peculiar symptoms of
that the so-called voluntary muscles frequently
act just the opposite to the way the victim desires, and always act spasmodically. That is, the legs and arms
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION
449
but jerk about in any direction. The head and face is also jerked about into every cannot- be kept
still,
and the face distorted into every imaginable grimace. One peculiar feature of this phase of abnormality is that, whUe the symptoms are pronounced, yet the vital forces are not greatly affected.
possible position,
There
is
usually a considerable impairment of digestion,
absorption,
depuration and assimilation,
but these
fimctions are in no sense adversely affected in ratio
with the muscular symptoms.
The
peculiar
and marked
activity of the muscles in
spasmodic conduct does not encroach upon the anything hke the extent that an observation of the case would cause one to suspect. A person observing an ordinary case of chorea would not expect that the patient could endure the gravity of the convulsions for very long. However, this phase of abnormahty may continue for weeks, months, and in some cases even for many years. There is a phase of chorea, however, in which the attack is sudden and violent, and in which the convultheir
vitality of the person to
sions are so intense as to render it necessary that the
patient be held to prevent actual injury
and violent movements this all
of the body.
abnormality just indicated there
is
by the
aimless
In the phase of a high fever, and
of the vital functions are greatly prostrated,
and
if
the case receives no adequate assistance, death usually occurs in from eight to ten days, but even in this char-
taken at the incipiency, and the application of the principles of Chiropractic should be faithfully applied, the convulsions would be stopped. Chorea in its actual phases is of rare occurrence, and acter of case,
if
450
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
at the appearance of the first or early symptoms, the case receives the apphcation of the principles of Chiropractic, there will be no further progress, and the if,
symptoms incident thereto will soon be aborted. Howmust not be overlooked that there is always a chronic tissue phase; which is constitutional, and which will require careful attention for some time to remove. The longer the patient sufiEers from the adverse ever, it
phase called chorea, the longer
it will
require,
under the
application of the principles of Chiropractic, to remove
not only the convulsive phase, but the basic constitutional phase, for in such cases there will have been profound tissue injury, and the establishment of very adverse tissue and mental habits. However, cases of twenty-four years standing have been corrected, and if the principles of Chiropractic are intelligently and carefully applied, success even in the very gravest cases is possible, and will usually be attained.
Relating to remove occlusion causing chorea will be to generally free the nerves extending through the
trunks of the motor reactive centers of the vertebral column, particularly the suboccipital, the fifth and eighth cervical areas, and the third, seventh and twelfth thoracic areas, also the second and fourth lumbar areas, and many times the sciatic trunks at the sciatic foramina.
MENINGITIS
name from the a disease of the mem-
Meningitis so-called has received
thought of the therapist that it
is
its
branes of the brain «md spinal cord, called the meninges.
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION There
451
nothing to indicate that the theory of therapy just stated is any nearer the truth in this phase of abnormahty than in brain fever, or any other adverse is
process in which there
The same peritonitis
is
pronounced brain abnormality.
strained theory
is
—that those phases
indulged in pleurisy and
of abnormality are caused
by the inflammation of the membrane, which theory is now known not to be true, and there is nothing more to indicate that so-called meningitis
membranes
of the
It
of
is
the brain or vertebral cord.
true that in meningitis there
is
an inflammation congestion and
is
inflammation in the great nerve centers including the brain, vertebral cord, solar ganglia
and plexus, and
the lesser trunks and ganglia, but this
any grave phase in this
of abnormality,
and
is
is
also true of
no more true
phase than in any other.
Therapists also designate
many
kinds of meningitis,
such as acute and chronic, cerebro-spinal, tuberculosis, African
meningitis,
alcoholic
meningitis,
meningitis, etc.; also metastic, internal meningitis. It fantastic. It
is
is
basillar
and external
quite easily seen that these are
all
true that this character of spasmodic
attack is
much more violent in some cases than in others,
but
is
this
to be accounted for
upon a wholly
different
basis than that of the location affected.
Meningitis occurs sporadically, and in epidemic. The which superinduce the adverse phase are environmental, and are therefore inoculatory. The irritants
environmental toxins are unquestionably atmospheric, and this statement is made because such toxins only affect those persons in whom there is the characteristic
abnormality of a chronic nature, which predisposes the
452
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
person to such inoculation. In other words, such toxins only prostrate those whose resistance to that peculiar character of irritation has been overcome by a chronic process of tissue abnormality. In any phase of meningitis the attack is sudden; the
pronounced and primary outward symptoms being those indicated by the convulsions of the muscles at the base of the head, and relative to the great, glandular areas of the trunk. These muscles pull the head back, and increase the thoracico-lumbar curve until frequently only the buttock and back of the head touch the bed
when the person is upon the dorsum. The symptoms just described, it must be remembered are not confined to meningitis alone, but occur in
many
phases of abnormality. Just why the dorsal muscles of the body are violently constricted does not at first occur to the student, and will only occur to him when he remembers that this phase of abnormality is being produced by chemical titUlation of the periphery of visceral nerves which motor react through those nerves, called the gray rami communicans, which extend not only into the intervertebral foramina, but ramify the muscles dorsal to the
foramina.
The phase of meningitis under
discussion
is
conceived
to be of a milder form, and therapists imagine that in
phase the brain is not so definitely involved. This, however, is not true; the whole difference consisting in the virility of the toxin. Under the application of the principles of Chiropractic this phase of meningitis is usually very quickly overcome. this
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION
453
CEREBRO-SPINAL MENINGITIS In so-called cerebro-spinal meningitis the gravity of the abnormality is profound. The attack is usually sudden, and the reaction to the brain is remarkable and very prostrating. The onset of this phase is sudden; beginning with a pronounced chill, usually accompanied with nausea and vomiting, with intense pain in the head and brain, radiated down the vertebral column, and especially centering at the base of the skull, and at the back of the neck down to the third thoracic vertebra. In a short time the muscular constriction becomes so great that only the occiput and sacrum rest upon the bed, if the patient is upon the dorsum. The temperature soon becomes very high, and is as pronounced, and in ratio with the chill. However, from an external observation, the temperature does not seem to be so high, but there is intense internal fever. Frequently within a few hours after the onset, occlusion is so great that there is marked capillary hemorrhage in different areas of the skin, resulting in red spots,
which suggested the name to the therapists
of " spotted
fever."
In so-called spotted fever, after the elevation of temperature has become marked, the patient usually becomes delirious, and as the temperature rises, lapses into profound unconsciousness of the nature of a coma. In this phase of abnormality the body of the patient over its ventral aspect is very hypersensitive to the touch, but this does not in any sense apply to the dorsal parts of the body. The dorsal, muscular convulsion continues to the height of the temperature when the muscles remain constricted and fixed.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
454
Incident to the symptoms of muscular convulsion, is violent jerking of the legs and arms,
frequently there
which extremities are moved into unusual positions, and sometimes are held in that attitude, resisting any ordinary effort to bring them to normal position.
The spinal
therapeutic world has suggested that cerebro-
meningitis
is
contagious,
but there are no
evidences tending to establish this as a fact, and there
every evidence tending to establish environmental poisoning as the cause of epidemics of this phase. If at the very onset the principles of Chiropractic are carefully applied to the patient in this phase, the is
be broken up within a few hours, anyway within two days, and the patient put upon the constrictions can
way
to recovery.
Of course, it goes without saying that in cases that have been neglected, or cared for therapeutically, it is impossible to state a prognosis, for the possibilities of
recovery depend a great deal upon what has been done.
Where drugs have been
administered, or injections
made, the possibility of recovery is greatly lessened, but may not be rendered wholly impossible. Diet in either phase of meningitis needs no particular discussion, for during the active phases no food of any kind should be administered. The patient should, however, be induced to drink copiously of soft water, about the temperature of spring water. The patient should be placed in a comfortable bed, in a well ventilated room, which should be kept at a temperatiu-e of about eighty degrees. All clothing
should be removed from his body, which should be covered with a linen sheet or light blanket, for
ABNORMAL CONSTRICTION in these phases of abnormality it
to secure depuration
is
455
of first importance
and ehmination
of toxins
which
have precipitated
in the body. Incident to elimination, as suggested in the last
an accumulation of fecal matter in the rectum, or the large bowel is found to be full, a thorough high enema should be administered, followed at twenty minute intervals by others until the bowel is emptied, and an aseptic condition obtained. The patient's skin should be moistened and thoroughly frictioned with a rough towel over the entire body three paragraph,
if
there
is
or four times each twenty-four hours, being careful not to
wet too much
of the
body at one
time.
Relating in these phases will, of course, be addressed to freeing the nerves to the dorsal muscles of the
and
at the motor reactive centers,
body
therefore, will
be
and the eighth cervical, together with the third, seventh, eleventh and twelfth thoracic areas, and the second, fourth lumbar and sacro-sciatic areas. at
the
occipito-atlanto-axial
area,
In the application of these releases the Chiropractor shoixld give very careful attention to releasing
might be
what
called the " triangle of life," lying inferior to
the skull, and between the vertebral column and the
mandible, in which area
it will
be remembered there
are the headward cervical ganglia, visceral, gangliated cords, thepneumogastric and vertebral accessory trunks,
the hypoglossal, and glossopharyngeal trunks, and also the primary lateral divisions of the first, second and
and the kidney area of be found to be most definitely
third cervical trunks. This area,
the vertebral column, will controlling.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
456
Upon his coming
to the case, the Chiropractor should relate the patient as often as every fifteen minutes for
hour or two, and continue frequent relatings until relaxation has been obtained, and the disposition the
first
to reconstrict begins to disappear.
In connection with securing an aseptic condition of it is frequently advisable to very carefully dilate the rectum. This may be done with the fingers, or one versed in the use of it, may be called in to use a rectal speculum. the large intestine,
CHAPTER XL EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS
— Tea— Tobacco—Alcohol—Opium— Habit-forming
Coffee
Drugs Generally
The terms used as the title of this chapter are thus used for the purpose of directing the mind to the constantly augmenting list of " habit-forming drugs." The therapeutic world has seen fit to classify many of such drugs, if not all of them, as stimulants. The incorrectness of the word stimulant in this connection is at once apparent when it is remembered that the only stimulants are those substances which operate within the body as food; in other words, which may undergo absorption,
digestion,
animate
The
and
final
assimilation
into
structiu-es.
truth will
come
as a surprise to laymen, and- also
to professional therapists, that aU habit-forming drugs are exciters,
that
may
and that none of them contain any element
truthfully be classified as a stimulant.
Of course, some
of these so-called agents
may contain
a very small amount of food, and to whatever extent they contain food they are stimulants, but it must be remembered that usually all of the food qualities of such agents are wholly overcome by their excitants. No student, however, need be in error in the matter of deciding between stimulants and exciters, for it is a law in such matters that no substance stimulates except food, and that a substance which contains no food, 457
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
458
is purely an exciter, and that purely an exciter is also an
contains no stimulant, but
any substance which
is
irritant.
The
test,
then,
by which
it
may
be determined
whether a substance is an exciter or a stimulant, is found in the further processes of the body. If it nutrifies and becomes a part of the animate economy it is a stimulant. If it does not it is an exciter, and also an irritant.
In this connection it must be remembered as a very important fact that the human organism continues its conduct of animation by a continual response to irritants. Irritation, therefore, is not necessarily depends upon amount. unfriendly. It the Irritation, which excites activity in the organism, and produces no resultant depression, is beneficial, while irritation that overcomes tissue resistance and produces depression as a sequence is always disbeneficial. The whole question of excitation by the agents under discussion is bottomed upon the rules laid down in the last paragraph. It is the general habit of incomprehensive minds to reach the conclusion, if an agent is an exciter that, because of that fact, it should not be used, but this would be to fly directly in the face of all things natural.
The unobstructed if
rays of the sun are exciters, and
had at proper times, and
in proper
amount produce
if endured too long and they become irritants of a profound character, even producing complete prostration. The application of water is an irritant. A small amount, judiciously applied, produces good results, and is
splendid physiologic results, but in a trying attitude,
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS beneficial. Excessively applied it irritation;
an agent
459
becomes an exciter, an and so on through-
of destruction,
out the entire realm of nature. The author desires to be understood as holding to the proposition as a fact that the Creator has made nothing without a purpose; that all things in our earthly environment are intended for use, but that it is of the utmost importance, and is absolutely necessary for human beings to learn what are the intended uses of everything, and not to cast certain things aside as being useless, but to remember that the obligation of life has not been met until the exact use of each thing has been ascertained. By way of additional illustration, let it be remembered that any chemical compound that is taken into the body irritates the periphery of nerves, producing motor reaction, and functional activity. A substance is ingested for food; it titillates the periphery of nerves in the mouth and the flow of mucous and saliva is immediately produced by motor reaction, and the same juice-producing function continues throughout the alimentary canal. If the substance ingested is of a chemical formula to operate as an excessive irritant, then the motor reaction produced will be destructive, whereas if it only excites the physiologic conduct it is constructive and beneficial. The whole question of stimulants and exciters may be resolved upon the basis of the rules laid down in this chapter thus far.
COFFEE
an exciter. As used upon the modern table, it contains no food, and this fact in itself renders its use somewhat questionable. Coffee
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
460 It
is
well
known that in some individuals
coffee produces a mild excitement,
the taking of
which results in
arousing physiologic activity with no depressing aftereffects. To such the proper use of coffee is not injurious.
known
that coffee taken into the alimentary canal of certain persons, and absorbed, acts It
is
equally well
in the organism as a
profound irritant, even to the extent
of causing sujEcient motor reaction to result in tremu-
lous muscular conduct, especially of the extremities,
and
interference with the muscles of the heart
and large
blood vessels to the extent of producing palpitation of the heart, and interfering with the rhythm of the systoles and diastoles, and sometimes, before being observed, seriously interferes with digestion. To such persons the use of coffee in any manner is very deleterious, and it should not be used.
The basic
which has the chemical qualities of curdling cream or milk, and for this reason particularly, and others incidentally, no cream or milk should ever be used in coffee; for it immediately becomes an indigestible curd, of such a tough nature as to enter into and remain in the recesses of the stomach and intestines, putrefying, and becoming
an
principle of coffee
irritant of
If coffee
way
is
is
caffein,
another and more destructive form. to be taken at all, there is but one correct
do it, and that is to take it black, with neither milk, cream nor sugar. If one does not wish it suflficiently to take it in this form; he shoidd refuse it altogether. to
TEA
What has been said about coffee applies equally to tea, so no extended discussion need be indulged on this subject.
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS
461
There is no question that at our modern tables today, thousands of persons are destroying their health by the continual use of tea, which operates upon them as a pronounced irritant, causing many phases of abnormality. If tea is to be taken at all, which the author particularly discourages, it should be taken with a very small
amount
of tea
of milk or cream; for the basic principle
tannin, which has a profound affinity for
is
albumin, and
if
this affinity is
enters the stomach,
stomach
walls,
it
which
not destroyed before
it
wiU produce a reaction from the is
very deleterious, rendering
it
hard, tough, and inactive.
TOBACCO Tobacco, in the modern form in which it is used, is both an exciter and narcotic. In its original form as a plant it contains food values, for it furnishes the whole support to the tobacco worm. But as it is chewed, smoked or snuffed, there is no opportunity for it to furnish any food value to the human organism. The reason tobacco is classified as an exciter and narcotic is that its first effect is to abnormally excite the organism, followed by a depressing effect equal to the excitation, and this is the test of exciters and narcotics.
It
is
true that the hiunan organism soon learns to
accommodate itself to both the excitement and depression, but always with some degree of injury; at least by the injury of being required to put forth energy for the
accomplishment of a purpose wholly unnecesby an economic consideration, must be
sary, which,
placed on the loss side of the account.
462
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
There are ten thousand arguments in favor of the use of tobacco, such as, it is good for digestion; it tends keeps away toxins of disease; it makes one a good fellow; it is a necessary element to congeniality; my great grandfather used it and lived to be a hundred years old, and therefore it don't hurt me, and so on, and so on! None of these ideas amount to a reason, for persons who do not use tobacco are as congenial, as friendly, and as healthy as those who do. In the process of chewing tobacco, the mucous glands of the mouth, and the salivary glands accessory thereto are constantly excited to unusual work, and therefore, are rendered incapable of administering to food when taken normally. It is impossible that any good can be derived from such a useless habit. The tobacco chewer must either expectorate the .juice or swallow it. If he expectorates it, he is a subject of filthiness incapable of expression. If he swallows it, it does him injury in multifold ways, and to an extent beyond expression. Therefore, no human being, who either has proper respect for himself, or for others will permit himself to do so foolish a thing as to chew tobacco. The smoker must make his selection a pipe, cigar or cigarette, and these are mentioned in the order of their injuriousness. The pipe least, the cigar next, the cigarette worst, and this last beyond computation. No more inane, idiotic or foolish performance is indulged in by the human family than that of putting the crumbled leaves of a weed into a pipe and lighting it, and pulhng the smoke into the mouth and blowing it out again; or of rolling the leaves of a weed and wrapping them with another, and putting fire upon one end. to keep off colds;
it
—
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS
463
and a very questionable object upon the other, and drawing smoke through the leaves into the mouth and nose, rendering the whole area unsanitary and obnoxious, or
still
worse, shaking the finely ground
weed into a paper and rolling it up, and hanging one end of it into a distorted orifice, and putting fire on the other end, and gently allowing the fumes to injure the entire respiratory tract, the tissues of the throat, the larynx and nose, while it also gently leaves of a
steals
away the
brains.
smoking could do any person any good, the stench, the sputum, the discoloration, the horrible breath, and all of the adverse things that go with it, the ridiculousness of it, might be borne; yes, would be borne. But when it cannot possibly do any person any good, and it is well known that it does many persons much harm, it seems that as a matter of judicious intelligence, all persons would abstain from its use. But the most deplorable part of the whole situation is that many persons, and especially young persons, are If
very gravely injured by the use of tobacco, especially by the use of the cigarette. No man who smokes cigarettes,to the extent of a habit has a clear and normal voice, for the influence upon the vocal cords, the pillars of the fauces and the nasal meatus are sure to change the voice. Young persons, not yet having reached maturity, are positively injured in their brains sufficiently to retard or abort mental development.
ALCOHOL This exciter and narcotic
is
used by the
human family
in a multitude of ways. It has long been used as
a
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
464
necessary element in the securing of tinctiu*es, and as a component in the admixture of many kinds of medicine
by therapy, and it forms the large number of beverages.
basic ingredient of a very
a product in natm-e which is essential to all a preserver, and there is no substance which contains nutriment that does not also contain alcohol, but in this form it is only a preserver, and a physiologic Alcohol
foods. It
is
is
exciter, and doubtless it was in this form that alcohol was intended to be used by the human family.
Man, by
his
ingenuity
has learned to separate
from other ingredients, and to secure it in concentrated form, in which form it is always an exciter of a profound quality, producing an equally profound narcotic or depressing eflFect. In other words, alcohol to a large extent
alcohol excites to the point of irritation, because
it
overcomes tissue resistance, and then depression must be endured until rehabilitation of disintegrated or destroyed tissues, incident to the excitement, has been accomplished.
The use of alcohol, then, in concentrated form is always deleterious, yet in this further connection it must be remembered that the use of alcohol in proper quantity is an absolute necessity. It is not necessary to go into any of the details of the injury that the human family has suffered as a resvilt of the use of concentrated alcohol, for those injuries are altogether too well known, and the subject needs no comment. But in this connection the caution is interposed that even in a subject of the simplicity of the one under discussion, the human family at this time indulges in some very remarkable errors; chief among which is
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS
465
the conclusion that because the use of concentrated alcohol has done much damage, that therefore its use
must not only be stopped but
The
prohibited.
careful thinker will observe that, with regard to
alcohol, the thing to
be altogether desired
is
first
to
what form, and to what extent diffused alcohol should be used, and not to attempt to put away, and wholly disuse, a necessary element in the process find out in
of nutrition.
In the process of developing civilization the human family have gone from raw foods to cooked foods, and from foods in their original condition to foods wholly
denuded
of their
skins of fruits are
normal alcoholic value, in that the thrown away, with the skins of cereals
and with them practically all of the alcohol. Meats are cooked until their alcoholic value is dissipated, and so in this time the human family lives from a dietary, almost wholly separated from its alcoholic value.
were not for the conditions outlined in the artificially produced alcohol might be eschewed with safety, but it is the If it
preceding paragraph, the use of author's opinion that until in
some manner humanity and stiU to return to
learns to retain its civilization,
normal food,
it
would be extremely dangerous to
prohibit the use of alcohol.
As strange as
human beings
go to excess in all of the good and virtuous things of this life. There are those who kill themselves by excessive venery, by it
seems,
will
by excessive bathing, and by excess and every year there are more who destroy themselves by the means mentioned than ever in the excessive eating, in exercise;
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
466
same time destroyed themselves by alcohol 'per se. Yet, society would not think of prohibiting sex relation, nor eating food, nor proper bathing, nor the taking of proper exercises.
Then,
why
upon the alcohol when
foolishly concentrate
proposition of prohibiting the use of excesses in that direction are
no worse than they are
in
the others mentioned.
The author
wishes clearly to be understood as being
within the confines, and of teaching temperance in
all
things, but urges that the solution of the problem is the production of a normal diet, and when a normal diet has been produced, which contains the original and normal per cent of alcohol in all food products, then should come the prohibition of the uses of extracted and concentrated alcohol,
but that until that time
its
use should be wisely
controlled, just as sex indulgence, eating, bathing
must always be controlled. The symptoms of drunkenness, which
and
exercise
the excited effect of the use of concentrated alcohol, need not be is
described, for they are too familiar to the ordinary
observer, but the pathologic effect needs a few suggestions.
The
titillation of
the periphery of the nerves in the
stomach and alimentary canal, upon the taking of alcoholic beverages results in motor reaction, and changing of vibration to the brain, so that from the brain cortex a motpr reactive effect is sent widely, and if
a sufficient amount of alcohol
is
used, to the entire
organism. Incidentally, intestinal absorption of the beverage
is
accompHshed rapidly, for aU beverages can be absorbed without digestion, and the alcoholic ingredient in these
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS
467
soon precipitates in any stased areas of the body, and there, by irritation, produces other and further motor reactive effects. It can be seen that there is no other nor surer way to accompUsh complete deterioration of the organism than by the regular, continuous, and excessive drinking of alcoholic beverages.
Here again, the organism itself
to both the exciting
is able to accommodate and depressing effects of
and yet, notwithstanding that fact, many organisms undergo great damage from the use of alcohol,
alcohol in excess of tissue resistance.
OPIUM, AND HABIT-FORMING DRUGS This sub-title is used merely for the purpose of introducing the subject of the so-called habit-forming drugs, aside from those already mentioned. As everybody knows these consist of opium, morphine, cocaine, chloral, heroin, and a large number of others which it is not necessary to mention in this connection. The reason that coffee, tea, tobacco, alcohol, morphine, and the other so-called habit-forming drugs are thus named is because following the excitation there is the depressing effect, which in due time calls for the excitant phase again. It is remarkable that a first experience with any of these drugs produces a temporary revulsion to their second use, for there is retained in the memory of the subject the distressing sensation of their depressing effects, but from many repetitions in the milder drugs, to a few repetitions in the stronger ones, this mental sense of protection practically, disappears.
and sometimes wholly,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
468
In the use of these drugs, which are now more definitely under discussion, the excitement and irritation is so profound, and the motor reaction so intense, and the tissue injury resulting therefrom so extensive that ordy a few repetitions of the use of the drug serves to
change the brain structure, and therefore, the mind, to such an extent that the desire for the use of the drug is wholly unaccompanied with caution and in a short time the brain is so changed, and therefore the mind, that it is impossible for the subject to form a resolution against the use of the drug. This is the most pitiable condition into which the human being can be placed. From what has been said, it can be seen that persons addicted to the use of habit-forming drugs are not to be blamed, but are to be looked upon as demented, and are therefore to be sequestered, and protected against themselves until sufficient time has elapsed for their brain and body tissue to completely rehabilitate to the
normal,
when mind
will again
be restored, and the
ability to resolve against the use of such drugs wiU be
had by the victim.
The
therapeutic world
is
definitely to
blame
for the
it has brought them into existence, them in their destructive form in its practice, for which there is no justification, for there is nothing cxirative about any such drugs. The use of exciters and narcotics came into existence by reason of the supreme desire of the human family to
use of such drugs, for
and
it
uses
avoid pain; seeming to forget that pain is the nearest and best friend, for it advises of the abnormal condition, and to allay pain, and not remove the abnormal condition is to destroy animation.
EXCITERS AND NARCOTICS The symptoms
469
of the habitual use of the habit-
forming drugs are so
many and numerous
incapable of statement, but there are a few
as to be
symptoms
that are general.
Voracious appetite, intermittent with no appetite, palor and atrophy with perverted tastes are regular. Indisposition to exercise, tremulous conduct, a growing disposition
to
prevarication,
and to imagining the most
existence of things which do not exist, are the
pronounced symptoms.
The
application of the principles of Chiropractic
its highest and most useful office in assisting in removing the pathologic difficulties of the addicts to
reaches
habit-forming drugs, and this statement
is
true of
all
the habit-forming drugs. In some of the milder drugs,
such as coffee, tea, tobacco, etc., restoration can be accomplished without sanitarium surroundings, because the patient retains the ability to resolve against the use of the drug. But in the more pronounced addicts sanitarium conditions are absolutely necessary. In recovering patients from the use of opium, and all that array of habit-forming drugs, it is not necessary only that the patient shall be confined in a sanitarium, but that he shall have the continual attention and assistance of companions, who are constantly alert to see that he does not obtain the drug, for such persons are unusually acute in such matters, and wiU not hesitate to sink to any degree of dishonesty or deception to obtain what they want. The student must remember that in conducting the management of the drug addict, no matter of what standing the person may have been, or what degree of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
470
honor lie has been reputed to have, he must, nevertheless, be watched and protected from obtaining the drug, and in that particular his word must not be taken for anything. Nothing will succeed but strict surveillance, and the prevention and closing of all avenues through or by means of which he might by any possibility obtain the drug.
remove the
Relating to
by any
produced taken per mouth,
tissue conditions
of the habit-forming drugs,
if
be release of nerves at the fourth thoracic area, the seventh thoracic area, and the eleventh and twelfth thoracic areas. If the drug is injected into the arm, of course, the basic correction will be to release the nerves of the brachial plexus, and if injected elsewhere, the nerves to the area of injection will be primary. It must be observed, however, that relating in such cases must always be constitutional, because the entire organism will be depleted, and therefore, diet, ventiwill primarily
lation,
clothing,
importance
housing,
—
etc.,
^peculiarly the diet,
of light, nutritious,
easily
are
of
exceeding
which should consist and wholesome
digested,
foods taken upon a basis of monodiet. It is needless to say that the drug must be kept away from the patient until he has recovered his complete tissue integrity, and therefore has had restored to him his complete mental facilities, sufficiently that he can form a resolution of such profundity as to remain away from the use of the drug.
CHAPTER XLI
—INCIDENTS
PROCREATION
—Puberty—Menstruation—Conception —Gestation—Parturition—Lactation— Puerperal Fever—Menopause
Normal Formation
The
procreative apparatus
part of the
human anatomy,
is the most important because it presents] the
machinery through the use of which all human existence must be instituted and perpetuated. To not only understand the anatomy of the procreative organs, then, but to fully understand their function, to know when they are normal and to know how to keep them normal, is of the very first importance.
The
two suband female, which parts when considered together constitute a complete or whole procreative apparatus, none of the parts of which, considered by themselves are of any procreative
stantially
equally
apparatus consists
—^male
divided
of
parts
procreative value.
NORMAL FORMATION
The sex apparatus of the male and female have normal formation, although there formation.
is
no
de^finite
standard of
But the development of the sex apparatus marked and individual as are the
in each case is as
persons of different people, yet, notwithstanding these multifold deviations, the sex apparatus of each human
being
may
present the normal in construction. 471
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
472
not the purpose here to give the anatomy of is sufficient to say that the sex apparatus of the female is normally formed if the uterus has unobstructedly reached its maturity, and occupies its free and mobile position in the pelvis, with its cervix projected into the vagin*, sufficiently to give room for It
is
these parts. It
the fornices, in order that its external os shall have freedom of emission into the vagin* and intake from the
vagin* in an unobstructed manner, and if the vagin* has been permitted by relative anatomic incidents to grow to its maturity, and reach the surface of the body in a vagin*l orifice, which is anatomically protected by a perforate hymen; and if there is a cl*tor*s which has reached maturity without obstruction, the glans of which is free under the prepuce, that is, loosely related around the corona glandis; and, of course, if the ovaries have been permitted to normally form without nerve interference, so that they have unobstructedly reached maturity, and are related to the fimbriated extremities of the Fallopian tubes,
structedly in such
Graafian uterus,
follicles
which have developed unob-
manner that ova may pass from the through those tubes and into the
and thus unobstructedly through the cervix
into the vagin*.
The male
procreative apparatus
normally formed
if
may
be said to be
the penis has developed without
anomalous presentation to a
size well calculated to
be
accommodated by the normal vagin*, and if the glans is well formed and protected by a foreskin, which without being tight, nor long, protects the corona glandis, and forms a prepuce of such length as to permit erection of the organ without undue traction; provided
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS
473
the testes have been normally formed, and have been permitted without obstruction to descend into the scrotum, with the spermatic cord supported at ease within the external abdominal ring through the inguinal canal, and through the visceral ring, while the vas deferens extends to
and forms
in the ordinary
way
the
with the seminal and ejacul*tory being constructed in such manner that
seminal vesicles, ducts;
all
spermatazoa, being produced in the cell nests of the epithelium of the tubules of the testes, have free transmission through the vas deferens, seminal ducts
and ejacul*tory
tubes,
and then, through the
urethra,
to be projected from the meatus of the glans.
There
a wonderful range of diflference in size of these organs, and it is possible for the male organ to be is
anomalously large. It is also possible for it to be anomalously small, so much so in either case as to render its use as a procreative organ impossible. The same facts as stated with regard to the male organs are equally true of the female. The cl*tor*s may be anomalously large, so that it renders procreative relation impossible, and it may be so small as to not function, or may be completely absent. Occasionally there is the monstrous presentation of hermaphrodite, which is a person who presents neither the male or female procreative organs normally, but typically at least presents both characters of organs somewhat developed. Cases of this kind have been observed where neither of the set of organs were suflSciently developed to function in any way, and there are cases on record where both sets of organs have been sufficiently presented that the person could enter into
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
474
copulative relation either as a in
such cases there
is,
man
or a
fortunately,
woman. But
no procreative
function.
PUBERTY Puberty
is
a word, the use of which has
fusion. It originally
of the
came from the
human organism
much
con-
fact that that part
ventral to the pubis
is
at sex
maturity covered with hair. In other words, then, puberty was held to be the time at which hair grew on the skin over the pubis. Actually, the growth of hair at the pubis, and procreative maturity occur concomitantly, but in the more modern sense, the word puberty is confined to the time at which the male develops the power to beget offspring and when the female becomes capable of being impregnated, or has the capacity to conceive. It must be understood that both the male and female are generally conceived to have arrived at puberty, even though, because of anomalous or abnormal formation of some part of the procreative apparatus, they are incapable of begetting or conceiving offspring. Therefore, it may be even more accurate to say that puberty is reached when the male develops the ability to emit sem*n from the testes, and the female to emit ova from the ovaries, and to perform the process of menstruation.
As a comparative proposition, between the human animal and other animals, even those most like man, one of the most marked and distinctive differences is that the external genitalia of both male and female in the human species is covered with thick, soft hair, while
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS
475
the corresponding parts of the so-called lower animals are hairless. The author deems this a very significant fact as related to the subject of evolution.
MENSTRUATION
At the age of puberty, and usually at the period when the female begins a growth of hair at the pubis, the uterus undergoes rapid development in size, and in other ways, and presents the first menstruation. Menstruation occurs concomitantly with the discharge ovum from the ovary of the subject; at least coincident with its reaching the ampulla
of the first developed
of
Fallopian
the
tube.
The
tissue
condition
and
called menstruation
is a periodic inflammation of the walls of the uterus, peculiarly the submucous and mucous lining thereof, which normally
functional process
occurs each twenty-eight days.
Incident to the inflammatory tissue condition there occurs a desquamation of the uterine surface of the
mucous lining of the uterus accompanied normally by an amber colored, colloidal discharge; which in modern women, bred for generations in civilization, is somewhat red, and in those who have lived in the distinctly social
life
for
many
generations,
actually
contains
blood.
no doubt that actual hemorrhage occurring as incident to menstruation is abnormal, and is an anomalous condition, brought about by a long continued and too great concentration upon the subject of sex, in the development of social civilization. This conclusion is reached because savage women, and those of the peasantry of different countries of the world, who have There
is
476
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
open and have roughed it, do not present blood hemorrhage, but only a discolored lymph dislived in the
charge at the menstrual epoch. The periodic discharge of the menses in the normal woman is accompanied by the discharge of ova, and of course, accumulated debris from the ovaries, Fallopian tubes and uterns
is depurated or eliminated at this time so that the office of menstruation is not only procreative but is depuratory. Therapists presume that at each menstrual period one
ovum
is discharged through the uterus and vagin*. However, there is nothing to sustain this proposition, but the actual experience of the human family proves it to be quite otherwise; for if it were not otherwise there would not be twins or many times multiple births, and if but one ovum were discharged, the woman could only be impregnated during the menstrual flow, which is found not to be true. There is little doubt that it was formative intention that the woman should only be impregnated at the
period of menstruation, but, because of the unusual attention to sex as incident to the development of civilization, women have been rendered so abnormal that many women can be impregnated any time during the month, and it is usual with all women that they may be impregnated immediately before, or immediately after, the menstrual flow. However, there is occasionally a woman who can only be impregnated during the period of menstruation. A reasonably normal woman will continue to menstruate so long as there is any remnant of the ovaries, or accessory ovaries left to her, but will cease
social
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS menstruation, even within the fruitful age,
ovarian substance
is
if all
477 of the
extirpated.
The fact mentioned in the last paragraph is stated because occasionally there is presented a woman who has undergone extirpation of the ovaries, who nevertheless menstruates, and there have been cases in which such a woman has conceived. Such cases are explainable upon the fact that some part of an ovary or ovaries, or accessory ovary, was left. CONCEPTION Conception consists in three processes: (1) the deposit of a virile spermatazoon in the vagin*, which has free access to a mature ovum; (2) the striking of the ovum by the spermatazoon, which penetrates into it this
—
and (3) the some surface uterus, wall of which has roughened of the the been by the desquamation of menstruation, where it strikes and undergoes the process of imbedding. When these, three phases of process have been accomplished, substantially in the order named, conception has taken
process
being
called
impregnation;
levitation of the impregnated
ovum
to
place.
There are no symptoms of conception which are manifested that they may be detected. There is, however, a psychic, and therefore, mental change, which occurs without the consciousness of the woman, but nevertheless occurs. It is the belief of the suflBciently
author that in the future developnent of the human family the consciousness of conception will be developed in women, so that she will know the instant she has conceived.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
478
GESTATION
'
Gestation
is
the
name
given to the period which
and the full developwhat is ordinarily called full term. many symptoms of conception such
intervenes between conception,
ment
of the fetus, or
Therapists state
as morning sickness, discoloration of the skin, especially of the forehead, pain in the muscles of the loins, pains in the legs,
tendency to dropsy in the
feet,
enlargement
and evolution of the uterus, enlargement of the abdomen, the observation of movement, and finally the fetal heart beat, and many others. None of these, however, are distinctly reliable, since all of them have many times been mistaken.
In a normal woman the only symptoms absolutely proving the presence of an embryo or fetus in gestation is the timely evolution of the uterus head ventrally toward the abdominal wall, the enlargement of the uterus, the thickening of the lumbar muscles in relation with the crests of the innominates, the
enlargement of the
mam-
mary glands,andindue time the possibility of distinguishing the fetal heart beat, and observing fetal movement.
Of course, some of these are not absolute, for a woman evolution and enlargement of the uterus, the change in the abdominal muscles and the enlargement of the mammary glands incident to a tumor in the uterus, and even surgeons of much ability have been deceived by these symptoms to the extent of starting to operate to remove tumor, only to find that the woman was actually in the period of gestation and in the converse, diagnosis of gestation has been made by the most eminent therapists, when later it was found that conception had not occurred, but that there was a uterine tumor.
may undergo
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS
479
PARTURITION Parturition
is
the act or process of the
birth to a child. are
term-time,
The common names full
woman
giving
for this process
term, delivery and giving birth.
At full term the fetus presents itself against the membranes separating it from the cervix of the uterus. The muscles of the fundus and body of the uterus, and incidentally those of the lumbar region and abdominal walls spasmodically press
it
against those membranes.
After this pressure process has gone on for a time, the amniotic sac ruptures, and there is the " flowing of waters." The water is for the purpose of lubricating and
preparing the cervical tract and vagin* for the passage of the fetus. Incident to the muscular squeezing process referred to, the cervix of the uterus
is
rapidly dilated,
so that shortly following the rupture of the amniotic sac,
the fetus passes into the cervix, and engages in the pelvic outlet, through which
it
passes into the vagin*,
and thence through the pubic arch to the vagin*l
The
external,
orifice.
attitude of the fetus at term
is
called its pre-
normal position being head first, with the arms folded so as not to protrude. In this position it should be born with an occipital presentation. Somesentation, the
times there
is
a face presentation.
The other presentations are one arm and shoulder; shoulder presentation; both arms; a leg presentation; and breach presentation. In practically all of these the woman must have assistance or delivery canboth
legs;
not be accomplished. The assistance given to a woman in delivery is usually classified under the name obstetrics, or midwifery, and
480
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
sometimes necessary for assistance in these abnorFor instance in breach presentations, performing reversion, or pushing the fetus up turning it end for end, so as to have a head presentation, or to convert any of the other presentations, which render birth impossible, into positions in which the child can be born. When the fetus has passed through the vagin* to the external environment birth is accomplished. At this time the umbilical cord is tied in two places, and cut between them, after which the obstetrician proceeds with the management of the delivery of the placenta, and its attached fetal membranes. This is usually called " after birth." When the after birth has been delivered, and contraction of the uterus has occurred, or has been it is
mal
presentations.
secured, the parturition
is
complete, and the period of
gestation has been fully terminated.
LACTATION Lactation
name given to the milk-giving woman, or to any other mammalian
the
is
function of the
mother. Normally, from the time of the formation of the fetus until delivery, the mammary glands of the woman have been undergoing changes preparatory to lactation or milk giving, and at the time of delivery she is prepared to furnish first food to her offspring. The symptoms indicating lactating preparation and capacity are the enlargement of the glands, the discoloration of the lunula and the enlargement and reddening of the nipples. Care must be taken not to mistake accumulation of fat for the glandular enlarge-
ment necessary
to lactation.
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS
481
be recalled that the nerves from the brachial plexus, and from the first to the third thoracic trunks It will
particularly stimulate
inclusive,
mammary
glands,
and
if
there
the is
tissues
the
of
grave occlusion of
these nerves in whole or in part there will be a corre-
sponding lessening of the production of milk.
Many women
require application of the principles of
Chiropractic during
the
last
of gestation in order to give
and
lactation,
proper result
this has
if
weeks of the period
them capacity
never been
known
for sufficient
to
fail of
the
faithfully applied.
hardly necessary to say that to produce sufficient mother may support her offspring, relating should be performed for at least the last three It
is
lactation that the
months
of the period
of gestation
directed to the
releasing of the nerves of the brachial plexus,
headward
thoracics, to
and including the
and the
third.
PUERPERAL FEVER It sometimes happens that following delivery by reason of occlusion of stimulus to the uterine walls,
there
is
bad contraction accompanied by retention
of
substances that should have undergone free depuration which under the circ*mstances exosmose from the uterine cavity into the uterine wall. In such conditions sepsis
is
which
is
said to
have occurred, and a fever follows
called puerperal fever.
It must be remembered that nothing of this kind would occur except under an abnormal condition of the uterus, which results from occlusion of nerves to that organ. This is a very dangerous phase of tissue abnormality, and
should at once have proper and painstaking attention.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
482
In puerperal fever two things are paramountly necessary: (1) all foreign substances must be removed; there must be free drainage, and sanitary opportunity for depuration; and (2) that the nerves to the uterus and vagin*l tract shall be wholly freed from occlusion. The first of these can be accomplished by proper nurseattention, but the second can only be accomplished by the proper and intelligent application of the principles of Chiropractic.
Relating to remove puerperal fever is peculiarly directed to the nerves of the thoracico-lumbar area, incidentally to the lumbo-sacral area, iliac
and the
sacro-
areas; the specific centers of application being the
twelfth thoracic
and the second lumbar
areas.
No
case
been known to last more than twenty-four hours under the apphcation of the
of puerperal fever has ever
principles of Chiropractic as outlined.
MENOPAUSE Menopause is the name given to that period in a woman's life when she normally ceases to menstruate, or in other words when she normally ceases to present each
twenty-eight
days
the
catamenial
discharge.
The menopause marks the termination of the fruitful period of the woman. After this period she is incapable of impregnation. It is her emancipation from childbearing and should be a period looked forward to and enjoyed by all womankind.
Therapists have done the human family much harm by suggesting that it is at the period of the menopause
that there
is
a change of
TVome» are susceptible
and that incident thereto to all kinds of diseases and life,
PROCREATION—INCIDENTS
483
adverse attacks. This is not in any sense true, but under the adverse conditions incident to social life women usually undergo a great deal of stress and trouble at
However, it must be remembered that it is not normal for women to do so. If a woman has hved normally, she approaches this period in the same way this time.
that ripened grain or fruit reaches
its
maturity, without
and without trouble. Her periodic discharges should become less and finally skip a few with a return, and then cease altogether. It should be the pride and aim of every woman to live her sex life so normally that when she comes to the menopause, ordinarily called " change of life," she will pass it by as undisturbed as a flower closes its petals stress
in token of
maturity.
The menopause
is
not,
women have been
as
taught to think, an evidence of old age, but freedom from the responsibility of childbearing. At the menopause the ovaries of the woman do not shrink as the therapeutic world has erroneously taught, but if the woman is normal they remain, functioning to the production of virile womanhood, but not to the production of ova. The Fallopian tubes and uterus stUl remain depilatory channels of great importance, and the woman is as capable in sex
life
as before that change occurred.
CHAPTER XLII SEX ABNORMALITY
—
—
Anomalotis Formation Amenorrhea Dysmenorrhea Prolapsus of Uterus Flexions
Any organ
—
—
organism in order to function correctly, or physiologically, must, as a prerequisite, have normal construction and normal maintenance. This proposition is just as true of the sex organs as of
any
of the
other.
Because of the peculiar concentration of the human family upon the subject of sex, in the development of the social fabric and so-called civilization, the subject of sex has had very little, careful, painstaking, open and honest consideration, and this is much to be regretted, for it has greatly retarded the evolution of the human
family.
Humanity has generally treated the subject of the organs of sex as though they were never incorrectly formed. Society has apparently relied upon the fact that the sex apparatus
is
always normal in
its
construction or
presentation, while nothing can be further from the truth.
Because of the emotional concentration upon the subject of
sex,
there
is
more idiosyncrasy of conany other organs of
struction of the sex organs than of
the body, and, because of the extreme sensitiveness of the sex organs, their abnormal or anomalous construction results in more harm to the organism than the anomalous construction of any other organs. 484
:
SEX ABNORMALITY
485
ANOMALOUS FORMATION In the chapter on "
Orificial
Abnorma,Hty" herein,
this subject has received an extended discussion, to which the student is here definitely referred.
In
two phases of anomalous presentasex organs are paramountly referred to
this connection
tion of
The first of these is the long or tight foreskin of the male; the short frenum; and the abnormally small urinary meatus. Either of these, or a combination of them, presents a most irritating situation to the male organism, which, if uncorrected, may cause a wide range of abnormality, such as congestion of the brain, weak or irritated
eyes,
nasal catarrh, pharyngitis, laryngitis,
goitre, indigestion,
abnormality of the large digestive and rectal pathology, or
glands, kidney abnormality,
a combination of these. The second of these phases
is the presentation in the female of the redundant, tight, or adhered foreskin. The redundant foreskin presents an enswathed,
irritated cl*tor*s, or,
if
the foreskin
is
—a hooded
closed
while the tight foreskin presents either an adhered, or choked cl*tor*s.
cl*tor*s;
It will be remembered that the cl*tor*s is the " touch button," sexually speaking, to the woman's organism, and either of the anomalous conditions described in the
preceding paragraph, presents a continuing irritation, which, by motor reaction, agitates the brain cortex, and
through the brain, practically the whole organism, and pronouncedly any parts of it, that, because of subluxation or tissue degeneracy have less than normal resistance. definitely
The
irritation referred to in the preceding
paragraph
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
486
may
cause
brain irritation, ranging from ordinarily called nervousness, to
all sorts of
hypersensitiveness,
the most extravagant insanity; and such tissue abnormality as nasal catarrh, deafness, pharyngitis, laryngitis, goitre, indigestion, abnormality of the large digestive glands, the kidneys, suprarenals, rectal pathology,
and
all
and
also
characters of uterine and
vagin*l abnormality, or a combination of any or
all of
these.
An
anomalous presentation of the labia minora, in which condition it takes on an extended, or dog-eared form, to such extent as to continually protrude from the pudendal slit, beyond the protection of the labia majora; or when the labia are presented asymmetrically; that is to say, one labium developed into a dog-eared protrusion, while the other is abnormally small or not presented, result in the
same character
those mentioned with regard to the usually
become
more pronounced
of irritation as
cl*tor*s,
in their effect.
but they are
They
usually
pronounced in their effects as puberty approaches and on through the woman's life. The irritation from the anomalies described in the preceding paragraph causes a continuous motor reaction which may result in any of the phases of abnormality suggested in connection with the irritations of the cl*tor*s; but are more apt to cause emotional, and therefore mental disturbances, and it was the symptoms arising from these conditions that suggested the name, nymphomania, as characterizing the emotional insanity of women thus affected, although the tissue facts herein stated were not known to therapeutists. It goes without saying that in anomalous foreskin
SEX ABNORMALITY presentation of both male and female,
487 the proper
remedy is circumcision, by the latest orificial technique, and excision of the mal-presented nymphae in conformity with the results obtained by the most scientific orificialists,
who practice the Pratt system of correction. AMENORRHEA
Amenorrhea
distinctly refers to suppression of the
menses, occurring as incident to any or all phases of abnormality. This phase or symptom occurs frequently in connection with all kinds of febrile conditions, and indeed
many
where
vitality
phases of so-called constitutional disease, is needed by the organism for resistance rather than for the procreative purpose. The regular flow of the menses is frequently inter-
rupted as a result of great exhaustion or depletion. It has been known to occur as incident to a long fast, and frequently occurs as incident to emotional shock, etc. Catching cold, as incident to or at the time of menstruation, or undergoing some character of shock at the time, very frequently results in suppression of the menses or amenorrhea; and women should be very careful during the menstrual flow in their conduct, for a little carelessness or exposure, at such time may result in an adverse process, difficult to remove, very painful to endure, and greatly endangering animation. Women, at or near the menstrual epoch should be particularly careful not to get the feet wet or damp, nor to undergo unusual exposure to cold or moisture, and should not under any circ*mstances submerge the body in water, either in the bath or in the swimming
— out-doors or in.
pool
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
488
The
irritation incident to the sex organs described
under, anomalous formations, in this chapter are the
most
fruitful causes of
amenorrhea. It
is
almost uni-
versal that girls presenting anomalous sex orifices begin
menstruation very abnormally; sometimes presenting a very^early flow, which is thereafter very irregular, or, which is the most usual, the first menstrual epoch is much delayed with great irregularity thereafter. The irregularity of the menstrual flow referred to in the preceding paragraph may consist in excessive hemorrhage; but usually consists in a very scanty flow, with irregularity as to time, sometimes occurring twice or more times a month, and then skipping several months. Frequently such girls only menstruate once in six months, or once a year, and sometimes cease menstruation for years. It can be well understood that where the anomalous situation, and its resultants are as grave as just outlined, the victim of them cannot be otherwise than gravely abnormal in all parts of the organism. It is girls like these that are taken off with what therapy designates as galloping consumption, nervous decline and nervous exhaustion. Therapeutic doctors frequently ascribe the sudden loss of vitality of such girls to adverse love affairs, and many other foolish things, because they do not understand the pathologic situation.
UsuaUy
in those cases,
where
girls
at school or col-
very delicate and nervous, and undergo prostration, and must be taken out of school, anomalous sex orifices are the underlying cause of all the trouble, and if the doctors in attendance would cease to perform their fooUsh operations upon the nose, eyes, lege are considered
SEX ABNORMALITY ears,
and
throat,
and would give
as careful
attention to the other end of the trunk,
lamentable
When
difficulties of girls
489
and
skilled
all of
these
and women would
cease.
with abnormal sex orifices marry, which they do too often, one of two things result: they either faU to enter into normal, wifely sex relation, thus rendering their marriage a failure; or they suflficiently enter into the sex relation to conceive and bring forth children with prolonged travail and great agony. It is such women that keep the surgeons busy, for they nearly always undergo lacerations in expelling the fetus, and almost imiversally present in their children the same character of sex anomalies which they themselves have. It is a dark picture, but must be painted, because a little frank, common sense for a few generations would fully remove these anomaUes. If a woman who presents the anomalies described in the last two paragraphs succeeds in making her way through the other departments of life, at about thirty to thirty-five years of age she is almost certain to present a goitre, and will be sure to do so if she lives in a goitre territory. The insane asylums, and places of prostitution are occupied by women who are the victims of the character of anomaUes described in this and the chapter entitled " Orificial Abnormality." girls
DYSMENOERHEA Dysmenorrhea refers to painful menstruation. This subject needs no extended discussion, for it never occurs except when some of the anomalous conditions that have just been detailed are present.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
490
Dysmenorrhea
is
a
most
terrible condition. It
fre-
quently results from the fact that, responding to motor reaction, the cervix of the uterus is profoundly constricted and fixed, and the emotions preceding and incident to menstruation are temporarily incapable of
producing relaxation.
Temporary dysmenorrhea sometimes occurs from the constrictions incident to shock, but in a very large
majority of cases, it is but the reactive effect of irritation from abnormal sex orifices. It win be seen that for palliation, the thing para-
mountly desired
is
dilation of the cervix,
and when
accomplished dysmenorrhea ceases for the time. The solution of the problem in both amenorrhea and dysmenorrhea, is the correction of the anomalous sex that
is
orifices.
PROLAPSUS OF UTEKTJS Prolapsus of the uterus covers a wide range of difnot all of which may seem to come imder that
ficulties title;
the term prolapsus signifies the sinking
a viscus below
its
Distinctively speaking,
uterus only ligaments,
down
of
normal position. there
is
prolapsus of the
when there is distention not only of but a relative dilation or distention
viscera, pressing it feetward
and forcing the cervix
its
of
into
which situation is brought about by occlusion of the nerves that ramify in the pelvis, which the
vagin*,
occlusion has existed suflSciently long for the tissue
condition to become chronic.
The usual and ordinary ever, is that
prolapsus of the uterus, howwhich comes about as the result of dis-
SEX ABNORMALITY
491
tortions of the pelvic girdle, particularly, in the sacroiliac articulations, as
sacrum
is
uterus
ventrally,
ventral, or
a result of which either the whole is base ventral, thus carrying the
and
in
the last instance
ventro-
feetwardly.
Of course, the same
result as that last
mentioned
may
occur as a result of the crests of the innominates being distorted ventrally, carrying with them the base of the sacrum, for this lessens the pelvic capacity
from
behind.
known
that these distortions, or those analogous to them, are frequent in the human organism; It
but
well
is
it
must be known that prolapsus
gravity occurs only in a very small cases, for
power
any considerable
of
number
under usual conditions there
is
of these
a remarkable
accommodation in these tissues. It is where the orificial anomalies, discussed in this chapter, are pronounced that the concomitant of lumbar and pelvic distortions described, cause the result to become profoundly adverse. In such conditions there of
not only skeletal distortions, affecting the position of the uterus, but there is profound motor reaction to the organ itself, causing its tissues to go through all of the phases of the inflammatory process, and to finally reach the most catarrhal and negative tissue phases. is
It
is
when the
uterus has gone through the inflamma-
tory and catarrhal processes, so that
its tissues have become distended, flabby and non-resistive, and its hgaments have also undergone distension, that prolapsus is really and actually presented in all of its aggravating and distressing phases. Without going into any greater detail than what has
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
492
been stated it will be seen that recovery from such situations can only be expected where the anomalous orifices, and the lumbar and pelvic distortions are corrected. In grave and chronic conditions, it must be remembered that this will require much time and very careful attention.
To
secure the conditions last mentioned, the
woman
should be taken off her feet for all the way from four to twelve weeks, during which time she should receive
and careful application of the principles of Chiropractic, and undergo proper and sufficient exercise of all daily
parts of the body, directed to the strengthening of her
muscles, and peculiarly those of the lumbar
and
pelvic
region.
A common to
make
it
sense glance at the situation
perfectly clear that
tained along the surgical
no hope
line, of
is
sufficient
may
be enter-
shortening the hga-
ments of the uterus, and such folderol. Not a single case that has been thus operated has ever reached a successful result, and since the method is not anatomic, physiologic nor common sense, it should be wholly abandoned. FLEXIONS Flexions of the uterus present another of the bugaboos of the therapeutic profession. Really, as a matter of fact, there are no such things as flexions of the uterus aside
from
The
its
prolapsus.
therapeutic
world designate what they
call
and lateral flexions of the uterus. As a matter of fact, in the sense stated these do not exist. It is true that the tissues of one side of the uterus may
anterior, posterior,
SEX ABNORMALITY
493
become
chronically relaxed and flaccid, while those of the opposite side remain hypertonicised. In such a
upon
but it will be seen that upon the whole the situation amounts to situation the uterus will be bent
itself;
prolapsus instead of flexion.
At
this point the student is requested to recall the
human beings present the " typical distortion" which is carefully detailed in the first volume of this work. As a result, in fuUy seventy per cent of women the mesial plane of the cervix of the uterus is to the right of the mesial plane of the body, while the mesial plane of the fundus is to the left of the mesial plane of the body, and since, in more than fifty per cent of cases the base of the sacrum is ventral to the place it should occupy, the fundus and body of the
fact that ninety per cent of
uterus are projected obliquely ventral as well as to the left.
In
the
situation
diagnostician
is
just
detailed,
the
therapeutic
prone to reach one of two conclusions:
either that there
is
right flexion of the cervix; or left
which in a majority of correct, the fact being that because of the
flexion of the uterus. Neither of
instances pelvic
is
distortion,
the
uterus
occupies
an oblique
position.
The normal recalled,
is
rectum by
to
relationship of the uterus, it
lie
its
and by its
dorsal aspect,
dorsal surface of the bladder
move
wiU be
in touch with the ventral wall of the in
touch with the
ventral aspect, and,
and ventrally to accommodate the fxmctions of both the bladder and rectum. Therefore, in the event that the base of the sacrum is ventral, the rectum is forced ventrally, and the uterus is pressed to
dorsally
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
494
down upon
the bladder, and because of this situation, which he does not understand, the surgeon reaches the diagnosis of anterior flexion of the uterus.
however, the apex of the sacrum is ventral, while the base is dorsal, the cervix of the uterus will be raised up against the neck of the bladder, while the fundus and body will lean back against the rectum, and the therapeutist will diagnose, retroflexion, of the uterus. It will be seen that both of the situations described in the last two paragraphs are the tissue attitudes that are enforced by the relative osseous structures, and that it is wholly incorrect to make any diagnosis of them If,
as separate
from those controlling structures.
Of course, incident to these suggestions, under the from orificial conditions, by the process of motor reaction, the uterus may undergo all of the inflammatory and catarrhal processes, so that it becomes flaccid and bends either forward or backward in its prolapsus; but it will be readily seen that such conditions should not be discussed under flexions, but under irritation
prolapsus.
As a
result of the typical distortion already referred
very usual, in fact almost regular for the cervix and the immediate portion of the body thereof, to be adhered to the right side, and this is to, it is
of the uterus
especially true after thirty years of age, in unmarried
women, and married women who have borne no children. Adhesions of the cervix and immediate portions of the body of the uterus to the right side should not be reduced by a laparotomy, as has long been the surgical method, but in such cases the proper orificial correction should be made, and the woman have such additional
SEX ABNORMALITY care as
is
indicated,
by the
495
application of the principles
accompanied by direct digital release of the cervix, accomplished per vagin*. At the incipiency, this method of correction is somewhat painful, but it very quickly accomplishes the desired result, and without surgical interference.
of Chiropractic,
CHAPTER XLIII r
PKOCKEATION ABNORMALITY
—
Imfotence
Any change
—Barrenness—Miscarriage —Abortion
Sterility
in the structure of a procreative organ
from the physiologic, brings
it
within the scope of the
present discussion.
However, thought
is
to be
more
particularly directed
in this chapter to a few, specific phases.
A
few general
statements, however, as prefatory to the presentation of those subjects will be of some aid to the student.
Directing the thought to the male; incompetency to procreate may occur by reason of an anomalously small or large penis.
The
condition being so extravagant in
either case as to render the act of copulation
an impossi-
bihty.
presented so anomaan impossibility. These matters are not made prominent and, except in proIt
is
rarely that the penis
is
lously as to render copulation
kept secret. sometimes presents
fessional circles, are
The female situation of
no vagin*l
orifice
the
anomalous
capable of sex penetration;
the vagin* being only a small tube.
In other cases the vagin* orifice
is
presented, but there
is
no
or external os in the uterus, which, of course,
prevents procreation, and renders the
woman
incompe-
tent from that standpoint.
Anomalous presentations
of the sex parts of
496
woman
PROCREATION ABNORMALITY are multitudinous, description of
them
and here,
497
space- does not admit of a
many
of
them incapacitate
for procreation.
aheady been stated in the chapter on " Orificial Abnormality" that anomalous labia minora; and a hooded cl*tor*s, one which is squeezed, or to which the It has
is adhered, causes much abnormality of multitudinous phases. But in that connection nothing was said with regard to the influences of such conditions
foreskin
upon
procreation.
Frequently, because of the conditions stated in the paragraph, the woman is rendered wholly incompe-
last
tent to enter into copulative relation ia such result in procreation,
way
as to
but on account of those anomalous
conditions, remains unfruitful for
life.
IMPOTENCE
The
actual significance of the term impotence
means
lack of power, and, of course, the thought in connection
with the sex apparatus is referred to the condition of lack of power to perform the act of copulation. In the sense just stated, the thought of impotence is confined wholly to the male, and is usually restricted to the thought of incapacity to secure an erection of such rigidity as to enable the male to enter the penis into the vagin* of the female. This conception is wholly erroneous. The male is impotent if for any reason he is incapable of entering completely into sex commerce. That is to
when he
not able to secure an erection and enter the penis into the vagin*, and to maintain such erection thereafter until he has reached the chmax of say,
is
an org*sm and emitted sem*n.
498
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
There are many deviations from the capacity expressed in the last paragraph. In some cases the male has capacity to secure an erection and enter the penis into the vagin*, but immediately loses the erection, and can go no further in the act of copulation. In other cases erection occurs, but before entrance into the vagin* can be secm-ed the seminal discharge takes place, followed by flaccidity of the organ, and copulation is aborted. In some cases, although there is sufficient virility, and erection is complete and enduring, entrance into the vagin* is rendered impossible by anomalous construction of the organ, whereby it is bent upon itself so that the greater the erection, the less the possibility of entrance.
There are too many anomalous structures to permit of individual discussion here, and the subject must be passed with the statement that no matter what the abnormality may be, the male is impotent imless he can perform the act of copulation in all of its parts. Therapists have not generally conceived that the woman may be impotent; but the same rule laid down as to the male applies equally to the woman. A woman is impotent, if, because of anomalous construction of the vagin* or uterus she
is
incapable of
That is to say, if she has entrance by the penis of the
entering fully into the sex act.
not a vagin* capable of male, and a uterus in condition to function in copulation in connection therewith. In order that the woman shall have the capacity to accomplish copulation as outlined in the preceding paragraph she must possess a vagin* sufficiently large for the entrance of the penis, the walls of which must
PROCREATION ABNORMALITY
499
There must be a free fornix presenting the cervix of the uterus, through which the tube is unobstructed, and she must be capable of entering into an org*sm, resulting in the projection of
be possessed of
erectile capacity.
follicular fluid into the vagin*.
Many errors with regard to potency of the female have been indulged because of the fact that if the woman presents a vagin* capable of entrance by the penis of the male, she can apparently enter into copulation without actually being able to do so. There is quite a large percentage of women capable of such intercourse, who are, nevertheless, wholly impotent. The
rule laid
down
as to the male, fully applies as to
the female, and in order that a woman shall not be impotent she must present a sex apparatus capable of meeting in function every necessary phase of copulation possessed
by the male. That
is
of entrance of the erect penis. It
the vagin* must admit
must meet the erection
with erection. She must be capable of entering into an org*sm in connection with which follicular fluid is projected from the ampula of the Fallopian tubes, through the uterus into the vagin*. Any deviation in ability
from
this rule renders the
woman
impotent.
STERILITY
The discussion here is definitely directed to the seminal fluid of the male,
and
and
to the follicular fluid of the female,
in either of these fluids, failure to contain the
elements necessary tb produce offspring, amounts to sterility.
male there are no spermatazoa capable of impregnating the ova, the male If,
in the seminal fluid of the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
500 is
said to be sterile, regardless of his capacity to ejacul*te
sem*n
as a result of org*sm.
be seen that the rule stated under the preceding sub-title, that if the sem*n of the male is sterile, that notwithstanding his ability to perform copulation to the ejacul*tion of sem*n, nevertheless because of his sterility he is impotent. If the follicular flu^d of the female does not contain ova capable of impregnation she is sterile, and incapable of conception. It frequently occurs that a woman can enter into all of the apparent phases of copulation, and at the org*sm project follicular fluid from the uterus into the vagin*, but she is, nevertheless sterile and impotent, because such fluid contains no ova, or if so none capable It will
of impregnation.
BARRENNESS Barrenness, of course, applies only to the female. It
may be
woman may be barren She may be barren because
seen at a glance that a
a multitude of reasons. formed sex organs of such a nature as to prevent copulation. She may also be barren on account of an anomalous prepuce or labia minora which have caused her sex emotion to be whoUy perverted, so that for
of anomalously
she
is
incapable of entering into procreative relation.
Women laboring under the defects indicated in the last paragraph are sometimes able to copulate sufficiently to permit the entrance of the penis into the vagin*, thus partly gratifying the male, and yet not be able to enter into complete copulative relation; neither presenting an org*sm, nor the discharge of follicular fluid. In some cases, because of the perverted emotion
PROCREATION ABNORMALITY incident to the sex anomalies referred to, the loses the capacity to present
tion in which event she
As a
is
ova capable
501
woman
of impregna-
barren.
result of certain traumatic injuries, or long
periods of tissue degeneracy under abnormal function,
women sometimes
lose the capacity to present ova capable of being impregnated. This sometimes occurs also as incident to mal-position of the uterus in its
relation with the vagin*, so that ova, while
produced are
prevented from coming Any of the phases so far described, while they constitute barrenness, also constitute impotency. There is one more phase that should be referred to, which renders the woman barren, and that is the failure of development of the uterus from its infantile size, and, as has already been referred to, it is sometimes presented without an opening leading into the vagin*. The tissues of the uterus are frequently so abnormal, flaccid, catarrhal, and depleted, that, although ova are produced and transmitted to the vagin*, and are impregnated and ascend into the uterus, the condition of the walls prevents adhesion, and therefore, embedding, and, of course, the process of impregnation is aborted. into relation with the sem*n.
MISCARRIAGE Miscarriage
embryo or
is
the
name given
fetus before
to the expulsion of the
"term time;"
or in other words,
before the normal ending of the period of gestation.
Miscarriage occurs in
many
ways, but
it is
always
primarily the result of tissue abnormahty of the uterus. It
may be, and usually is, the result from a wide range
the tissue accessory to gestation.
of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
502
an ovum should be impregnated, and migrate into the uterus, strike its wall, and enter into the process of imbedment, but the uterine wall should be so catarrhal and flaccid, that the bed would not hold, and after a time the impregnated ovum or embryo should loosen from the wall, miscarriage has occurred. Such a result as that just described would be a miscarriage if it occiu-red at any time duriag the period of gestation, and before term time. Miscarriages many times occur between the seventh and eighth months of gestation, presenting a Uving child. These are called premature births; but they are, If
nevertheless, miscarriages.
The
declaration in the preceding paragraph simply
means that
without wrongful interference, a child is bom before the termination of the full period of gestation, the result is a miscarriage, for a woman should be capable of carrying her child until the terminif,
ation of the full period of gestation.
ABORTION
and in general use, there is much confusion between miscarriage and abortion. They are wholly dissimilar terms, and should never be confused ia their use. Miscarriage refers to an expulsion of the fetus before " term time," but without wrongful interOrdinarily,
ference. Abortion
is
the result of wrongful interference.
Abortion occurs where, because of wrongful interference the impregnated ovum, embryo or fetus is caused to be
from its bed and from the uterine wall, and to be cast oflf and out of the uterus. Abortion consists in stopping the period of gestation released
PROCREATION ABNORMALITY
503
by the purposeful administration of abnormal measures, so that the zygote, embryo or fetus is delivered before term.
Abortions are usually produced by the administration of " high power" drugs, which produce such relaxation of the uterine wall as to cause prematiu-e delivery.
They
may be, and frequently are, produced by the intervention of instrumentation
by which means the same
result
is
reached.
Abortion by either of the means indicated in the is a very dangerous procedure, as to its immediate efifects, and very frequently resiJts in the death of the woman, and if it does not, it is very seldom, after imdergoing abortion that the woman ever whoUy recovers from the shock and resumes normal preceding paragraph
condition.
Before submitting to abortion each woman should know that no matter how early in the period of conception the abortion is performed, that it removes from her body, and kills a human being, and that it is very questionable whether the act can ever be justified There are three things in connection with abortion that are of such transcending value that all persons should be caused to hesitate: first, there is the endangering of the life of the woman; second, the probability that she will never recover although she lives; third, there is the destruction of a human being, which, although embryonic, may be and probably is as important,
and has
as
much
right to
life
as
any other human
being.
AU phases of impotency, sterility, barrenness, and tendency to miscarriage; the result of tissue degeneracy
504
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
incident to occlusion of nerve stimulus,
may
be wholly
recovered by the application of the principles of Chiropractic, unless the degeneracy has gone too far. One of the most astonishing results of the appUcation of the principles of Chiropractic
the recovery of
men
have been observed
to sex capacity
who
in
for years
lacked that power.
Women who have never had the capacity to undergo have been completely restored, and given virility in every phase of sex relation, even to the extent of the capacity to become impregnated and bear children. Men who have been declared sterile, whose sem*n contained no virile spermatazoa, have by the application of the principles of Chiropractic been restored to the production of virile spermatazoa, and have had the satisfaction of producing normal ofiFspring. Women who have been barren, because of some adverse tissue condition of the sex apparatus, have been sufficiently returned to the normal to enter into all of the relations of copulation; to undergo impregnation, and to deliver a normal child at fuU term. Women who have had the tissue habit of miscarriage for years; having cast off several conceptions at three or four months, have, by the application of the principles of Chiropractic been rendered so virile that they have conceived, and have not only carried their child to full term, but have delivered it in a period varying from thirty to forty-five minutes practically without pain. Where a woman has undergone the terrible ordeal of abortion, there is no surer relief, in her time of danger than the constant and intelligent appUcation of the all
of the phases of normal copulation
PROCREATION ABNORMALITY
505
In such emergencies the author has appHed the principles of Chiropractic to puerperal fever, following abortion, with the most astonishing and complete results. Relating to remove occlusion causing impotency, sterility, barrenness and miscarriage is, of course, primarily directed in the female to releasing nerves to the uterus, the ovaries, and to the vagin*; and as far as these occiu- in the male, to the seminal vesicles, testes, prostate gland, and penis. In male and female these are the twelfth thoracic, second lumbar and the fourth and fifth lumbars, and also the ilio-sacral and the sciatic areas the latter to release the pudic nerve trunks. principles of Chiropractic.
—
CHAPTER XLIV GENEEAL DISCUSSION OF SURGERY Surgery
is
generally held to consist of instrumental
intervention in the manipulation of any part of the organism for the purpose of alleviation or correction of any injmy, deformity, or pathologic condition thereof. There has been an endeavor on the part of some short-sighted persons to conjure up certain manipulations with the hands and fingers, and to call such work hand and finger surgery. This is entirely aside from a practical conception, and fortunately in this coimtry we have settled that question for all time, by declaring that nothing is surgery except the intervention of
instnmientation.
There
are, as the definition given herein implies, three
kinds of surgery. There
is (1)
surgery definitely directed
to correction of anomalously presented parts. This
might with equal propriety be called constructive surgery. There is (2) palliative surgery, which consists in removing pathologic growths and accumulations; and there is (3) destructive surgery which consists in the extirpation or amputation of parts of the organism. The first character of surgery mentioned is the one which holds out the greatest promise to the human family; that is, the correction of anomalies and congenital presentations.
Within the scope of such sm-gical procedures lies all of the remarkable possibiUties of orthopedic correction; 506
GENERAL DISCUSSION OF SURGERY
507
the correction of distorted features, such as badly
shaped ears, noses, and so on. This phase of surgery is also to be applied, and peculiarly adapted, to the correction of anomalies
congenital sex orifices,
and sex organs, and
is
and
in connection
with this thought, anomalously presented intestinal and other visceral monstrosities.
The author
wishes to emphasize the remarkable encourage
possibilities of this character of surgery; to
investigation
following
and research
in
this
direction,
and co-incident with the fundamental
always princi-
ples of Chiropractic.
The second by
palliation
character of surgery referred to, that of
the removal of pathologic formations
and accumulations
indeed a very valuable department of surgery; but is not so frequently necessary as has been thought by the therapeutic profession and nothing is
world has been led to believe. This is the department of surgery through the intervention of which cysts, tumors, cancers, boils, carbuncles, felons, and other pathologic obstructions are removed. When the organism, or a part of it, has been neglected to the point that such gross phases of pathology have not only been permitted to occur, but have been permitted to reach a marked phase of gravity, there are instances in which this phase of surgery is most friendly to the organism, and is necessary to the maintenance of its animation. like so necessary as the lay
,
The third character of surgery defined relates to such procedures as the removal of the ovaries. Fallopian tubes, uterus, appendix, segments of the intestines, extirpation of the testes,
and includes
also the extirpation of
many
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
508
other parts of the viscera, such as a kidney, the thyroid gland,
and so
on.
Not much can be said for the phase of surgery pointed out in the last paragraph. It is indeed rare that viscera must be removed, and it must be remembered that a viscus should never be removed until its removal has become so necessary to the animation of the organism as to render it a last emergency. The other department of this character of stirgery, that of amputation, when rightly applied is entitled to our most profound admiration, but this statement must be accepted with the caution that it is very rare indeed that extirpation is necessary, and certainly extirpation should never be accomplished except as a last emergency. The author wishes to lay down the rule at this point, which should govern all surgical procedin-es: surgery should never be resorted to except as a last resort in emergency. Of course, the circ*mstances which indicate an emergency are always to be determined by the sound discretion of the expert who is in attendance upon, or has supervision of the case. For the purpose of indicating the wide rajige of siu"gical emergency, let it be remembered that when either a boil, carbuncle, or a felon has passed its incipient phase, and cannot be removed by releasing occlusion of stimulus to the area, the emergency for
surgery has arrived, and the correct handling of the situation is by opening the pathologic accumulation to its
depth.
In the matter of the extirpation of an appendix, for instance, an emergency does not occur unless the appendix has become so elongated and distended as to
GENERAL DISCUSSION OF SURGERY
509
by prolonged adhered to relative mesentery, or other structures in such manner as to continually pull and distort. In such conditions, surgical interference may
furnish a leakage from the cecum, or irritation it has
release the adhesions of the appendix, leaving it free to
function normally, or in conditions where the appendix
has become so distorted and scarred as to be beyond recovery, it should be extirpated.
In the connection just indicated, it must be clearly understood that the surgical emergency has not been reached until the principles of Chiropractic have been definitely and intelligently applied without recovery from the situation. For if recovery of the patient can be accomplished by any other means, surgical intervention is not necessary, and there is no surgical emergency. In ovarian cysts, as another illustration, where the cyst has become so large that its weight and abdominal intrapressure is so great that the irritation and motor reaction caused thereby cannot be overcome or released by the application of the principles of Chiropractic, the surgical emergency has arrived, and extirpation of the cyst, together with the disintegrated ovary, has become a surgical necessity. The same principles hold good all through the viscera. The important proposition always presented in such situations is to carefully watch and determine when the surgical emergency has arisen, and to act
and intelligently, and accurately when the emergency has occurred. In the matter of amputation, it is not so diflScult to determine when the surgical emergency has arrived, for the parts being external or appendal, a very much more rapidly,
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
510
extended and careful examination of them may be made by ordinary means. The rule in such cases is found in the following: When the principles of Chiropractic have been faithfully applied to the part for several days, perhaps a week or two, and instead of getting better, it is getting worse, and to such an extent as to threaten animation, then
the surgical emergency has occurred, and amputation should be correctly and quickly performed.
However,
if,
under the careful application of the
principles of Chiropractic the pathologic situation has
been checked, that is to say, has not gotten any worse, although it cannot be determined to be any better, there is no surgical emergency, and no surgical intervention should be permitted. In such cases the principles of Chiropractic should be faithfully applied, until a change takes place for the better, and in such cases it will be soon enough for surgery, after prolonged application of the principles of
Chiropractic,
if it
should be ascertained that notwith-
standing, pathology
The of the
is
nevertheless gaining.
trouble about amputations
human
is the misconception family with regard thereto. Amputations
for the purpose of relief failures in
from pathologic conditions are
a very large majority of cases.
Where ampu-
have been made to remove pathology, it is usually found that another amputation must be made because of the same phase of pathology occurring in the stump tations
or parts after amputation.
The
situation indicated in the last paragraph finds
a tragic illustration in the case of Dr. Clayton of
Melbourne, Australia,
who
sufiFered
a sHght injury to
GENERAL DISCUSSION OF SURGERY
511
neck and shoulder by a fall, who finally underwent forty-two major operations, having the arm amputated to the glenoid cavity, and the laminae of the vertebrae removed from the foiu-th cervical to the fourth thoracic on the left side, thus destroying the beauty and usefulness of a majestic and highly educated man, who stood six feet and four inches in height. After all of these amputations he got the only reUef he had obtained by
his
the application of the principles of Chiropractic. If Chiropractic had been applied in the first place, no amputation or surgical interference of any kind would have been necessary.
add that necessary surgery includes the reduction of fractures, the sewing up and attention to cuts, lacerations, incisions and the like, and the lancing of boils, carbuncles, and felons in the emergency phase. The extirpation of viscera that can It
is
quite unnecessary to
not longer remain without endangering animation of the organism. The removal of pathologic accumulations of such gravity as to produce irritation beyond the possibility of reduction by the release of nerve occlusion; and amputation when a condition indicating a surgical emergency has been reached. The foregoing affirmative statement must be accepted with the caution, that surgery of all kinds must be avoided, except where the symptoms taken with the general experience of mankind, indicate a certainty of betterment in the given case by its performance. Exploratory incisions have become so numerous as to be a laughing stock to intelligent men and women. Siu'geons have resorted to this method just as a matter of satisfying a vain curiosity. This should never occur.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
512
However, exploratory
incisions are justifiable in
many
instances, for the purpose of actually investigating the details of pathology, to see
either
by way
of
if
intervention of surgery,
removing pathologic accumulations,
or other adverse conditions employed. For example, the author has known of patients suffering for many years from a continual pain in the region of the solar plexus, one case in particular, a young man who fifteen years before had been kicked by a horse and from a few weeks afterward had suffered continual pain in the region of the solar plexus. Such a condition could easily have been brought about by scar tissue having formed which, by constriction produced
anomalous
situations,
may be profitably
upon the splanchnic ganglia; the fact could have been ascertained by an exploratory incision, and if that situation was found, the adhesions could have pressure
been easily released. In connection with exploratory incisions the author wishes it understood that, while he would permit a wide latitude of legitimate investigation, yet he desires to impress upon the student the necessity for the most profound caution in such matters, for it is always a tragedy to open the abdomen, or any cavity of the body, surgically for
any purpose.
Educational surgery should never be engaged in under any circ*mstances. What is meant by "educational surgery," is exploratory incisions made into the cavity of the body, or into the tissues of the body anywhere, simply for dissection purposes, that is to demonstrate a fact, when no surgical emergency or necessity exists.
GENERAL DISCUSSION OF SURGERY In
modem
exploration
by
all
is
513
surgery a very great deal of educational
being constantly performed, and. it should
means be stopped.
It
constitutional privilege of a
is
dangerous, and
human
it is
the
being to keep his
inviolate, and this should constantly be remembered. The author wishes it distinctly understood, however, that when a sm-gical emergency exists, and it is necessary to perform surgery of any kind, prudery and sensitiveness should not be permitted to intervene, and prevent using such emergency to its greatest educational value. Indeed, all necessary surgery should be performed in well established amphitheatres, to which all students of the body able to intelUgently understand what is being done should be admitted, including not only surgeons, doctors and other professional men, but educated laymen as well. It is, of course, a tragedy when surgery must be performed, but it is a still greater tragedy that necessary surgery be performed in private, and its educational advantage thus wholly lost. There is no better way to learn the exact tissue condition, and functional conduct of the body than by a
body
careful observation of
it
dm"ing surgical operations.
Nothing of much importance can be learned by the dissection of cadavers, but facts of the greatest value may be learned by a careful observance of operations upon the animate body, and such opportunities should not be wasted. As an estimate, the application of the principles of
human body eliminates the necessity from 80 to 90 per cent of surgery which, under therapy
Chiropractic to the of
514
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
has been deemed necessary. It is the belief of the author, based upon an experience covering manyhundreds of operations under his immediate supervision, that after a time it will be possible to reduce necessary surgery ninety per cent from what was formerly considered necessary.
When
that time comes there will be only a few
surgeons, but those
who
be experts of the very highest type, because of the excellence required, which is as it should be. are, will
A still further classification
of surgery, the reason for
which does not clearly appear, divides it into what is called major surgery; and minor surgery. What has been said in this chapter may, and frequently does, apply to both of these characters of surgery, but in a general way this chapter has been devoted to a discussion of major surgery. The succeeding chapter will deal largely with so-called minor surgery.
CHAPTER XLV FmST AID
—Cvis—Punctures—Gunshot Wounds— — Lacerations Dislocations—Fractures —Hemorrhage— Bums—Fainting—Drowning—Asphyxiation— Anesthesia—Seizures—Heat Prostration Emergency
The department called
from
of surgery
now
to be discussed
is
minor surgery. In an attempt to distinguish it the definite and comprehensive procedures
detailed in the last chapter, the student
must remember
is no line of demarcation between minor and major svu-gery. Of course, when the subject is considered as to its antipodal aspects there is a wide diflference, but when the line which should divide the one from the other is sought for, it cannot be found.
that there really
To
illustrate the conclusion stated in the last para-
graph, aU operations which
come under the class called laparotomy, that is, incisions into the splanchnic cavity, are clearly major surgery, as is also the extirpation of viscera; but certain amputations, even in appendal parts are also classified as major operations, yet amputation of torn and lacerated pieces of flesh, in order to properly a wound is called minor surgery, and there is nothing to distinguish between these. The student will be quite well advised, however, if he retains the conception that amputations and extirclose
pations are major surgery, and that practically 515
all
516
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
operations not coming within this class are minor surgery, and, while these definitions are not very satisfactory, they will in a general way answer all purposes.
The phases
to be discussed in this chapter clearly
comprehend both major and minor surgery, but the procedures to be outlined are always confined to a given set of circ*mstances, and do not comprehend the doctor having been called to the case with deliberation.
EMERGENCY
A
surgical
emergency
exists
surrounding an injury render
when the circ*mstances it
peculiarly expedient
that the patient shall have corrective or preventative attention without delay.
This emergency may occur in connection with the most severe wounds, or it may be in connection with the culminating phases of pathologic tissue conditions and procedures, or it may be in connection with peculiar interferences with physiologic action. The prime idea in all emergency or first aid situations is that the doctor is the first to arrive, or be incidentally called to the sufferer, not to do the regular and permanent things that should be done for the patient, but for the purpose of administering such temporary help as is immediately indicated, until the surgeon or physician, who is to render permanent assistance, has reached the case.
CUTS Cuts are wounds that have been made by sharp They are, therefore, wounds that have considerable length and depth with very Httle width. instruments.
FIRST AID In small cuts,
first
plete attention the
517
aid really comprehends the
wound
requires,
which
is
com-
primarily-
own blood if possible, but, with water, or if there is debris it may require the use of mild antiseptics. In any event the wound must be cleansed, its edges properly related, and they should be held by surgical adhesive bandage, with opportunity for drainage, if there is any apparent necessity such as would exist if antiseptics had been used to cleanse the wound. If the cut is deep, and arteries have been severed, the emergency procedure would require their ligation, but if the one administering first aid has no instruments for that purpose, the arterial flow to the cut, if the part is appendal can usually be stopped by tying a hard knot in a bandage, and putting it around the part so that the knot is over the arteries leading to the wound, and then twisting the bandage until it is very tight. If the arteries are very small, bleeding can be stopped by sprinkling the wound with clean dust. That is to say, dry earth powdered, by filling the wound full of granulated sugar, or mytheline blue. If the wound is deep and the arteries cut are large, in addition to ligation as described, it will sometimes be advisable to use some of the emergency substances mentioned to assist in stopping the flow of blood. In emergency procedures, it is not generally safe to use astringents nor stiptics, for if an astringent or stiptic fails to work as such, it then operates as a dilator and would tend to increase bleeding rather than
cleansing if
it
by the use
necessary, cleansing
stop
it.
of its
it
518
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS PUNCTUEES
Wounds made by narrow, such as daggers, come under this
sharp-pointed instruments, bodkins and the like
stilettos, neddles,
classification.
wounds comes bears some still under the head of cuts, and most nearly relation to gunshot wounds. Generally, in wounds caused by puncture, all that is required under first aid is to stop bleeding, but sometimes the wound may be in such a vital part of the body that it will be necessary to open the puncture in order that deep arteries may have attention to check bleeding. In such a case a sufficiently wide incision may be made at the mouth of the wound that the arteries can be reached, when bleeding may be stopped by holding an artery with the fingers, by the use of a hemostat, or the artery can be sewn through with catgut, which may be thrown around it in a loop and drawn tight. First aid attention to this character of
GUNSHOT WOUNDS Generally speaking,
wounds
first
aid attention to gimshot
and such such position as to most
requires resuscitation of the patient,
measures as placing the body in perfectly protect the
wound,
etc.
Ordinarily
first
aid
does not require probing for shot or bullets that may be lodged in the flesh. Of course, first aid requires stopping the flow of blood if there is considerable wasting. It sometimes happens, however, in this character of wounds, as in punctm-es, that deep arteries are severed,
and the patient
is
bleeding internally from arteries that
cannot be reached. In such cases the same procedure should be adopted as that already given for punctures.
FIRST AID
519
LACERATIONS under the same first aid procedvire as cuts, and nothin,g further need be said in this connection, except it might be well to give some suggestions as to the proper method of closing the wound. The edges of lacerations are always rough, for the thought of laceration means that the tissues have been torn asunder. It sometimes happens, therefore, that there are mangled portions of flesh, which cannot be made to fit in the wound, and are so nearly severed as to render the maintenance of their animation very doubtful, in which event such portions should be amputated and the edges of the wound should be smoothed up so that they will fit nicely together, after which the wound should be cared for by the same procedure suggested as to cuts. However, using exceeding care to secure Lacerations
come
specifically
drainage.
To
seciu-e
woimd, a
drainage in the closure of a lacerated be put into the
httle surgical gauze should
lowest part of the laceration, so that
it
reaches the
deepest part of the wound, and extends out from under the bandage or covering of the wound, in order that the
from the bruised structure which must disintefind a pathway of easy escape, and will not be exosmosed from the wound into the adjacent tissue. liquid grate,
may
This precaution
will frequently
prevent what surgeons
call sepsis.
DISLOCATIONS First aid to a dislocation usually only includes putting
the injured person in as easy a position as possible, and
the dislocated part in the best situation to cause the
520 least pain
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS or injuiy Many times this requires bandaging .
the dislocation, and sometimes splinting it, so that it will be held still and firmly. It is sometimes advisable to bandage the part on the side next to the body, so tightly as to inhibit the nerves, thus lessening pain until the injury can have proper attention. What has just been said is based upon the thought of dislocation of large joints. Sometimes the dislocation is sufficiently small, such for instance as the terminal joints of the fingers where first aid includes the correct reduction of the dislocation.
FKACTURES
The
first
attention to a fracture
indicated in a dislocation.
That
is
is
precisely that
put the
to say, to
injured person in a position which will bring greatest ease under the circ*mstances,
him the
and to place the
fractured part in such position as to suffer the least injury,
and give the
sometimes requires bandaging, without any
least pain. This
temporary splinting and attempt to reduce the fracture. In addition to what has been stated in compound
fractures, it is usually advisable to cleanse the protrud-
wounds before attempting any temporary splinting or bandaging. In compound fractures, sometimes arteries and veins are torn so that there is much bleeding. In such an event the waste of blood must be stopped. For that purpose hemostats may be resorted to, or the tourniquet. ing bones, and incidental
HEMORRHAGE The
character of emergency here referred to,
ticularly
directed
to incidents of pathology,
is
par-
where
FIRST AID
521
sudden bleeding occurs as a result of the disintegration of the walls of the arteries, and veins. Or where regular procedures of some kind have accidentally resulted in bleeding.
The hemorrhages under
discussion are those
from
the lungs in tuberculosis, from the esophagus or stomach in
grave gastric conditions. Also from the rectum
incident to great tissue debility, and also includes those
hemorrhages that sometimes occur, incident or subsequent to delivery of the fetal membranes following childbirth, when the uterus fails to undergo normal contraction.
Generally,
all
that can be done for the hemorrhages
here indicated, as a matter of subjects of
them
first aid, is
to place the
in such position as to receive the
benefit of gravitation.
If
the bleeding be from the
esophagus or stomach, the administration of mytheline blue would be indicated and justified. This may be administered in pretty large amounts, as it does not injure tissue. Of course, if the bleeding is from the lungs, the only thing that can be done is to put the patient in as
good position as
may
possible,
and keep him
as quiet as
be.
If the patient
is
bleeding from the rectum, the nerves
to the rectum should at once be released
by
by proper
rectum either with rectal speculum, a or with the fingers. If these means do not succeed the rectum might be pretty well filled with mytheline blue. If there is nothing else convenient a handful of clean, powdered, dry dust of the earth will usually be very efficacious. In uterine hemorrhage, following delivery, the proper relating, followed
dilation of the
522
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
emergency procedure is to release the twelfth thoracic and second lumbar areas, incidentally the lumbosacral area, and the sacro-sciatic, after which the patient should be placed upon a bed or other surface, raising the foot of the bed, or whatever it is, a foot or a foot and a half higher than the head, so as to markedly raise the pelvis above the rest of the trunk, thus giving the situation
relief
by
gravitation.
If the procedtu"es outlined do not serve to wholly stop the hemorrhage, the two front fingers should be placed per vagin* against the cervix while the fundus
grasped with the other hand to secure contraction. This, however, wiU usually not be necessary, since the very most aggravated cases have been stopped by the two procedures named in the
and body
of the uterus
is
preceding paragraph.
BUENS Burns are wounds somewhat analogous to lacerations, but are of a stUl graver type, and in a majority of cases first aid attention to them must be permanent attention. If the biu'n has not been sufficiently grave to remove the skin it will be sufficient to moisten the area several times with plain kerosene at intervals of say ten or fifteen minutes, and after about an hour wrap the part
with a light bandage, covering that with oiled silk, so as to exclude the air, which will be aU that is necessary. In cases where the skin is destroyed by the burn, the correct emergency procedure is to take a half and half mixture of lime water, and raw linseed oil, and make a copious application of it to the whole area, which should then be covered with a very fine gauze, upon
FIRST AID
523
which should be placed layers of medicated cotton about two or three deep, which should be thoroughly saturated with the hme water and oil mixture, leaving opportunity to continually moisten this cotton with the solution; when the whole should be covered with yellow, oiled silk, in such way as to completely exclude light and air. When this has been properly done, no fm-ther attention need be given the part for fortyeight hours, except that the cotton must be kept wet with the mixture described. Of course, the patient must be put in the very best position for his ease and comfort, and should have no solid food, but should have a copious administration of good water. After forty-eight hours, the burned area should be uncovered, and redressed as before. There are two things which make bvirns very dangerous: (1) where the bum is very deep, near a vital area, and (2) where a very large area of skin is destroyed. But these propositions are referred definitely to the permanent care of burns, and not to the emergency administration.
Upon being called in emergency to a burn, it is important to get to the site of the injury quickly, and to free the
wound from
clothing.
In such cases the value
of clothing, etc., should be entirely overlooked. Free the
wound
at once with the least pain
and injury to the
person possible, and then proceed as already instructed.
FAINTING
Not much need be said as to first aid in fainting, which consists primarily in getting the patient a free opportunity for air, and for respiration, which includes
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
524
opening the clothing, and loosening belts, corsets, etc., and in accomplishing this the important thing to
remember
The
is
to get the
body
free as quickly as possible.
subject of a fainting or swooning condition
should be straightened out, and laid upon the venter, with the head several inches below the feet, with the head turned upon the side not too sharply, and placed in position to lean ventrally, so that all of the air
passages are free, and the nerves of the neck released as much as possible. Of course, incident to placing the patient in this position, relating should be applied over
the third and seventh thoracic areas, with longitudinal traction of the cervical region.
Nearly always this relating procedtu-e will result in overcoming the faint or swoon before the patient may be placed in the position named, but if not, then the patient should be allowed to rest for a short time in the position indicated. It is not usually necessary to administer any water, but nearly always a drink of cold water at the time of the incipient return to consciousness aids very much, and sometimes sprinkling cold water upon the face and neck aids in a rapid return to consciousness.
DROWNING a condition which approaches auto-asphyxiais to say, the person has been submerged in water, or other liquid, so that inspiration of the atmosphere has been rendered impossible, and what atmosphere was in the respiratory tract has escaped, so that there is a continual and progressive accumulation of This
tion.
is
That
carbon-dioxide in the atria of the limgs, or those spaces
have been entirely occupied by water.
FIRST AID
5'i5
It will be seen, therefore, that the very first necessity is
to
remove the water from the
lungs.
For
this
purpose
the patient should be placed over a barrel or log, or the of a person standing upon his hands and knees,
body
with the venter of the drowning person down, and the head and torso hanging from the support. As incident to placing the patient in this position, relating should be applied at the fourth and seventh and twelfth thoracic areas, accompanied by longitudinal traction of the cervical region. While the patient hangs in the position indicated, the administrator of first aid puts the hands around the body, underneath the costal arch, and forces the body into the movement that would be accomplished in ordinary respiration; incidentally emptying the water from the air passages and esophagus. After the water has been quite thoroughly removed, another relating should be performed, and the patient placed upon the dorsum with the headward end of the body lower than the pelvis, and what is called should be again performed.
artificial
respiration
Immediately upon being called to such a case the first aid operator should send by the quickest means for a pulmotor, which should be freely used if respiration does not begin following the removal of the water. However, a pulmotor should not be used to the exclusion of the principles of Chiropractic, and should be alternated frequently by relating to release the nerves and set up normal respiration and heart action. First aid to the drowning constitutes complete attention, for so soon as function recommences, usually
no further attention to the case
is
necessary.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
526
ASPHYXIATION drowning by submergence in gas instead of water, and results when a gas, composed of a chemical formula which does not contain sufficient This condition
is
really
oxygen, occupies the atria to the exclusion of oxygen. The person is threatened with inanimation as a result of toxinization by gas, and the thing desired is to remove the noxious gas permitting oxygen to take its place.
The first thing free air,
and
in such a case
is
to take the person into
to perform relating directed to opening the
and tubes to the atria. The work for this purpose will be longitudinal traction, and release at the fourth and seventh thoracic areas. If, incident larynx, trachea,
to the situation, diaphragmatic fixation exists, appli-
cation at the twelfth thoracic area will be also necessary.
The
be applied as soon as taken into the fresh air, and should be
relating indicated should
the patient followed
by
is
so-called artificial respiration, the
same
as
that in drowning, except the patient should be placed in a position
on the back and almost
sitting,
remember-
ing that gases of the character involved tend to
and
rise,
would not do to put the patient in a horizontal position, or with the head down. At this phase of the situation the pulmotor should be obtained as quickly as possible and used, but relating should be performed at ten or fifteen minute intervals imtil respiration and heart action is practically normal, and imtil consciousness is restored. for that reason it
ANESTHESIA
The by
condition here
is
an intoxication superinduced and forced into the
volatile substances diffused in air,
FIRST AID inspiratory tract, the substances
527
most commonly used
being chloroform and ether. In such administration an excess of these gases over oxygen is used, and the result accomplished is insensibility
not only to pain, but to everything, and a general
lowering of tissue sense. As a result of the general lowering of tissue sense in connection with the administration of anesthetics, it of respiration
sometimes happens that the muscles
become
fixed so that neither inspiration
nor expiration occurs; or that the muscles of the heart
become
fixed, so that the systoles
and
diastoles cease.
It will be observed that in either of the conditions just mentioned, the paramount first aid
The
is
to incidentally
means of accomplishing this result is to turn the patient upon the venter, with about a six inch roll under the pelvis, which may be composed of a comforter, a block of wood, a large dictionary, a box or anything that is handy, and delivering sudden, sharp and very forceful thrusts at the fourth, seventh and twelfth thoracic areas. Usually this
break the
fixation.
surest
will serve to break the muscular fixation interfering with respiration and heart action, and will sufficiently release the diaphragm that these functions will continue and become normal. If the first application of the thrusts described does not bring an immediate result, longitudinal traction should be performed, together with definite release of nerves to the brachial plexus, which will free the nerves from
the eighth cervical and
make up The author has been
first
thoracic
trunks, that
the larger portion of the inferior cardiac
tnmks.
present under circ*mstances of
the kind just described, and has never
known the means
528
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
suggested to
fail,
and he has applied them many
times,
frequently to the astonishment of the anesthetist and
surgeon connected with the operation in progress. Sometimes anesthesia results in a gorged gall bladder emptying suddenly into the intestine, under such relaxed conditions the pylorus of the stomach is open and bile gurgitates into that organ, and by active titillation of multitudinous nerves therein, brings on a cumulative, biliary anesthesia cumulative, in that it
—
joins forces with the anesthetic already at work.
When
the condition described occurs,
first
aid
must
be performed quickly. The patient should be quickly tm-ned upon the venter, and forceable, short thrusts applied at the foiu-th and seventh thoracics, after which the body should be suspended from the table by the thighs, and while one attendant holds the patient in that position, the first aid operator should reach around the patient, with both hands catching the abdomen below the stomach, which should be forced abruptly against the diaphragm, repeating this movement frequently, and with much force, so as to open the cardiac orifice and cause emission of its contents, after which the patient should be placed upon the table, and strong, longitudinal traction applied to the cervical region, then a roU should be placed under the hips and thrusts applied at the fourth, seventh and twelfth thoracic areas, followed
by
release of the brachial plexus.
If by this time breathing and heart action has not begim, the rectum should be fully dilated, either with the fingers or an instrument, and if it is a woman and dilation of the rectum fails to start respiration and heart action, the vagin* should be fully dilated, followed by
FIRST AID
529
another application of the thrusts that have been described.
The author has had
occasion to apply the
described herein, and has never found
it
means
necessary to go
beyond emptying the stomach, and applying the thrusts thereafter to bring about a retm-n to usual conduct.
SEIZUKES First aid in seizures consists primarily in placing the
patient in the proper position.
from a congestion in the brain, the patient should be placed upon the venter, with the headward aspect of the body higher than the feetward; but if the seizure is from lack of blood to the head, such as in fainting or swooning, the patient should be placed upon the venter with the headward end of the body lower than the feetward. Incident to seizures, resulting from congestion in the head, primary release of the fixation of the muscles of the neck is the first aid office, followed by release of nerves to the heart, brain and respiration. If the seiziu'e is of the nature of swooning, then the primary release is at the fourth and twelfth thoracic areas, followed by If the seizure results
longitudinal traction.
HEAT PEOSTRA.TION phase of difficulty, first aid attention requires that the person shall be removed to a place where the temperature is not above seventy degrees. The clothing should be removed, and the surface of the body thoroughly frictioned, but before doing any of these things, relating should be performed to release nerves to the
In
this
530
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
heart, respiratory organs
and the
brain. This relating
should be repeated at ten or fifteen minute intervals until the symptoms indicate the subsidence of the attack.
In some very grave prostrations,
it
wiU be necessary
to almost continually perform release to the heart,
and
which requires freeing the trunks of the brachial plexus and the third thoracic area, for from a half to two or three hours. In the most difficult case of this character to which the author gave personal attention the thermometer stood at one hundred and seven degrees in the shade, and there was not time to remove the patient to a cooler place, and he found it necessary to continue the release of these areas almost continually for three and one half hours, which terminated in the recovery of the patient. If he had ceased at any time during the first three hours the person would have died at once. After taking the patient to a place where the temperature is about seventy degrees, and the clothing has been removed, the body should be thoroughly frictioned, and relating frequently applied, between which the patient should be placed upon the venter, with the headward aspect of the body shghtly lower than the feetward, and the body should be in such position as to encourage the greatest freedom of respiration and heart respiratory organs,
brain,
action.
After respiration and heart action is fuUy restored, the attention necessary is complete rest with occasional relatings as suggested.
CHAPTER XLVT SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
Eye
—Ear—Nose— Throat
a habit or fad of therapists to designate certain areas as centers of abnormaUty, and to pretend to the It
is
quality of specialists in care of that kind of cases. is no reason any part, area or areas of the body as being
It is quite unnecessary to say that there for selecting
peculiarly the subject of disease. It must, of course, be understood that areas of the body, or organism, which are ramified by nerves from motor reactive centers of the vertebral column, are always primary in failure of resistance. In a general way the areas just indicated have been pointed out and discussed in this work, beginning with the procreative organs, going next to the anal canal, the cecum, appendix, the sigmoid flexure, third convolution of the jejunum, to the kidneys and suprarenal capsules, the great digestive glands, the stomach, the heart and respiratory centers, the thyroids, the throat, eyes, nose,
ears
and
It has
trunk
is
brain.
been explained that the feetward end of the peculiarly
and
particularly the center of irrita-
tion and, therefore, the area of incipient especially aflfecting all of the
motor
reaction,
motor reactive centers sug-
gested, but definitely those at the other extremity of
the vertebral column, to-wit: the eyes, ears, nose, throat
and
brain. 531
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
532
Incident to the statement in the last paragraph, it has also been called to the student's attention that the feet, because primarily the weight-bearing parts of the body, are peculiarly centers of somatic irritation and somatic, motor reaction, which aflfects all of the motor reactive centers suggested, and particularly expends its
most adverse influence upon the neck and head, and incidentally, special areas mentioned in the last paragraph. The student will observe that where there is irritation at the feet and the feetward extremities of the trunk, there is a concomitant motor reaction to all motor reactive centers, which expends its greatest distorting influence upon the neck, head, eyes, ears, nose and throat. It has been explained in the chapter entitled " Orificial Abnormality," that irritation of the feetward orifices of the body, particularly anomalous sex orifices, is paramount in the production of abnormality in the tissues of the brain,
and the
special areas to
be discussed
in this chapter.
Of course, as has been suggested, these phases greatly increased in the feet,
by
will
be
irritation of the terminals of nerves
and the motor reactive
effects therefrom.
Practically all irritated conditions, not superinduced
by
direct injury to the eyes, ears, nose
and
throat, are
the direct result of irritation from anomalous sex orifices of
the body. Further and more complete dis-
cussion of this proposition will be found in the chapter on " Orificial AbnormaUty " herein.
THE EYE There are several phases of abnormality of the eyes, which consist in their anomalous formations, since they
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
533
are quite different from the usual. These are called
hypertrophic, myopic, and astigmatic. ' Hypertrophic simply means " far sighted, ' so
from the
named
ability of the victim of this abnormality to see
better at long distance than near to. In this phase, the
cornea of the eye is so flat that so-called " rays of light" passing into the eyes, do not converge rapidly and therefore,
a better focus
is
obtained of objects at a
greater distance. It will
be seen that the paramount symptom of " far
sightedness"
is
the fact or experience of the patient. It
be understood that this difficulty cannot be removed to any great extent, because children are born with the eyes nearly full grown, and they are so by the time the child is ten years of age. will also
The
application of the principles of Chiropractic from
early infancy to full growth of the eyes will sometimes result in complete recovery. In very
pronounced cases
success cannot be expected, yet the eyes will always
be benefited by the application during this time. Myopic simply means " short sighted." That say, the cornea
is
is
to
excessively curved, and, therefore,
objects that are near the person can be plainly seen,
but very poor focus
is
obtained of objects that are
distant.
It will be seen that the situation under discussion
an anomalous formation
of the eyeball,
is
and what was
said about recovery in " far sightedness " applies here.
In not very pronounced cases taken in early infancy, much can be done by the application of the principles of Chiropractic, but in pronounced cases very Kttle can be accomplished.
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
534
Astigmatism exists when the eyeball is anomalously formed so that it presents an almond shape, in which focus must be obtained by muscular control of the pupU, which must be constant in order that convergence of the so-called rays shall occur at the right place in the eyeball.
The muscular exertion which must be constantly put by one having astigmatic eyes, has been called eye-strain, by the opticians and ophthalmologists. forth to see,
Eye-strain
it is irritation
brain,
a very injurious phase of conduct, for which motor reacts to the cortex of the
is
causing
cortical
occlusion affecting the
those areas of
it
excitation,
body
generally,
that
results
but particularly
to which the nerves are occluded
subluxation. Astigmatic eyes are
in
many
to imperfect formation of the stomach,
by
times incident
and
therefore,
the irritation from eye-strain very frequently expends
marked effects upon the stomach. Aside from the anomalous defects of the eye, which have been noted, the phases of abnormality will be found to consist in the same general abnormal conditions which are incident to any other tissues, and result from occlusion of nerve stimulus to the eye, producing congestion, inflammation, inflammatory catarrh, and exuding catarrh. These phases have been so frequently described in this work that they need not be detailed its
in this connection.
Many
phases of abnormality of the conjunctiva, and by irritation directly applied to the tissues, such for instance as dirt, poison, and other characters of irritants getting into the eyes. The phases of irritation of the eyes, and their
eye-lids are superinduced
535 SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY sequentially adverse processes may be superinduced by exposure to cold, the direct sun's rays, woodland poisons and a multitude of things. Extraneous irritants may produce many phases of acute inflammation in the external parts of the eyes,
and indeed
in the deep structures of the eyes,
poisons are transmitted to
them from the
when
liquid trans-
portation systems. Such conditions frequently occur as incident to the toxic, eliminating phases of disease, such as so-called small-pox, and other eruptive fevers. The phases of abnormality of the eyes that result
from poisons distributed by the liquid transportation systems, usually fall under the classification of inflammation of the eyes, and of the cornea, ulcers of the cornea, inflammation of the iris, inflammation around the eye-lashes, inflammation of the tear ducts, catarrh of the lacrimal glands, graniilated eye lids, glaucoma, cataract,
and
blindness.
It will be observed that
most of the phases mentioned
in the preceding paragraph are primarily affirmative in their nature, yet
a
little closer
observation will dis-
close that each process presents its negative,
and that them present a remarkable degree of the negative phase in the affirmative process, and because of this fact a further discussion of some of the phases mentioned must be indulged. Granulation of the lids is the process most frequently
some
of
referred to as " granulated sore eyes." This
is
a phase of
abnormality that results as incident to chronic, kidney and never occurs unless there has been a long continued negative conduct of the kidneys, and conditions,
incident thereto there
must be
direct occlusion of the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
536
nerves to the eye-lids, which exists when there is subluxation affecting the fourth thoracic nerve trunks,
which are so-called stomach and eye nerves. In granulated lids there is a precipitation of acids, which cannot be eliminated, because of inactivity resulting from occlusion, but enter into a dangerous
and degenerative
tissue process.
The incipiency of the phase just described is a tendency to inflammation of the eye-lids, which sometimes become so marked as to be called sty. Inflammation of the eye-lids may be so pronounced as to result in inversion, in which condition the mucous lining is so swollen as to turn the lid inside out, rolling it
upon
itself.
Glaucoma referred to
phase
a
is
the vitreous
of
abnormality
humor
peculiarly
of the eye,
and
is
sequential to the inflammatory phases, in a general way, of the eye-ball, diu"ing
which processes there has been
a precipitation of acids in the vitreous body of the eye, as a result of which there has been marked interference with lymph transmission into and out of that body, that has resulted in retention of solid residues of depuratory substances which should have been eliminated,
producing at
humor, which
The
first is
a cloudy appearance of the vitreous
ordinarily called opacity.
effect of the situation just outlined
impression to the victim of sky, that if
no
it is slightly
assistance
tion of
is
it,
to give the
foggy. This condition increases,
given, until there
lymph and
is
looking out upon a clear is
such a precipita-
disintegrate tissue residues in the
vitreous humor, that transmission of so-called rays of light to the retina
is
impossible and vision
is lost.
This
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
537
phase of abnormality is frequently incident to inflammation of the iris and cornea, going on with the further culminating steps after such inflammations have subsided.
It will be observed that
phase of an It
must
glaucoma
is
the negative
aflfirmative process.
be remembered that glaucoma never who are subject to a very
also
occurs except in patients grave, prolonged
which
is
and
peculiarly adverse liver condition,
nearly always superinduced
altitudes, in very
humid
by
living at
low
districts.
Several places in the United States are pectiliarly
—
productive of glaucoma New York City and Long Island; Ashland, Wisconsin; Cleveland, Ohio; and New
may be mentioned as leaders. In the early phases of glaucoma the difficulty may be wholly removed by correcting the condition of the liver, and releasing nerve occlusion to the eye-balls. Later on, and when the phase of abnormality has become very pronounced, the result is very much less certain, and, of course, there are conditions of such gravity that nothing can be accomplished.
Orleans, Louisiana,
Cataract
is
the culmination of the dropsical condition
in the aqueous
humor
of the eye.
Like glaucoma, cataract
is
the accumulation of the
from lymph retained in the aqueous body, which finally become impacted upon the crystalline
solid residues
lens.
It will be seen that this solid residue precipitation
may
be so
or
may
it
slight as to merely produce a foggy vision, be so complete as to entirely obstruct the
process of seeing.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
538
If cataract is taken in apt time, and occlusion of the nerves to the eye-ball is carefuUy and regularly released with proper address to the eye-ball itself, it
may be wholly removed. That is to say, the accumulation may be eliminated from the aqueous humor, but advanced to a certain precipitation it canand releasing occlusion will only serve removed, not be " ripen it" as it is sometimes called. to What is meant by " ripening" a cataract is to quickly produce a precipitation of the solid residues upon the lens, securing such activity that no more will form, after which the cataract may be removed by surgical methods, which may be advisable, for sight is restored, although it must be said that no case treated in this way has ever resulted in normal vision, for no extraneous substitute has been foimd for the crystalline lens. Exophthalmia is the name given to a pronoimced after it has
protrusion of the eye-balls, incident to congestion of
lymph
in the capsule of Telion.
Incipient phases of this
many phases of abnormality.
may It
is
occur as incident to frequently a
symptom
that occurs as incident to indigestion, and almost universally as the result of sluggish kidneys. It some-
times occurs as incident to a chronic liver; and abnor-
mality of other large digestive glands. The phase of exophthalmia being discussed in this connection,
and
is
is
that which occurs concomitant with goitre,
incident to the failure to transport liquids from
the head, because of the obstruction presented by the enlarged thyroids, resulting in a chronic condition of
the general nature that would occur from being
continually choked, which
is
the actual situation.
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
539
understood, without further statement, that removal of exophthalmia requires reduction of the It
is
not be accompKshed usually tintil orificial irritation, explained in the chapter entitled "Orificial Abnormality " in this work, has been removed by correction of the anomalous sex orifice or orifices. Of course, in all of the phases of anomaly and abnormality discussed herein, all of the rules of diet and general conduct so frequently laid down in this work must be carefully observed, and peculiarly all parts that may be irritated by dirt or accumulation must be kept clean and sanitary. However, no drugs of any character, stronger than a normal salt solution should ever be used in the eyes. In all cases of muscular accommodation or abnormal goitre,
which
will
refraction glasses properly constructed to
overcome
these diflficulties is the correct and proper palliation. This particularly applies to hypertrophic, myopic, and
astigmatic conditions.
remove occlusion to the eyes is directed to from the fourth thoracic,
Relating to
freeing the nerves extending
and
occiputo-atlanto-axial
however,
it will
trunks.
Incident thereto,
usually require release of the nerves to
the liver and kidneys.
~
•^THE EAR
Anomalous construction of this kind
is
is
usually referred to as congenital deafness.
If the tissues of the ear
abnormaUty
may be so marked not present. A condition
of the ear
that the auditory machinery
have been normally presented,
of function will only occm- as incident to
the general phases of tissue distortion, which, of course,
540
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
are occlusion, congestion, inflammation, inflammatory catarrh.,
and exuding
catarrh.
The different phases of abnormality of the ear must be considered under (1) abnormality of the external ear, (2) abnormality of the middle ear, and (3) abnormality of the inner ear. Abnormality of the external ear is confined to congestion, inflammatory catarrh, and exuding catarrh, and includes the tympanum or ear drum. Of course, these phases may become so aggravated as to result in tumors of the external ear,
and these may
be so extensive in their nature as to wholly disintegrate the tympanum, which results in deafness of a peculiar character, in that sounds cannot be distinguished, although they can be heard, for since the handle of the malleus cannot be titillated by so-called sound waves, vibrations cannot be normally transmitted to the inner ear, and, therefore, hearing in its true sense cannot be accomplished.
Abnormality of the middle ear, of course, includes all characters of congested, inflammatory and catarrhal conditions that may occur in the mastoid antra, the mucous lining of the Eustachian tubes, and the middle itself, which, of course, includes those conditions in the mucous and periosteal covering of the ossicles of the
ear
mucous membrane lining of the middle chamber and the tissues adjacent thereto. The phases just mentioned may express any degree of gravity from an increased mucus discharge to tumors of the middle ear, and also to what is called mastoiditis. Under certain adverse kidney and skin conditions, incident to marked occlusion of nerves ramifying the ear, the
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
541
it sometimes happens that the imdergo an acute inflammatoryprocess peculiarly centered to their articulations, which amounts to inflammatory rheumatism, the sequel to which is calcification in those articulations, resulting in ankylosis. In such an event, of course, it is impossible to transmit vibrations of the atmosphere normally to the inner ear, and partial or complete deafness is the result, depending upon the degree of ankylosis. Abnormality of the inner ear is very largely a mystery, since it is not exposed to direct examination, and all that is known about it has been ascertained by the
ossicles
of the ear,
ossicles
of the ear
dissection of cadavers,
and post mortem examinations,
which, because of the delicacy of its construction, are wholly inadequate to reveal much that may be depended
upon.
However, we are able to make correct deductions as we know that, like aU tissue, it is
to the inner ear, and
capable of undergoing the regular phases of tissue abnormality, therefore, it undergoes congestion, inflammation, and any of the catarrhal conditions that may occur anywhere, under the same phases of irritation
and
reaction.
V^
In the same character of process as described with regard to rheumatism of the ossicles of the ear, calceous substance may encrust the semicircular canals, the tubes of the cochlea, and the cavities of the saccule and
which event atmospheric vibrations transmitted normally through the external ear, and the ossicles of the middle ear, cannot be received, normally by the inner ear, and correct titillation of the terminals of the auditory nerves does not occur, and the process utricle, in
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
542
of hearing is aborted in ratio with the interference. This
sometimes only amoimts to uncertainty of hearing, but may result in complete loss of the ability to hear. Incident to the ear, it must be remembered that all parts which are exposed to the air must be kept clean. There is much carelessness in this regard on the part of persons that are otherwise recognized as being cleanly.
The ear
is so constructed that depuration from it under ordinary circ*mstances, will be accomplished if the
external ear
However
and the meatus are properly
exercised.
may
be well understood that even where the proper exercise of the ear is performed, it is possible by accident for substances to be forced into the orifices of the Eustachian tubes that must be removed, if the ear is to be normal. The external meatus should never be washed except in emergency, and when necessary it should be washed with a soft-nosed syringe, the water being projected along the dorsal wall of the meatus so as not to strike directly upon the tympanum, and should be given opportunity to flow across that membrane and back out along the ventral wall of the meatus as rapidly as it enters. Great care should be taken not to give the water too
much
it
force.
Occasionally the Eustachian tubes should be syringed,
but when this is accomplished, it should be done under the hands of an expert, and would be very much more safely accomplished if the patient was placed under the influence of an anesthetic, at least imder the influence of gas during the operation.
if
The ears should not be picked as a general rule, but hard or crystallized cerumen has acciunulated in them,
— SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
543
should be carefully removed with an instrument, but the habit of carrying an ear spoon, or other instrument, and continually picking the ears, should not be iadulged. Many cases of so-called hard hearing coming to the doctor will be found to consist wholly in a long continued, impacted condition of wax on the tympanum of the ear. In such cases, of course, cleansing of the ear is all that is necessary to restore normal conduct. it
Relating to remove occlusion to the ear will, of course, be to free the nerves that extend through the third thoracic trunks, and the second and fourth cervical trunks. It wiU be necessary usually to give attention to the nerves to the large gland areas of the body. That is
to say, the spleen, hver, pancreas
and kidneys;
nearly always interference with hearing
is
for
incident to
the precipitation of solid residues of acid in the ear. Incident to ear defects, it is nearly always necessary to give attention to the external meatus, restoring relation to other tissues. This
its
may be
accomplished by using the pinna as a lever through which movement of the cartilaginous meatus can be obtained. It not infrequently occiu-s that the mandible is distorted in its articulation with the temporal bone, so that it rides back against the meatus, ia which event it
must be corrected in such manner as to bring it into proper relation with the glenoid cavity, thus freeing the meatus, and the nerves which ramify and extend in relation with it.
To remove
calcification of the joints of the ossicles,
the latest Chiropractic method is a manipulation accomplished by a machine invented by Dr. Phillip Rice of New York, through the Eustachian tubes.
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
544
thus breaking
down
the calceous accumulation, freeing
the articulation, and securing normal vibratory transmissions to the inner ear. Relating to
remove occlusion
of stimulus to the ear
consists in freeing nerves that extend through the third thoracic, and the second and fourth cervical trunks. In addition it will many times be necessary to free the nerves to the external meatus by correcting the position of the mandible, thus not only releasing the external meatus, but freeing nerves that extend through that pathway to the middle ear, and in the opposite direction. Incidentally, of course, as a constitutional proposition, there will be the release of the nerves to the large glands of the body, particularly those to the kidneys, to prevent
further precipitation of acids,
and many times to the an excess
large digestive glands to stop the production of
and abnormal chemistry.
THE NOSE
The
subject of abnormality of the nose has been fully
discussed
by analogy
in so far as the subject pertains
to occlusion, congestion, inflammation, inflammatory catarrh,
and exuding
catarrh.
All that needs to be said in addition in this con-
nection
is
that frequently occlusion of nerves to the
and its antra, not only results in the phases of abnormality just mentioned, but serves to change the form, shape, and fimctional value of the cartilaginous nose,
and osseous parts of the nose. As a result of such occlusion, the turbinated bones are frequently distorted, the vomer and median septum of the nose distorted to
one side or the other, or even ia
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
545
other ways, and the cartilaginous alae, and osseous relations of the external nose, are distorted.
Because of the conditions enumerated in the preceding paragraphs, commercial surgery has fattened
the frailty of
upon
human beings, who, of course, are ignorant
of the fact that surgical interference never corrected
such conditions, but in a majority of instances seriously interferes with the value of the nose. The Chiropractor must have in mind that under proper release of the nerves to the nose, none of the difficulties
to which surgery has addressed
itself,
will
be impossible of correction. The cartilaginous wings can be elevated, and corrected in their position; the septum straightened, and by proper of the external nose
inspiration, and expiration, all of the adjacent antra and sinuses can be made to function normally without any surgical intervention.
sanitation,
Of course, there could be distortions in the nose which would render surgical assistance advisory, but these occur so rarely that surgical interference must be relegated to a last extremity. Relating to release occlusion to the nose
is
primarily
in the occiputo-atlanto-axial area, together with the fifth cervical
and
third thoracic areas.
THE THROAT This subject has been fully discussed under laryngitis,
pharyngitis, diphtheria, etc.
All that needs to be said in this connection
is
a direct
reference to the numerous, inflammatory conditions
that occur in the throats of many persons, which do not come fully within any of the classifications named.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
546
In
this connection it is necessary to again
emphasize
the fact that the continuous tendency to congestion and inflammation of the eyes, ears, nose and throat are usually caused
by motor reactive results from anomalous
sex orifices, or the reactions from pathologic orifices in the feetward aspect of the trunk.
In
this connection the
author
necessary to say thousands of cases, he
feels it
that in the investigation of many has never seen an exception to the rule laid down, and has never seen a ehild with a chronic inflammation of the tonsils, with chronic congestion of the eyes, with a continual tendency to inflammation of the ears, or earache, or catarrh of the nose, or any inflammatory condition of the throat, which was continuous, which
was not pronouncedly an
and therefore, do not occur in
orificial case,
fearlessly states that such conditions
those not thus abnormal. Relating to remove occlusion to the throat
is
primarily
and incidentThis has been more
release of the fourth thoracic nerve trunks, ally the occiputo-atlanto-axial area.
fully covered in connection with pharyngitis, to
the student
is
which
here referred.
In concluding
this chapter, let the
student remember
that occlusion to the eyes, ears, nose and throat are frequently because of occlusion of intervertebral nerve trunks, which ramify cortical areas at the origins of the optic, glossal,
auditory,
olfactory,
glosso-pharyngeal,
hypo-
and pneumogastric trunks, and when these
phases occur those intervertebral nerves are the primary areas of release. If distortion
should be foimd at the specific areas
suggested in this chapter, of the gravity to produce the
SPECIAL AREA ABNORMALITY
547
pathology in the given case, the practitioner must exercise his diagnostic ability in locating occlusion of
nerves elsewhere that ramify the cortical areas at the origins of the nerves mentioned,
and secure the
release
of such nerves.
must
also
be remembered that occlusion to the
eyes, ears, nose
and throat may occur by injuries to the upon the brain, or by exostosis,
It
skull causing pressm-e calcification
or accumulation of
gumma
around the
foramina, or along the sutures of the skull thus impinging upon brain substance.
CHAPTER XLVII LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS
—Hemiplegia—Periplegia—Facial — Paralysis Writers' and Telegraphers' Paralysis—
General Paralysis
Paralysis Agitans Volitional power, in the sense to be discussed in this is lost when any portion of the organism for any reason does not respond to the emotional impulse
chapter,
to direct
it.
Without going into any extended
discussion,
the
student will understand that all of the somatic muscles and tissues of the body, and indeed many others, are said to be imder the control of the will. That is to say, are constructed in such manner as to be capable of control largely according to volitional desire.
In a limited sense, any part of the organism, which
is
constructed to respond to volitional impulse, but which does not do so, is paralyzed. Of com-se, the paralysis just referred to
as not to
may be
of such a
temporary character
within the general scope of those phases recognized as paralysis, but in that exact sense they, fall
nevertheless constitute a paralyzed condition.
For example, if one should hang the arm over the back of a chair, pressing the nerves of the brachial plexus around the axillary artery until the arm, forearm, and hand are in such condition that no volitional control can be exercised over them, they are temporarily paralyzed, although we do not call that condition 548
LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS paralysis,
The
but we
549
say those parts are " asleep" or numb.
test of the proposition just stated lies in the fact
that if the numbness continues we would call it paralysis, but because it is transient and soon disappears, we apply the milder terms of numbness, or " being asleep." The adverse, functional process and tissue condition which is called paralysis is always the result of an adverse, glandular condition by which toxins are produced or retained, or both, in the organism, and which toxins precipitate or accumulate in areas to which nerves are occluded, and are agents, which cause nerve terminals and ganglia to react upon them in such manner as to be incapacitated to transmit functional impulse.
Some
Chiropractors have thought, and have written,
that paralysis
is
caused by certain subluxations, or
certain vertebral distortions or disrelations. This con-
ception
is
altogether too limited for
it
does not explain
the situation. It
is
perfectly true that the tissue condition,
and
functional process called paralysis could not occur
if
there were not skeletal distortions producing occlusion of stimulus in a multitude of nerves. Occlusion pro-
duced that way does not cause paralysis, but it does set in operation an adverse process that ultimately results in the production of toxins, which as chemical agents, produce the nerve debility that is called paralysis.
Removal
of
occlusion
distortion will not
remove
at
the places of incipient
paralysis, because the process
has become one of general failure of depuration and elimination as well as a distortion in the perfunctory sense of that term.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
550
It has already been stated that paralysis never occurs except as the result of long continued, general, glandular abnormality. The glands involved are primarily the spleen, liver
and pancreas, but
finally
and paramountly
the kidneys. Of course in connection with the large glands referred to there is great abnormality of the lymph glands of the
whole
the
When
the chronic, glandular conditions, just referred
must not be thought that distortion is anycommensurate with the paralysis, for the
to, exist, it
thing like latter
or area affected, which situation most marked resistance to recovery.
organism
furnishes
is
the cumulative result of a long continued
body, perhaps because of comparatively slight occlusion, to keep up, on the process of depuration failure of the
and
elimination.
In other words, to make the last statement clear, is foimd in paralysis would not, as an
occlusion such as
incipient proposition, affect volitional control of the
muscles to an apprehendable extent, and does not affect the control of the muscles in the paralysis, except through the accumulation of adverse chemistry, which inundates nerve terminals, nerve ganglia, etc. Paralysis
occlusion
is
by
to a large extent
an illustration of and
disintegration; occlusion of nerves
ganglia, because they are emersed in a precipitated
chemistry, which compels reaction upon it, to the prostration of them, beyond vohtional transmission.
By paralysis, therapists mean to indicate a disease in which there is loss of motion or sensation, or both motion and sensation; the fact being that both motion and sensation are incident to
volition. It is
a remarkable
551 LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS phenomenon of the human organism that it, or parts of it, may be in such condition as not to respond generally to volitional impulse, sensation; or to
have
and
lost sensation,
still
but
to respond in
still
to respond
movement to a limited extent. The phenomenon just referred to is significant in that
in volitional
it
establishes the fact that certain nerves called motor,
which are also motor from each other, and are not capable, as the therapists have taught, of transmuting a sensory titillation into a motor impulse, or a motor titillation into a sensory impulse.
and certain nerves
called sensory,
nerves, are, nevertheless, distinct
The phenomenon
referred to fully establishes the
fact that nerves function according to the cortical area
from which they have origin, some of them having the capacity to control motion only, while others have the capacity of sensation and also of motion. There is a still further phenomenon that is morfe important, and really more awe-inspiring than the two mentioned, and it is that both volitional control of, and sensation from, a part may be lost, and still vitality in that part remain to a very large extent unimpaired.
The evidence just referred to furnishes proof of another remarkable phenomenon that there are certain motor nerves of volitional control, and sensory nerves because they have origin from the cortical cells of the brain in which consciousness is produced, that
—
are also motor nerves; and that all other nerves are under the control of the department of tissue sense, and that such nerves are motor and have full charge of the
processes of vitahty. If the nerves
from the
tissue sense portions of the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
55^
and separate from nerves of volitional, motor control and sensation, when volitional motion and sensation were lost, vitality would also be lost, and if that was true anything like pronounced paralysis would always be immediately cortex were not wholly distinct
fatal.
In many phases, paralysis is confined to local areas, which event it is not difficult to remove, because depiu-ation of toxins from the area can be quickly obtained, after which sufficient time for rehabihtation of the tissues involved will be all that is necessary for in
complete restoration.
Of course,
it
goes without saying that the more
widely the organism
is
affected
by the
precipitation
of the paralytic toxins with proportionate tissue injury, the longer it will take, and the more difficult it will be to
remove the adverse process and tissue condition. One thing that makes the removal of general paralysis difficult is
the fact that not only are the volitional, skeletal
but the deep, visceral tissues are all of the avenues of depuration are materially weakened, and elimination of toxins is tissues
affected,
affected as well,
rendered most
and
difficult.
GENERAL, PARALYSIS This phase toxins
are
is
a tissue condition in which the paralytic throughout all parts of the
distributed
organism in sufficient amount to affect, at least to some extent, both volitional control and sensation. Such a situation is proof of grave and chronic general glandular abnormaUty, and will usually prove fatal. However, under the application of the principles of
553 LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS Chiropractic, a great many cases of general paralysis may be wholly removed. The question of restoration
depends entirely upon the amoimt of tissue injury that has resulted, which is another way of saying that it depends upon the character of the toxin that has accumulated, and the extent of nerve tissue injury involved. Relating to remove general paralysis of the
motor reactive centers
is
directed to all
of the vertebral column.
In other words, release at the
sciatic foramina, sacro-
the lumbo-sacral, and thoracico-lumbar, the seventh thoracic, the fourth thoracic, the brachial area, the phrenic area and the occiputo-cervical area.
iliac areas,
Aside from the relating indicated, every means to encourage depuration and elimination in the care of a patient, consistent with his strength and condition, must be employed, and in this connection, and in connection with
all
phases of paralysis,
it
cannot be too
strongly impressed that fasting for a considerable period, or in
any event reducing the
and soups,
is
diet to nothing
but broths
always indicated, for in all phases of parhas been superinduced by
alysis the adverse process
excessive indulgence, either in eating or drioking, or
both.
Usually there
is
also a history of excessive indulgence
and therefore, complete rest of the alimentary process, as well as other functional parts of the body are primarily indicated.
in sex relation,
HEMIPLEGIA Hemiplegia is a tissue condition and process in which the body on one side of the mesial plane is
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
554
markedly affected by paralysis while the other side
is
only slightly affected. It
somewhat
is
difficult
understand
to
hemiplegia can result, because the
mind
how
a
reverts to the
thought that the liquids are generally distributed over the body; but that is not the paramount proposition.
The
reason hemiplegia occurs
produced stases on one
is
that incipient occlusion
side, as
the result of a rotary
distortion, and, therefore, the paralytic toxins precipi-
tated only in the tissues of that side.
In this situation the rotations are not so marked as one would imagine, but seem to be slight, the hemipelgia occurring only after a long, chronic, cumulative process.
Relating in this phase
is
identical with that of general
paralysis.
PERIPLEGIA This
a tissue condition in which some phase of
is
body from the level of the twelfth thoracic vertebra down to and including the feet. This phase of abnormality is incipiently caused by
paralysis
is
indicated in the
the general, adverse, glandular conditions incident to general paralysis, producing a toxin that, because of occlusion,
from the thoracico-lumbar area down, accu-
mulates in areas of stasis in the corresponding tissues. This phase of paralysis is much more easUy removed
by the application
of the principles of Chiropractic than
either of those discussed, although
it is
the same char-
acter of process.
Relating
in
perq)legia
is
directed
to
removal of
occlusion at the thoracico-lumbar area, fourth and
LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS
555
lumbars, the sacro-iliac areas and the sciatic foramina. Incident to this correction, occlusion of nerves to the large glands must be removed to secure glandular
fifth
activity
and depuration. FACIAL PARALYSIS
This
is
but a circ*mscribed phase of the general
process under discussion, applied to the face, and usually primarily involves what is called the cranial trunks; the
function of which
corrected
is
nerves to the cortical areas
have
origin. Facial paralysis
by
releasing vertebral
from which such nerves is
usually very difficult to
remove. Relating to third
remove
thoracic,
trunks,
the
facial paralysis is to release the
first,
and incidentally
second and third cervical
by application and for correction
local release
thrusts over the temporal region,
of of
the relation of the mandible, etc.
Of course, the relating referred to is in the local phase> but there will be the same general chronic, glandular condition to correct as in
all
other phases of paralysis.
writers' and telegraphers' paralysis Writers'
and
telegraphers' paralysis
is
a condition
and hand, and from the excessive use of these parts incident
peculiar to the shoulder, elbow, wrist results
to the general, chronic, glandular condition productive toxin; the congestion incident to use causing the precipitation of such toxins in the tissues
of paralytic
referred to.
Relating for the removal of these phases
is
directed
to the release of the nerve trunks of the brachial plexus
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
556 especially
on the
side involved,
and to the
release of the
brachial nerve trunks in and about the axilla; and, of course, requires correction of the general, glandular
condition as in other phases of paralysis.
PARALYSIS AGITANS This
phase
abnormality is ordinarily called is that phase of abnormality in which there is muscular convulsions, which results in the head, arms, hands, feet and legs being constantly in a tremulous or agitated motion. All of these do not necessarily occur in every case. Sometimes the muscles controlling the head are the ones definitely affected, or perhaps one arm and hand, or both hands, or the legs of
" shaking palsy." It
and feet. However, usually where there is paralysis agitans the head and appendal parts of the body are to some extent
aflfected.
In mild phases of paralysis agitans the patient will be able to control the muscular convulsions by a great effort, but in the graver cases he will find it impossible to still the shaking part. In such conditions it is next to impossible to hold the parts suflBciently to stop the
convulsive spasm, except by the application of force sufficifent
to injure the tissues involved.
Paralysis agitans,
and
all
tremulous muscular, condi-
from a characteristic distortion, in which the seventh thoracic vertebra is projected sufllciently dorsal
tions result
become a pivotal center upon which the body above and below tremulously react. Of course, this situation in itseK woidd not necessarily to
cause tremulous, muscular conduct, but, in connection
LOSS OF VOLITIONAL POWERS
557
with the adverse glandular condition incident to these phases, which is that of incipient paralysis, this skeletal distortion
is
sufficient
convulsive movement. of paralysis agitans in
to set
up and continue the
The author has observed cases which the convulsive movement
would cease so long as gentle pressm-e was applied over the seventh thoracic spine, and would begin again immediately pressure was removed. Relating to remove paralysis agitans, or shaking palsy,
is
primarily directed to the correction of the
seventh thoracic distortion, and, therefore, the ventral reduction of that thoracic area; to securing release of nerves of the brachial and lumbo-sacral plexuses, and nerves to the muscles which particularly control the
head. General suggestions in connection with paralysis of all kinds should here be made, and first let the reference
be to
diet,
and
let it
be remembered that excessive
indulgence in food and drink
is
the paramount cause
of all phases of paralysis and to this there
is
no exception.
Excessive venery, and the phases of disease that are many times are irritants of a profound
incident thereto
nature, which intensify the adverse, chronic, glandular
and prepare the way for phases of paralysis. Excessive drinking of intoxicants checks depuration
conditions,
and elimination, and results in the accumulation of morbidity, which may become paralytic toxins, and this is equally true of the use of narcotics.
Incident to the phases of this chapter it must always be remembered that certain injuries to the brain produce a condition often erroneously called paralysis. Of course, the reference is to where the skull is injured
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
558
or crushed so that in such cases will
upon the brain. Trephining usually remove the numb condition, it
presses
analogous to a part going to " sleep," because the nerves to it are inhibited. It is well known that in syphilis, and in some other phases of grave, chronic abnormality, especially in the medication therefor, gummatious and other solid
which
is
precipitations, frequently occur
around the foramina
upon or destroying nerves that extend through them, occluding stimulus and someof the skull, impinging
times causes paralysis. In other cases accumulations
and lymph pressing upon brain
of these substances occur along the sutin-es
areas in the inside of the skull, structiu-es causing paralysis.
In
all
such conditions the problem
is
definitely
no definite means has the surgical removal of these, and
referred to surgery, but as yet
been discovered for until that has been accomplished such phases of socalled paralysis must remain impossible of recovery.
The student must clearly remember that there is a profound distinction between that phase of so-called paralysis, superinduced by the character of pressm-es and the general, adverse and toxic condition which produces the ordinary phases of paralysis, for between the two there is really no relationlast
ship.
discussed,
CHAPTER
XLVIII
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION Locomotor Ataxia
—Infantile Paralysis—Other Phases
In one sense of the word we have just finished a discussion of a series of interferences with locomotion, which would seem to be sufficiently comprehensive, but do not quite completely cover that phase of abnormality.
In this chapter the discussion will be directed to a phase of disturbance, in which an interference with locomotion seems to be more definitely paramount, although in the last analysis that is not true, but the phases to be discussed are peculiarly characteristic. All phases of abnormality have their characteristic anatomic distortions. However, in the multitudinous presentation of phases the fact just stated is frequently overlooked.
The
therapeutic world
is
not conversant with the
fact just stated, principally for the reason that it
no opportunity of being
and
had
a remarkable fact that the majority of Chiropractors have not grasped this fundamental truth, and do not understand that it is a fact. There are a few phases of abnormality in which the characteristic distortion stands out so definitely that all who run should read. The reference is particularly to the distortions incident to asthma, exophthalamic goitre, etc. The point made prominent is that all so,
559
it is
560
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
symptomatic, chronic processes present their characteristic anatomic distortions. The phases to be discussed in this chapter then are not distinctively peculiar, because they present characteristic distortions, but are peculiar in that they present such typical universal and definite distortions.
LOCOMOTOR ATAXIA
As has been indicated, locomotor ataxia is only another phase of paralysis, the primary symptom of which, capable of being noticed by the patient himself, is a peculiar interference with the use of the feet and legs in an attempt at locomotion and a waning consciousness as to where those members are when not looking at them. Of course, at first the interference is slight, and only amounts to a difficulty in commanding the feet and legs volitionally. There is no sense of pain, but if the patient is a very careful observer, he wiU notice that there is less than normal sensation in the feet and legs. The student of the human body, however, must not imagine that the situation is simple by the time the patient is able to notice it himself, for by that time it has already become a very grave phase of chronic abnormality. Primarily and immediately ataxia is caused by a series of grave subluxations in the thoracico-lumbar area of the vertebral column, which occur in such way, and to such extent as to produce a short, sharp, pronounced, V-shaped lordosis, in which the twelfth is usually the deepest and is frequently a lordotic key. The vertebrae involved in the production of the
thoracic vertebra,
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION
561
lordosis just referred to are usually the tenth, eleventh
and tweKth thoracics and the
first
and second lumbars.
Occasionally in the V-shaped lordosis, incident to of ataxia, the first lumbar and twelfth
and causative
thoracic vertebrae are equally deep, but as has been
not usually true, but when they are of equal depth the third lumbar is also involved in the
suggested, this
is
lordosis.
The weakness out
which the lordosis of locomotor ataxia is produced may be the result of so many things that it is almost impossible to enumerate them. First, and paramountly, it results from an hereditary degeneration of the tissues of the vertebral column in the area of
of the lordosis described, peculiarly in the ventral aspect
of the vertebral column.
The degeneracy
just referred to
may be
incident to
what has been therapeutically denominated tuberculosis, or it may come from excessive sexual indulgence on the part of ancestors, followed by the person himseE. It may result from congenital influence incident to chronic acidosis in preceding generations, accom-
panied by a progressive and cumulative kidney weakness, which finally results, not in rheumatoid condition as would be expected, but in tissue degeneracy of the ataxia area of the column. The therapeutic world has almost exclusively charged ataxia to injuries resulting from syphilis,
and the
inci-
dents that accompany that phase of abnormality. This,
must be understood is true only to the extent that such abnormahty results in the degeneracy of tissue in the ataxia area.
it
The student should know, however,
that syphilis and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
56^
the mercurial treatment for it, which is increased by the introduction of Salversan or 606, is a very fruitful cause of tissue degeneracy, that is always closely
and therefore, to weakness of the kidneys, intestinal and procreative abnormality, the motor reactions from which peculiarly related to kidney abnormality,
affect the area of the lordosis necessary to ataxia.
In connection with this discussion, it must be remembered that syphilis will not cause locomotor ataxia, nor prepare the way for it; but at the same time it must be known that patients will not be inoculated with the virus of syphilis unless there
is
occlusion of stimulus in
the nerves of the ataxia area produced
and
by
subluxation,
therefore, it is not surprising that occasionally the
adverse tissue
eflfects
of the process of syphilis increases
these injuries sufficiently to prepare the
way
for the
which causes locomotor ataxia. There is a theory on the part of therapists that ataxia is caused by an injury to the dorsal columns of the vertebral cord. This is in no sense incipient in the production of ataxia, and may not be in existence at all, although in the more definite and later phases there is some pressure on the dorsal aspects of the cord because lordosis
of the very sharp "
The pronounced
V"
of the lordosis.
injury that occurs incipiently
is
the
stretching of the visceral gangliated cords aroimd the
and the compression of them between the ventral protrusion of the column and the abdominal viscera, whUe, of course, incident to the pressure and traction of the gangliated cords, there is also pronounced traction of the visceral primary branches. The primary lateral, somatic branches, which ramify the parieties of lordosis
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION the abdomen, the thighs, legs, and feet, are also tractioned resulting in
marked
563
much
occlusion of stimulus
to all of these structures. It
is
occlusion ever widening
and
intensifying, pro-
duced in the manner just described that causes the symptoms abdominally, and of the extremities, which are so prominent in ataxia.
characteristic
The symptoms
just referred to are a sense of a
band
around the trunk at the level of the twelfth thoracic vertebra, accompanied by irregularity of intestinal conduct, accumulations of gas, etc., with a characteristic lack of consciousness of conditions at the orifices of the body. Incident to this, there is a loss of consciousness, in whole or in part, as to what position the feetward end of the trunk, and the thighs, legs, and being tied tightly
feet are in.
In the incipient condition, the
loss of
to the whereabouts of parts mentioned
knowledge as
is
only partial,
but by the time the lordosis becomes marked, and grave, there is complete loss of consciousness, of where these parts of the organism are, and a knowledge of where they are can only be had by the patient when he can see them. Ordinarily the first outward symptom of ataxia is a flappy and uncertain application of the feet to the
ground in walking, with a partial lack of knowledge of just where the feet are, so that in the dark the patient stumbles and is unable to accommodate himself to the unevenness of the ground, and if he cannot see he staggers and must sustain himself, while in the grave phases of ataxia, if he cannot see he will fall in any direction, for he has no means of determining relativity
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
564
by
sensation through the feet, legs and thighs to the
active parts of the body.
Incident to the injury productive of ataxia, there is a marked change in the iris of the eye, covering the whole ring incident to the large glands and kidneys, while the general acidosis incident to the incipient phases have
served to give the outer ring of the indicative of inflammation.
brilliancy
changes together give the
an expression sion of fear
is
as
iris
though of
intensified
iris
All
a cloudy of
these
an expression of a stare; and indeed the expres-
fear,
by the
fact that the patient
constantly knows that he
may fall. The expression from
the condition of the
once seen should not be for-
iris
gotten.
The victim
of locomotor ataxia, should
be at once
put to bed, and kept there so as to take the longitudinal weight off the vertebral column, which, of course, cannot be done so long as the patient insists upon trying to walk.
The student should remember
that a lordosis of the
gravity described in this chapter cannot exist without
marked
debility of the intervertebral cartilages of five
articulations having occurred, ventrally three must be very grave. If, therefore, success is to be attained in the removal of the adverse phase, an opportunity must be given these cartilages and the other structures of the joints involved to rehabilitate themselves, which cannot be done if the patient puts longitudinal weight upon the vertebral column. Notwithstanding the last statement, the author has helped several cases of incipient ataxia, without taking the patient off the feet, but in those cases the restora-
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION
565
was not complete, nor was the improvement accomplished in anything like the time that it could have been accomplished if the patient had been willing to keep to the recumbent position, imtil the cartilages, ligaments and other tissues affected had time to be rehabilitated. tion
When
remembered that the tissues adversely and ligament, the student will understand that the patient must be kept off his feet it is
affected are cartilage
not
than three months, for it takes that length under the most favorable situation for such tissues to heal. The reader must not be surprised by the statement that a better approximation as to time is four to ten months. During the time the patient is kept off his feet, he should be exercised each day in every muscle of his body, not only as to the appendal parts, but as to the trunk, as thoroughly and carefully, as he would be in the ordinary way, by walking three or four miles. The exercises given, however, must be administered with the patient lying upon the dorsum, venter, or upon the side, and avoidance of any exercise that puts longitudinal constriction upon the vertebral column, especially relative to the lordosis must be observed. During the period of application of the principles of for
less
of time
Chiropractic for the recovery of ataxia, the patient
should be very carefuUy dieted, and in connection with the diet it must be remembered that the machinery of digestion, particularly the intestine, is very gravely impaired, as is also the power of absorption, transportation,
extrusion
and assimilation in the areas proand therefore, very little food of
nouncedly affected
nutritious value will be sufficient.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
566
Incident to the irritations from the general lordosis, and peculiarly from the intestinal condition already referred to, the patient will present
a voracious appetite,
but this does not indicate need for food, and the appetite must be quieted without the administration of food. The feeding should be monodiet, and meals should be separated by a period of at least eight hours. Three very light meals in twenty-foiu" hours thus separated may be used, but very much the better plan is to have but two meals, separated by a period of twelve hours. During the time of attention the patient must not be permitted to use any exciters or narcotics, in which is
specifically included all intoxicating beverages,
and
other habit-forming drugs, including tobacco, tea and coflfee.
The
any sexual
relations,
sex excitation.
should eat no etc.,
must not be permitted to enter iato and must be kept away from aU He must not eat eggs or drink milk, and
patient
oil.
Therefore
all gravies,
salad dressings,
are prohibited.
remove ataxia is, of course, primarily the V-shaped lordosis already described. However, as incident to that it will be understood that there are distortions in the pelvic girdle, and Relating to
directed
to
raising
there are distortions incident to the compensations
that have resulted in the mid-thoracic region, peculiarly
stomach and brain. These must, of course, be reduced concomitantly with the V-shaped affecting the eyes,
lordosis.
When the lordosis has been overcome the patient may be permitted at first to assume a reclining position, and then
a couple of weeks, to a partly and after occupying that position for
after a time, say
sitting postiu-e,
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION two weeks
to a
month, he
may assume
567
the standing
power be permitted to walk a few steps, but for a year or two the patient should not be permitted to walk much, or to remain upon the feet but a short time at once, and he should be cautioned that thereafter he must most careftdly avoid longitudinal shocks and continued, longitudinal pressure upon the vertebral column. He should never carry anything of any weight in his hands nor upon his shoulders.
position for a short time each day, developing the
to stand, for a period of a
month
or so; then he
may
INFANTILE PARALYSIS This is the phase of abnormality that the therapists " anterior poliomyehtis." They say it is " an inflame
call
mation of the anterior horns of the substance of the spinal cord." They also pronounce it " an acute, infectious disease, aflfecting children usually about thfe period of the
first
dentition."
Therapists also declare that infantile paralysis " is caused by a specific organism, but the mode of trans-
mission
is
not yet definitely determined."
These theoretic asservations on the part of the therapeutic world do not help any in a solution of the actual problem which this phase of abnormality presents. Something far more definite is capable of being, and, therefore, must be stated. Infantile paralysis is very frequent in. children from about the time they begin to walk until they attain sufficient discretion and experience in locomotion to generally prevent themselves from being injured. The phase of abnormality, generally referred to as
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
568
is always the direct and specific a characteristic pelvic injury, the injury referred to being a subluxation of one or both of the
infantile paralysis
result
of
sacro-iliac joints.
In a very great majority of cases, the right sacroseverely subluxated. This distortion is quite generally accompanied by a greenstick fracture of the sacrum, and a marked rotation of the right innominate usually with its ventral iliac spine lateral, while the iliac joint is
tuberosity
is
mesial.
When the distortion as
last described is the causative
distortion of this phase of abnormality, the left ilium
is
and over the left aspect of the base of sacrum, the which causes the sacrum to be rotated by usually mesial
its
ventral aspect to the right, thus forcing
its left,
ventral surface deeply against the viscera of the pelvis,
and tractioning the nerves which extend through
its
ventral foramina, while the left margin of the apex of
the sacrum
is
projected ventrally, lessening the space
through which the sciatic and pudic trunks escape, the sciatic to ramify the leg and foot, the pudic to ramify
The nerves that extend down through the pelvis to ramify the regions of the articulathe peritoneal region.
and the mesial aspect of the thighs, by the pressure incident to the distortion. As a complement to the distortion and grave occlusion
tions of the femurs,
are occluded
sacrum by which the fifth and
just described, the distorted attitude of the
causes a rotary compensation,
fourth lumbar vertebrae are, by their ventral aspects turned to the right, while the second and first lumbars, together with the twelfth, eleventh, tenth and ninth thoracics are,
by
their ventral aspects turned to the
left.
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION This
left
569
compensatory rotation, incident to the basic
marked occlusion of the eleventh and twelfth thoracic, and the first and second lumbar
distortion results in
trunks, which ramify the lower left pelvis, the mesial
aspect of the thigh and leg to
medial third. The distortions described, in a large majority of cases occur incident to babies being dropped, or falling off beds, or taking sitting falls when learning to walk, or taking such
falls
its
in their early
and
careless efforts at
equilibrium in play, and other venturesome procedures.
A very foolish notion has been abroad for a long time, that because
a baby's skeletal tissues are largely cartilage and soft bone, that he cannot be permanently injured, or in fact injured at all by falls, shocks, and sprains, which would gravely injure older people. This is a very erroneous and unjustifiable error. Babies
and young children are just as frequently injured, and gravely so, by falls, etc., as are yoimg adults. Incident to the characteristic injuries just described,
and others that frequently
occur, as provocative of so-
called infantile paralysis, the
injmy
immediate
effect of the
by the shock of injury, followed by fever as pronounced and sudden as the shock, and of the same gravity, which usually subsides in a short time, but diu"ing which much contraction and injury to the nerves by precipitation of toxins has occurred that also produces occlusion by disintegration, hence accommodation to the situation does not take place, and growth in the member specifically affected is suppressed, notwithstanding that a certain amount of is
vitahty
is
the chUl produced
retained.
Frequently, through motor reactive influences inci-
570
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
dent to the visceral system, tlie shock of occlusion produced by the basic, pelvic distortion described, reacts through the visceral somatic nerves to the base of the neck of the same side, which, together with the compensatory distortion and toxination, result in grave occlusion to the nerves of the brachial plexus so that, subsequent to the fever, the shoulder, arm, forearm, wrist and hand will be efifected in like manner as the lower extremity. Generally the phases of infantile paralysis do not present themselves in any other symptoms than the suppression of growth, at the worst in the leg and arm, but sometimes the injury is so great as to effect both legs and both arms, and occasionally the brain, so that there is loss of locomotion and suppression of brain development, and therefore, failure of mental development.
Of grave
The
course, occasionally the incipient
injvuy
is
so
that the patient dies as incident to the fever. distortion described
is
not transmittable, there-
fore, the suggestion that infantile paralysis is infectious
or contagious is untenable and preposterous. The author has observed hundreds of cases of so-called infantile paralysis, and has received reports from thousands of cases, and states without fear that the characteristic pelvic distortion as the result of specific injtuy, will be found to cause every case. Infantile paralysis is not contagious. Of course, by the time the process has gone on to a pronounced fever, characteristic germs are produced as scavengers of the accumulated morbidity, but that fact in no sense tends to establish the contagion of infantile paralysis.
ABNORMALITY OF LOCOMOTION Therapists suggest that infantile paralysis
is
571
epidemic.
The author
wishes to state that in fifteen years of careful observation, he has never known a time when he
and his graduates have not had hundreds of cases of this phase of abnormality under care, and during all that time he has not noticed much fluctuation in the ratio of cases. In other words, this is no more than saying that in a given population there will be about the same number of children between one and eight years of age, and that their care will be characteristically the same, and that there will be about the same number undergoing the characteristic injuries that result in so-called infantile paralysis.
Relating to
remove
infantile paralysis, of course, is
basicly correction of the distortion of the pelvis, for that correction the student
is
and
definitely referred to
the chapter on that subject in the first volume of this work. In addition to correcting the basic distortion the compensatory influences therefrom must be corrected. This will require address at the thoracico-lumbar,
the cervico-thoracic, and the occipito-cervical areas.
Of
course,
it
must always be understood that
in con-
nection with the relating suggested, the child should be
and regularly fed on nutritious but easily digested foods, and should be most fully and carefully exercised, but incident thereto should be prevented from joiningin any childish sports that would bring'strain, or too continuous weight, upon the areas of distortion. carefully, sparingly
WASTING CONDITIONS It is hardly necessary to go into a discussion of this phase of abnormaUty, for it has been quite generally and thoroughly covered under atrophy and anemia.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
572
a phase of abnormality generally referred to as wasting palsy, in wliicli there is a somewhat tremulous condition of the muscles, with a progressive atrophy. This phase of abnormality is one that occiurs incident to characteristically adverse kidney
However, there
is
conditions.
There are other phases called dry tetter, fish-skin which are of the same type and character, and indeed need no further discussion in this disease, etc., all of
connection. Relating to
remove
all
such conditions
is
incipiently
addressed to a correction of the kidneys, and incidentally the other large glands of the body, and also to securing release of nerve occlusion to the skin generally
and by aU means cise,
possible, including proper diet, exer-
clothing, breathing, washing, etc.,
best depuration
and elimination
possible.
securing the
CHAPTER XLIX PERVERSION
—Emotional—Sexual
Mental
The word perversion simply means "
to turn through
or from," but custom has given to the word, in the
being used, the meaning of " turning from the usual and ordinary." Perversion, then, in our general acceptance of the term, refers to any function of the organism which has sense
now
turned from the usual and ordinary to another phase of conduct. However, the term is not wholly divorced from the idea of volition in some sense, although it should be understood that in perversion the victim does not necessarily use any volition whatever in performing the adverse or changed conduct. In connection with the matter being presented, it is well for the student to remember that after all there is no standard of mental, emotional, sexual, or other phases of conduct, and, therefore, there is no actual criterion, except what we conceive to be the usual, and it must be remembered that each individual has his own conceptions about what is the usual. In connection with what has just been stated, if persons are found functioning in a way that the observer has never before seen, he is very apt to shake the finger of scorn, and use the epithet "Pervert!" without necessarily being justified in his conclusion. 573
574
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
greatest charity should be exercised as to the conduct of human beings, for under long established
The
hereditary
influences,
the
human
family
must
of
necessity give expression to very divergent physiologic conduct. In other words, the idiosyncrasies of physio-
performance must be understood to comprise a very wide range. Within the range of that very wide physiologic functioning any person may be accused of perversion, and yet the disposition of humanity to be narrow and accusing has greatly retarded evolution, by causing a general and indiscriminate fear to dominate in connection with entering upon any unusual performance. The greatest men and women that the world has produced, during their day and generation have been considered " off " mentally, because they were capable of following a phase of conduct quite distinct from their logic
and the long line of lessons on this subject should have taught humanity many centuries ago not to reach hasty conclusions, and too quickly indulge in
fellows,
epitheits.
MENTAL PERVEKSION
A mental pervert is, of course, in one sense of the word, always insane, and yet he must not be so classified, for insanity is usually thought to include lack of volitional powers, while the mental pervert retains, to a large extent, that capacity. Mental perversion exists when the victim of it employs his intellect to the accomplishment of results in substantially the reverse of the usual and ordinary, or in direct opposition thereto,
and cannot be convinced of his error.
PERVERSION
575
It will be seen that such a situation really, after
amounts to insanity, but There is another phase should be discussed in this the
mind
of
an extraordinary
all,
type.
mental perversion which connection, and that is where of
continually dwells
upon destructive processes
rather than constructive; where the individual
is
always
planning to secure the downfall of some one, or some social
of
department, instead of the good and evolution
him
qr
it.
Perverts of the character last described do not
sympathy from the human family, but constitute the most hated element of society, whereas such persons are peculiarly entitled to pity, and should have the most receive
careful protection of the social fabric against themselves.
The
difficulty
about giving proper consideration to
victims of the phase of pathology just described,
know
is
to
just what persons are within that class, for there no well-defined demarcation. It is almost impossible to tell when the volition to be mean and scheming stops, and the irresistible perversion to perform the same character of acts controls the mind of the individual. As a result of this situation humanity usually classifies mental perverts as mean, wicked, and scheming persons, and continues that attitude toward them until the perversion is sufficiently pronounced to be declared insanity, when the whole social attitude changes, and every phase of pity, sympathy, and protection is extended to them, when they have been entitled to the same attitude perhaps all of their lives. If that attitude had prevailed toward many persons early enough, they could have been saved from their perversion. Mental perversion may result from two main situais
CHIROPRACTIC ANAJ.YSIS
576
may
tions. It
result; (2)
result:
(1)
from injury
from heredity, and
it
may
in this existence.
From the standpoint of heredity, mental may result from: (1) an anomalous cortical
perversion formation,
is so constructed in that part of it in which mind should be produced, that normal mentality cannot be produced. It may result; (2) from hereditary tissue habit, which renders the mental portion of the cortex incapable of producting normal mind, and it may result; (3) from immediate congenital adversity, which
which
is
of the nature of heredity
presentations
From
which by
and includes
irritation
all
affect
anomalous mentality.
the standpoint of injury, occurring in this
existence mental perversion
may
be caused by:
(1)
body during gestation, or react upon that part of the
injury to the skull or skeletal
at birth, in such
way
as to
mind should be produced to such normal mentality is not produced; or (2) injury to the skull whereby its plates are indented and press upon portions of the cortex may change the cortex in which distortion that
process of such cortical areas, in such
manner that
normal mentality cannot be produced; or
(3)
sub-
luxation resulting in occlusion of nerves to cortical areas of the brain which have the function of producing mind, may serve to produce perverted mentality; or (4) accumulations of poisons within the body which chronically titillate the terminals of nerves, causing
motor reaction to cortical areas, in which mind should be produced may produce mental perversion; or (5) intemperate indulgence in food, beverages, drugs,
and so on, by the irritations upon mental cortical areas to t!he
especially narcotics, venery,
produced,
may
react
PERVERSION
577
perversion of mental function; and last, but by no means least,
(6)
the irritation from anomalous
par-
orifices,
ticularly those of the feetward aspect of the body,
which mind should be produced, to such an extent as to produce profound mental perversion. It will be observed that all of the characters of injury herein mentioned have in a general way been discussed as incident to other phases of pathology and symptomology, and those which have not had full discussion in the two volumes of this work will be found quite fully discussed in " Psycho-Bio-Physiology," the first volume
upon
frequently react
cortical areas in
of this series.
The human
family
is
just beginning to understand
is really a phase of disease, and capable of restoration, indeed almost completely so, except as to its definite hereditary phases, and even in such cases much can be done in the way of
that mental perversion to a large extent
is
evolution in several generations.
EMOTIONAL PERVEBSION It
is
when the
subject under discussion
the thought of emotions, that
awesome
aspect, for it
that perversion
is
made
is
it
is
takes on
turned to its
most
through distorted emotions
horrible.
From exists
the technical standpoint, emotional perversion when the usual and ordinary expression is
presented in the reverse, or in a divergence from the
normal that amounts to a contrary expression. For instance, society conceives that emotion is circ*mscribed to love, affection, friendship, sympathy, tenderness, compassion, adoration, jealousy, hate,
and
578
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
Of course, this is in no sense true, but it is the scope within which discussion of these subjects is so on.
confined.
conceived that there is emotional perversion when, without the ordinary reasons for it, love is turned to hate, sympathy to harshness and Therefore,
it
inconsideration, suspicion,
is
affection
tenderness
to
to
coldness,
cruelty,
friendship
compassion
to to
contempt, adoration to dread and adversity, jealousy to friendship or love, and hate to sympathy or affection,
and so forth. In this connection
it
will
be observed that the
sympathy to victims of such distempers is, that there is no line of demarcation, and it is not known imtil the phases become very pronounced who are emotional perverts, and who are not. But here again humans stand ready, upon observing anything diflSculty
of applying
imusual in the emotional expression of a person to fling the epithet "Pervert " without waiting to learn the truth. It should be remembered that the evolution of the human family necessitates, a very wide range of unusual, emotional expression, for in thinking new thoughts, and developing new mental functioning, many strange, unusual and new emotions must be endured and !
and knowing these facts human beings should exercise an exceptional charity toward aU, for in doing so no one knows but what he is extending expressed,
charity to himself.
Emotional perversion is incident to the effects of all character of distortions, which are detailed under the preceding subtitle, and should be carefully reviewed in connection with
what has been
said here.
PERVERSION
579
SEXUAL PERVERSION
The student capable of careful thought will have observed that since sex expression is nothing but emotion, that the preceding subtitle really comprehends this discussion.
However, since the human family has had the custom of considering sexuality as though it were a thing existing entirely by itself, and as though it were a department of emotion sustaining no definite relation to other phases, that idiosyncrasy will be here indulged, and unusual sex expression will be discussed quite by itself.
However, in discussing sex perversion by itself, it must be remembered that the emotion of sex bears an inseparable relation to the emotions of mentality. That is to say, the emotion of sex cannot be separated from love,
affection,
adoration,
the
sympathy,
jealousy,
tenderness,
construction,
compassion,
destruction,
and
like.
It is a well established fact that love cannot exist without sex emotion; that friendship is a phase of love, and receives its underlying strength from sex emotion. Sympathy, tenderness and compassion are directly related to the emotion of sex; jealousy and hate profoundly react, not only upon sex emotion, but on sex
capacity.
Sex perversion exists not only when usual and ordinary sexual expression is not presented, but sex emotion is exhibited in unusual and extraordinary ways. It is presumed and accepted as a matter of course, that any normal child at the age of puberty shall gradually
come
into the consciousness of the existence
580
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
of sex emotion,
and sex appetite, which is usually and delicate phraseology, as the
expressed, in refined
longing for, and love of, a mate; the actual fact being that the sex organs, and the corresponding cortical areas develop, concomitantly resulting in the desire
and ability to use the sex organs in the act of procreation. It is to be profoundly regretted that humanity generally refuses to take time to form a just comprehension and appreciation of the actual sex situation, and, therefore, looks upon sex emotion as something untoward, bestial, and common; when it is the prime emotion from the soul, and is most nearly connected
—
with the constructive influences of God or the Force and Intelligence which controls our earth, which we call
the universe.
a sympathetic and intelligent consideration of the sex emotion would be extended by the whole human family, much sex perversion could be prevented, and a very remarkable evolution, not now attained would If
be accomplished. Sex perversion results from one of four characteristic tissue situations: (1) It may be the result of adverse heredity; (2) adverse congenital conditions; (3) injuries occurring in this life experience; and (4) anomalous sex
organ formation. (1) Sex perversion as the result of heredity may occur in two ways: (a) by the perpetuation of adverse tissue tendencies, superinduced by injuries or anomalous conditions, or adverse heredity, in parents; and (b) by the propagation of ofifspring by those too near akin; such for instance, as uncle and niece, axint and nephew, double first cousins, or which is almost unthinkable.
;
PERVERSION
581
propagation between mother and son, or father and daughter. In all the history of the past we find that propagation of children by such incestuous relationships has been countenanced quite generally, but has reached its most notable examples in the ruling famihes of the world, which, by reason thereof, have usually become degenerates ^the only thing saving such families from extinction being an occasional introduction of plebeian blood. The reason incestuous production of offspring is likely to result in sex perversion is because the chemistry of both parents is too similar to give to the child a sufficiently wide chemical formula to result in complete tissue equihbriiun, and, therefore, many times a brain cortex is constructed that does not give to the offspring the capacity for normal sex emotion. (2) Congenital injury, which results in a failure to produce normal brain structures, many times results in the lack of capacity to experience normal sex emotion, but emotion of a type called sexual perversion. (3) Tissue injuries, resulting from all characters of excesses, such as overindulgence in eating; the use of alcoholic beverages ; the use of drugs, especially narcotics and just plain traumatic injiuy, frequently present such interference with the transmission of nerve stimulus as to produce cortical degeneracy or lack of brain equilibrium to such an extent, that sex emotion is changed from its normal expression so completely
—
as to be sex perversion. It would be of considerable value
a somewhat extended discussion of this matter could be here indulged, but it must be remembered that substantially if
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
582
these phases have been carefully dealt with under
all of
titles in this work, and that complete preparation an understanding of the subject matter here presented will be obtained by a careful review of all characters of distortion, and their direct brain eflfects,
other
for
for,
of coiu-se, sex perversion springs directly
from
brain conditions. (4)
The most pronounced and remarkable phases
of
sex perversion, however, are those which spring directly from brain influences, superinduced by anomalously formed sex organs; the adverse and unusual titUlation of which directly react upon the brain, giving rise to unusual and sometimes almost unexplainable emotions. In the particular phase now directly under discussion, the anomalies described in Chapter III of this work, are the ones particularly referred to, and the student should make a very careful review of that chapter in order that he may fully comprehend what is here stated.
In
phase of the subject, aU conduct on the part the usual and ordinary in the gratification of sex emotion, is classified
of
this
human beings that does not conform to
as sex perversion,
and
masturbation, onanism. cunniling*s, fellatorism
other parts of the
Masturbation
is
in
a general way these are
Sodomy
—^buggery, pederasty,
—^imunation,
and the use
of
body as sex organs. usually defined to be the arousem*nt
and the production of an org*sm means than that of the preparatory emotional relation between male and female, succeeded to by usual and ordinary copulation. of the sex emotion,
by the
intervention of other
It will be seen that this subject
is
very closely related
PERVERSION
583
and that it is very difficult to draw the demarcation as to just when normal and usual, emotional provocation is used, and when such provocato mentality, line of
tion
is
perverted. It
is
also quite as difficult to deter-
mine when normal sex indulgence has
when
resulted,
and
it has not, for these matters are very largely determined by mental attitude. There is a very great divergence of thought upon this subject in the human family. Some authors contend, for instance, that the normal young male has seminal emission about once a week without any unusual sex excitation, or sexual relation, while others maintain that normally no sex emotion should occur except when aroused by the opposite sex, and that no seminal emission should occur except as the result of copulation. It seems that the golden medium should lie somewhere between these two opponent attitudes, and that while the virile young male may undergo dream-like emotion, and org*sm, this situation can hardly be classified as normal, although such incidental emotionization certainly cannot be classified as sex perversion, and yet such conduct would only have to go to the point of overcoming the resistance of certain brain tissue of the organism involved, to become perversion. Clearly, however, masturbation occurs when the individual adopts means that are wholly within himself for the arousem*nt of sex emotion, and the gratification thereof to the extent of an org*sm. An occasional indulgence of this character would not constitute perversion, but habitual conduct of the kind described would overcome brain resistance and mental control and become a damaging type of perversion.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
584
The symptoms
of perversion
by masturbation
is
paramountry a dread of the opposite sex. Victims of the habit dread social relations with their dislike or
opposites,
Where
and indeed with those
of their
own
sex.
pronounced, the victims of be alone, and dread any sort of company. This attitude on the part of a person, however, is not sure proof, and should not be indulged too far, because it
this perversion is
desire to
the same attitude
is
frequently presented
by those
in
whom
it in no sense is caused by masturbation. In the young male or female, masturbating before puberty, is usually indicated by changes in the sex organs. In the male the disposition to erection upon any kind of titillation of the penis, or the nerves of the pubis relative to it, together with the unusual development of the organ, and its prolonged sustenance of tumescence, may be relied upon as strong indications,
^which are accessorily sustained
by the
disposition
of
the subject, under any excitation, to put the hands upon the penis without consciousness of the act. In the female before puberty, a close and careful study of the tissues of the vulva wiU usually disclose the distortions incident to the character of manipulation
used to arouse emotion, and to secure the org*sm. These and congestion of the labia
are usually the distention
minora in the region of the cl*tor*s, and from the cl*tor*s to the vagin*l orifice. Rupture of the hymen and the development of the vagin* adds much to this evidence. Here again the arousem*nt of sexual emotion by titillation of the parts is a very controlling symptom. There really is no positive evidence of masturbation that is completely reliable in either the male or the
PERVERSION
585
female after puberty, and yet what has already been said will continue to be strong evidence, if sustained by relative situations and conduct. After puberty the female's distrust and reluctance to be in the company of the opposite sex, especially of those near her own age, or to be in the
company
of older persons,
is,
when
taken in connection with the other symptoms mentioned a strong indication. In this connection it is well to remember that at times, substantially all males and females, under our present modem situation, that are of anything like normal virility, masturbat* at least to some extent, but as has already been said, it is the habit and not the incidental case that produces perversion.
Onanism refers to that character of copulation, in which, at the time of the org*sm of the male, he withdraws the penis from the vagin* so that the seminal discharge does not occur within the sex organs of the female. This method of masturbation is described and
named
in the Bible.
There are no
definite
and women who
symptoms
of onanism,
but men
practise this system of masturbation
by it; the man, of woman, for with him it is a positive masturbation of the most injurious type, and to a considerable extent it is the same thing with the woman. Sodomy buggery, is the perversion of the sex relation by using the anus as a sex organ. This unspeakable thing may occur between men and women, or between men. are both in time, seriously injured course,
much more than
the
—
It
is
almost unbelievable, but, because of perverted orifices, it some-
sex emotion, incident to anomalous sex
586
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
tJbat the woman's focus of sex attention instead of the cl*tor*s and vagin* as it the anus at should be. Many women in this condition will try to
times results is
induce buggery of them instead of intercourse, for they get no gratification except by the perverted method.
The only symptom wrong focus
of this habit
is
the sex anomaly and
of attention referred to,
and a
loss of
refinement toward the sex relation.
One of
the most remarkable, and almost tmbelievable
things in connection with anomalous sex orifices
is
the
immediate change in the focus of sex attention when for instance, it has been at the anus, by the release of a hooded cl*tor*s. The author has directed the orificial correction of many cases, in which the focus of attention was at the anus; with no sex response at the cl*tor*s or vagin*, the cl*tor*s being completely hooded, and has seen the focus of attention completely change while the patient was imder the anesthetic, and within two minutes after the cl*tor*s was released. In connection with the statement in the last paragraph, the author wishes it understood that when so small a correction as the unhooding of the cl*tor*s has the possibility of removing from a woman the degradation and mental perversion of desiring buggery of herself, rather than normal, sex commerce, he feels that students should know more of this work, and that the human family needs enlightenment as to the sex parts more than all other subjects put together. Pederasty is a word indicating the perversion of men so that they desire the use of boys, by the anus for sex indulgence, instead of the female in the usual and ordinary way. People generally have no idea of the
PERVERSION
587
extent to which this prevails, and they have no idea of the character of persons who fall into the clutches of this horrible conduct.
The author recalls an experience of his boyhood in which a minister of the Gospel, who was a widower, formed his acquaintance on a train when he was going away to school; found that he changed cars in his home town, invited him to his house to stay over night, and at bed time it developed that his one purpose was to secure that unspeakable relation. Of course, he failed, but the tragedy of that occasion will always remain fresh
and vivid
in
memory.
cunniling*s is the name given to that perversion, in which the victims have formed the habit of using the tongue in the vulva and vagin* to produce sex emotion
and org*sm. This imspeakable conduct is engaged in by both males and females. Women perform this perversion upon each other, and these habits are very much encom-aged when women or girls are long together, and when no males are permitted in their social relation. It
is
of the first
importance in institutions of all kinds for girls and women that aU inmates shall be carefully watched in order to make sure that no such habits shall be formed. Women perverts of this type usually much prefer that men shall perform this perversion for them. It must be understood that no woman would submit herself to this character of sensual exercise who was not a victim of irritation from anomalously formed sex organs. Fellatorism
which
is
—irrumation
is
another phase of perversion
as sickening and disgusting as the one just
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
588
is the application of the mouth, as though it was the vagin*, to the penis. This grotesque and damaging conduct is engaged in by both men and
mentioned, and that
women
victims.
Men, who because
anomalous sex construction, are addicted to perversion, sometimes form the habit of performing this office for each other. The danger of forming such habits is greatly increased among boys and men wholly sequestered from the society of women, and its prevention must be closely watched, where boys or
men
of
are for a long time confined and associated
together.
Men secure
of this perversion
women
have a peculiar
to perform this office for them,
desire to
and they
more often than would ordinarily be thought possible in getting women who are anomalous as to their sex organs to learn this destructive habit.
are successful
The two
characters
of
perversion just
discussed
maintain with a great deal more frequency than society is very common in places of prostitution, and is practised by its victims in a social way. It even invades the sanctity of the marriage relation. The simplest phase of this most obnoxious habit in marriage is where the husband and wife voluntarily enter into it. Husbands who are victims of the irritation of anomalous sex formation, have been known to compel wives to do this unspeakable thing for them. Wives of the anomalous type have left husbands, because they would not allow them to practise fellatorism on their husbands. One of the pronounced symptoms of this perversion is the inability of the addict to perform sex relation in generally suspects. It
PERVERSION
589
the normal way. Other symptoms are the remarkable changes that take place in the physical being.
A man who
a cunnilinguist or a fellatorist, commonly known as " a header," becomes effeminate, and in his general conduct including the voice, affects the mannerisms of women. In his mannerisms he becomes what is ordinarily called a " sissie," and loses is
the bold, positive, aggressiveness of the male.
The woman who
is
a pervert of either of the types
paragraph makes stiU more marked changes, by becoming coarse and masculine;
mentioned in the
last
losing all of the finer sensibilities that are usually so
generously expressed in the conduct of the female; losing all of the coyness of feminine traits,
ing vulgar, obscene
and
the voice, which loses
its
garrulous,
and
and becom-
this includes
feminine tones, drops in pitch,
and becomes raspy and harsh.
The
author, in his researches to ascertain the facts
examined not less than three hundred of whom were perverts of the character immediately under discussion, and he never found a prostitute who did not present anomalous of sex anomaly, prostitutes,
many
and has never observed a pervert, although he has examined many of them, who was not in like manner afflicted, and, therefore, feels prepared to say, and does say, that the perversions discussed in this chapter would not occm-, if it was not for the irritation and, therefore, the abnormal emotion aroused by anomalously formed sex organs and orifices. sex orifices,
impossible to close this chapter without saying the one, paramount study of doctors should be, that the general effects that sex anomaly has upon the It
is
590
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
emotional attitude, because the distortion and disease from these phases of pathology are incident to the production, not only of all these unspeakable social disorders, but are peculiarly related to the continuance of venereal abnormality, insanity, blindness, deafness and all other phases of disease, not to mention the influence that such anomalous conditions have upon the officers of governments, and, therefore, upon the peace of the world.
resulting
CHAPTER L UNUSUAL TISSUE CHANGES
— Tumor
Cancer
The phases of abnormality to be discussed are desby the latest therapeutic dictionaries as being "a maUgnant tumor, made up chiefly of epithelial
cribed
cells."
Tumor
is described by the same authors as being, " first, a swelling, a morbid enlargement;" and second, " a neoplasm a mass of new tissue which persists and grows independently of its surrounding structures and which has no physiologic use." It will be seen by the definitions quoted that there is
—
really,
from the therapeutic standpoint, no well defined
demarcation between cancers and tumors. It, however, is of the first importance that these phases of abnormality shall be carefully distinguished, not because to distinguish them aids any in overcoming them, but a knowledge of their difference wiU aid the student materially in arriving at a proper solution of the situations, which superinduce either phase.
CANCER Cancer is a phase of disease which occurs concomitant with a proliferation of coarse, gross or giant-cell productions. It
is
not at
all
necessary that these cells shall be
epithehal, except in the sense that all cells are in a 591
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
592
measure epithelial. That is to say, there is a therapeutic assumption that all cells proliferate upon a basem*nt membrane. This, however, is a novelty aside from the fact.
From
the Chiropractic standpoint, then, a cancer a proliferation of cells, occurring anywhere in the body, as the result of occlusion of nerve stimulus to the area, which results in a lowered and coarsened vibration and, therefore, in the assimulation of a loose and granuis
out of the morbid matter retained in the area. fact which distinguishes a cancer from a tumor is that a cancer is a tissue composition of a pathologic character, while a tumor represents some phase of disintegration of tissue. lar tissue
The paramount
Cancers are of two definite characters:
(1) fibrous;
and (2) cellular. Of course, it must be understood that a fibrous cancer is also cellular, but the distinguishing feature of it is that the cells are arranged in a trabecular network, and are parallel to each other in such manner as to produce a fibrous result. The novelty, cellular cancers, exist when a proliferation of coarse, loose, granular, or giant-cell formations not arranged in such manner as to be in fibers. Cancers are therapeutically classified as (1) malignant; there
is
:
and (2) That
passive.
which
primarily course,
is
distinguishes
the fact that
it
a
malignant
cancer
continues to enlarge. Of
from the therapeutic standpoint the cancer
is
accredited with a certain inherent ability to grow,
which, of course,
What
it
must be understood
is
a
fallacy.
the therapeutic world calls a malignant cancer,
UNUSUAL TISSUE CHANGES
593
from the Chiropractic standpoint, is a structural growth, caused by profound occlusion of nerves to the area, resulting in a precipitation of matter of the right chemical consistence to enter into that characteristic structure, and, of course, so long as that formula is
produced in that area, and occlusion cancer continues
so-called
to
is
not removed, the it were by
grow as
accretion.
A
speaking from the therapeutic
passive cancer,
is malignant for a time, and then ceases its malignancy, and has been conceived to have attained its full size, and remains at that size negatively, or
sense,
inactively.
The is
Chiropractic explanation of the passive cancer
that the general constitutional pathology has changed
so that there ceases to be precipitated, in the cancer area, the chemical formula necessary to its further
growth or addition to its size. The therapeutic world has gone into a multitudinous classification of cancers, which do not assist much in an understanding of the situation. The primary designations are: (1) carcinoma; and (2) sarcoma, and after this attempt to differentiate, therapy has made the unaccountable error of practically merging them, so that
it is
impossible to
either of the
In fairness
words it
is
tell
what character
of pathology
intended to indicate.
must be admitted that there has been
some effort to classify a carcinoma as a malignant cancer of epithelial origin, while it has been sought to describe a sarcoma as a cancer
made up
of cells that
have a physical resemblance to those found in the embryonic, connective tissue. In the description of
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
594
these structures
it is
declared that,
by the
proliferation
of the cells of the intercellular substance they
granular,
fibrillary
or
reticular,
which
become
brings
the
definition back to that of carcinoma. It is impossible to demonstrate sarcoma, and account lor its existence from the standpoint of embryonic,
connective tissue, therefore, no classification imder sarcoma will be made. The descriptions occurring directly
under carcinoma (1)
may
—that
Histology
be
classified as follows:
is,
simple carcinoma in connec-
Under this classification comes fibroma, tive both hard and soft; myoma, occurring in muscle tissue; hemangioma, of blood vessels; lymphangioma, of lymph vessels; lymphoma, of lymph glands or tissue; endotissue.
thelioma, (2)
in
endothelial
membranes.
Epithelioma—^neuroma, occurring in nerve
adenoma,
tissue;
lymphoid structures; hypernephroma, in glandular cells. The student must understand that there in
are characters of the phases of pathology just
named
that therapy claims should be classified under sarcoma,
but no substantial evidence has been presented to sustain the claim. It
is
not pretended that
all of
the characters of cancer
that therapy has presented are given here, but
all of
the characters that are well differentiated, and generally observed, are mentioned. Of course, in addition to these there could be added epithelioma, a cancer of the skin,
and chondroma, one occurring
in cartilage.
TUMOR Tumors present a more definite character of formation than cancers, in that instead of presenting a strange and
UNUSUAL TISSUE CHANGES characteristic tissue formation, they
form to what has ordinarily been
595
more nearly conand
called abscess,
always consist in a breaking down of the general characteristic formation of the tissue of the area in which they occur. In other words, tumors tend to the production of cavities within their interiors containing disintegrated morbidity, while cancers do not. Tumors occur in a very much wider range of tissue
than cancers, and it has been in this particular that the therapeutic world has introduced the most confusion between these phases of pathology. It may serve a good purpose to give a partial classification of tumors herewith.
Histologic
myxoma,
in
lymphoma, occurring in fatty mucous tissue; osteoma, in bone
glioma, in neuroglia;
oma,
in
lymph
myoma,
glands
in muscle tissue;
and
lymph
tissue; tissue;
lymphand
tissues;
endothelioma, in epithelium, which, of course, includes all
of the tumors that occur in the squamous, columnar,
and any kind includes
all
of epithelium.
Of
characters of adenoid
course,
lymphoma
and other lymphoid
tissues.
one character of pathologic result that might be classified as a mixture between a tumor and a cyst, these are dermoids, teratomas and cholesteatomas. These really do not present a differentiation of sufficient value to be discussed separately, for they are completely included under In addition to the
list
given, there
is
cysts.
Cysts are
tumors which have undergone a very
extensive disintegration of their interiors, so that there is
contained within the connective tissue wall, which
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
596
always lined with endothelium, morbid colloid. This may be classified as being serous, mucous, or purulent, depending upon the degree of disintegration and chemical change. For the purpose of clarity some of these incidental structures should have just a Uttle further notice; Fibroma is a connective tissue cancer, and may be of either the in color,
hard or soft variety .They are generally pale round or lobulated, and are walled oflf or
incapsulated.
Lipoma
is
a fatty tumor;
circular, lobulated
is
nearly always roughly
and yellow, and
is
enclosed in a well
defined capsule. These are sometimes not quite correctly referred to as sebaceous tumors, although the line of
demarcation between the two
is
indeed very
However, in the fatty tvunor the lobulations have broken down, while in the lipoma they still remain intact. Osteoma is a tumor or necrosis of the bone. These diflScult to distinguish.
frequently occur as a result of bruises of the periosteiun,
and frequently occm" incident to occlusion superinduced by the distortion of joints. Such conditions are frequent in the shoulder as a result of displacement of the
head of the humerus occluding nerves and
trunks of the brachial plexus. Neuroma is a cancer occurring in nerve tissue or ganglia in which there
a peculiar giant-cell production, and a fimbriated growth. This many times occurs as a result of distortions whereby nerves to a certain area are gravely occluded. Or neuroma may be tumor in a nerve area, as a result of precipitation of toxins superinducing the disintegration of nerve trunks or ganglia. is
UNUSUAL TISSUE CHANGES The author
feels
that any attempt at further
597 classifi-
cation in the present state of the knowledge of cancers
and tumors would be futile, and would more particularly serve to confuse than to instruct. Therefore, attention will
be tiimed to a discussion of the cause and the cor-
rection, instead of fm-ther classification.
Cancers and tumors are caused by occlusion of nerve stimulus to the area where they occur, but it must be understood that cancers and tumors do not always occur because nerve stimulus is occluded. The reason, then, that cancers and tumors sometimes result must be pointed out. It would be impossible for a cancer or tumor to occur in the organism if certain, constitutional, pathologic conditions did not exist, and the student must under^ stand that these pathologic conditions must be as numerous as the different characters of cancers and tumors that are produced. Primarily the condition incident to the production of a cancer, or tumor in a general acidosis, but, however, this acidosis must be of a particular and specific type, and must occur in the body of a person that has also
marked
occlusion to certain areas in order that the acid
colloid congests in such areas,
and
precipitates therein,
furnishing the substance of the right chemistry to enter into the pathologic transformations.
When
the conditions just outlined have occurred,
cancer in the area begins as a steady change in the
whatever kind involved. If, during the process the constitutional acidosis, should suftissue elements of
ficiently change for the better, the cancer ceases development and is said to have become benign.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
598
however, the acidosis remains and gradually grows worse, producing the necessary adverse, chemical formula, the cancer continues to grow, and is classified as being malignant. If the constitutional acidosis is of a different, but of exactly the right character to produce such a result, the colloid precipitated, at first results in the production of enlarged structure, which will undergo congestion, If,
inflammation,
etc.,
finally
entering
into
pathologic
disintegration, in its interior, presenting the true phases of tumor.
The tumor
just described will go
on enlarging so
long as the colloid of the general acidosis acter to
add to
it,
and not to
is
of the char-
result in too rapid disinte-
during the process, the general acidosis markedly changes, further enlargement of the tumor gration; but,
may
cease,
if
and
it
may
imdergo rapid degeneration, and
thus entirely disappear.
In the situation last described, the tumor may be transformed into a cyst, and as such may imdergo almost any amoimt of enlargement.
From these remarks, it mount necessity to stop
be seen that the parathe growth of cancers and will
tumors is to correct the general acidosis of the organism. If this can be done, no matter what the character of the cancer or tumor, its growth will be stopped, and it will undergo a process of disintegration, which will be rapid or slow, depending upon the character of acidosis that has existed, and the density and resistance of the tissue changes that have resulted. Under the application of the principles of Chiropractic, the constitutional acidosis resulting in cancers
UNUSUAL TISSUE CHANGES
599
and tumors may generally be rapidly overcome, and in a majority of cases, cancers and tumors may be almost at once stopped in their growth, and in a very large per cent of cases may be caused to enter upon a progressive disintegration and depuration until they completely disappear.
However the Chiropractor
in attempting to
remove
cancers and txunors meets with a series of difficulties
which sometimes renders
it
impossible for
him
to secure
results.
For instance, there may be such intra-pressm-es, resulting frqm the occupancy of the cancer or tumor, that the irritation and motor reaction will be so great that occlusion to the area cannot be reduced. In such an event the last recourse has been reached, and the cancer or tumor must be extirpated. It must also be remembered that where intra-pressures .
are not as great as that described, still the cancer or tumor may be pressing upon a viscus, preventing its
and producing profound motor reaction, or upon a ganglion, or upon ganglia, or even upon large nerve trimks in such manner as to not only occlude
fimction,
pressing
the nerves extending through such areas, but to produce such profound motor reaction as to render release of occlusion to the pathologic growth impossible.
The author has removed many cancers and tumors by the application of the principles of Chiropractic. These in different parts of the body stomach,
—
have been
and he has had reports so that he knows recovery
intestine, bladder, uterus, etc.,
from himdreds
of other cases,
can be accomplished. However, too much must not be expected. Cancers
in miany cases
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
600
existed for many years, and have been maintained incident to a chronic acidosis mitil the general organism is greatly deficient and negative, are, of course, most difficult to remove, because the constitutional pathology is most difficult to remove, but a very large per cent of cancers and tumors may be stopped in their growth and wholly removed.
and tumors that have
When
the
human
family imderstands the relation
of diet, clothing, housing, bathing, ventilation, etc., to
cancer and tumors
it is
certain that
much greater results
wiU be obtained by the application of the principles of Chiropractic than is now possible. Relating to check the growth of cancers and tumors, and to secure their disintegration and depuration, is, of course, primarily directed to overcoming the general acidosis which has made their existence possible. Therefore, these are specifically the foiu" avenues of depuration, and incidentally, the large glands of the body generally, and these, of course, in connection with the application of
all
general health laws, to secure the
best constitutional condition possible; and then to specifically release occlusion of stimulus in the nerves
extending to the area of the cancer or tumor. It must be understood by the student and practitioner that to remove a cancer or tumor of any length of
standing,
close
and
careful
application
months
of
the
be required, and even if diu"ing the first few weeks there seems to be little or no response, stUl the application of one relating each day should proceed with great regularity, this should be accompanied by the rigid enforcement of the strictest regime of living and care on the part of the patient. principles of Chiropractic for
will
CHAPTER LI
—TUBERCULOSIS
CONSUMPTION Consumption
is
an adverse
tissue
condition and
is too comprehensive to be discussed in relation with tissue abnormality of any organ of the body. It can only be discussed properly when
functional process that
body is under consideration. Consumption is involved in every phase of
the whole
tissue
degeneration that results in a lessening of tissue, and indeed some phases of consumption are involved in those phases of tissue abnormality in which tissues are enlarged.
The
consumption, however, is more perfectly adapted to those of dropsy and such disintegratory processes as diabetes, the advanced stage of Bright's Disease, the conditions incident to syphilis, and to suppuration in tumors, carbimcles, abscesses, etc. Indeed, it is the degenerative process in tissue wherever process
of
found or observed. Therapeutists have been guilty of the error of speaking of consumption of the brain, vertebral cord, intestine, bones, etc., and while
all of
these phases occur,
wholly unadvisable to apply this
name
it is
to the process. " Great White
Consumption has been called the it has been widely advertised that consumption destroys more people every year than all other " diseases" put together, and because of these statements a very widespread, inconsiderate, and nonPlague," and
601
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
602
consumption has been
intelligent fear of
instilled into
the public mind. It of
true that consumption does destroy the lives
is
more people every year than
all
other phases of
abnormality, because consumption is a part of all other phases of abnormality, and for that reason alone, the process occurring by itself, causes the death of a very inconsiderable number compared with that of other
phases of abnormality. In this view of the subject it is entirely unjustifiable and never necessary for the diagnostician to state that
an individual
is suffering from consumption or tuberbecause in the first place there actually is not " a disease," and in the second place no aid could come
culosis;
from announcing shifting process
is
it if
there were,
and to declare that a
a thing, so deadly as people generally
think consumption to be, is almost criminal as coming within the law against manslaiighter.
Consumption occurs in two general phases, the first some extent considered herein, and
of which has been to
a general, disintegratory, wasting process; the second a process of degeneration, by which tubercles of morbidity are produced, followed by the breaking down is is
and disintegration
of those tubercles; the phase being
called tuberculosis.
Tuberculosis
There
is
lungs, brain
The
may
occur in any tissue of the body.
tuberculosis of the liver, spleen, pancreas,
and so on.
lungs being the respiratory organs, and, there-
fore, highly
iuvolved in the process of furnishing active
material to the body to maintain
its vitality,
present
the most pronouncedly adverse conditions imder the
CONSUMPTION—TUBERCULOSIS process called tuberculosis, and
when consumption
it is
603
for this reason that,
mentioned, that thought is usually directed to the lungs. It has been seen that this is not necessarily true, but, nevertheless, it is a fact that produces gravely adverse effects upon the
or tuberculosis
is
human family.
When
occlusion of stimulus in nerves to the lungs
sufficiently
is
grave and the tissue tendency, whether
hereditary or otherwise,
is
sufficiently adverse, stases
are formed in the parenchyma of the lungs, and these are centers for the retention of disintegrate lung tissue,
which accumulates, producing tubercles or nodules of morbid matter. After a time occlusion of the nerves to certain areas is so nearly complete that the condition necessary for animation in the tubercles ceases to exist, and they begin a progressive disintegration or decay. At this stage, here, as elsewhere, scavenger germs come into existence, and aid in the process of morbid disintegration. At the time the tubercles begin to decay, they and the germs that evolve in them are toxins, the effect being that they become centers of intense irritation, not only by reason of the activity of the germs, but because the toxins escape through the vessels of transportation, by osmosis, and irritate widely. The composite effect of this irritation is intense motor reaction and columnar constriction throughout the whole thoracic and cervical regions, producing widespread and intense occlusion to the whole lung tissue, resulting in an elevated temperatiu'e, which may range very high. At this stage the negative phase of the affirmative process becomes very pronounced.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
604
Therapeutists think the germs that aid in disintegrating tubercles, in the lungs and other tissues are the
cause of tuberculosis. It will be seen that such a proposition is wholly without any facts to sustain it, and is getting the cart decidedly before the horse, for, of course,
the tubercles produce the germs and not the germs the tubercles.
The
so-called bacillus tuberculosis could not exist if were not for the tubercles. The tubercles could not come into being without the process of consumption, the process of consumption could not exist if the ultimates of tissue construction were not disturbed and particularly those phases which relate to an increased disintegration of cells with lessened depuration. The conditions enumerated could not exist if liquid transportation were normal, and it would be normal if there
it
was no occlusion iavolved.
of stimulus in nerves to the areas
Occlusion
of
stimulus,
therefore,
is
the
incipient cause of tuberculosis.
In this view of the case it will be seen that so far from being the cause of tuberculosis; the tubercle germ is only
an iacident to
it
and an incident
occiu-ring far along in
the adverse process, and not until after the tubercles
have formed and have begun progressive decay, which is
ordinarily referred to as
the " softening of the
tubercles."
Consumption, so far from being a romantic disease; sympathy from the friends of the afflicted,
calling for is
a disgrace, and
is an indictment against the human and far reaching that it should cause shame to mantle the cheek of every fair
family, so grave
a blush of
minded person.
CONSUMPTION—TUBERCULOSIS
605
The animals in the jungle, living as it were in the heart of the
hand
of the Creator, conforming their lives to the
laws of nature, by instinct, never suffer from this process of degeneracy. No savage peoples have ever been found that were suffering from the process of degeneracy, called con-
sumption or tuberculosis.
To the utter shame of members of the social fabric, however, it must be said, that when animals of the jungles and savages of the human race are brought into near association with civilized man and compelled, in certain measures, to adopt his mode of life, they become subject to this adverse process. Tuberculosis has been found active in rabbits, sheep and cattle of the domesticated variety, and the more completely rabbits, sheep, cattle and so on are compelled to live like civilized human beings, the more completely they become the subject of this adverse process. To be free from the adverse process of consumption or tuberculosis, the human family cannot go back to savagery, but by careful study and thought, it can ascertain what particular errors, of the conduct of civilized life, produce these deleterious and far reaching effects and can correct those errors in habits and conditions.
The change from savage to civilized life, with respect to the substances used for food, their selection, combination, preparation
and
eating, are
prime factors in
the adverse conduct under discussion.
The methods
of dressing, housing,
and heating
are
elements worthy of the most profound consideration; but most profound and important of all are the irrita-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
606
and excitements incident to social life, the damaging influences of adverse marriage, and improper
tions
sex relation in connection therewith; to say nothing of excessive
and adverse sex
relation in other respects,
these are the paramountly adverse phases peculiarly provocative of these adverse processes. These and many other adverse habits, that may be
mentioned, while they have marked the pathway to owe boasted intelligence and civilization have also directed us into the pathway of our degeneracy, imtil from a condition of health and strength in our pristine days of savagery we have now become a race of degenerates.
It
is,
of course, understood that long continued phases
under occlusion of nerve stimulus incident to adverse conduct occurred before the abnormal tissue conditions were produced that made consumption or tuberculosis a possibility. To remove the plague of consumption, and this, of of tissue degeneracy,
course, includes all phases of functional abnormality,
a return to the harmony of conditions that preceded civilization. This has been variously
will necessitate
as "a retiu"n to the simple life," a " getting back to nature, etc. These, however, are nice soimding phrases substantially without meaning. It is the problem of this age to devise a conduct that will tend in the right direction, physically and mentally and at the same time wiU retain all of the advantages
characterized
'
'
of civilization.
not the pm-pose of this chapter to outline such a reformation, but merely to point out that to arrive at It
is
—
the desired goal
^health, attention
must be primarDy
CONSUMPTION—TUBERCULOSIS directed to the following subjects
named:
in the order
ingestion, digestion, heating, clothing, aeration,
depiu-tion,
and sex
and
607
mode of
dwelling,
and
especially to marriage
relation.
Pending such a revolution, however,
it
wiU be found
that in the majority of cases, conformity to proper rules in diet, dwelling, clothing, ventilation
and depuration, by proper
together with sexual abstemiousness, aided
remove the process called consumption or tuberculosis and secure function that approximates
relatings will
the normal.
many
advanced so far, in which of necessity must be performed by them cannot be accomplished, even pending restoration. In such cases, the process must result fatally, and this must be true and is a condition that must be met with frequently, imtil the reformations herein suggested have been accomplished, to an appreciable extent, and the difficulty will not be wholly overcome, until our physical and mental conditions have evolved to a parity with those which exist among savage peoples. Relating to remove occlusion in consumption is of such a general nature that no specific rule can be laid down. It wiU be found that all of the organs of the body are abnormal, many of them gravely so. The Chiropractor will begin by relating at places where there is gravest occlusion, and that will be especially true, if the nerves from those places extend to vital centers, and will thus progress until the tissues of the body have evolved and regenerated to such an extent that the general bodily processes again approximate the normal. In
cases degeneracy has
vital organs, that the function
CHAPTER
LII
INSANITY
The therapeutists have for a long time classified certain phases of abnormality as " nervous diseases;" by this classification intending to distinguish them from "diseases " to which they have given names.
From
the basis of Chiropractic all phases of disease " are nervous," to again use the therapeutic term. That is to say, are the result of interference with the receipt, transmission and application of nerve stimulus. To the Chiropractor, the difference in phases of
upon the organs affected, and the in which they are affected, and the such effect to the whole organism. That is to
disease depends
way
characteristic relation of
say, liver abnormality, kidney abnormality, etc., are
peculiar
and
distinct phases
constitutional
aspects,
from
their
because of
different functions of these organs
immediate and
the
distinctively
both immediately
and remotely. Insanity
is
a
name which
therapeutists have given to
mind abnormality. The word not sufficiently comprehensive for the purpose they seek to make it accomplish. The word insanity simply means unsound, and of course applies to any phase of unsoundness of the whole human organism, and not to any one particular part of it. It has been laid down as a fundamental proposition in the pathologic department of this work that characteristic mental or
so used
is
608
INSANITY
609
pathology of the brain and general organism are exactly equal, because of the inter-relation that exists between them, and for elucidation of that proposition, the student is here referred to Chapter XVII of the first volume of this work. It is the therapeutic and ordinary conception that insanity is a disease of the mind. But reflection upon the matter will make it clearly appear that mind is a function of the physical brain, and that
it is
impossible
that there could be such a thing as disease of a function.
Disease cannot occur to an immaterial operation which has only been named for convenience, such as mind.
Mind
is
a
name
given by the
human
family, to the
result of the function of the physical brain within a
certain scope
and
relation.
may be abnormally performed, and that if it is abnormally performed it is so because the organs, segments or parts involved in its performance are so abnormal that their conduct fails to co-ordinate in the rhythmic and regular production of that function. It
is
perfectly clear that a function
By way
of illustrating the last statement,
if
nerves
ramifying the heart are occluded, and incidentally certain acids have accumulated in the tissues of the
be palpitation of the heart. Now, palpitation of the heart is not a thing. It is just a name given to that adverse, non-rhythmic performance of the heart, the result will
heart.
In the same way, and for the same reason, insanity the expression of an abnormal tissue condition of the brain, or of abnormal tissue conditions of the brain, and the gravity of mental imsoundness, if it could be is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
610
appraised, would be a direct criterion to the actual,
adverse tissue condition of the brain.
The remarkable situation that is confronted in an attempt to discuss insanity aypears in the fact that there is no standard of sanity. This is not different than the discussion of any other phase of abnormality, for, of course, there is no standard of normality, but in the ordinary the proposition is not so poignantly remarkable, for in all other respects we attempt to use mentality in a discussion of phases of abnormality; but the situation becomes disconcerting when an attempt is made to discuss insanity through the process of mentality, when the mind conducting the discussion knows perfectly well that there is no standard of sanity and therefore, no way to positively deduce insanity.
The situation indicated in the last paragraph would be mirth-provoking if it were not so desperately serious. Here we have the peculiar paradox; mind that has no way of knowing that it is sane, attempting to lay down rules by which to test the sanity or insanity of other minds. We are saved from too great embarrassment in the situation just referred to
by the
actual situations that
go with a discussion of sanity or insanity; for it is presumed that a person is sane if the minding function of his brain produces mentality which conforms to the usual and ordinary.
The dread consequent that
of this situation, however,
is
the brain of a person functions to the production of mind, the attributes of which do not fall within the if
scope of the usual and ordinary, he
is
said to
be
of
INSANITY
611
unsound mind, or of weak mind and conclusions
may
either of these
be wholly wrong.
because of this general conception that persons mentaUty of an unusual type are so frequently looked upon by people of ordinary mental capacity as being insane. This is so true that even statements of truth made by those possessing unusual mentality or of remarkable and unusual mental penetration, have generally been held under suspicion as the maunderings of the insane until the people became so used to the truth advanced that they accepted it. The most remarkable phenomenon of our time occurs in that department of medical jurisprudence incident to insanity. The alienist in his endeavor to ascertain whether a person is sane or insane, makes no investigation of the general processes or fimctions of the body, in an attempt to ascertain the amount and character of It
is
of profound
general distortion, and from the distortion and function to approximate the degree of brain abnormality,
if
any.
and deduce the kind of mental function taking place. On the other hand the alienist watches and studies the person for the purpose of ascertaining how nearly mental operations comport with the usual and ordi-
his
nary upon the same subjects, or in
like emergencies,
and reaches the conclusion of sanity, or insanity and gravity from such abstractions.
its
not necessary to discuss the inadequacy of the just outUned, for the purpose of arriving at a just conclusion as to whether a person is sane or insane. By that method Christopher Columbus, Galileo, Robert Fulton, Benjamin FrankUn, Wilbur It
is
method
Wright, Marconi,
Thomas
Edison, Elbert Hubbard,
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
612
D. D. Palmer and the author have been classified as insane.
of this
work would
all
The fact is that only those persons are sane, in whom the receipt, transmission, and application of nerve stimulus
is
wholly without impediment. Or to put
other words, those persons sion of nerve stimulus,
who have
and
since
it
in
no occluthere are none such, suffered
is no person who is absolutely sane. In view of the statement just made, it must be understood that there has been established a scope of variance which is classified as being within the physiologic, and within that range of fluctuation, mentality that is produced must be held to be sane. Beyond that scope of
there
fluctuation the pathologic
is
entered and
when
that
portion of the brain, constructed to produce mind, enters the pathologic, then insanity begins.
To
still
paragraph,
further explain the statement in the last it
must be understood that minds produced
from
brains, acting within the scope of certain mild phases of pathology, do not receive the classification of insanity, but are designated as being queer, mentally odd, eccentric, or off mentally, in some particulars. However, the cold fact must be reached that aU of these phases are simply insanity.
The
is not classified as being insane, and yet no doubt that his brain does not function to the production of mind that falls within the scope of sanity.
there
idiot
is
The reason
not classified as being insane is because it is the general conception that a person cannot be insane unless he has had mind, and lost at least some phases of it because of brain pathology. The idiot never having bad mind does not come within the classificathe idiot
is
INSANITY
613
the result of an anomalous construction of those parts of the brain, which should tion.
In other words, idiocy
is
function to the production of mind, so that they completely fail to so function.
There
is
another class of defectives that should be
which is although not
referred to in this connection, the condition of
sometimes analogous to that of idiocy, necessarily so.
The
reference
is
to the child of parents
and daughter, son and mother, aunt and nephew, niece and uncle, and the like. Children from the character of inbreeding stated in too near akin, such as double
first cousins,
father
the preceding paragraph are
frequently born with which are incapable of producing certain qualities of mind. The reason for this lies in the fact that the chemical formulae of the father and mother are so similar as to fail to give scope sufficient to produce all of the parts of offspring. Children born in this brains, portions of
condition are quasi-idiotic. It
must be admitted that children born of parents too
many
near akin mentality,
times present incipiently brilliant
marked mental
precociousness, etc.
But
all
too soon these functions languish, and are eventually lost in
what
is
called insanity. It
is
perfectly clear in
this connection that the reason for the result, is that the
chemistry of the parents
is so similar, that cohesive not had in the mind forming portions of the brain formed, and early in life resistance is overcome.
resilience is
abnormal as to consistence, the functions of the brain will be in ratio abnormal, and if that part of the brain tissue that is abnormal, is the If brain tissue
is
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
614
part which functions to the production of mind,
it will
be in ratio abnormal or insane. It has been seen that abnormal tissue is produced by trauma on the one hand, and chemical adversity on the other. Therefore, insanity may be the result of tissue injury
by trauma
of cortical areas, or
may
result
from
by the accumulation of adverse chemistry, which, might occur without incipient trauma and, of course, would result from direct injury elsewhere. injuries to cortical areas
To
illustrate these propositions, it is
only necessary
to call attention to fractures of the skull, plates are pressed
down upon
where the
the brain, which has been
known, many times, to produce insanity, and cases
when the
skull
is
in such
raised off the brain, it nearly
always resumes the production of normal mind. As to insanity as the result of chemical adversity, it is only necessary to recall the marked deliriums which occvu" as incident to so-called acute febrile processes, such as delirium tremens, typhoid fever and the like, indeed, any case of insanity which has resulted without definite traumatic injury. In phases of insanity which occur without definite traumatic injury, it will always be found that there is marked chemical adversity, and that there is widespread occlusion of nerves to the brain, producing marked cortical stases with the precipitation and retention of adverse chemistries, which by irritation and motor reaction continue the adverse functional process, and are paramoimt in the fluctuations of its peculiar
and marked expressions. Insanity, resulting from the adverse processes outlined in the preceding paragraph, would never reach
INSANITY
615
the grave and pronounced effects they sometimes do, it
were not for the fact that concomitantly with
if
all
phases of such insanity there is abnormahty of equal gravity in the large glands of the body, and that the general organism is adversely affected in ratio with brain adversity. It will be seen that glandular abnormality
mount
is
a para-
process incident to the production of insanity,
and that insanity resulting from chemical adversity can not be removed without first obtaining an approach to the normal in the large glands of the body. What has just been stated is not more than saying that the reactive processes, superinduced by irritants, frequently induce such glandular, and therefore, chemical accimiulations in
the brain, as to result in insanity.
To illustrate the last statement, it is only necessary to refer to the fact that to emotionally dwell
theme continuously
is
upon a
to bring about the adverse glandular process, fore,
single
frequently a sufficient irritation
and
there-
the chemical precipitation in the brain necessary
to the production of insanity.
The mild
presentations of this adverse phase have
been referred to as spleenic attitudes, and melancholia. Each case of mental unsoundness presents this diagnostic problem to the Chiropractor. What has caused the tissue adversity of these areas of the cortex which in their function are producing the present symptoms? (a) Is it the result of procreation between those too near akin? (b) Is it from other phases of hereditary tendency? (c) Is it from tissue conditions produced congenitally? (d) Is it from the accumulation or precipitation of adverse chemistry in the brain.
616
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
caused by occlusion, resulting in glandular and general functional adversity? (e) Is it the direct result of specific traumatic injury? When the Chiropractor has answered, or eliminated from consideration these five questions, he is ready for a definite consideration of the case in hand, and his final by the following rules: condition is the result of proIf the adverse brain creation by those too near akin, his prognosis will be, no
prognosis, which will be governed
possibility of recovery. If the adverse brain condition is the result of hereditary
tissue tendency, the prognosis will
but nevertheless
will be,
be more favorable,
very doubtful.
If the adverse brain condition is the result of tissue
adversity, produced congenitally, the prognosis will be still
If
more hopeful, but
will
still
the adverse tissue condition
is
remain doubtful.
the result of adverse
glandular processes, and therefore, adverse chemical
accumulation, the prognosis wUl be favorable provided
proper conduct in all ways can be obtained on the part of the patient. This phase, however, introduces many elements of doubt into the prognosis, because it has been found most difficult to secure the conduct necessary
on the part of the patient, not because of anything to be charged to the patient, but to the idiosyncracies and adverse theories impressed by therapy upon those having him in charge.
for the recovery
If the adverse brain conditions are the result of a specific traumatic injury, the prognosis will
be favorable,
always provided the injury done by the trauma is capable of being removed; that is, if the injury is in a place where it can be got at and corrected. This sug-
INSANITY gestion
is
617
made because sometimes as a result of trauma,
for instance in the base of the skull,
foramina are
distorted sufficiently to occlude nerves to the brain,
causing insanity, which foramina cannot be corrected, and in such a case the prognosis would be, no recovery.
With regard
to insanity, which
conditions superinduced
is
the result of tissue
by adverse chemistry, and
traumatic injury, the author wishes it understood that at least eighty per cent of such cases may be completely recovered, while the number of cases where the tissue condition is from congenital or heredspecific
itary adversity, that fifteen
can be recovered,
will
not exceed
per cent.
is addressed to removing nerves to the brain, and irritations from the terminals of all projection nerves extending
Relating to
remove insanity
occlusion from
all
from the brain. It wUl be seen that the statement
just
made
includes
primarily release of occlusion to the four depuratory
and eliminating channels of the body, and all of the large glands that have to do with such channels of depuration and elimination; the spleen, liver and pancreas accessory to the intestine; the kidneys incident to
urinary elimination and depuration, and then the lungs
and skin since they relate to the process of depuration and elimination. For, of course, before occlusion of nerves to the brain, and adverse vibration in the nerves extending from the brain can be overcome, adverse chemistry must be depurated from the areas of its production and eliminated from the organism. Therefore, primary attention must be given to releasing nerves that ramify the large digestive glands,
618
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
kidneys, lungs, and
all
areas of stasis in the skin;
concomitantly therewith correcting distortions that affect returning nerves to the brain, and large trunk nerves extending from the brain. In connection with the relating process, it seems hardly necessary to say that correct diet, clothing, housing, exercise, and total abstinence from exciters, such as tobacco, alcohol, all other narcotics and habitforining drugs,
and complete removal from
sex,
and
other mental or emotional excitations or indulgences, is
to
of
paramount importance, and necessary
be attained.
if
success
is
Part Five
A BRIEF STATEMENT OF
THE PRINCIPLES OF DIAGNOSIS
CHAPTER
LIII
DIAGNOSIS IN GENERAL
The
subject of diagnosis practically comprehends
the whole of
human
experience. There
is
no phase
of
conduct that is not of importance to the diagnostician. The importance of each phase of conduct, as an element of diagnosis, is made profoundly clear to the student of Chiropractic when he realizes that the transmission of the force of life, ordinarily called nerve stimulus, causes not only the formation of the organism but produces the seat of intelligence, and controls each phase of conduct that is accomplished. Impulse to act is as completely a phase of conduct, produced and controlled by nerve stimulus in that part of the brain in which it occurs, as is the application of stimulus that causes the
movement
of liquids in
the
conduct called assimilation, or the action of muscles, or any other part of the body. It
is
just a little difficult for a student, reared to the
specious theories of therapy, to grasp the proposition
that each phase of function or conduct is only the response of matter to the application of force matter being confined to the extra environment of this physical
—
world and
atmosphere, while force comes from a source outside of matter, for such a conception is its
entirely diflferent
and
from that met with in ordinary thought
practice.
After the student has become fairly familiar with 619
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
620
the principles of Chiropractic, however, the conception that each phase of function or conduct that takes place in
the body
is
the result of the application of force to
not difficult to understand, and in the same sense it is not difficult to understand that each phase of such conduct is important as a diagnostic aid. Since force, entering a specific channel, the brain, and being transmitted through the nerves, and applied at the endings of the nerves, causes all phases of function or conduct, it is perfectly clear that each character of conduct or function sustains the same relation to that force and its application, and if the radiation and application of that force is regular, that is, not disturbed in any way, that each phase of conduct will be normal. As a necessary corollary to this statement, any interference with the transmission of nerve force will change the character of the phases of conduct which should take place as a result of the usual application of that force, and the change in conduct will always be in direct ratio with the interference with the transmission and application of that phase of force. In view of what has just been stated, the student will imderstand that in order to master diagnosis he must learn to look upon the human body as a machine. He must learn to understand that any deviation in conduct from the usual or normal is the result of interference with transmission or application of nerve force. He must learn to be able to appraise the deviation of that conduct from the normal, or in other words, he must be able to understand the extent of interference with the transmatter,
is
mission and application of force, and the effect thereof upon the conduct of the part or organism.
DIAGNOSIS IN GENERAL
621
In order to know the amount of interference with the transmission and application of force, the diagnostician must understand what is interfering with the transmission or apphcation, the character of that interference,
and the extent
thereof.
He must know
the interference has been produced or adverse chemical effects;
whether
by traumatic
injury
and whether the injury is a by abnormal chemistry,
continuing one, being produced and,
if so,
what
is
the cause of the continued production
whether the same is the from anomalous construction, changes structure, or from erroneous raw material
of such adverse chemistry, result of irritation in
tissue
intake.
To
accomplish the object just stated, the Chiromust be possessed of a full and complete knowledge of the anatomy and physiology of the organism. His knowledge must be of such character as to conspractor
titute
him an expert mechanic
of the
human machine
ordinarily called the body.
The
student can never become a mechanic of the
character just indicated by the study of books, or the
morbid tissue, but if he will use such aids he has obtained a knowledge of all data recorded, he will be prepared to complete his knowledge by a careful and extended study of the living human organism, by observing it in all of its phases of conduct or function, dissection of until
and by extending his scope of observation to a sufficient number of organisms to acquire a knowledge of aU of the various types of conduct of which the
human organ-
ism is capable. In this connection it should be understood that no two organisms ever performed conduct in exactly the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
622
same way. Yet it will be a relief to the student of human function to know, that all conduct of organisms falls into general departments, that there are not
many
departments of conduct and that it is not difficult to tell to what department of conduct each type of person belongs.
The reference in the last paragraph is to organisms that have generally been classified as refined, coarse, sensitive, sluggish, etc.
It must, of course, be understood in coimection with
the thought being presented that there are many orgainisms which cannot be classified with any type, but that are multitype in conduct. However, even in such contingency the student will be aided by the knowledge
he has acquired of types of conduct, and will be able to distinguish the different phases with sufficient accuracy. From what has been said it wiU be seen that the manner in which an individual stands, walks, runs, sits,
or
lies,
sustains a direct relation to the trans-
mission of force into and upon his organism, and gives information of the condition of that transmission to
one
sufficiently
advised,
to
correctly
translate
meaning of that conduct. The manner in which an individual breathes,
the
talks,
laughs, or sings also bears evidence as to the trans-
mission and application of nerve force to his organism,
and reveals the degree mission of force,
if
of interference with the trans-
there be any, to those
who
are
possessed of sufficient mechanical knowledge to see,
know and it
translate.
In the mention of these several characters of conduct is deemed well to indicate a sufficiently wide range
that the
DIAGNOSIS IN GENERAL student may make complete appKcation
thought, and understand that
it
is
who have no
these lines, rely perfectly
of the
applied to
function or conduct. In this connection he
that persons
623
is
all
reminded
particular instruction along
upon being able to
tell,
upon
the casual meeting of a stranger, whether he is angry or happy. Such persons do not realize the fact, but they attain this knowledge from the ensemble of conduct of the individual, and in doing so are simply demonstrating
diagnostic ability.
Almost any person would be surprised at having
his
attention called to the diagnosis of anger or happiness
on the part of the one observed, because it has never occurred to the ordinary person that such a diagnosis is difficult.
Yet it will be found when an attempt is made and to understand how such
to analyze the situation,
a diagnosis is accomplished that the entire subject is beset with complexities. The ordinary individual, after thinking the matter over carefully, will admit that he does not know how he knew that a stranger he has met is angry or happy. However, he will insist that he knew it because the individual looked that way, without stopping to understand that looks, in that particular respect is made up from departments of function or conduct.
The face,
looks just referred to particularly refers to the
and at
this point the student's attention
must be
called to a very important proposition or phase of
expression, with
which he
not so famihar. The human organism, when viewed by one who has learned its mechanical construction and physiological operations, gives forth
is
an expres&ion that
is
as truly
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
624
characteristic of the character of its functional conduct,
as the expression of the face indicates the character of
certain emotions.
People usually suppose that expression is confined to the face, but a little thought will make it clear to the student that the whole body is just as expressive as the face, and that emotions are as clearly depicted on any part of the body as they are depicted upon the face, leaving out of the discussion specific education of the tissues of the face.
The human
has
always been uncovered of clothing, and has, therefore, been the subject of continuous study, and since the eyes, which are paramount in expression, are located in the face, the face has been accredited with more expression than is its
face
substantially
due.
To
fully appreciate the statement last
made
the
diagnostician should study the face of the blind, or the
an individual whose eyes are closed, and do this remembering that, because the face has been exposed, its tissues have been the subject of much training with the desire to produce unusual expression, or to accomface of
plish dissimulation.
common
and one with which all and well person has the active, erect, and elastic carriage, and a happy and enthusiastic expression; and are just as familiar with It
is
a
proposition,
are familiar, that the strong
the drooping, pessimistic, indecisive attitude of the dejected, soured and sick. All are familiar with the elastic step of the one that has
power and virility, and of the shuffling, uneven tread of the weak and invirile. The student must remember that the things suggested
DIAGNOSIS IN GENERAL
625
the preceding paragraph are all of the greatest importance in diagnosis, and the different characters of conduct referred to are only expressions of the normal receipt, transmission, and application of nerve stimulus, producing right chemical formulae, and directing the in
thereof into strong, elastic, and virile upon the one hand; and upon the other the interference with the receipt, transmission, and application assimilation tissues
abnormal weak, stooped, chemical formulae, resulting in the of nerve stimulus, causing the production of
and sick. paramount value as a diagnostic propoIndeed, shape controls relation, and relation
depressed, invirile
Shape sition.
is
of
dictates the character of function or conduct.
In other words, if the different parts of an organism are shaped according to the image after which that organism is patterned, their relation will be correct, and the conduct or function incident to the application of stimulus to them will be normal. It must be remembered in this connection, that abnormally shaped parts result in anatomic disrelation and the application of stimulus to such parts must of necessity be interfered with, and therefore, the conduct or function of such parts must be abnormal. In view of this phase of the subject, shape is very important, in that it reveals by comparison the phase of conduct that has maintained during the formative period.
That
is,
the present shape of parts reveals the
story of their formation,
and
tells of
the application of formative force to period of formation.
To
illustrate the
interference with
them during
their
statement in the last paragraph, the
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
626
shape of the feet of an individual, for instance, is direct evidence as to the interference with the receipt, transmission and appUcation of stimulus to them during their formative period, and in the same sense furnishes evidence bearing directly upon the relation or formation of other parts of the body which controlled the formation of the feet.
The shape
of the feet of
an
furnishes knowledge to the expert
individual, therefore,
by which he is able to
diagnose the skeletal relationship of the pelvic girdle; that is to say, the innominates and sacrum, the immediate attitude
of
and the column and the
the feetward lumbar column,
general attitude of the entire vertebral skeletal body.
In the same way the hands indicate to the diagnostician the relation sustained by the osseous segments to say,
the
cervical vertebrae,
and
that control the brachial plexus; that fourth, fifth, sixth,
the first
and seventh
is
and second thoracics particularly, and and scapulae, especially at
dentally the clavicles
inci-
their
acromian relation. Following the thought, the shape of different parts of the
body furnish
positive evidence as to the trans-
mission and application of stimulus during the period
The anomalous orifices of the sex eyes, nose, and mouth are peculiarly
of their formation.
body, and the demonstrative of this fact. In connection with the thoughts that have just been presented, it must not be overlooked that the shape and attitude of the tissues of organs and orifices of the body present profound evidences of the present interference with the transmission and application of nerve stimulus,
DIAGNOSIS IN GENERAL and indicate the exact amount
627
of interference
which
is
being caused thereby. It will be seen that the individual
who would become
a diagnostician must become an expert observer, and and must learn that he cannot put aside or neglect the
most simple and apparently unimportant circ*mstance.
The mistake has been made practors do not attend to
wholly with causes. This
The
is
of supposing that Chiro-
but that they deal indeed a profound mistake. eflFects,
Chiropractor's entire diagnosis
observation of
is
directed to the
and the deduction
effects,
of causes
from such effects. In this connection
it
must be remembered that a
vertebral subluxation
is
nothing in the world but an
effect.
It cannot be diagnosed nor understood except by
ascertaining
by comparison the
effect of its disrelation,
and the sequential effects incident which results from it.
to the distortion
Starting with the fact that simple disrelation and of a Chiropractor
is
we
observe that the entire work peculiarly and solely confined to
subluxation are effects,
and removing effects. He is the doctor above aU others who must understand every phase of function or conduct of the human body. He must be ascertaining
able to take into consideration at one sweeping,
comprehensive
investigation
each
department
all-
of
conduct, and must understand just what effect each of
such phases of conduct produce upon and within the human machine. The Chiropractor should understand, since the human body is a machine, that all parts of it are equally important,
and that shape,
color, size
and
relation of each
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
628
determines the conduct of that part. He should also realize that the conduct of each part has its
part of effect
it
on each other part and generally upon the whole
organism, as to thereof.
and
He
its
should
general functions
know
that
when
relation of each part are read
and the
details
shape, color, size
and understood they
capacitate the observer to appraise the exact degree of
abnormality in the organism.
CHAPTER LIV RELATION OF SYMPTOMS TO DIAGNOSIS In the twenty -three hundred years or more in which therapeutics, classified under the head of medicine, has held the field, practically undisturbed, an immense literature has developed on the symptoms of disease. Whatever else may be justly said of the faults and foibles of therapeutists, commendation should be extended to them for their indefatigable observance and recording of the symptoms of disease even though done
from In
their viewpoint.
however, it must not be overlooked ages should receive the severest having only observed and recorded
this connection,
that therapeutists of criticism
for
symptoms
all
of disease instead of recording
symptoms
generally, whether of abnormality or normality. It
symptoms,
is
view of the thought are only evidences tending to establish the one or the other clear that
of these
The
in this
two conditions.
which therapeutists should that they have expended substantially all of their labors in the observance and recording of symptoms in an effort to prove that a certain disease, which they had named, did or did not exist; that is, the observance and recording has been expended in an effort to prove that the symptoms necessary to constitute a certain disease were present or were not present, instead of expending effort in the thing, however, for
receive the
most blame
is
CfflROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
630
observance of symptoms for the only legitimate purpose; that of ascertaining the exact physical condition and functional conduct in order to be able to declare health or disease and the extent of either phase. The entire purpose, as seen in the chapter preceding
any doctor making a diagnosis is to ascertain exact status of condition and operation, and the the cause of that condition and functional process.
this, of
However, in the
if
manner
therapeutists
had gone about
their
work
just indicated, therapy or the so-called
would long ago have ceased to exist, would have been transformed into a system of
science of medicine, for it
analysis, displacing theory for fact.
during the centuries of medicine, investigation and recording of truth had been as persistently carried on, as the observance of symptoms to sustain theory has been, human beings at this time would know substantially all truth concerning their bodies, instead of looking upon them as mysteries, and would be evolved If,
and
well instead of a race of degenerates.
has set the example to the world of properly investigating the organism with a view to ascertaining: (1) the normalness or otherwise of its construction; (2) the amount of divergence from Chiropractic
is
young, but
normal construction;
(3)
it
injuries
as they effect its
structure, anomalies affecting its conduct;
functional operations, proving the
from the normal
and
(4) its
amount of divergence
in construction or structure.
The is
truth that Chiropractic has been able to develop comprehensive of the entire subject, and is fast
impelling
all
abandon the
methods to discard internal medicine; to theories
of
disease,
as therapeutically
RELATION OF SYMPTOMS TO DIAGNOSIS
631
promulgated, and attend to the simplicity and beauty of truth as revealed by the organism in its conduct or function.
No human being has a right to teach what demonstrate, and
if
he cannot
Chiropractors will adhere strictly
and simple
which is always capable of demonstration, it will not be long until theory will have disappeared, with its sickening posing of
to the plain
truth,
hypotheses.
In
all
the vast lore of therapy there
expression of the conception, that a
is
nowhere the
symptom could
apply to anything but disease. As already stated, this is
clearly erroneous.
Chiropractic teaches that a
symptom
is
only an
evidence of a structural condition, or a phase of
conduct indicating a tissue condition, be a symptom tending to establish the normal, or the abnormal. Symptoms of normal structure, and therefore of normal function or conduct, are fully as numerous and functional
whether
it
certainly of as
much
value to the diagnostician as those
that tend to prove abnormal structure and relation
and
therefore,
abnormal processes.
not " a disease," but that there are only phases of abnormality, it will be seen that the Chiropractic diagnostician exercises a very large liberty. It is not necessary for him to determine what disease, speaking therapeutically, the individual has, but only to determine what phase of abnormality is paramount in the organism under Since
Chiropractic teaches that there
is
consideration.
The
Chiropractic diagnostician
is
as intent
on observ-
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
632 ing
symptoms
normal relation and process as he
of
those of abnormal relation and process.
by noting the symptoms
He knows
is
that
and normal body that and function. He knows that of relationship
fmiction, he will find the part or parts of the
are abnormal in relation
interference with nerve stimulus
is
functional abnormality, therefore, he
the. is
cause of
all
primarily seek-
ing to locate abnormal relations interfering with trans-
when he has located he will know what is and when he has ascer-
mission of stimulus; knowing that
and appraised those
distortions
the matter with the individual,
tained the extent to which transmission of stimulus interfered with,
he
will
know
is
the exact gravity of
abnormal
tissue
correctly
appraise hereditary tissue tendencies, and
and
process, provided that he can also
congenital influences.
A
Chiropractic
observing
all of
diagnosis,
therefore,
consists
in
the symptoms, conditions and functions
normal as well as those tending to prove the abnormal, and from of the patient; those that tend to prove the
the same to determine what segments, organs or parts
what respect and to what extent, the gravity of occlusion resulting therefrom and the character and gravity of the abnormal of the patient are distorted; in
process caused thereby.
The
diagnostician
ations, for they are
makes no
eflfort
to
name
the situ-
but disrelations producing adverse
functional processes, which are but the expressions of
the disturbed action of stimulus or the force of life. The diagnostician is always aware that he has never seen another distortion and functional process exactly like that under observation, and knows that there is no
RELATION OP SYMPTOMS TO DIAGNOSIS wisdom
in,
nor justification
structural distortion
and
its
of,
633
an attempt to name a
sequential shifting process
which does not present the same symptoms at any two periods. It
is
hardly necessary to remark that in diagnosis of
the character outlined, it is not the object to ascertain " what disease " the individual has, but to ascertain with the greatest exactness of detail what is the matter, to use the layman's term, with the patient.
A
therapeutic
symptoms
of
diagnosis
disease
consists
ascertain
to
in
noting
the
whether or not
they bring the condition within any of the " named diseases." If, ia the judgment of the diagnostician they do, he declares that fact and names " the disease;" if they do not, the diagnosis fails and he must await the development of other symptoms before he can name " the disease." By " named diseases " it will, of course, be understood that the reference is to such therapeutic designations as typhoid fever, small-pox, pneumonia, and the like. It
impossible to classify
is
disease,
yet,
assiunes to
do
to the patient.
for
symptoms
aggrandizement
the
constituting a
therapeutist
so; this frequently leads to great
The diagnostician,
declares that the patient has " a disease"
patient believes to be fatal
and
damage
after his investigation,
which the
suffers severely as the
result of this adverse suggestion.
Prequently diagnosis
when
sufficient
is
made
of " a fatal disease,"
symptoms, even therapeutically, do
not exist to justify
it.
A
great deal of
damage
results
from this character of diagnosis. It is never necessary nor wise to attempt to name any adverse process.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
684
The therapeutist, in lays much stress upon
appraisem*nt of symptoms,
his
the various coatings and colors of the tongue; the pulse, as to its frequency and character; the so-called sounds of the heart, the strength, regularity
its
and otherwise
various
sounds;
the
of its beat; respiration
various
expressions
of
and the
countenance; the color of the face; the conjunctiva of the eyes; swelling or other indications of inflammation; the conduct of the bowels and other digestive organs
and the appetite. He occasionally employs palpation and percussion to determine the feel and resonance of parts.
In connection with the measures mentioned, where it is possible, the therapeutist institutes an extended interrogation of the patient, as to how he feels, how long he has felt that way; and when he can, also interrogates the relatives, etc., as to the patient's conduct and complainings.
After the therapeutist has finished his diagnosis and
named " the
disease,"
he
is
ready to ponder upon and
pronounce his prognosis, which is his guess, as to become of " the disease" under the treatment that he proposes to administer, which must be, that his remedies wiU destroy " the disease," or that " the disease" will result in the death of the patient. He wiU, of course, go into some detail and perhaps for self finally
what
will
protection into some indirection as to either of these results.
The
Chiropractic diagnostician,
first
makes a very
and thorough examination of all the articulaand skeletal tissues to determine whether or not there is distortion and occlusion of stimulus anywhere. careful tions
RELATION OF SYMPTOMS TO DIAGNOSIS He
635
howconnection therewith every avenue of
largely employs palpation in his examination,
ever, using in
He
sense including primarily that of sight. ascertain whether there
is
will also
displaced viscera or other
parts.
the body for contusions and locates areas of disintegration by palpation and percussion, aided again by all of the senses. He takes
The Chiropractor examines
note of the color of the skin, expression of the face, the various expressions of pose and attitude of the entire body.
The
diagnostician should
make a very
detailed study of the colorings of the
iris
careful
and
of the eye, an
extended discussion of which is given in the succeeding chapter. He should carefully note the evidences of morbid deposit in diflferent parts of the body; he should feel
and
vessels,
movements of the heart, and large movement of substances in the
listen to the
and
the
alimentary canal. The examiner should pay particular attention to the condition of the tissues of the body generally, taking especial note of their resistance or lack of it; constriction or flaccidity; fixation or otherwise; abnormal color or
lack of color; swelling or shrivelling; enlargement or
atrophy and the conditions evidenced by the movements of the body. Indeed, he should allow
no
tissue condition
nor conduct to escape him. These are the essentials of his diagnosis.
By
the means mentioned, having located the places
of occlusion,
and having determined the gravity
of each,
the examiner knows what organs and parts are involved,
and to what
extent,
and from that information can
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
636
determine the degree of abnormality and the phase or phases of the adverse fxmctional process, without being told anything about the patient in the ordinary way, or by any other person, in what is usually called " the history of the case." The Chiropractor will not permit the patient to attempt to furnish him information until he has finished his diagnosis and then only of a historical character, because he knows the patient does not know what is the matter with him, and that any attempt on his part to furnish information
and that to
rely
is
almost sure to be misleading,
upon it to any extent would lead the and then it sends him into the case
diagnostician astray
with partly formed impressions which the situation not justify. Chiropractic diagnosis requires the exercise of all the sense qualities of the diagnostician, psychic as well as mental. It is a process of deduction from the law of will
normal construction and operation and
is,
therefore,
substantially unerring.
Prognosis: After the Chiropractic diagnostician has
made
he
ready to pronounce his prognosis, which is his opinion of the ultimate result of the distortion and abnormal process under the reaction, which he proposes to establish by securing the relation of the parts thus removing occlusion of stimulus. The prognosis must be of some degree of recovery or death, the probable time which will elapse before the his
diagnosis
is
result declared will occur,
and the
in their order, ordinarily
termed reactions, that
occur during that time.
different
symptoms will
CHAPTER LV DIAGNOSIS FROM THE EYE
There has been much written on the subject of diagfrom the eye. A Doctor Lane of Chicago first pubHshed a treatise on diagnosis from the eye in this nosis
country.
Lane, and the writers subsequent to him in this country, have all been therapeutists, and their data with respect to the eye has been based upon the specious theories of therapy, and are, therefore, not of much accuracy or value. The short discussion of diagnosis from the eye that is given in this and the next chapter, are for the purpose of aiding the diagnostician to use this method to confirm his Chiropractic diagnosis.
The facts stated with regard to diagnosis from the eye are deduced from the fundamental principles of biology and Chiropractic, and therefore, do not in any sense conform to the theories of Lane, or any subsequent writer upon that subject. History is replete with facts relative to the eye. The eye has always been looked upon as an organ of such importance that even the most ancient chronicles of and great men describe with much minuteness and the expressions thereof, not only generally but upon special occasions of greatness. History, romance, and poetry from the earliest times have described the eyes of kings as being peculiar and warriors
and
detail the eyes
637
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
638
unusual, and such statements are based upon the assumption that the eyes of kings are different from those of ordinary persons, and indeed, that the eyes of royalty exceed in intelligence and brilliancy those of
ordinary humanity. History, poetry and romance is full of eulogies upon and phantasies about the eye. Indeed, if we should take
out of history, song and poetry all reference to the eyes of human beings with regard to expression and power, all of the history, poetry and song in the world would have to be rewritten, and would occupy much less than half the space it does now.
The eye has always been looked upon as an organ of power; not only in the matter of control and direction, but as an incident to expression. Indeed, the eyes form so large a part of expression that without their aid the human face would be well nigh expressionless. It must be admitted that the blind learn phases of facial expression, but these are indeed incompetent when compared with a face of the same power and education illumined by the eyes. The foregoing statements are made to call the student's attention to the far-reaching and comprehensive facts that are to be detailed in this and the next chapter.
it
Coming a little closer to our subject, and considering very carefully, we realize that it is the iris of the eye
that gives to It
must
eye that is
now
is
it its
power and expression.
be remembered that it is the iris of the observed and to which diagnostic attention
also
specifically directed.
Speaking anatomatically, the
iris
of the eye is
a
DIAGNOSIS
FROM THE EYE
639
remarkable combination of structure. It is first of all composed of a basem*nt membrane on which there is distributed the sphincter muscle fibers which are circular, and the dilator muscle fibers which are radiating. The sphincter muscle fibers serve to contract the pupil of the eye, which is an aperture through the center of the iris, and the radiating fibers serve to dilate the pupil. The sphincter and radiating muscle fibers described are deposited in a stroma in which there are arterioles from the ciliary border of the iris toward the pupil, and venules of drainage radiating from the pupil toward the ciliary border.
Among the arterioles and venules there is an extensive lymph transportation system accompanied by very extensive nerve plexuses. This lymph and nerve arrangement is supported and held in relation by a delicate tissue frame-work.
A
very close and careful inspection of the
iris will
disclose that it contains substances similar in character
and construction to those foimd in any and all parts of the body, save and except ossific granules. The student must remember that this is a very important fact as incident to the study that he is now about to make. It must also be remembered in analyzing the iris of the eye that it contains a ramification of nerves which represents each part of the body, and that injury or pain in any part of the body produces its peculiar changes in the
The
iris
of the eye.
color of the eyes
is
due
chiefiy to the deposit of
pigment in the various substances occupying the stroma of the iris. The normal deposit of pigment determines the original, or better still, the normal color of the eyes.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
640
Dr. Lane in his book contends that the normal color of all eyes is blue. However, it must be remembered that he is a German, and that probably accounts for this statement. The fact is that the normal color of the eyes of different races and peoples differs as materially as does the color of their skins; and that the smooth, black shining eye of the African
is
normal to his race normal to the German
just as
as the smooth, shining blue eye
is
of the north.
however, it must be remembered color of any eye may be changed by normal that the deposit of pigmentary residues in the iris incident to abnormal processes in the body. The iris is reached and ramified by nerves from all
In
this connection,
parts of the nerve system. Therefore, infinitesimally small portions of the iris corresponds to each part of the body, and abnormality in a part of the body which corresponds to a small portion of the iris causes that portion of the iris to change its color and appearance, by lessening or increasing the amount of pigment, or causing a distorted or changed appearance in the pigment, so that it may look dirty or cloudy. Recalling for the moment the nerve system as a bilateral structure,
and remembering that
of its formatioii that there
between
its
two
analysis of the
sides,
iris, it
is
the law
a continual commissure
are prepared to take
up the
iris.
Considering the
but one
we
it is
iris
of
both eyes, then, as constituting
faithfully reveals abnormality or adverse
process in any part of the body. In other words, when looking into that combined iris we see plainly revealed
each phase of abnormality of the organism as completely
DIAGNOSIS as
if
we were
its tissues,
FROM THE EYE
able to look into the whole
and observe
its distortions
641
body through and abnormal
processes.
No diagnostician probably has ever lived who did not wish that he could look into the organism through its flesh, and see its operations in order that he might correctly diagnose its adverse relation
and
processes.
This has been made possible by a careful analysis of the irides as already suggested. The energy of mankind has been expended in an effort to improvise apparatus by means of which the flesh could be looked through for the purpose of diagnosis. The nearest approach to this accomplishment is the X-ray,
by which shadows
of bones, cartilages,
and
may be dimly distinguished, but these cast only dim shadows, and do not in any sense reveal structures, and of course are of no value in the observadense tissues
tion of adverse functional processes.
AU of the efforts of mankind in this direction have been expended without realizing, that the iris of the eye has all this time been exposed to view through the transparent cornea and aqueous humor, and that the combined irides reveal perfectly every phase of distortion
and adverse process
It will
in the entire organism.
be seen that since the iris of the average human
eye is only 11 mm. in diameter, that the portions of it corresponding to the various parts of the body are indeed very minute, and that this is peculiarly true of small somatic areas, and, of course, this is also true of the small visceral organs. Because of the infinitesimal areas in the irides corresponding to body parts, it will be readily understood
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
642
that to go into complete detail
and
analysis of disrela-
and abnormal process, from the irides would produce a work involving much complexity, and tion of tissue
in
many
cases uncertainty, because of our inability to
distinguish between such infinitesimal areas.
Such a
could be accomplished, would require a great deal more time, care, and paraphernalia than the Chiropractor needs in this department. It is a subject of gratulation, that for the purposes of
work,
if it
Chiropractic an investigation of the irides does not need to go into any considerable prolixity of detail; the simple and general fundamentals of diagnosis from the
eye being entirely sufl&cient to corroborate Chiropractic
which is all that is required. Diagnosis from the eye is only important to the Chiropractor as a confirmation of his general diagnosis,
diagnosis,
and to help him to understand with greater certainty, and in more extensive detail the extent of injuries, and therefore, tissue distortion and functional process, which are sometimes not so clearly revealed upon the surface of the body.
For the purpose of diagnosis from the eye, the student wiU conceive the irides as being merged into one. The top of the merged iris will represent the head and upper part of the body. The bottom will represent the lower part of the body and extremities; while the sides of the iris,
generally speaking, will represent the sides of the
body.
That portion
of the
iris immediately surrounding the distance represents the visceral organs of the whole splanchnic cavity.
pupil for a
In
little
this connection it should
be stated that each
iris
DIAGNOSIS is
characteristically
FROM THE EYE
64S
marked. The mesial side more
particularly representing the visceral, the lateral side
the parities. However, somatic markings occur in the complete circle of the iris, and in order that the diag-
may have a full comprehension of the he must consider each iris separately, and then apply the evidence thus obtained as if the irides constituted but one. The markings of the iris of the eye, as the result of adverse processes and anatomic distortions are
nostician
situation,
astonishing.
Tissue loss, that is to say, complete tissde disintegration is indicated by spots as though a hole had been made
through the iris, and the tissue loss may occur as the result of trauma, or by chemical adversity. Tissue losses as a result of trauma are usually indicated in the department of the iris corresponding to the injury by a smooth, clear-cut defect. Tissue losses by adverse chemistry and the process of disintegration are rough and more irregular, although indicated by what looks like a hole through the iris, however, the outlines are rougher and more irregular than those from traumatic injury. Abnormal function as the result of accumulation of
abnormal chemistries are indicated by many discolorations of marked and peculiar character. The general result of adverse functional process has the effect of darkening blue eyes until they
become gray,
sometimes almost brown; and to lighten black eyes until they become brown, yellow, or sometimes almost gray. Normal anatomic relation, and therefore, normal hazel, or
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
644
process is indicated by a fine, symmetrical
what
its
color
may
iris,
no matter
be.
In connection with the statement in the last paragraph it must be remembered that in some very light blue eyes that would indicate a close approximation to normality, the iris will not look smooth, because there is so little pigment within the structures of the stroma that the various fibers can be seen. Care must be taken in all irides not to confuse these structures with morbidity. Remembering the exception just stated, an iris that indicates the normal should be soft, smooth, and regular.
In connection with the statement of the last paragraph, the
common
iris is classified
iris;
(3)
coarse
as follows: (1) fine
iris.
iris; (2)
In connection with these
must be remembered that the first indicates some degree of abnormality, and the grave and chronic abnormality.
names
it
health, the second
third
Signs of functional abnormality in the eyes are of two characters lighter colored lines, points or clouds indicate :
and inflammation; darker
fever
and
colors in the light eye,
dark eye indicate morbid accumulations or abnormal chemistries, which it must be understood represent infinitesimal tissue losses, and lighter colors
in the
these indications increase as larger areas are involved,
by black spots in the lighter and yellow to grayish spots in black, brown, or
until they are indicated
eyes,
hazel eyes.
The
discolorations of the
many
iris
present themselves in
forms and combinations. They appear in white sheen, and points in light blue or light gray eyes. Yellow streaks with points and yellow lines, clouds, silvery
DIAGNOSIS
FROM THE EYE
645
sheens in brown and hazel eyes, and in brown to yellow sheens, streaks
and points
in dark
brown and black eyes.
There is also another phase of these discolorations which should be described. There are gray dots and streaks in blue eyes; gray streaks or dots with gray smudges in hazel eyes; hazel streaks, dots or smudges in brown eyes; and gray, yellow and brown dots, streaks and smears in black eyes. The location of defects and markings in the iris of the eyes indicate their diagnostic value to the student under the general key given in the next chapter. By use of the key, remembering the character of these discolorations and defects, the diagnostician can quickly locate them and their character, and by that means locate the organ or part that is aflFected, and determine the char-
and gravity of affection. For the purpose of a rough
acter
illustration of the char-
acter of defects that the diagnostician is
referred to the figure herewith given,
to look for, he which is nothing but a black and is
but a rough schema, and of course is white print, so that the colors to be looked for are not given, but the style, shape and peculiarities of the defects are indicated, and if in addition to this he will
remember the
colors already given, the
two
will aid his
imagination so that by careful and extended examination of
many
irides
he
will
become
proficient in arriving at
the very truth of any pathologic situation.
In the next chapter a key to the diagnosis from the eye will be given in the form of a rough department sketch, which will meet with the necessities of diagnosis from the iris, for the purpose of corroborating the Chiropractic diagnosis.
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
646
This figure
stomach and
is
not intended to show defects in the Such defects are the same
intestinal rings.
in discoloration as others,
but are more
FIGURE
infinitesimal.
1
IRIS—TISSUE INJURY INDICATIONS
—
Note: ^The student will observe that Figure 1 is only intended to give the character of defects that occur in the iris as the result of distortion. The location of defects as given in this figure is of no significance, but is to give the student characters in white and blacK which will direct him to an understanding of defects that he will find in the iris of the eye.
The
defects indicated in this figure will be given
commencing on the
left side of section
defect will be described in circle;
and each around the
1,
its order entirely the letters of the alphabet being used for desig-
nations.
A. Left half of section
1,
large white cloud indicates
pronounced inflammation in its earlier phases before great tissue degeneration has occurred.
DIAGNOSIS
FROM THE EYE
B. Right half of section of a
1,
647
alternating inflammation
somewhat more chronic type than
(A).
C. Section 2, chronic inflammation Black lines and dots indicating disintegrating tissue with retained morbidity. D. Section 2, white streak along rim of iris indicates inflammation of a prolonged character, and is of the same character as that produced by continuous use of in earlier stage.
glycerine
E. of
and
The
alcohol.
first figure in
section 3 indicates closed defect
an inflammatory nature; has greater morbid accumuthan that of section 2.
lation
F.
The
figure immediately in the right aspect of
and chronic inflammation, with extended areas of tissue loss. G. The first defect to the right deep in 3 indicates internal tissue loss by trauma with continuing inflammasection 3 indicates a wide
tory processes.
H. The
rim right side section 3 indicates an area by trauma. I. The defect at the rim of section 3 indicates extended tissue loss with morbid accumulation in figure near
total tissue loss in
subcutaneous or superficial
The
tissues.
in section 4 indicates an open same as in section 2, of long standing and with greater morbid accumulation. The next figure in section 4 indicates the same thing, but covering a wider area and of longer standing. K. The other figures in section 4 indicate tissue losses of various kinds by abscess or trauma. L. The indications in section 5 show both open and closed infiammatory and chronic defects, with large J.
defect the
first figure
CHIROPRRACTIC ANALYSIS
648
areas of tissue disintegration
and morbid accumulation,
with small areas of the same character. of this section are quite general,
The
indications
and are only presented
to give the student a wider range of ideas.
M. The
first
half of section 6
is
the same as 5 except
that the defect extending out to the rim indicates skeletal tissue effects rather than visceral, while the defects further in indicate pathology of the viscera.
N. The indications in the remaining portions of 6 show abscessed conditions with morbid accumulation peculiarly incident to abnormal ftmction section
of glands.
The student must understand that in a black and white figure such as this the defects cannot be given accurately,
and to these
signs of defects
he must add
the discolorations from the descriptions given and those in the next chapter, aided by examination of many irides in order to
become
proficient.
CHAPTER LVI KEY TO DIAGNOSIS FEOM THE EYE The
student's attention
is
No. Two of the key to
called to figure
herewith shown as furnishing the basis diagnosis
from the
concentric rings,
He
eye.
represents the
figtire
by
iris
is
to understand that the
of the eye divided into seven
eight circles equally distant
from
each other.
'•-,
V-U4
^J'i
IRIS—DIVIDED INTO HEMISPHERiS
—^The student will observe that the cut here
Note:
is intended to indicate a composite iris. That is the two irides merged into one, divided by the median line of the body. The defects found in the iris of the left eye will be found particularly marked at the left of this median line and less so in the same area to the right of it and vice versa.
In ring three of division one, are the defects indicating abnormality of the heart, pancreas,
and
bronchi.
Defects in the heart and bronchi are indicated in the 1, the heart defects sometimes
third ring of section
merging into section in sections 3
and
2; the
pancreas in the third ring
5.
Defects in the third ring in section 4, and sometimes merging into sections 5 and 3 indicate the transverse colon.
KEY TO DIAGNOSIS FROM THE EYE
653
must be explained that the exact location in the and as are herein later to be indicated are influenced by the size of the structure in It
rings as just indicated,
which the pathology occurs. For instance, suppose the defect indicates a tissue loss in the left extremity of the
pancreas.
The
defect would then
in the pancreatic area of the left slightly
marked
in the
same
show more markedly and would be only
iris,
locality of the right
iris.
In ring four will be found the defects indicating abnormality of the bronchi, trachea, lungs, diaphragm, hepatic and spleenic flexures of the colon, the transverse colon, including certain defects of the kidneys, liver
and
spleen.
The- defects of the bronchi and trachea occur in ring be found in divisions 2 and 6 of ring four. Defects of the diaphragm as to its central part may be found in any part of ring four, divisions 1, 2 and 6. Defects indicating the hepatic flexure are found in ring four, divisions 6, and 5. Defects indicating the splenic flexure are found in that four, division 1, while those in the lungs will
portion of ring four, divisions 2 and 3, and those of the transverse colon in ring four, in divisions 5, 4,
and
3,
depending upon the location of the abnormality in the gut.
Certain defects in the
left
kidney
will
be indicated
in ring four, section 3, while those of the right are
observed in ring four, section 5. Defects of the liver are indicated in ring three, sections 5 and 4 and may extend wider than the lines of sections 5 and 4, depending upon the area of the liver involved.
Indications of defects of the spleen are found in ring
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
654
and may merge into section 2, depending on the gravity of envolvement. In ring five the indications of defects in the brain and sex organs are found, with certain defects merging into this area from any of the defects indicated in ring four four, section 3,
according to their positions. Defects in the brain are chiefly found in ring
five,
section 1, while the sexual centers are indicated in ring
but it must be understood that brain defects may merge into sections 6 and 2, while indications of sex defects may merge into sections 5 and 3. In ring six the indication of defects of the liver, spleen, thyroid glands, larynx, pharynx, and the. small glands
five, section 4,
of the cervical region are found.
The
indications of defects in the liver are found in
sections 5
and 3
chiefly,
but
will
sometimes be found
extending across from 5 to 3 of ring
six.
Indications of defects in the spleen are chiefly found in ring six, division 3.
Defects of the thyroid gland in ring six division
1 as
pharynx and cervical glands. must be understood that ring six of the iris is frequently encroached upon by indications of defects from rings five and seven. Many of the signs of defects assigned to ring seven are found as plainly marked in well as those of the larynx, It
Sections as diagramed do not establish hard
ring
six.
and
fast rules,
but are only given for topographical
directions for examination.
In ring seven indications of defects of skin, subcutaneous tissue, skeletal muscles, and of course the nerves
and ganglia therein, are found, and this ring the headward and feetward extremities.
also includes
KEY TO DIAGNOSIS FROM THE EYE
655
It will be seen that indications of defects of the skin,
and immediately underlying
skeletal
respectively in all divisions of ring seven,
merge into ring
six.
The body
is
tissues,
occur
and frequently
divided for consider-
ation as stated in the next paragraph.
Indications of defects in the head, neck vertebral
and upper
column are found in section 1 of ring seven; and upper extremities in sections 2
of the shoulders
and 6
of ring seven; of the middle portions of the
vertebral
column from the
and and 3
fifth thoracic to
ing the second lumbar in sections 2, 6, 5,
includof ring
seven of the thighs, legs and feet, and the feetward part of the trunk are found in section 4, and sometimes merge into 3 and 5 of ring seven. This is especially true in such ;
phases of abnormality as inguinal hernia. The defects indicated in the seventh ring, and those which merge into the sixth, are the most interesting of all that occur in the iris to the Chiropractor, because here are to be found defects indicating distorted skeletal
and also tissue losses of the skeletal body, and from this area of the iris he is most frequently able to confirm his skeletal analysis and pathologic tissues,
therefore,
diagnosis. It
must be remembered that
and six of are somewhat more deeply rings seven
the lateral half of each
iris
marked by
the skeletal body, while the
defects
in
haK are more deeply the visceral body. The
corresponding areas of the mesial
marked by
defects occurring in
mesial half of the irides as to the rings indicating viscera,
visceral
are
more deeply marked by
body while the
lateral portions
corresponding areas will be
less
defects in the
comprehending
deeply marked, and
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
656
this is also true of rings
seven and
six of
the mesial half
of the irides. It is believed that this very brief outline
corroborative aid to the Chiropractor,
is
suflBcient
who will not have
time nor necessity for complexity and detail in kind of work.
this
OTHER MARKINGS It must be remembered that by the retention of morbidity the organism produces in its substance all of the poisons that are produced by artificial combinations outside of the body, and therefore, the irides may be marked by defects produced by such accmnulations in persons that have never been internally medicated, sometimes as completely as those that have been chronic medicine takers. Notwithstanding this fact, however, for the purpose of giving the student some little data along these lines, a few of the characteristic defects produced by internal medication will be given, to which the student may add
by
his experience as
he becomes more proficient in
this
phase of diagnosis. It
is
suggested in this connection that the reader
procure a chart of each
iris;
say four feet in diameter,
diagramed as indicated in the key herewith given, and as he observes defects in irides that he indicate them on the charts. By this means he will soon have very extensive data which will be of much value as reference. It will be understood that the drugs here to be mentioned taken into the alimentary canal, produce signs of defects in the departments of the stomach, intestine, liver, spleen, pancreas, kidneys and skin.
KEY TO DIAGNOSIS FROM THE EYE
657
it is by taking all of these signs of defects and considering them together that the real situation may be approximated, and correctly diagnosed. Mercury defects, in the various parts, are indicated somewhat as follows: In the blue eye by grayish-white rings and spots of metallic shine, more pronounced in the seventh ring. This discoloration is greenish-yellow in the brown eye and yellowish-green
Frequently
in the black eye.
Quinine gives to the blue the various departments of large glands. In
iris
it
a yellowish color in
corresponding to the
brown eyes the discoloration is yellowish-
and in black eyes a brownish-green. In the gray eye the shade tends to the darker. It will of course be understood that these indications are plainly marked gray,
in the parts corresponding to the
stomach and intestine
as well as in the locations of the large digestive glands.
Arsenic produces indications of defects largely in that part of the skeletal
tissue,
iris
corresponding to the skin and
with splotches somewhat like snow
flakes in the seventh
and
sixth rings, especially in those
parts corresponding to the brain, vertebral column,
and
extremities.
Strychnine causes yellowish-white lines in the area
corresponding to the stomach and intestine. These will
be apparent in the department of the brain, large and the heart. Chronic strychnine takers have a silvery sheen covering the seventh ring at the margin of the iris, sometimes encroaching upon the sclerotica to a also
glands,
considerable depth. Salicylic
of the
Add produces
blue
eye,
a dirty gray color of the iris beginning to show more
usually
CHIROPRACTIC ANALYSIS
658
markedly in section 1. In the brown eye this discoloration is a dirty yellowish-gray. In the black eye it is a yellowish-green. This drug is used very extensively for rheumatism, and produces such marked changes in the iris as generally to be easily discovered. Glycerine
is
the
sweet
principles
of
oils.
It
is
remarkable for its peculiar property of dissolving in water. It is looked upon as being harmless, but from the fact that it will dissolve in water it is one of the most harmful drugs used in therapy, for it will saturate every tissue including bone. Glycerine produces large, white clouds in rings seven and six especially, and other parts of the iris corresponding to the skin, kidneys, brain and lungs. If it has been used very extensively these clouds sometimes encroach upon the sclerotica around the border of the iris. Alcohol produces marked indications of defects in the area of the stomach, which is of a darker shade in the light eye, and of a lighter shade in the dark eye. Since alcohol is almost entirely eliminated through the brain, lungs and skin, it will be principally indicated in the departments of the iris corresponding to the brain, lungs and skin. The regular and continuous use of alcohol for a considerable period of time produces cloud-like rings around the margins of the iris sometimes encroaching upon the sclerotica. The illustrations given are sufficient to introduce the student to the subject in such a way that he may follow out his investigations along the lines suggested. It
is
suggested that the practitioner of Chiropractic
use his knowledge of diagnosis from the eye, for the
purpose of ascertaining the general adverse conditions of
KEY TO DIAGNOSIS FROM THE EYE persons with fessional
whom
way. That
659
he comes in contact in a semi-prois,
persons
who come
to
him
for
consultation incident to becoming patients.
For such purposes diagnosis from the eye is of great by it, before he has made his Chiropractic diagnosis, he wiU be advised as to aid to the Chiropractor, for
the general character of abnormality the individual
and
have a good approximation as to the length of time the individual has been under adverse process, and in a general way the amount of injury he expresses,
will
has sustained.
The Chiropractor who has a well developed knowledge from the eye as herein indicated will know
of diagnosis
what organs
and which are pronouncedly abnor-
of his prospective patient are involved,
especially those organs
mal, and he will be able to convince the patient before he enters into a Chiropractic examination that he is possessed of the knowledge of the
way and manner he is
affected and the extent of his abnormality.
In closing the author suggests that it is impossible for a practitioner to have too much knowledge as to the subject of diagnosis. It
is
much may be
by
learned
called to his attention that
diagnosis from the hand;
diagnosis from the feet; diagnosis from the face; and as
has already been suggested from the eye. The Chiropractor should make himself expert in all of these in order to have as many aids to his vertebral
and general body analysis and diagnosis as
possible.
Carver's Chiropractic analysis of chirop
3 1924 012 184 028